MIME-Version: 1.0 Content-Type: multipart/related; boundary="----=_NextPart_01D08B22.1EFFE4A0" This document is a Single File Web Page, also known as a Web Archive file. If you are seeing this message, your browser or editor doesn't support Web Archive files. Please download a browser that supports Web Archive, such as Windows® Internet Explorer®. ------=_NextPart_01D08B22.1EFFE4A0 Content-Location: file:///C:/2673934E/Dawn.htm Content-Transfer-Encoding: quoted-printable Content-Type: text/html; charset="windows-1252"
Dawn
By
H. Rider Haggard
"Our natures languish incomplete; Something obtuse in this ou=
r star
Shackles the spirit's
winged feet; But a glory moves us from afa=
r, And we know that we are str=
ong
and fleet."
"Once more I behold the face of her Whose actions all had the charac=
ter Of an inexpressible charm, expre=
ssed; Whose movements flowed from a ce=
ntre
of rest, And whose rest wa=
s that
of a swallow, rife With the
instinct of reposing life; Whose
mirth had a sadness all the while It sparkled and laughed, and who=
se
sadness lay In the heaven =
of
such a crystal smile That =
you
longed to travel the self-same way To the brightness of sorrow. For=
round
her breathed A grace like =
that
of the general air, Which
softens the sharp extremes of things, And connects by its subtle, invi=
sible
stair The lowest and the
highest. She interwreathed Her
mortal obscureness with so much light Of the world unrisen, that angel=
's
wings Could hardly have gi=
ven
her greater right To float in the winds of the Infinity. <=
span
style=3D'mso-spacerun:yes'> Edmund Ollier. DAWN
Contents
"You lie; you always were a liar, and you
always will be a liar. You told my father how I spent the money."
"Well, and what if I did? I had to look a=
fter
myself, I suppose. You forget that I am only here on sufferance, whilst you=
are
the son of the house. It does not matter to you, but he would have turned me
out of doors," whined George.
"Oh! curse your fine words; it's you who
forget, you swab. Ay, it's you who forget that you asked me to take the mon=
ey
to the gambling- tent, and made me promise that you should have half of wha=
t we
won, but that I should play for both. What, are you beginning to remember n=
ow--is
it coming back to you after a whole month? I am going to quicken your memor=
y up
presently, I can tell you; I have got a good deal to pay off, I'm thinking.=
I
know what you are at; you want to play cuckoo, to turn 'Cousin Philip' out =
that
'Cousin George' may fill the nest. You know the old man's soft points, and =
you
keep working him up against me. You think that you would like the old place=
when
he's gone--ay, and I daresay that you will get it before you have done, but=
I
mean to have my penn'orth out of you now, at any rate," and, brushing =
the
tears of anger that stood in his brown eyes away with the back of his hand,=
the
speaker proceeded to square up to George in a most determined way.
Now Philip, with his broad shoulders and his
firm-knit frame, would, even at eighteen, have been no mean antagonist for a
full-grown man; much more then did he look formidable to the lankly, overgr=
own stripling
crouching against the corner of the wall that prevented his further retreat=
.
"Philip, you're not going to strike me, a=
re
you, when you know you are so much stronger?"
"Yes, I am, though; if I can't match you =
with
my tongue, at any rate I will use my fists. Look out."
"Oh, Philip, don't! I'll tell your
father."
"Tell him! why, of course you will, I know
that; but you shall have something to lie about this time," and he
advanced to the attack with a grim determination not pleasant for his cousi=
n to
behold.
Finding that there was no escape, George turned
upon him with so shrill a curse that it even frightened from his leafy perc=
h in
the oak above the tame turtle-dove, intensely preoccupied as he was in cooi=
ng to
a new-found mate. He did more than curse; he fought like a cornered rat, and
with as much chance as the rat with a trained fox-terrier. In a few seconds=
his
head was as snugly tucked away in the chancery of his cousin's arm as ever =
any
property was in the court of that name, and, to speak truth, it seemed quite
possible that, when it emerged from its retreat, it would, like the propert=
y,
be much dilapidated and extensively bled.
Let us not dwell upon the scene; for George it=
was
a very painful one, so painful that he never quite forgot it. His nose, too,
was never so straight again. It was soon over, though to one of the parties
time went with unnatural slowness.
"Well, I think you've had about enough for
once," soliloquized Philip, as he critically surveyed the writhing mas=
s on
the ground before him; and he looked a very handsome lad as he said it.
His curly black hair hung in waving confusion =
over
his forehead, and flung changing lights and shadows into the depths of his
brown eyes, whilst his massive and somewhat heavy features were touched int=
o a more
active life by the light of that pleasing excitement which animates nine men
out of every ten of the Anglo-Saxon race when they are engaged on killing or
hurting some other living creature. The face, too, had a certain dignity ab=
out
it, a little of the dignity of justice; it was the face of one who feels th=
at
if his action has been precipitate and severe, it has at any rate been
virtuous. The full but clear-cut lips also had their own expression on them,
half serious, half comical; humour, contempt, and even pity were blended in=
it.
Altogether Philip Caresfoot's appearance in the moment of boyish vengeance =
was
pleasing and not uninteresting.
Presently, however, something of the same chan=
ge
passed over his face that we see in the sky when a cloud passes over the su=
n;
the light faded out of it. It was astonishing to note how dull and heavy--a=
y, more,
how bad it made him look all in a breath.
"There will be a pretty business about
this," he murmured, and then, administering a sharp kick to the prostr=
ate
and groaning form on the ground before him, he said, "Now, then, get u=
p;
I'm not going to touch you again. Perhaps, though, you won't be in quite su=
ch a
hurry to tell lies about me another time, though I suppose that one must al=
ways
expect a certain amount of lying from a half-bred beggar like you. Like mot=
her,
like son, you know."
This last sentence was accompanied by a bitter
laugh, and produced a decided effect on the grovelling George, who slowly
raised himself upon his hands, and, lifting his head, looked his cousin ful=
l in
the face.
It was not the ghastly appearance of his mangl=
ed
and blood-soaked countenance that made Philip recoil so sharply from the si=
ght
of his own handiwork--he had fought too often at school to be chicken-heart=
ed about
a little bloodshed; and, besides, he knew that his cousin was only knocked
about, not really injured--but rather the intense and almost devilish malig=
nity
of the expression that hovered on the blurred features and in the half-clos=
ed
eyes. But no attempt was made by George to translate the look into words, a=
nd
indeed Philip felt that it was untranslatable. He also felt dimly that the =
hate
and malice with which he was regarded by the individual at his feet was of a
more concentrated and enduring character than most men have the power to
originate. In the lurid light of that one glance he was able, though he was=
not
very clever, to pierce the darkest recesses of his cousin's heart, and to s=
ee
his inmost thought, no longer through a veil, but face to face. And what he=
saw
was sufficient to make the blood leave his ruddy cheek, and to fix his eyes
into an expression of fear.
Next second George dropped his head on to the
ground again, and began to moan in an ostentatious manner, possibly in orde=
r to
attract some one whose footsteps could be plainly heard proceeding slowly d=
own
a shrubbery-path on the other side of the yard wall. At any rate, that was =
the
effect produced; for next moment, before Philip could think of escape, had =
he
wished to escape, a door in the wall was opened, and a gentleman, pausing on
the threshold, surveyed the whole scene, with the assistance of a gold-moun=
ted
eye-glass, with some evident surprise and little apparent satisfaction.
The old gentleman, for he was old, made so pre=
tty
a picture, framed as he was in the arched doorway, and set off by a natural
background of varying shades of green, that his general appearance is worth=
sketching
as he stood. To begin with, he was dressed in the fashion of the commenceme=
nt
of this century, and, as has been said, old, though it was difficult to say=
how
old. Indeed, so vigorous and comparatively youthful was his bearing that he=
was
generally taken to be considerably under seventy, but, as a matter of fact,=
he
was but a few years short of eighty. He was extremely tall, over six feet, =
and
stood upright as a lifeguardsman; indeed, his height and stately carriage w=
ould
alone have made him a remarkable-looking man, had there been nothing else
unusual about him; but, as it happened, his features were as uncommon as his
person. They were clear-cut and cast in a noble mould. The nose was large a=
nd
aquiline, the chin, like his son Philip's, square and determined; but it was
his eyes that gave a painful fascination to his countenance. They were stee=
ly
blue, and glittered under the pent-house of his thick eyebrows, that, in st=
riking
contrast to the snow-white of his hair, were black in hue, as tempered steel
glitters in a curtained room. It was those eyes, in conjunction with sundry
little peculiarities of temper, that had earned for the old man the title of
"Devil Caresfoot," a sobriquet in which he took peculiar pride. So
pleased was he with it, indeed, that he caused it to be engraved in solid o=
ak
letters an inch long upon the form of a life-sized and life-like portrait of
himself that hung over the staircase in the house.
"I am determined," he would say to h=
is
son, "to be known to my posterity as I was known to my contemporaries.=
The
picture represents my person not inaccurately; from the nickname my descend=
ants
will be able to gather what the knaves and fools with whom I lived thought =
of my
character. Ah! boy, I am wearing out; people will soon be staring at that
portrait and wondering if it was like me. In a very few years I shall no lo=
nger
be 'devil,' but 'devilled,'" and he would chuckle at his grim and
ill-omened joke.
Philip felt his father's eyes playing upon him,
and shrunk from them. His face had, at the mere thought of the consequences=
of
his chastisement of his cousin, lost the beauty and animation that had clot=
hed
it a minute before; now it grew leaden and hard, the good died away from it
altogether, and, instead of a young god bright with vengeance, there was
nothing but a sullen youth with dull and frightened eyes. To his son, as to
most people who came under his influence, "Devil" Caresfoot was a
grave reality.
Presently the picture in the doorway opened its
mouth and spoke in a singularly measured, gentle voice.
"You will forgive me, Philip, for
interrupting your tete-a-tete , bu=
t may
I ask what is the meaning of this?"
Philip returned no answer.
"Since your cousin is not in a communicat=
ive
mood, George, perhaps you will inform me why you are lying on your face and
groaning in that unpleasant and aggressive manner?"
George lifted his blood-stained face from the
stones, and, looking at his uncle, groaned louder than ever.
"May I ask you, Philip, if George has fal=
len
down and hurt himself, or if there has been an--an--altercation between
you?"
Here George himself got up and, before Philip
could make any reply, addressed himself to his uncle.
"Sir," he said, "I will answer = for Philip; there has been an altercation, and he in the scuff= le knocked me down, and I confess," here he put his hand up to his batter= ed face, "that I am suffering a good deal, but what I want to say is, tha= t I beg you will not blame Philip. He thought that I had wronged him, and, thou= gh I am quite innocent, and could easily have cleared myself had he given me a c= hance, I must admit that appearances are to a certain extent against me----"<= o:p>
"He lies!" broke in Philip, sullenly=
.
"You will wonder, sir," went on the
blood-stained George, "how I allowed myself to be drawn into such a br=
utal
affair, and one so discreditable to your house. I can only say that I am ve=
ry
sorry,"-- which indeed he was--"and that I should never have taken
any notice of his words--knowing that he would regret them on reflection--h=
ad
he not in an unguarded moment allowed himself to taunt me with my birth. Un=
cle,
you know the misfortune of my father's marriage, and that she was not his e=
qual
in birth, but you know too that she was my mother and I love her memory tho=
ugh
I never saw her, and I could not bear to hear her spoken of like that, and I
struck him. I hope that both you and he will forgive me; I cannot say any
more."
"He lies again, he cannot speak the
truth."
"Philip, will you allow me to point
out," remarked his father in his blandest voice, "that the contin=
ued
repetition of the very ugly word 'lie' is neither narrative nor argument.
Perhaps you will be so kind as to tell me your side of the story; you know I
always wish to be perfectly impartial."
"He lied to you this morning about the mo=
ney.
It's true enough that I gambled away the ten pounds at Roxham fair, instead=
of
paying it into the bank as you told me, but he persuaded me to it, and he w=
as
to have shared the profits if we won. I was a blackguard, but he was a bigg=
er blackguard;
why should I have all the blame and have that fellow continually shoved dow=
n my
throat as a saint? And so I thrashed him, and that is all about it."
"Sir, I am sorry to contradict Philip, but
indeed he is in error; the recollection of what took place has escaped him.=
I
could, if necessary, bring forward evidence--Mr. Bellamy----"
"There is no need, George, for you to con=
tinue,"
and then, fixing his glittering eye on Philip: "it is very melancholy =
for
me, having only one son, to know him to be such a brute, such a bearer of f=
alse
witness, such an impostor as you are. Do you know that I have just seen Mr.
Bellamy, the head clerk at the bank, and inquired if he knew anything of wh=
at
happened about that ten pounds, and do you know what he told me?"
"No, I don't, and I don't want to."<= o:p>
"But I really must beg your attention: he
told me that the day following the fair your cousin George came to the bank
with ten pounds, and told him how you had spent the ten pounds I gave you t=
o pay
in, and that he brought the money, his own savings, to replace what you had
gambled away; and Bellamy added that, under all the circumstances, he did n=
ot
feel justified in placing it to my credit. What have you to say to that?&qu=
ot;
"What have I to say? I have to say that I
don't believe a word of it. If George had meant to do me a good turn he wou=
ld
have paid the money in and said nothing to Bellamy about it. Why won't you
trust me a little more, father? I tell you that you are turning me into a s=
coundrel.
I am being twisted up into a net of lies till I am obliged to lie myself to
keep clear of ruin. I know what this sneak is at; he wants to work you into=
cutting
me out of the property which should be mine by right. He knows your
weaknesses----"
"My weaknesses, sir--my weaknesses!"
thundered his father, striking his gold-headed cane on to the stones;
"what do you mean by that?"
"Hush, uncle, he meant nothing," bro=
ke
in George.
"Meant nothing! Then for an idle speech i=
t is
one that may cost him dear. Look you here, Philip Caresfoot, I know very we=
ll
that our family has been quite as remarkable for its vices as its virtues, =
but for
the last two hundred and fifty years we have been gentlemen, and you are no=
t a
gentleman; we have not been thieves, and you have proved yourself a thief; =
we
have spoken the truth, and you are, what you are so fond of calling your
cousin, who is worth two of you, a liar. Now listen. However imperious I may
have grown in my old age, I can still respect the man who thwarts me even
though I hate him; but I despise the man who deceives me, as I despise you,=
my
dear son Philip--and I tell you this, and I beg you to lay it to heart, tha=
t if
ever again I find that you have deceived me, by Heaven I will disinherit yo=
u in
favour of-- oh, oh! " and the old man fell back against the grey wall,=
pressing
his hands to his breast and with the cold perspiration starting on to his
pallid countenance.
Both the lads sprang forward, but before they
reached him he had recovered himself.
"It is nothing," he said, in his
ordinary gentle voice, "a trifling indisposition. I wish you both good
morning, and beg you to bear my words in mind."
When he was fairly gone, George came up to his
cousin and laid his hand upon his arm.
"Why do you insist upon quarrelling with =
me,
Philip? it always ends like this, you always get the worst of it."
But Philip's only reply was to shake him rough=
ly
off, and to vanish through the door towards the lake. George regarded his
departing form with a peculiar smile, which was rendered even more peculiar=
by
the distortion of his swollen features.
It is difficult to imagine any study that would
prove more fascinating in itself or more instructive in its issues, than the
examination of the leading characteristics of individual families as displa=
yed through
a series of generations. But it is a subject that from its very nature is m=
ore
or less unapproachable, since it is but little that we know even of our
immediate ancestors. Occasionally in glancing at the cracking squares of
canvas, many of which cannot even boast a name, but which alone remain to s=
peak
of the real and active life, the joys and griefs, the sins and virtues that
centred in the originals of those hard daubs and of ourselves, we may light
upon a face that about six generations since was the counterpart of the lit=
tle
boy upon our shoulder, or the daughter standing at our side. In the same wa=
y,
too, partly through tradition and partly by other means, we are sometimes a=
ble
to trace in ourselves and in our children the strong development of
characteristics that distinguished the race centuries ago.
If local tradition and such records of their
individual lives as remained are worthy of any faith, it is beyond a doubt =
that
the Caresfoots of Bratham Abbey had handed down their own hard and peculiar
cast of character from father to son unaffected in the main by the continual
introduction of alien blood on the side of the mother.
The history of the Caresfoot family had nothing
remarkable about it. They had been yeomen at Bratham from time immemorial,
perhaps ever since the village had become a geographical fact; but it was on
the dissolution of the monasteries that they first became of any importance=
in
the county. Bratham Abbey, which had shared the common fate, was granted by
Henry VIII. to a certain courtier, Sir Charles Varry by name. For two years=
the
owner never came near his new possession, but one day he appeared in the
village, and riding to the house of Farmer Caresfoot, which was its most
respectable tenement, he begged him to show him the Abbey house and the lan=
ds
attached. It was a dark November afternoon, and by the time the farmer and =
his
wearied guest had crossed the soaked lands and reached the great grey house=
, the
damps and shadows of the night had begun to curtain it and to render its
appearance, forsaken as it was, inexpressibly dreary and lonesome.
"Damp here, my friend, is it not?" s=
aid
Sir Charles with a shudder, looking towards the lake, into which the rain w=
as
splashing.
"You are right, it be."
"And lonely too, now that the old monks h=
ave
gone."
"Ay, but they do say that the house be mo=
stly
full of the spirits of the dead," and the yeoman sank his voice to an =
awed
whisper.
Sir Charles crossed himself and muttered, &quo=
t;I
can well believe it," and then, addressing his companion--
"You do not know of any man who would buy=
an
abbey with all its rights and franchises, do you, friend?"
"Not rightly, sir; the land be so poor it
hath no heart in it; it doth scarce repay the tillage, and what the house is
you may see. The curse of the monks is on it. But still, sir, if you have a
mind to be rid of the place, I have a little laid by and a natural love for=
the
land, having been bred on it, and taken the colour of my mind and my stubby=
growth
therefrom, and I will give you--" and this astutest of all the Caresfo=
ots
whispered a very small sum into Sir Charles' ear.
"Your price is very small, good friend, i=
t doth
almost vanish into nothing; and methinks the land that reared you cannot be=
so
unkind as you would have me think. The monks did not love bad land, but yet=
, if
thou hast it in the gold, I will take it; it will pay off a debt or two, an=
d I
care not for the burden of the land."
And so Farmer Caresfoot became the lawful owne= r of Bratham Abbey with its two advowsons, its royal franchises of treasure-trove and deodand, and more than a thousand acres of the best land in Marlshire.<= o:p>
The same astuteness that had enabled this wise
progenitor to acquire the estate enabled his descendants to stick tightly to
it, and though, like other families, they had at times met with reverses, t=
hey
never lost their grip of the Abbey property. During the course of the first=
half
of the nineteenth century the land increased largely in value, and its acre=
age
was considerably added to by the father of the present owner, a man of frug=
al
mind, but with the family mania for the collection of all sorts of plate
strongly developed. But it was Philip's father, "Devil Caresfoot,"
who had, during his fifty years' tenure of the property, raised the family =
to
its present opulent condition, firstly, by a strict attention to business a=
nd
the large accumulations resulting from his practice of always living upon h=
alf his
income, and secondly, by his marriage late in middle life with Miss Bland, =
the
heiress of the neighbouring Isleworth estates, that stretched over some two
thousand acres of land.
This lady, who was Philip's mother, did not li=
ve
long to enjoy her wealth and station. Her husband never spoke a rough word =
to
her, and yet it is no exaggeration to say that she died of fear of him. The=
marriage
had been one of convenience, not of affection; indeed poor Anna Bland had
secretly admired the curate at Isleworth, and hated Mr. Caresfoot and his
glittering eye. But she married him for all that, to feel that till she died
that glance was always playing round her like a rapier in the hands of a
skilled fencer. And very soon she did die, Mr. Caresfoot receiving her last
words and wishes with the same exquisite and unmoved politeness that he had
extended to every remark she had made to him in the course of their married
life. Having satisfactorily eyed Mrs. Caresfoot off into a better world, he=
r husband
gave up all idea of further matrimonial ventures, and set himself to heap up
riches. But a little before his wife's death, and just after his son's birt=
h,
an event had occurred in the family that had disturbed him not a little.
His father had left two sons, himself and a
brother, many years his junior. Now this brother was very dear to Mr.
Caresfoot; his affection for him was the one weak point in his armour; nor =
was
it rendered any the less sincere, but rather the more touching, by the fact
that its object was little better than half-witted. It is therefore easy to=
imagine
his distress and anger when he heard that a woman who had till shortly befo=
re
been kitchen-maid at the Abbey House, and was now living in the village, had
been confined of a son which she fixed upon his brother, whose wife she
declared herself to be. Investigation only brought out the truth of the sto=
ry;
his weak-minded brother had been entrapped into a glaring mesalliance .
But Mr. Caresfoot proved himself equal to the
occasion. So soon as his "sister-in-law," as it pleased him to ca=
ll
her sardonically, had sufficiently recovered, he called upon her. What took
place at the visit never transpired, but next day Mrs. E. Caresfoot left her
native place never to return, the child remaining with the father, or rathe=
r with
the uncle. That boy was George. At the time when this story opens both his
parents were dead: his father from illness resulting from entire failure of
brain power, the mother from drink.
Whether it was that he considered the circumst=
ance
of the lad's birth entitled him to peculiar consideration, or that he
transferred to him the affection he bore his father, the result was that his
nephew was quite as dear if not even dearer to Mr. Caresfoot than his own s=
on. Not,
however, that he allowed his preference to be apparent, save in the negative
way that he was blind to faults in George that he was sufficiently quick to
note in Philip. To observers this partiality seemed the more strange when t=
hey
thought upon Philip's bonny face and form, and then noted how the weak-brai=
ned
father and coarse-blooded mother had left their mark in George's thick lips,
small, restless eyes, pallid complexion, and loose-jointed form.
When Philip shook off his cousin's grasp and
vanished towards the lake, he did so with bitter wrath and hatred in his he=
art,
for he saw but too clearly that he had deeply injured himself in his father=
's estimation,
and, what was more, he felt that so much as he had sunk his side of the
balance, by so much he had raised up that of George. He was inculpated; a
Bellamy came upon the scene to save George, and, what was worse, an untruth=
ful
Bellamy; he was the aggressor, and George the meek in spirit with the soft
answer that turneth away wrath. It was intolerable; he hated his father, he
hated George. There was no justice in the world, and he had not wit to play
rogue with such a one as his cousin. Appearances were always against him; h=
e hated
everybody.
And then he began to think that there was in t=
he
very next parish somebody whom he did not hate, but who, on the contrary,
interested him, and was always ready to listen to his troubles, and he also=
became
aware of the fact that whilst his mind had been thinking his legs had been
walking, and that he was very near the abode of that person--almost at its
gates, in short. He paused and looked at his watch; it had stopped at half-=
past
eleven, the one blow that George had succeeded in planting upon him having
landed on it, to the great detriment of both the watch and the striker's
knuckles; but the sun told him that it was about half-past twelve, not too
early to call. So he opened the gate, and, advancing up an avenue of old
beeches to a square, red-brick house of the time of Queen Anne, boldly rang=
the
bell.
Was Miss Lee at home? Yes, Miss Lee was in the
greenhouse; perhaps Mr. Philip would step into the garden, which Mr. Philip=
did
accordingly.
"How do you do, Philip? I'm delighted to =
see
you; you've just come in time to help in the slaughter."
"Slaughter, slaughter of what--a pig?&quo=
t;
"No, green fly. I'm going to kill
thousands."
"You cruel girl."
"I daresay it is cruel, but I don't care.
Grumps always said that I had no heart, and, so far as green fly are concer=
ned,
Grumps was certainly right. Now, just look at this lily. It is an auratum. I
gave three-and-six (out of my own money) for that bulb last autumn, and now=
the
bloom is not worth twopence, all through green fly. If I were a man I decla=
re I
should swear. Please swear for me, Philip. Go outside and do it, so that I =
mayn't
have it on my conscience. But now for vengeance. Oh, I say, I forgot, you k=
now,
I suppose. I ought to be looking very sorry----"
"Why, what's the matter? Any one dead?&qu=
ot;
"Oh, no, so much better than that. It's got Grumps. "
"Got her, what has got her? What is
'it'?"
"Why, Chancery, of course. I always call
Chancery 'it.' I wouldn't take its name in vain for worlds. I am too much
afraid. I might be made to 'show a cause why,' and then be locked up for
contempt, which frequently happens after you have tried to 'show a cause.' =
That
is what has happened to Grumps. She is now showing a cause; shortly she wil=
l be
locked up. When she comes out, if she ever does come out, I think that she =
will
avoid wards in Chancery in future; she will have too much sympathy with the=
m,
and too much practical experience of their position."
"But what on earth do you mean, Maria? Wh=
at
has happened to Miss Gregson?" ( anglice Grumps).
"Well, you remember one of my guardians, =
or
rather his wife, got 'it' to appoint her my chaperon, but my other guardian
wanted to appoint somebody else, and after taking eighteen months to do it,=
he
has moved the court to show that Grumps is not a 'fit and proper person.' T=
he idea
of calling Grumps improper. She nearly fainted at it, and swore that, wheth=
er
she lived through it or whether she didn't, she would never come within a m=
ile
of me or any other ward if she could help it, not even the ward of an hospi=
tal.
I told her to be careful, or she would be 'committing contempt,' which
frightened her so that she hardly spoke again till she left yesterday. Poor
Grumps! I expect she is on bread and water now; but if she makes herself ha=
lf
as disagreeable to the Vice-Chancellor as she did to me, I don't believe th=
at
they will keep her long. She'll wear the gaolers out; she will wear the wal=
ls
out; she will wear 'it' down to the bone; and then they will let her loose =
upon
the world again. Why, there is the bell for lunch, and not a single green f=
ly
the less! Never mind, I will do for them to-morrow. How it would add to her
sufferings in her lonely cell if she could see us going to a tete-a-tete lunch. Come on, Philip, come quick, or t=
he
cutlets will get cold, and I hate cold cutlets." And off she tripped,
followed by the laughing Philip, who, by the way, was now looking quite
handsome again.
Maria Lee was not very pretty at her then
age--just eighteen--but she was a perfect specimen of a young English count=
ry
girl; fresh as a rose, and sound as a bell, and endowed besides with a quick
wit and a ready sympathy. She was essentially one of that class of Englishw=
omen
who make the English upper middle class what it is--one of the finest and
soundest in the world. Philip, following her into the house, thought that s=
he
was charming; nor, being a Caresfoot, and therefore having a considerable e=
ye
to the main chance, did the fact of her being the heiress to fifteen hundre=
d a
year in land detract from her charms.
The cutlets were excellent, and Maria ate thre= e, and was very comical about the departed Grumps; indeed, anybody not acquain= ted with the circumstances would have gathered that that excellent lady was to = be shortly put to the question. Philip was not quite so merry; he was oppressed both by recollections of what had happened and apprehensions of what might happen.<= o:p>
"What is the matter, Philip?" she as=
ked,
when they had left the table to sit under the trees on the lawn. "I can
see that something is the matter. Tell me all about it, Philip."
And Philip told her what had happened that
morning, laying bare all his heart-aches, and not even concealing his evil
deeds. When he had done, she pondered awhile, tapping her little foot upon =
the
turf.
"Philip," she said at last, in quite=
a
changed voice, "I do not think that you are being well treated. I do n=
ot
think that your cousin means kindly by you, but--but I do not think that you
have behaved rightly either. I don't like that about the ten pounds; and I
think that you should not have touched George; he is not so strong as you.
Please try to do as your father--dear me, I am sure I don't wonder that you=
are
afraid of him; I am--tells you, and regain his affection, and make it up wi=
th
George; and, if you get into any more troubles, come and tell me about them
before you do anything foolish; for though, according to Grumps, I am silly
enough, two heads are better than one."
The tears stood in the lad's brown eyes as he
listened to her. He gulped them down, however, and said--
"You are awfully kind to me; you are the =
only
friend I have. Sometimes I think that you are an angel."
"Nonsense, Philip. If 'it' heard you talk
like that, you would join Grumps. Don't let me hear any more such stuff,&qu=
ot;
but, though she spoke sharply, somehow she did not look displeased.
"I must be off," he said at length.
"I promised to go with my father to see a new building on Reynold's fa=
rm.
I have only twenty minutes to get home;" and rising they went into the
house through a French window opening on to the lawn.
In the dining-room he turned, and, after a
moment's hesitation, stuttered out--
"Maria, don't be angry with me, but may I
give you a kiss?"
She blushed vividly.
"How dare you suggest such a thing?--but-=
-but
as Grumps has gone, and there is no new Grumps to refer to, and therefore I=
can
only consult my own wishes, perhaps if you really wish to, Philip, why, Phi=
lip,
you may."
And he did.
When he was gone she leant her head against the
cold marble mantelpiece.
"I do love him," she murmured,
"yes, that I do."
Philip was not very fond of taking walks with =
his
father, since he found that in nine cases out of ten they afforded
opportunities for inculcation of facts of the driest description with refer=
ence
to estate management, or to the narration by his parent of little histories=
of
which his conduct upon some recent occasion would adorn the moral. On this
particular occasion the prospect was particularly unpleasant, for his father
would, he was well aware, overflow with awful politeness, indeed, after the
scene of the morning, it could not be otherwise. Oh, how much rather would =
he
have spent that lovely afternoon with Maria Lee! Dear Maria, he would go and
see her again the very next day.
When he arrived, some ten minutes after time in
the antler-hung hall of the Abbey House, he found his father standing, watc=
h in
hand, exactly under the big clock, as though he was determined to make a no=
te
by double entry of every passing second.
"When I asked you to walk with me this
afternoon, Philip, I, if my memory does not deceive me, was careful to say =
that
I had no wish to interfere with any prior engagement. I was aware how little
interest, compared to your cousin George, you take in the estate, and I had=
no wish
to impose an uncongenial task. But, as you kindly volunteered to accompany =
me,
I regret that you did not find it convenient to be punctual to the time you
fixed. I have now waited for you for seventeen minutes, and let me tell you
that at my time of life I cannot afford to lose seventeen minutes. May I ask
what has delayed you?"
This long speech had given Philip the opportun=
ity
of recovering the breath that he had lost in running home. He replied
promptly--
"I have been lunching with Miss Lee."=
;
"Oh, indeed, then I no longer wonder that=
you
kept me waiting, and I must say that in this particular I commend your tast=
e.
Miss Lee is a young lady of good family, good manners, and good means. If h=
er
estate went with this property it would complete as pretty a five thousand =
acres
of mixed soil as there is in the county. Those are beautiful old meadows of
hers, beautiful. Perhaps----" but here the old man checked himself.
On leaving the house they had passed together =
down
a walk called the tunnel walk, on account of the arching boughs of the
lime-trees that interlaced themselves overhead. At the end of this avenue, =
and
on the borders of the lake, there stood an enormous but still growing oak, =
known
as Caresfoot's Staff. It was the old squire's favourite tree, and the best
topped piece of timber for many miles round.
"I wonder," said Philip, by way of
making a little pleasant conversation, "why that tree was called
Caresfoot's Staff."
"Your ignorance astonishes me, Philip, bu=
t I
suppose that there are some people who can live for years in a place and yet
imbibe nothing of its traditions. Perhaps you know that the monks were driv=
en
out of these ruins by Henry VIII. Well, on the spot where that tree now sta=
nds
there grew a still greater oak, a giant tree, its trunk measured sixteen lo=
ads
of timber; which had, as tradition said, been planted by the first prior of=
the
Abbey when England was still Saxon. The night the monks left a great gale r=
aged
over England. It was in October, when the trees were full of leaf, and its
fiercest gust tore the great oak from its roothold, and flung it into the l=
ake.
Look! do you see that rise in the sand, there, by the edge of the deep pool=
, in
the eight foot water? That is there it is supposed to lie. Well, the whole
country-side said that it was a sign that the monks had gone for ever from
Bratham Abbey, and the country-side was right. But when your ancestor, old
yeoman Caresfoot, bought this place and came to live here, in a year when t=
here
was a great black frost that set the waters of the lake like one of the
new-fangled roads, he asked his neighbours, ay, and his labouring folk, to =
come
and dine with him and drink to the success of his purchase. It was a proud =
day
for him, and when dinner was done and they were all mellow with strong ale,=
he
bade them step down to the borders of the lake, as he would have them be wi=
tness
to a ceremony. When they reached the spot they saw a curious sight, for the=
re
on a strong dray, and dragged by Farmer Caresfoot's six best horses, was an=
oak
of fifty years' growth coming across the ice, earth, roots and all.
"On that spot where it now stands there h=
ad
been a great hole, ten feet deep by fourteen feet square, dug to receive it,
and into that hole Caresfoot Staff was tilted and levered off the dray. And
when it had been planted, and the frozen earth well trodden in, your grandf=
ather
in the ninth degree brought his guests back to the old banqueting-hall, and
made a speech which, as it was the first and last he ever made, was long
remembered in the country-side. It was, put into modern English, something =
like
this:
"'Neighbours,--Prior's Oak has gone into =
the
water, and folks said that it was for a sign that the monks would never come
back to Bratham, and that it was the Lord's wind that put it there. And, ne=
ighbours,
as ye know, the broad Bratham lands and the fat marshes down by the brook
passed by king's grant to a man that knew not clay from loam, or layer from
pasturage, and from him they passed by the Lord's will to me, as I have ask=
ed
you here to-day to celebrate. And now, neighbours, I have a mind, and thoug=
h it
seem to you but a childish thing, yet I have a mind, and have set myself to
fulfil it. When I was yet a little lad, and drove the swine out to feed on =
the hill
yonder, when the acorns had fallen, afore Farmer Gyrton's father had gracio=
us
leave from the feoffees to put up the fence that doth now so sorely vex us,=
I
found one day a great acorn, as big as a dow's egg, and of a rich and wondr=
ous
brown, and this acorn I bore home and planted in kind earth in the corner o=
f my
dad's garden, thinking that it would grow, and that one day I would hew its
growth and use it for a staff. Now that was fifty long years ago, lads, and
there where grew Prior's Oak, there, neighbours, I have set my Staff to-day.
The monks have told us how in Israel every man planted his fig and his vine.
For the fig I know not rightly what that is; but for the vine, I will plant=
no
creeping, clinging vine, but a hearty English oak, that, if they do but giv=
e it
good room to breathe in, and save their heirloom from the axe, shall cast s=
hade
and grow acorns, and burst into leaf in the spring and grow naked in the
winter, when ten generations of our children, and our children's children,
shall have mixed their dust with ours yonder in the graveyard. And now,
neighbours, I have talked too long, though I am better at doing than talkin=
g;
but ye will even forgive me, for I will not talk to you again, though on th=
is
the great day of my life I was minded to speak. But I will bid you every ma=
n pledge
a health to the Caresfoot's Staff, and ask a prayer that, so long as it sha=
ll
push its leaves, so long may the race of my loins be here to sit beneath its
shade, and even mayhap when the corn is ripe and the moon is up, and their
hearts grow soft towards the past, to talk with kinsman or with sweetheart =
of
the old man who struck it in this kindly soil.'"
The old squire's face grew tender as he told t=
his
legend of the forgotten dead, and Philip's young imagination summoned up the
strange old-world scene of the crowd of rustics gathered in the snow and fr=
ost round
this very tree.
"Philip," said his father, suddenly,
"you will hold the yeoman's Staff one day; be like it of an oaken Engl=
ish
heart, and you will defy wind and weather as it has done, and as your forbe=
ars
have done. Come, we must go on."
"By the way, Philip," he continued,
after a while, "you will remember what I said to you this morning--I h=
ope
that you will remember it, though I spoke in anger--never try to deceive me
again, or you will regret it. And now I have something to say to you. I wish
you to go to college and receive an education that will fit you to hold the=
position
you must in the course of Nature one day fill in the county. The Oxford term
begins in a few days, and you have for some years been entered at Magdalen
College. I do not expect you to be a scholar, but I do expect you to brush =
off
your rough ways and your local ideas, and to learn to become such a person =
both
in your conduct and your mind as a gentleman of your station should be.&quo=
t;
"Is George to go to college too?"
"No; I have spoken to him on the subject,=
and
he does not wish it. He says very wisely that, with his small prospects, he
would rather spend the time in learning how to earn his living. So he is go=
ing
to be articled to the Roxham lawyers, Foster and Son, or rather Foster and =
Bellamy,
for young Bellamy, who is a lawyer by profession, came here this morning, n=
ot
to speak about you, but on a message from the firm to say that he is now a
junior partner, and that they will be very happy to take George as an artic=
led
clerk. He is a hard-working, shrewd young man, and it will be a great advan=
tage
to George to have his advice and example before him."
Philip assented, and went on in silence,
reflecting on the curious change in his immediate prospects that this walk =
had
brought to light. He was much rejoiced at the prospect of losing sight of
George for a while, and was sufficiently intelligent to appreciate the
advantages, social and mental, that the University would offer him; but it
struck him that there were two things which he did not like about the schem=
e. The
first of these was, that whilst he was pursuing his academical studies, Geo=
rge
would practically be left on the spot--for Roxham was only six miles off--to
put in motion any schemes he might have devised; and Philip was sure that he
had devised schemes. And the second, that Oxford was a long way from Maria =
Lee.
However, he kept his objections to himself. In due course they reached the
buildings they had set out to examine, and the old squire, having settled w=
hat was
to be done, and what was to be left undone, with characteristic promptitude=
and
shrewdness, they turned homewards.
In passing through the shrubberies, on their w=
ay
back to the house, they suddenly came upon a stolid-looking lad of about
fifteen, emerging from a side-walk with a nest full of young blackbirds in =
his hand.
Now, if there was one thing in this world more calculated than another to r=
ouse
the most objectionable traits of the old squire's character into rapid acti=
on,
it was the discovery of boys, and more especially bird-nesting boys, in his
plantations. In the first place, he hated trespassers; and in the second, it
was one of his simple pleasures to walk in the early morning and listen to =
the
singing of the birds that swarmed around. Accordingly, at the obnoxious sig=
ht
he stopped suddenly, and, drawing himself up to his full height, addressed =
the
trembling youth in his sweetest voice.
"Your name is, I believe--Brady--Jim
Brady--correct me if I am wrong-- and you have come here,
you--you--young--villain--to steal my birds."
The frightened boy walked slowly backwards,
followed by the old man with his fiery eyes fixed upon his face, till at la=
st
concussion against the trunk of a great tree prevented further retreat. Her=
e he
stood for about thirty seconds, writhing under the glance that seemed to pi=
erce
him through and through, till at last he could stand it no longer, but flung
himself on the ground, roaring:
"Oh! don't ee, squire; don't ee now look =
at
me with that 'ere eye. Take and thrash me, squire, but don't ee fix me so! I
hayn't had no more nor twenty this year, and a nest of spinxes, and Tom Smi=
th
he's had fifty-two and a young owl. Oh! oh!"
Enraged beyond measure at this last piece of
information, Mr. Caresfoot took his victim at his word, and, ceasing his oc=
ular
experiments, laid into the less honourable portion of his form with the
gold-headed malacca cane in a way that astonished the prostrate Jim, though=
he
was afterwards heard to declare that the squire's cane "warn't not not=
hing
compared with the squire's eye, which wore a hot coal, it wore, and frizzled
your innards as sich."
When Jim Brady had departed, never to return
again, and the old man had recovered his usual suavity of manner, he remark=
ed
to his son:
"There is some curious property in the hu=
man
eye; a property that is, I believe, very much developed in my own. Did you
observe the effect of my glance upon that boy? I was trying an experiment on
him. I remember it was always the same with your poor mother. She could nev=
er bear
me to look at her."
Philip made no reply, but he thought that, if =
she
had been the object of experiments of that nature, it was not very wonderfu=
l.
Shortly after their return home he received a =
note
from Miss Lee. It ran thus:
"My dear Philip,
"=
;What do you
think? Just after you had gone away, I got by the mid-day post, which Jones (the butcher)
brought from Roxham, several lett=
ers,
amongst them one from Grumps and one from Uncle Tom. Grumps has shown a cause. Why? 'It=
' said
she was not an improper person; b=
ut,
for all that, she is so angry with Uncle Tom that she will not come back, but has ac=
cepted
an offer to go to Canada as compa=
nion
to a lady; so farewell Grumps.
"=
;Now
for Uncle Tom. 'It' suggested that I should live with some of my relations till I came of age, and=
pay
them four hundred a year, which I=
think
a good deal. I am sure it can't cost four hundred a year to feed me, though I hav=
e such
an appetite. I had no idea they w=
ere
all so fond of me before; they all want me to come and live with them, except Aunt
Chambers, who, you know, lives in
Jersey. Uncle Tom says in his letter that he shall be glad if his daughters can have the adva=
ntage
of my example, and of studying my
polished manners (just fancy my polished manners; and I know, because little Tom, who is a
brick, told me, that only last ye=
ar he
heard his father tell Emily--that's the eldest--that I was a dowdy, snub-nosed, ill-mannered=
miss,
but that she must keep in with me=
and
flatter me up). No, I will not live with Uncle Tom, and I will tell 'it' so. If I must=
leave
my home, I will go to Aunt Chambe=
rs at
Jersey. Jersey is a beautiful place for flowers, and one learns French there wi=
thout
the trouble of learning it; and I=
like
Aunt Chambers, and she has no children, and nothing but the memory of a dear
departed. But I don't like leaving
home, and feel very much inclined to cry. Hang the Court of Chancery, and Uncle Tom and his
interference too!-- there . I sup=
pose
you can't find time to come over to-morrow morning to see me off? Good-bye, dear Philip,
&quo=
t;Your
affectionate friend, =
"Maria
Lee."
Phili= p did manage to find time next morning, and came back looking very disconsolate.<= o:p>
Philip went to college in due course, and Geor=
ge
departed to learn his business as a lawyer in Roxham, but it will not be
necessary for us to enter into the details of their respective careers duri=
ng
this period of their lives.
At college Philip did fairly well, and, being a
Caresfoot, did not run into debt. He was, as his great bodily strength gave
promise of, a first-class athlete, and for two years stroked the Magdalen b=
oat.
Nor did he altogether neglect his books, but his reading was of a desultory=
and
out-of-the-way order, and much directed towards the investigation of mystic=
al
subjects. Fairly well liked amongst the men with whom he mixed, he could ha=
rdly
be called popular; his temperament was too uncertain for that. At times he =
was
the gayest of the gay, and then when the fit took him he would be plunged i=
nto
a state of gloomy depression that might last for days. His companions, to w=
hom
his mystical studies were a favourite jest, were wont to assert that on the=
se
occasions he was preparing for a visit from his familiar, but the joke was =
one
that he never could be prevailed upon to appreciate. The fact of the matter=
was
that these fits of gloom were constitutional with him, and very possibly had
their origin in the state of his mother's mind before his birth, when her w=
hole
thoughts were coloured by her morbid and fanciful terror of her husband, an=
d her
frantic anxiety to conciliate him.
During the three years that he spent at colleg=
e,
Philip saw but little of George, since, when he happened to be down at Brat=
ham,
which was not often, for he spent most of his vacations abroad, George avoi=
ded coming
there as much as possible. Indeed, there was a tacit agreement between the =
two
young men that they would see as little of each other as might be convenien=
t.
But, though he did not see much of him himself, Philip was none the less aw=
are
that George's influence over his father was, if anything, on the increase. =
The
old squire's letters were full of him and of the admirable way in which he
managed the estate, for it was now practically in his hands. Indeed, to his=
surprise
and somewhat to his disgust, he found that George began to be spoken of
indifferently with himself as the "young squire." Long before his
college days had come to an end Philip had determined that he would do his
best, as soon as opportunity offered, to reduce his cousin to his proper pl=
ace,
not by the violent means to which he had resorted in other days, but rather=
by
showing himself to be equally capable, equally assiduous, and equally
respectful and affectionate.
At last the day came when he was to bid farewe=
ll
to Oxford for good, and in due course he found himself in a second-class
railway carriage --thinking it useless to waste money, he always went
second--and bound for Roxham.
Just before the train left the platform at
Paddington, Philip was agreeably surprised out of his meditations by the en=
try
into his carriage of an extremely elegant and stately young lady, a foreign=
er as
he judged from her strong accent when she addressed the porter. With the in=
nate
gallantry of twenty-one, he immediately laid himself out to make the
acquaintance of one possessed of such proud, yet melting blue eyes, such lo=
vely
hair, and a figure that would not have disgraced Diana; and, with this view,
set himself to render her such little services as one fellow-traveller can
offer to another. They were accepted reservedly at first, then gratefully, =
and
before long the reserve broke down entirely, and this very handsome pair
dropped into a conversation as animated as the lady's broken English would =
allow.
The lady told him that her name was Hilda von Holtzhausen, that she was of a
German family, and had come to England to enter a family as companion, in o=
rder
to obtain a perfect knowledge of the English language. She had already been=
to
France and acquired French; when she knew English, then she had been promis=
ed a
place as school-mistress under government in her own country. Her father and
mother were dead, and she had no brothers or sisters, and very few friends.=
Where was she going to? She was going to a pla=
ce
called Roxham; here it was written on the ticket. She was going to be compa=
nion
to a dear young lady, very rich, like all the English, whom she had met when
she had travelled with her French family to Jersey, a Miss Lee.
"You don't say so!" said Philip.
"Has she come back to Rewtham?"
"What, do you, then, know her?"
"Yes--that is, I used to three years ago.=
I
live in the next parish."
"Ah! then perhaps you are the gentleman of
whom I have heard her to speak, Mr. Car-es-foot, whom she did seem to appea=
r to
love; is not that the word?--to be very fond, you know."
Philip laughed, blushed, and acknowledged his
identity with the gentleman whom Miss Lee "did seem to appear to
love."
"Oh! I am glad; then we shall be friends,=
and
see each other often-- shall we not?"
He declared unreservedly that she should see h=
im
very often.
From Fraulein von Holtzhausen Philip gathered =
in
the course of their journey a good many particulars about Miss Lee. It appe=
ared
that, having attained her majority, she was coming back to live at her old =
home
at Rewtham, whither she had tried to persuade her Aunt Chambers to accompany
her, but without success, that lady being too much attached to Jersey to le=
ave
it. During the course of a long stay on the island, the two girls had become
fast friends, and the friendship had culminated in an offer being made by M=
aria
Lee to Fraulein von Holtzhausen to come and live with her as a companion, a
proposal that exactly suited the latter.
The mention of Miss Lee's name had awakened
pleasant recollections in Philip's mind, recollections that, at any other t=
ime,
might have tended towards the sentimental; but, when under fire from the bl=
ue eyes
of this stately foreigner, it was impossible for him to feel sentimental ab=
out
anybody save herself. "The journey is over all too soon," was the
secret thought of each as they stepped on to the Roxham platform. Before th=
ey
had finally said good-bye, however, a young lady with a dainty figure, in a
shady hat and pink and white dress, came running along the platform.
"Hilda, Hilda, here I am! How do you do,
dear? Welcome home," and she was about to seal her welcome with a kiss,
when her eye fell upon Philip standing by.
"Oh, Philip!" she cried with a blush,
"don't you know me? Have I changed much? I should have known you anywh=
ere;
and I am glad to see you, awfully glad (excuse the slang, but it is such a
relief to be able to say 'awful' without being pulled up by Aunt Chambers).
Just think, it is three years since we met. Do you remember Grumps? How do I
look? Do you think you will like me as much as you used to?"
"I think that you are looking the same de=
ar
girl that you always used to look, only you have grown very pretty, and it =
is
not possible that I shall like you more than I used to."
"I think they must teach you to pay
compliments at Oxford, Philip," she answered, flushing with pleasure,
"but it is all rubbish for you to say that I am pretty, because I know=
I
am not"--and then, confidentially, glancing round to see that there was
nobody within hearing (Hilda was engaged with a porter in looking after her
things): "Just look at my nose, and you will soon change your mind. It=
's broader,
and flatter, and snubbier than ever. I consider that I have got a bone to p=
ick
with Providence about that nose. Ah! here comes Hilda. Isn't she lovely!
There's beauty for you if you like. She hasn't got a nose. Come and show us=
to
the carriage. You will come and lunch with us to-morrow, won't you? I am so
glad to get back to the old house again; and I mean to have such a garden!
'Life is short, and joys are fleeting,' as Aunt Chambers always says, so I =
mean
to make the best of it whilst it lasts. I saw your father yesterday. He is =
a dear
old man, though he has such awful eyes. I never felt so happy in my life as=
I
do now. Good-bye. One o'clock." And she was gone, leaving Philip with
something to think about.
Philip's reception at home was cordial and
reassuring. He found his father considerably aged in appearance, but as
handsome and upright as ever, and to all appearance heartily glad to see hi=
m.
"I am glad to see you back, my boy,"=
he
said. "You come to take your proper place. If you look at me, you will=
see
that you won't have long to wait before you take mine. I can't last much
longer, Philip, I feel that. Eighty-two is a good age to have reached. I ha=
ve
had my time, and put the property in order, and now I suppose I must make r=
oom.
I went with the clerk, old Jakes, and marked out my grave yesterday. There'=
s a
nice little spot the other side of the stone that they say marks where old
yeoman Caresfoot, who planted Caresfoot's Staff, laid his bones, and that's
where I wish to be put, in his good company. Don't forget that when the time
comes, Philip. There's room for another if you care to keep it for yourself,
but perhaps you will prefer the vault."
"You must not talk of dying yet, father. =
You
will live many years yet."
"No, Philip; perhaps one, perhaps two, not
more than two, perhaps a month, perhaps not a day. My life hangs on a thread
now." And he pointed to his heart. "It may snap any day, if it ge=
ts a
strain. By the way, Philip, you see that cupboard? Open it! Now, you see th=
at stoppered
bottle with the red label? Good. Well now, if ever you see me taken with an
attack of the heart (I have had one since you were away, you know, and it
nearly carried me off), you run for that as hard as you can go, and give it=
me
to drink, half at a time. It is a tremendous restorative of some sort, and =
old
Caley says that, if I do not take it when the next attack comes, there'll b=
e an
end of 'Devil Caresfoot';" and he rapped his cane energetically on the=
oak
floor.
"And so, Philip, I want you to go about a=
nd
make yourself thoroughly acquainted with the property, so that you may be a=
ble
to take things over when I die without any hitch. I hope that you will be
careful and do well by the land. Remember that a big property like this is =
a sacred
trust.
"And now there are two more things that I
will take this opportunity to say a word to you about. First, I see that you
and your cousin George don't get on well, and it grieves me. You have always
had a false idea of George, always, and thought that he was underhand. Noth=
ing
could be more mistaken than such a notion. George is a most estimable young
man, and my dear brother's only son. I wish you would try to remember that,
Philip--blood is thicker than water, you know-- and you will be the only two
Caresfoots left when I am gone. Now, perhaps you may think that I intend
enriching George at your expense, but that is not so. Take this key and open
the top drawer of that secretaire, and give me that bundle. This is my will=
. If
you care to look over it, and can understand it--which is more than I can--=
you will
see that everything is left to you, with the exception of that outlying far=
m at
Holston, those three Essex farms that I bought two years ago, and twelve
thousand pounds in cash. Of course, as you know, the Abbey House, and the l=
ands
immediately round, are entailed--it has always been the custom to entail th=
em
for many generations. There, put it back. And now the last thing is, I want=
you
to get married, Philip. I should like to see a grandchild in the house befo=
re I
die. I want you to marry Maria Lee. I like the girl. She comes of a good ol=
d Marlshire
stock--our family married into hers in the year 1703. Besides, her property
would put yours into a ring-fence. She is a sharp girl too, and quite pretty
enough for a wife. I hope you will think it over, Philip."
"Yes, father; but perhaps she will not ha=
ve
me. I am going to lunch there to-morrow."
"I don't think you need be afraid, Philip;
but I won't keep you any longer. Shake hands, my boy. You'll perhaps think =
of
your old father kindly when you come to stand in his shoes. I hope you will,
Philip. We have had many a quarrel, and sometimes I have been wrong, but I =
have
always wished to do my duty by you, my boy. Don't forget to make the best of
your time at lunch to-morrow."
Philip went out of his father's study consider=
ably
touched by the kindness and consideration with which he had been treated, a=
nd
not a little relieved to find his position with reference to his succession=
to
the estate so much better than he had anticipated, and his cousin George's =
so
much worse.
"That red-haired fox has plotted in
vain," he thought, with secret exultation. And then he set himself to
consider the desirability of falling in with his father's wishes as regards
marriage. Of Maria he was, as the reader is aware, very fond; indeed, a few
years before he had been in love with her, or something very like it; he kn=
ew
too that she would make him a very good wife, and the match was one that in=
every
way commended itself to his common sense and his interests. Yes, he would
certainly take his father's advice. But every time he said this to himself-=
-and
he said it pretty often that evening--there would arise before his mind's e=
ye a
vision of the sweet blue eyes of Miss Lee's stately companion. What eyes th=
ey
were, to be sure! It made Philip's blood run warm and quick merely to think=
of
them; indeed, he could almost find it in his heart to wish that Hilda was M=
aria
and Maria was in Hilda's shoes.
What between thoughts of the young lady he had=
set
himself to marry, and of the young lady he did not mean to marry, but whose
eyes he admired, Philip did not sleep so well as usual that night.
Philip did not neglect to go to luncheon at Rewtham house, and a very pleasant luncheon it was; indeed, it would have b= een difficult for him to have said which he found the pleasantest: Maria's chee= rful chatter and flattering preference, or Hilda's sweet and gracious presence.<= o:p>
After luncheon, at Maria's invitation he gave
Fraulein von Holtzhausen her first lesson in writing in English character; =
and
to speak truth he found the task of guiding her fair hand through the myste=
ries
of the English alphabet a by no means uncongenial occupation. When he came =
away
his admiration of Hilda's blue eyes was more pronounced than ever; but, on =
the
other hand, so was his conviction that he would be very foolish if he allow=
ed
it to interfere with his intention of making Maria Lee his wife.
He who would drive two women thus in double
harness must needs have a light hand and a ready lash, and it is certainly =
to
the credit of Philip's cleverness that he managed so well as he did. For as
time went on he discovered his position to be this. Both Hilda and Maria we=
re
in love with him, the former deeply and silently, the latter openly and
ostensibly. Now, however gratifying this fact might be to his pride, it was=
in
some ways a thorny discovery, since he dared not visibly pay his attentions=
to
either. For his part he returned Hilda von Holtzhausen's devotion to a degr=
ee
that surprised himself; his passion for her burnt him like a fire, utterly
searing away the traces of his former affection for Maria Lee. Under these
circumstances, most young men of twenty-one would have thrown prudence to t=
he
winds and acknowledged, either by acts or words, the object of their love; =
but not
so Philip, who even at that age was by no means deficient in the characteri=
stic
caution of the Caresfoot family. He saw clearly that his father would never
consent to his marriage with Hilda, nor, to speak truth, did he himself at =
all
like the idea of losing Miss Lee and her estates.
On the other hand, he knew Hilda's proud and
jealous mind. She was no melting beauty who would sigh and submit to an
affront, but, for all her gracious ways, at heart a haughty woman, who, if =
she
reigned at all, would reign like Alexander, unrivalled and alone. That she =
was well
aware of her friend's tendresse for Philip the latter very shortly guessed;
indeed, as he suspected, Maria was in the habit of confiding to her all her
hopes and fears connected with himself, a suspicion that made him very care=
ful
in his remarks to that young lady.
The early summer passed away whilst Philip was
still thinking over his position, and the face of the country was blushing =
with
all the glory of July, when one afternoon he found himself, as he did prett=
y frequently,
in the shady drawing-room at Miss Lee's. As he entered, the sound of voices
told him that there were other visitors beside himself, and, as soon as his
eyes had grown accustomed to the light, he saw his cousin George, together =
with
his partner Mr. Bellamy, and a lady with whom he was not acquainted.
George had improved in appearance somewhat sin=
ce
we last saw him meeting with severe treatment at his cousin's hands. The fa=
ce
had filled up a little, with the result that the nose did not look so hooke=
d,
nor the thick lips so coarse and sensual. The hair, however, was as red as
ever, and as for the small, light-blue eyes, they twinkled with the added
sharpness and lustre that four years of such experience of the shady side of
humanity as can be gathered in a lawyer's office, is able to give to the
student of men and manners.
So soon as Philip had said how-do-you-do to Ma=
ria
and Hilda, giving to each a gentle pressure of the hand, George greeted him
with warmth.
"How are you, Philip? delighted to see yo=
u;
how is my uncle? Bellamy saw him this morning, and thought that he did not =
look
well."
"I certainly did think, Mr. Philip,"
said the gentleman alluded to, a very young-looking, apple-faced little man,
with a timid manner, who stood in the background nervously rubbing his dry
hands together--"I certainly did think that the squire looked aged whe=
n I
saw him this morning."
"Well, you see, Mr. Bellamy, eighty-two i=
s a
good age, is it not?" said Philip, cheerfully.
"Yes, Mr. Philip, a good age, a very good
age, for the next heir ," and=
Mr.
Bellamy chuckled softly somewhere down in his throat, and retreated a littl=
e.
"He is getting facetious," broke in
George, "that marriage has done that for him. By the way, Philip, do y=
ou
know Mrs. Bellamy? she has only been down here a fortnight, you know. What,=
no!
Then you have a pleasure to come" (raising his voice so that it might =
be
heard at the other end of the room), "a very clever woman, and as hand=
some
as she is clever."
"Indeed! I must ask you to introduce me presently, Mr. Bellamy. I only recently heard that you were married."<= o:p>
Mr. Bellamy blushed and twisted and was about =
to
speak, when George cut in again.
"No, I dare say you didn't; sly dog, Bell=
amy;
do you know what he did? I introduced him to the lady when we were up in to=
wn
together last Christmas. I was dreadfully hard hit myself, I can assure you,
and as soon as my back was turned he went and cut me out of the water--and =
turned
my adored into Mrs. Bellamy."
"What are you taking my name in vain abou=
t,
Mr. Caresfoot?" said a rich, low voice behind them.
"Bless me, Anne, how softly you move, you
quite startled me," said little Mr. Bellamy, putting on his spectacles=
in
an agitated manner.
"My dear, a wife, like an embodied
conscience, should always be at her husband's shoulder, especially when he =
does
not know it."
Bellamy made no reply, but looked as though the
sentiment was one of which he did not approve; meantime the lady repeated h=
er
question to George, and the two fell into a bantering conversation. Philip,
having dropped back a little, had an opportunity of carefully observing Mrs=
. Bellamy,
an occupation not without interest, for she was certainly worthy of notice.=
About twenty years of age, and of medium heigh=
t,
her figure was so finely proportioned and so roomily made that it gave her =
the appearance
of being taller than she really was. The head was set squarely on the
shoulders, the hair was cut short, and clustered in ringlets over the low,
broad brow; whilst the clearly carved Egyptian features and square chin gave
the whole face a curious expression of resoluteness and power. The eyes were
heavily-lidded and greyish-green in hue, with enormously large dark pupils =
that
had a strange habit of expanding and contracting without apparent reason.
Gazing at her, Philip was at a loss to know wh=
ether
this woman so bizarrely beautiful fascinated or repelled him; indeed, neith=
er
then nor at any future time did he succeed in deciding the question. Whilst=
he
was still contemplating, and wondering how Bellamy of all people in the wor=
ld
had managed to marry such a woman, and what previous acquaintance George had
had with her, he saw the lady whisper something to his cousin, who at once
turned and introduced him.
"Philip," he said, "let me
introduce you to the most charming lady of my acquaintance, Mrs. Bellamy.&q=
uot;
Philip bowed and expressed himself delighted,
whilst the lady curtsied with a mixture of grace and dignity that became her
infinitely well.
"Your cousin has often spoken to me of yo=
u,
Mr. Caresfoot, but he never told me----" here she hesitated, and broke
off.
"What did he never tell you, Mrs. Bellamy?
Nothing to my disadvantage, I hope."
"On the contrary, if you wish to know,&qu=
ot;
she said, in that tone of flattering frankness which is sometimes so charmi=
ng
in a woman's mouth, "he never told me that you were young and handsome=
. I
fancied you forty at least."
"I should dearly like to tell you, Mrs.
Bellamy, what my cousin George never told me ; but I won't, for fear I should make
Bellamy jealous."
"Jealousy, Mr. Caresfoot, is a luxury tha=
t my husband is not allowed to indulge in; it=
is
very well for lovers, but what is a compliment in a lover becomes an
impertinence in a husband. But if I keep you here much longer, I shall be
drawing the enmity of Miss Lee, and--yes, of Fraulein von Holtzhausen, too,=
on
to my devoted head, and, as that is the only sort of jealousy I have any fe=
ar
of, or indeed any respect for, being as it is the expression of the natural
abhorrence of one woman for another, I had rather avoid it."
Philip followed the direction of her sleepy ey=
es,
and saw that both Miss Lee and Hilda appeared to be put out. The former was
talking absently to Mr. Bellamy, and glancing continually in the direction =
of that
gentleman's wife. The latter, too, whilst appearing to listen to some compl=
iment
from George, was gazing at Mrs. Bellamy with a curious look of dislike and
apprehension in her face.
"You see what I mean; Fraulein von
Holtzhausen actually looks as though she were afraid of me. Can you fancy a=
ny
one being afraid of me, except my husband, of course?--for as you know, whe=
n a
woman is talking of men, her husband is <=
/span>always
excepted. Come, we must be going; =
but,
Mr. Caresfoot, bend a little nearer; if you will accept it from such a
stranger, I want to give you a bit of advice--make your choice pretty soon,=
or
you will lose them both."
"What do you mean--how do you know----&qu=
ot;
"I mean nothing at all, or just as much as
you like, and for the rest I use my eyes. Come, let us join the others.&quo=
t;
A few minutes later Hilda put down her work, a=
nd,
declaring that she felt hot, threw open the French window and went out into=
the
garden, whither, on some pretext or other, Philip followed her.
"What a lovely woman that is," said =
Mrs.
Bellamy, with enthusiasm, to Miss Lee, as soon as Philip was out of earshot.
"Her tout ensemble positively kills one. I feel plain and d=
owdy
as a milkmaid alongside of a Court-beauty when I am in the room with her. D=
on't
you, Miss Lee?"
"Oh, I don't know, I never thought about =
it,
but of course she is lovely and I'm plain, so there is no possibility of
comparison between us."
"Well, I think you rate yourself rather l=
ow,
if you will allow me to say so; but most women would but 'poorly satisfy the
sight' of a man when she was present. I know that I should not care to trus=
t my
admirer (if I had one), however devoted he might be, for a single day in her
company; would you?"
"I really don't know; what do you
mean?"
"Mean, Miss Lee, why I mean nothing at al=
l;
what should I mean, except that beauty is a magnet which attracts all men; =
it
serves them for a standard of morality and a test of right and wrong. Men a=
re
different from women. If a man is faithful to one of us, it is only because=
no other
woman of sufficient charm has become between him and us. You can never trus=
t a
man."
"What dreadful ideas you have."
"Do you think so? I hope not. I only speak
what I have observed. Take the case of Fraulein von Holtzhausen, for instan=
ce.
Did you not notice that whilst she was in the room the eyes of the three
gentlemen were all fixed upon her, and as soon as she leaves it one of them
follows her, as the others would have done had they not been forestalled? O=
ne cannot
blame them; they are simply following a natural law. Any other man would do=
the
same where such a charming person is concerned."
"I certainly did not notice it; indeed, to speak the truth, I thought that they were more occupied with you----"<= o:p>
"With me! why, my dear Miss Lee, I don't
set up for being good- looking. What a strange idea. But I dare say you are
right, it is only one of my theories based upon my own casual observations,
and, after all, men are not a very interesting subject, are they? Let's tal=
k of
something more exciting--dresses, for instance."
But poor Maria was too uncomfortable and distu=
rbed
to talk of anything else, so she collapsed into silence, and shortly after =
Mr.
and Mrs. Bellamy and George made their adieux.
Meanwhile Philip and Hilda had been walking
leisurely down the shrubberies adjoining the house.
"Why have you come out?" she asked i=
n German,
a language he understood well.
"To walk with you. Why do you speak to me=
in
German?"
"Because it is my pleasure to do so, and I
never asked you to walk with me. You are wanted in the drawing-room, you had
better go back."
"No, I won't go, Hilda; that is, not until
you have promised me something."
"Do not call me Hilda, if you please. I am
the Fraulein von Holtzhausen. What is it you want me to promise?"
"I want you to meet me this evening at ni=
ne
o'clock in the summer- house."
"I think, Mr. Caresfoot, that you are
forgetting a little what is due to me, to yourself, and--to Miss Lee?"=
"What do you mean by due to Miss Lee?&quo=
t;
"Simply that she is in love with you, and
that you have encouraged her in her affection; you need not contradict me, =
she
tells me all about it."
"Nonsense, Hilda; if you will meet me
to-night, I will explain everything; there is no need for you to be
jealous."
She swept round upon him, tossing her head, and
stamping her dainty foot upon the gravel.
"Mr. Caresfoot," she said, "once
and for all I am not jealous, and I will not meet you; I have too much resp=
ect
for myself, and too little for you," and she was gone.
Philip's face, as he stood looking after her, =
was
not pleasant to see; it was very hard and angry.
"Jealous, is she? I will give her somethi=
ng
to be jealous for, the proud minx;" and in his vexation he knocked off=
the
head of a carnation with his stick.
"Philip, what are =
span>you
doing? Those are my pet Australian carnations; at least, I think they are
Australian. How can you destroy them like that?"
"All right, Maria; I was only plucking one
for you. Won't you put it in your dress? Where are the others?"
"They have all gone. Come in, it is so hot
out there; and tell me what you think of Mrs. Bellamy."
"I think that she is very handsome and ve=
ry
clever. I wonder where Bellamy picked her up."
"I don't know; I wish he hadn't picked he=
r up
at all. I don't like her, she says unpleasant things; and, though I have on=
ly
seen her three times, she seems to know all about me and everybody else. I =
am not
very quick; but do you know just now I thought that she was insinuating that
you were in love with Hilda; that's not true, is it, Philip? Don't think me
forward if I ask you if that is true, and if I say that, if it is, it is be=
tter
that I should know it. I sha'n't be angry, Philip;" and the girl stood
before him to await his answer, one hand pressed against her bosom to still=
the
beating of her heart, whilst with the other she screened her blushing brow.=
And Philip too stood face to face with her swe=
et
self, with conscience, and with opportunity. "Now," whispered
conscience, "is the time, before very much harm is done; now is the
acceptable time to tell her all about it, and, whilst forbidding her love, =
to
enlist her sympathy and friendship. It will be wrong to encourage her
affection; when you ardently love another woman, you cannot palter any
more." "Now," whispered opportunity, shouldering conscience
aside, "is the time to secure her, her love, and her possessions, and =
to
reward Hilda for her pride. Do not sacrifice yourself to an infatuation; do=
not
tell her about Hilda--it would only breed jealousies; you can settle with h=
er
afterwards. Take the goods the gods provide you."
All this and more passed through his mind; and=
he
had made his choice long before the rich blood that mantled in the lady's c=
heek
had sunk back to the true breast from whence it came.
Oh, instant of time born to colour all eternit=
y to
thine own hue, for this man thou hast come and gone! Oh, fleeting moment,
bearing desolation or healing on thy wings, how the angels, in whose charge=
lie
the souls of men, must tremble and turn pale, as they mark thy flight throu=
gh
the circumstances of a man's existence, and thence taking thy secrets with =
thee
away to add thy fateful store to the records of his past!
He took her hand, the hand that was pressed up=
on
her bosom.
"Maria," he said, "you should n=
ot
get such ideas into your head. I admire Hilda very much, and that is all. W=
hy,
dear, I have always looked upon myself as half engaged to you--that is, so =
far
as I am concerned; and I have only been waiting till circumstances would al=
low me
to do so, to ask you if you think me worth marrying."
For a while she made no reply, but only blushed
the more; at last she looked up a little.
"You have made me very happy, Philip.&quo=
t;
That was all she said.
"I am very glad, dear, that you can find
anything in me to like; but if you do care for me, and think me worth waiti=
ng
for, I am going to ask something of your affection: I am going to ask you to
trust me as well as to love me. I do not, for reasons that I will not enter
into, but which I beg you to believe are perfectly straightforward, wish an=
ything
to be said of our engagement at present, not even to your friend Hilda. Do =
you
trust me sufficiently to agree to that?"
"Philip, I trust you as much as I love yo=
u,
and for years I have loved you with all my heart. And now, dear, please go;=
I
want to think."
In the hall a servant gave him a note; it was =
from
Hilda, and ran thus--
"I have changed my mind. I will meet you =
in
the summer-house this evening. I have something to say to you."
Philip whistled as he read it.
"Devilish awkward," he thought to
himself; "if I am going to marry Maria, she must leave this. But I can=
not
bear to part with her. I love her! I love her!"
It was some time before Philip could make up h=
is
mind whether or no he would attend his tryst with Hilda. In the first place=
, he
felt that it was an unsafe proceeding generally, inasmuch as moonlight meet=
ings
with so lovely a person might, should they come to the knowledge of Miss Le=
e,
be open to misconstruction; and particularly because, should she show the l=
east
tenderness towards him, he knew in his heart that he could not trust himsel=
f,
however much he might be engaged in another direction. At twenty-one the
affections cannot be outraged with impunity, but have an awkward way of
asserting themselves, ties of honour notwithstanding.
But as a rule, when in our hearts we wish to do
anything, that thing must be bad indeed if we cannot find a satisfactory ex=
cuse
for doing it; and so it was with Philip. Now, thought he to himself, would =
be his
opportunity to inform Hilda of his relations with Maria Lee, and to put an =
end
to his flirtation with her; for, ostensibly at any rate, it was nothing more
than a very serious flirtation--that is to say, though there had been words=
of
love, and even on her part a passionate avowal of affection, wrung in an
unguarded moment from the depths of her proud heart, there had been no form=
al
engagement. It was a thing that must be done, and now was the time to do it.
And so he made up his mind to go.
But when, that night, he found himself sitting=
in
the appointed place, and waiting for the coming of the woman he was about to
discard, but whom he loved with all the intensity of his fierce nature, he
began to view the matter in other lights, and to feel his resolution oozing=
from
him. Whether it was the silence of the place that told upon his nerves,
strained as they were with expectation--for silence, and more especially
silence by night, is a great unveiler of realities,--or the dread of bitter
words, or the prescience of the sharp pang of parting --for he knew enough =
of
Hilda to know that, what he had to say once said, she would trouble him no
more--whether it was these things, or whatever it was that affected him, he
grew most unaccountably anxious and depressed. Moreover, in this congenial
condition of the atmosphere of his mind, all its darker and hidden
characteristics sprang into a vigorous growth. Superstitions and presentime=
nts
crowded in upon him. He peopled his surroundings with the shades of intangi=
ble
deeds that yet awaited doing, and grew afraid of his own thoughts. He would
have fled from the spot, but he could not fly; he could only watch the flic=
ker
of the moonlight upon the peaceful pool beside him, and--wait.
At last she came with quick and anxious steps,
and, though but a few minutes before he had dreaded her coming, he now welc=
omed
it eagerly. For our feelings, of whatever sort, when directed towards each
other, are so superficial as compared with the intensity of our fears when =
we are
terrified by calamity, or the presence, real or fancied, of the unknown, th=
at
in any moment of emergency, more especially if it be of a mental kind, we a=
re
apt to welcome our worst enemy as a drowning man welcomes a spar.
"At last," he said, with a sigh of
relief. "How late you are!"
"I could not get away. There were some pe=
ople
to dinner;" and then, in a softened voice, "How pale you look! Are
you ill?"
"No, only a little tired."
After this there was silence, and the pair sto=
od
facing one another, each occupied with their own thoughts, and each dreadin=
g to
put them into words. Once Philip made a beginning of speech, but his voice =
failed
him; the beating of his heart seemed to choke his utterance.
At length she leaned, as though for support,
against the trunk of a pine-tree, in the boughs of which the night breeze w=
as
whispering, and spoke in a cold clear voice.
"You asked me to meet you here to-night. =
Have
you anything to say to me? No, do not speak; perhaps I had better speak fir=
st.
I have something to say to you, and what I have to say may influence whatev=
er is
in your mind. Listen; you remember what passed between us nearly a month ag=
o,
when I was so weak as to let you see how much I loved you?"
Philip bowed his head in assent.
"Very good. I have come here to-night, no=
t to
give you any lover's meeting, but to tell you that no such words must be sp=
oken
again, and that I am about to make it impossible that they should be spoken=
either
by you or by me. I am going away from here, never , I hope, to return."
"Going away!" he gasped.
"When?"
Here was the very thing he hoped for coming to
pass, and yet the words that should have been so full of comfort fell upon =
him
cold as ice, and struck him into misery.
"When! why, to-morrow morning. A relation=
of
mine is ill in Germany, the only one I have. I never saw him, and care noth=
ing
for him, but it will give me a pretext; and, once gone, I shall not return.=
I
have told Maria that I must go. She cried about it, poor girl."
At these words, all recollection of his purpose
passed out of Philip's mind; all he realized was that, unless he could alter
her determination, he was about the lose the woman he so passionately adore=
d,
and whose haughty pride was to him in itself more charming than all poor
Maria's gentle love.
"Hilda, do not go," he said, seizing=
her
hand, which she immediately withdrew; "do not leave me. You know how I
love you."
"And why should I not leave you, even
supposing it to be true that you do love me? To my cost I love you, and am I
any longer to endure the daily humiliation of seeing myself, the poor German
companion, who has nothing but her beauty, put aside in favour of another w=
hom
I also love. You say you love me, and bid me stay; now, tell me what is you=
r purpose
towards me? Do you intend to try to take advantage of my infatuation to mak=
e me
your mistress? It is, I am told, a common thing for such proposals to be ma=
de
to women in my position, whom it would be folly for wealthy gentlemen to ma=
rry.
If so, abandon that idea; for I tell you, Philip, that I would rather die t=
han
so disgrace my ancient name to gratify myself. I know you money-loving Engl=
ish
do not think very much of race unless the bearers of the name are rich; but=
we
do; and, although you would think it a =
span>mesalliance
to marry me, I, on the other hand,
should not be proud of an alliance with you. Why, Philip, my ancestors were
princes of royal blood when yours still herded the swine in these woods. I =
can
show more than thirty quarterings upon my shield, each the mark of a noble
house, and I will not be the first to put a bar sinister across them. Now, I
have spoken plainly, indelicately perhaps, and there is only one more word =
to
be said between us, and that word is good-bye
," and she held out her hand.
He did not seem to see it; indeed, he had scar=
cely
heard the latter part of what she said. Presently he lifted his face, and it
bore traces of a dreadful inward struggle. It was deadly pale, and great bl=
ack
rings had painted themselves beneath the troubled eyes.
"Hilda," he said, hoarsely, "do=
n't
go; I cannot bear to let you go. I will marry you."
"Think of what you are saying, Philip, an=
d do
not be rash. I do not wish to entrap you into marriage. You love money.
Remember that Maria, with all her possessions, asks nothing better than to
become your wife, and that I have absolutely nothing but my name and my goo=
d looks.
Look at me," and she stepped out into a patch of moonlight that found =
its
way between the trees, and, drawing the filmy shawl she wore from her head =
and
bare neck and bosom, stood before him in all the brightness of her beauty,
shaded as it was, and made more lovely by the shadows of the night.
"Examine me very carefully," she went
on, with bitter sarcasm, "look into my features and study my form and
carriage, or you may be disappointed with your bargain, and complain that y=
ou
have not got your money's worth. Remember, too, that an accident, an illnes=
s,
and at the best the passage of a few years, may quite spoil my value as a b=
eautiful
woman, and reflect, before I take you at your word."
Philip had sat or rather crouched himself down
upon the log of a tree that lay outside the summer-house, and covered his f=
ace
with his hand, as though her loveliness was more than he could bear to look
upon. Now, however, he raised his eyes and let them dwell upon her scornful=
features.
"I had rather," he said slowly--&quo=
t;I
had rather lose my life than lose you; I love you so that I would buy you at
the price even of my honour. When will you marry me?"
"What, have you made up your mind so quic=
kly?
Are you sure? Then,"-- and here she changed her whole tone and bearing,
and passionately stretched out her arms towards him,--"my dearest Phil=
ip,
my life, my love, I will marry you when you will."
"To-morrow?"
"To-morrow, if you like!"
"You must promise me something first.&quo=
t;
"What is it?"
"That you will keep the marriage a comple=
te
secret, and bear another name until my father's death. If you do not, he wi=
ll
most probably disinherit me."
"I do not like your terms, Philip. I do n=
ot
like secret marriages; but you are giving up much to marry me, so I suppose=
I
must give up something to marry you."
"You solemnly promise that nothing shall
induce you to reveal that you are my wife until I give you permission to do
so?"
"I promise--that is, provided you do not
force me to in self-defence."
Philip laughed.
"You need not fear that," he said.
"But how shall we arrange about getting married?"
"I can meet you in London."
"Very well. I will go up early to-morrow,=
and
get a licence, and then on Wednesday I can meet you, and we can be
married."
"As you will, Philip; where shall I meet
you?"
He gave her an address which she carefully not=
ed
down.
"Now," she said, "you must go, =
it
is late. Yes, you may kiss me now. There, that will do, now go." In
another minute he was gone.
"I have won the game," she mused;
"poor Maria. I am sorry for her, but perhaps hers is the better part. =
She
will get over it, but mine is a sad fate; I love passionately, madly, but I=
do
not trust the man I love. Why should our marriage be so secret? He cannot be
entangled with Maria, or she would have told me." And she stretched out
her arms towards the path by which he had left her, and cried aloud, in the=
native
tongue that sounded so soft upon her lips, "Oh, my heart's darling! if=
I
could only trust you as well as I love you, it is a happy woman that I shou=
ld
be to-night."
Nothing occurred to interfere with the plan of
action decided on by Hilda and Philip; no misadventure came to mock them,
dashing the Tantalus cup of joy to earth before their eyes. On the contrary=
, within
forty-eight hours of the conversation recorded in the last chapter, they we=
re
as completely and irrevocably man and wife, as a special licence and the cu=
rate
of a city church, assisted by the clerk and the pew-opener, could make them=
.
Then followed a brief period of such delirium =
as
turned the London lodgings, dingy and stuffy as they were in the height of =
the
hot summer, into an earthly paradise, a garden of Eden, into which, alas! t=
he
serpent had no need to seek an entrance. But, as was natural, when the first
glory of realized happiness was beginning to grow faint on their horizon, t=
he
young couple turned themselves to consider their position, and found in it,
mutually and severally, many things that did not please them. For Philip,
indeed, it was full of anxieties, for he had many complications to deal wit=
h.
First there was his secret engagement to Maria Lee, of which, be it remembe=
red,
his wife was totally ignorant, and which was in itself a sufficiently awkwa=
rd affair
for a married man to have on his hands. Then there was the paramount need of
keeping his marriage with Hilda as secret as the dead, to say nothing of the
necessity of his living, for the most part, away from his wife. Indeed, his
only consolation was that he had plenty of money on which to support her,
inasmuch as his father had, from the date of his leaving Oxford, made him an
allowance of one thousand a year.
Hilda had begun to discover that she was not
without her troubles. For one thing, her husband's fits of moodiness and
fretful anxiety troubled her, and led her, possessed as she was with a more=
than
ordinary share of womanly shrewdness, to suspect that he was hiding somethi=
ng
from her. But what chiefly vexed her proud nature was the necessity of
concealment, and all its attendant petty falsehoods and subterfuges. It was=
not
pleasant for Hilda Caresfoot to have to pass as Mrs. Roberts, and to be car=
eful
not to show herself in public places in the daytime, where there was a
possibility of her being seen by any one who might recognize in her striking
figure the lady who had lived with Miss Lee in Marlshire. It was not pleasa=
nt
to her to be obliged to reply to Maria Lee's affectionate letters, full as =
they
were of entreaty for her return, by epistles that had to be forwarded to a
country town in a remote district of Germany to be posted, and which were in
themselves full of lies that, however white they might have seemed under all
the circumstances, she felt in her conscience to be very black indeed. In
short, there was in their union none of that sense of finality and of secur=
ity
that is, under ordinary circumstances, the distinguishing mark of marriage =
in
this country; it partook rather of the nature of an illicit connection.
At the end of a fortnight of wedded bliss all
these little things had begun to make themselves felt, and in truth they we=
re
but the commencement of evils. For, one afternoon, Philip, for the first ti=
me since
his wedding, tore himself away from his wife's side, and paid a visit to a =
club
to which he had been recently elected. Here he found no less than three let=
ters
from his father, the first requesting his return, the second commanding it =
in
exceptionally polite language, and the third--which, written in mingled anx=
iety
and anger, had just arrived--coolly announcing his parent's intention, shou=
ld
he not hear of him by return, of setting detective officers to work to disc=
over
his whereabouts. From this letter it appeared, indeed, that his cousin Geor=
ge
had already been despatched to London to look for him, and on reference to =
the
hall porter he discovered that a gentleman answering to his description had
already inquired for him several times.
Cursing his own folly in not having kept up so=
me
communication with his father, he made the best of his way back to his
lodgings, to find Hilda waiting for him somewhat disconsolately.
"I am glad you have come back, love,"
she said, drawing him towards her till his dark curls mingled with her own =
fair
locks, and kissing him upon the forehead. "I have missed you dreadfull=
y. I
don't understand how I can have lived all these years without you."
"I am afraid, dear, you will have to live
without me for a while now; listen," and he read her the letters he had
just received.
She listened attentively till he had finished.=
"What are you going to do?" she aske=
d,
with some anxiety in her voice.
"Do? why of course I must go home at
once."
"And what am I to do?"
"Well, I don't know; I suppose that you m=
ust
stop here."
"That will be pleasant for me, will it
not?"
"No, dear, it will be pleasant neither for
you nor me; but what can I do? You know the man my father is to deal with; =
if I
stop here in defiance to his wishes, especially as he has been anxious about
me, there is no knowing what might not happen. Remember, Hilda, that we hav=
e to
deal with George, whose whole life is devoted to secret endeavours to suppl=
ant
me. If I were to give him such an opportunity as I should by stopping away =
now,
I should deserve all I got, or rather all I did not get."
Hilda sighed and acquiesced; had she been a
softer-minded woman she would have wept and relieved her feelings, but she =
was
not soft- minded. And so, before the post went out, he wrote an affectionat=
e letter
to his father, expressing his sorrow at the latter's anxiety at at his own
negligence in not having written to him, the fact of the matter being, he s=
aid,
that he had been taken up with visiting some of his Oxford friends, and had=
not
till that afternoon been near his club to look for letters. He would, howev=
er,
he added, return on the morrow, and make his apologies in person.
This letter he handed to his wife to read.
"Do you think that will do?" he aske=
d,
when she had finished.
"Oh, yes!" she replied, with a touch=
of
her old sarcasm, "it is a masterpiece of falsehood."
Philip looked very angry, and fumed and frette=
d;
but he made no reply, and on the following morning he departed to Bratham
Abbey.
"Ah, Philip, Philip!" said his fathe=
r,
under the mellow influence of his fourth glass of port, on the night of his
arrival. "I know well enough what kept you up in town. Well, well, I d=
on't
complain, young men will be young men; but don't let these affairs interfere
with the business of life. Remember Maria Lee, my boy; you have serious int=
erests
in that direction, interests that must not be trifled with, interests that I
have a right to expect you will no=
t trifle with."
His son made no reply, but sipped his wine in silence, aching at his heart for his absent bride, and wondering what his father would say did he really know what had "kept him in town."<= o:p>
After this, matters went on smoothly enough fo=
r a
month or more; since, fortunately for Philip, the great Maria Lee question,=
a question
that the more he considered it the more thorny did it appear, was for the
moment shelved by the absence of that young lady on a visit to her aunt in =
the
Isle of Wight. Twice during that month he managed, on different pretexts, to
get up to London and visit his wife, whom he found as patient as was possib=
le
under the circumstances, but anything but happy. Indeed, on the second
occasion, she urged on him strongly the ignominy of her position, and even =
begged
him to make a clean breast of it to his father, offering to undertake the t=
ask
herself. He refused equally warmly, and some sharp words ensued to be, howe=
ver,
quickly followed by a reconciliation.
On his return from this second visit, Philip f=
ound
a note signed "affectionately yours, Maria Lee," waiting for him,
which announced that young lady's return, and begged him to come over to lu=
nch
on the following day.
He went--indeed, he had no alternative but to =
go;
and again fortune favoured him in the person of a diffident young lady who =
was
stopping with Maria, and who never left her side all that afternoon, much t=
o the
disgust of the latter and the relief of Philip. One thing, however, he was =
not
spared, and that was the perusal of Hilda's last letter to her friend, writ=
ten
apparently from Germany, and giving a lively description of the writer's da=
ily
life and the state of her uncle's health, which, she said, precluded all
possibility of her return. Alas! he already knew its every line too well; f=
or,
as Hilda refused to undertake the task, he had but a week before drafted it=
himself.
But Philip was growing hardened to deception, and found it possible to read=
it
from end to end, and speculate upon its contents with Maria without blush or
hesitation.
But he could not always expect to find Miss Le=
e in
the custody of such an obtuse friend; and, needless to say, it became a mat=
ter
of very serious importance to him to know how he should treat her. It occur=
red to
him that his safest course might be to throw himself upon her generosity and
make a clean breast of it; but when it came to the point he was too weak to
thus expose his shameful conduct to the woman whose heart he had won, and to
whom he was bound by every tie of honour that a gentleman holds sacred.
He thought of the scornful wonder with which s=
he
would listen to his tale, and preferred to take the risk of greater disaste=
r in
the future to the certainty of present shame. In the end, he contrived to e=
stablish
a species of confidential intimacy with Maria, which, whilst it somewhat
mystified the poor girl, was not without its charm, inasmuch as it tended to
transform the every-day Philip into a hero of romance.
But in the main Maria was ill-suited to play
heroine to her wooer's hero. Herself as open as the daylight, it was quite
incomprehensible to her why their relationship should be kept such a dark a=
nd mysterious
secret, or why, if her lover gave her a kiss, it should be done with as many
precautions as though he were about to commit a murder.
She was a very modest maiden, and in her heart
believed it a wonderful thing that Philip should have fallen in love with
her--a thing to be very proud of; and she felt it hard that she should be
denied the gratification of openly acknowledging her lover, and showing him=
off
to her friends, after the fashion that is so delightful to the female mind.=
But, though this consciousness of the deprivat=
ion
of a lawful joy set up a certain feeling of irritation in her mind, she did=
not
allow it to override her entire trust in and love for Philip. Whatever he d=
id was
no doubt wise and right; but, for all that, on several occasions she took an
opportunity to make him acquainted with her views of the matter, and to ask=
him
questions that he found it increasingly difficult to answer.
In this way, by the exercise of ceaseless
diplomacy, and with the assistance of a great deal of falsehood of the most
artistic nature, Philip managed to tide over the next six months; but at the
end of that time the position was very far from improved. Hilda was chafing=
more
and more at the ignominy of her position; Maria was daily growing more and =
more
impatient to have their engagement made public; and last, but by no means
least, his father was almost daily at him on the subject of Miss Lee, till =
at
length he succeeded in wringing from him the confession that there existed =
some
sort of understanding between Maria and himself.
Now, the old squire was a shrewd man of the wo=
rld,
and was not therefore slow to guess that what prevented this understanding =
from
being openly acknowledged as an engagement was some entanglement on his son=
's
part. Indeed, it had recently become clear to him that London had developed
strange attractions for Philip. That this entanglement could be marriage wa=
s,
however, an idea that never entered into his head; he had too good an opini=
on
of his son's common- sense to believe it possible that he would deliberately
jeopardize his inheritance by marrying without his permission. But Philip's=
reluctance
and obstinacy annoyed him excessively. "Devil" Caresfoot was not a
man accustomed to be thwarted; indeed, he had never been thwarted in his li=
fe,
and he did not mean to be now. He had set his heart upon this marriage, and=
it
would have to be a good reason that could turn him from his purpose.
Accordingly, having extracted the above
information, he said no more to Philip, but proceeded to lay his own plans.=
That very afternoon he commenced to put them i=
nto
action. At three o'clock he ordered the carriage and pair, a vehicle that w=
as
rarely used, giving special directions that the coachman should see that hi=
s wig
was properly curled. An ill-curled wig had before now been known to produce=
a
very bad effect upon Mr. Caresfoot's nerves, and also upon its wearer's fut=
ure
prospects in life.
At three precisely the heavy open carriage, sw=
ung
upon C-springs and drawn by two huge greys, drew up in front of the hall-do=
or,
and the squire, who was as usual dressed in the old-fashioned knee-breeches=
, and
carried in his hand his gold-headed cane, stepped solemnly into it, and sea=
ted
himself exactly in the middle of the back seat, not leaning back, as is the
fashion of our degenerate days, but holding himself bolt upright. Any more
imposing sight than this old gentleman presented thus seated, and moving at=
a
stately pace through the village street, it is impossible to conceive; but =
it
so oppressed the very children that fear at the spectacle (which was an
unwonted one, for the squire had not thus driven abroad in state for some y=
ears)
overcame their curiosity, and at his approach they incontinently fled.
So soon as the carriage had passed through the
drive-gates of the Abbey, the squire ordered the coachman to drive to Rewth=
am
House, whither in due course he safely arrived.
He was ushered into the drawing-room, whilst a
servant went in search of Miss Lee, whom she found walking in the garden.
"A gentleman to see you, miss."
"I am not at home. Who is it?"
"Mr. Caresfoot, miss!"
"Oh, why didn't you say so before?" =
and
taking it for granted that Philip had paid her an unexpected visit, she sta=
rted
off for the house at a run.
"Why, Philip," she exclaimed, as she
swung open the door, "this is=
good of you, o--oh!" for at that mo=
ment
Mr. Caresfoot senior appeared from behind the back of the door where he had
been standing by the fireplace, and made his most imposing bow.
"That, my dear Maria, was the first time =
that
I have heard myself called Philip for many a long year, and I fear that that
was by accident; neither the name nor the blush were meant for me; now, whe=
re they?"
"I thought," replied Maria, who was
still overwhelmed with confusion, "I thought that it was Philip, your =
son,
you know; he has not been here for so long."
"With such a welcome waiting him, it is
indeed wonderful that he can keep away;" and the old squire bowing aga=
in
with such courtly grace as to drive what little self-possession remained to
poor Maria after her flying entry entirely out of her head.
"And now, my dear," went on her visi=
tor,
fixing his piercing eyes upon her face, "with your permission, we will=
sit
down and have a little talk together. Won't you take off your hat?"
Maria took off her hat as suggested, and sat d=
own
meekly, full under fire of the glowing eyes that had produced such curious
effects upon subjects so dissimilar as the late Mrs. Caresfoot and Jim Brad=
y.
She could, however, think of nothing appropriate to say.
"My dear," the old gentleman continu=
ed
presently, "the subject upon which I have taken upon myself to speak to
you is one very nearly affecting your happiness and also of a delicate natu=
re.
My excuse for alluding to it must be that you are the child of my old
friend--ah! we were great friends fifty years ago, my dear--and that I have
myself a near interest in the matter. Do you understand me?"
"No, not quite."
"Well then, forgive an old man, who has no
time to waste, if he comes to the point. I mean I have come to ask you, Mar=
ia,
if any understanding or engagement exists between Philip and yourself?"=
;
The eyes were full upon her now, and she felt =
that
they were drawing her secret from her as a corkscrew does a cork. At last it
came out with a pop.
"Yes, we are engaged."
"Thank you, my dear. How long have you be=
en
engaged?"
"About eight months."
"And why has the affair been kept so
secret?"
"I don't know; Philip wished it. He told =
me
not to tell any one. I suppose that I should not by rights have told you.&q=
uot;
"Make yourself easy, my dear. Philip has
already told me that there was an understanding between you; I only wanted =
to hear
the confirmation of such good news from your own lips. Young men are great =
coxcombs,
my dear, and apt to fancy things where ladies are concerned. I am rejoiced =
to
hear that there is no mistake on his part."
"I am so glad that you are pleased,"=
she
said shyly.
"Pleased, my dear!" said the old
gentleman, rising and walking up and down the room in his excitement,
"pleased is not the word for it. I am more rejoiced than if some one h=
ad
left me another estate. Look here, Maria, I had set my heart upon this thing
coming to pass; I have thought of it for years. I loved your father, and you
are like your father, girl; ay, I love you too, because you are a generous,
honest woman, and will bring a good strain of blood into a family that want=
s generosity--ay,
and I sometimes think wants honesty too. And then your land runs into ours,
and, as I can't buy it, I am glad that it should come in by marriage. I have
always wanted to see the Abbey, Isleworth, and Rewtham estates in a ring fe=
nce
before I died. Come and give me a kiss, my dear."
Maria did as she was bid.
"I will try to be a good daughter to
you," she said, "if I marry Philip; but," and here her voice
trembled a little, "I want to make you understand that, though this
engagement exists, I have sometimes thought of late that perhaps he wanted =
to
break it off, and----"
"Break it off?" almost shouted the o=
ld
man, his eyes flashing. "Break it off; by God, the day he plays fast a=
nd
loose with you, that day I leave the property to his cousin, George;--there,
there, I frightened you, I beg your pardon, but in his own interest, Maria,=
I
advise you to hold him fast to his word. To change the subject, your news h=
as freshened
me up so much that I mean to have a little company; will you come and dine =
with
me next Thursday?"
"I shall be very glad, Mr. Caresfoot.&quo=
t;
"Thank you; and perhaps till then you will
not, unless he happens to ask you, mention the subject of our conversation =
to
Philip. I want to have a talk with him first."
Maria assented, and the squire took his leave =
with
the same magnificence of mien that had marked his arrival.
That evening his father astonished Philip by
telling him that he intended to give a dinner-party on that day week.
"You see, Philip," he said, with a g=
rim
smile, "I have only got a year or so at the most before me, and I wish=
to
see a little of my neighbours before I go. I have not had much society of l=
ate
years. I mean to do the thing well while I am about it, and ask everybody i=
n the
neighbourhood. How many can dine with comfort in the old banqueting-hall, do
you suppose?"
"About five-and-forty, I should think.&qu=
ot;
"Five-and-forty! I remember that we sat d=
own
sixty to dinner when I came of age, but then we were a little crowded; so we
will limit the number to fifty."
"Are you going to have fifty people to
dinner?" asked Philip aghast.
"Certainly; I shall ask you to come and h=
elp
me to write the invitations presently. I have prepared a list; and will you
kindly send over to Bell at Roxham. I wish to speak to him, he must bring h=
is men
over to do up the old hall a bit; and, by the way, write to Gunter's and or=
der
a man-cook to be here on Tuesday, and to bring with him materials for the b=
est
dinner for fifty people that he can supply. I will see after the wine mysel=
f;
we will finish off that wonderful port my grandfather laid down. Now, bustle
about, my lad, we have no time to lose; we must get all the notes out
to-day."
Philip started to execute his orders, pretty w=
ell
convinced in his own mind that his father was taking leave of his senses. W=
ho
ever heard of a dinner being given to fifty people before, especially in a
house where such rare entertainments had always been of a traditionally sel=
ect
and solemn nature? The expense, too, reflected Philip, would be large; a ma=
n of
his father's age had, in his opinion, no right to make such ducks-and-drake=
s of
money that was so near to belonging to somebody else. But one thing was cle=
ar:
his father had set his mind upon it, and when once that was the case to try=
to
thwart him was more than Philip dared.
When the notes of invitation arrived at their
respective destinations, great was the excitement in the neighbourhood of
Bratham Abbey. Curiosity was rampant on the point, and the refusals were few
and far between.
At length the eventful evening arrived, and wi=
th
it the expected guests, among whom the old squire, in his dress of a past
generation-- resplendent in diamond buckles, frilled shirt-front, and silk =
stockings--was,
with his snow-white hair and stately bearing, himself by far the most strik=
ing
figure.
Standing near the door of the large drawing-ro=
om,
he received his guests as they arrived with an air that would have done cre=
dit
to an ambassador; but when Miss Lee entered, Philip noticed with a propheti=
c shudder
that, in lieu of the accustomed bow, he gave her a kiss. He also noticed, f=
or
he was an observant man, that the gathered company was pervaded by a curious
air of expectation. They were nearly all of them people who had been neighb=
ours
of the Caresfoot family for years --in many instances for generations--and =
as
intimate with its members as the high-stomached stiffness of English
country-life will allow. They therefore were well acquainted with the family
history and peculiarities; but it was clear from their faces that their
knowledge was of no help to them now, and that they were totally in the dar=
k as
to why they were all gathered together in this unwonted fashion.
At length, to the relief of all, the last of t=
he
chosen fifty guests put in an appearance, and dinner was announced. Everybo=
dy
made his way to his allotted partner, and awaited the signal to move forwar=
d,
when a fresh piquancy was added to the proceedings by an unexpected inciden=
t--in
which Maria Lee played a principal part. Maria was sitting in a corner of t=
he
drawing-room, wondering if Philip was going to take her in to dinner, and w=
hy
he had not been to see her lately, when suddenly she became aware that all =
the
room was looking at her, and on raising her eyes she perceived the cause. F=
or
there, close upon her, and advancing with majestic step and outstretched ar=
m,
was old Mr. Caresfoot, possessed by the evident intention of taking her dow=
n in
the full face of all the married ladies and people of title present. She pr=
ayed
that the floor might open and swallow her; indeed, of the two, she would ha=
ve
preferred that way of going down to dinner. But it did not, so there was no
alternative left to her but to accept the proffered arm, and to pass, with =
as
much dignity as she could muster in such a trying moment, in front of the
intensely interested company--from which she could hear an involuntary murm=
ur
of surprise-- through the wide-flung doors, down the great oak staircase lo=
aded
with exotics, thence along a passage carpeted with crimson cloth, and throu=
gh
double doors of oak that were flung open at their approach, into the
banqueting-hall. On its threshold not only she, but almost every member of =
the
company who passed in behind them, uttered an exclamation of surprise; and
indeed the sight before them amply justified it.
The hall was a chamber of noble proportions, s=
ixty
feet in length by thirty wide. It was very lofty, and the dark chestnut bea=
ms
of the beautiful arched roof were thrown into strong relief by the light of=
many
candles. The walls were panelled to the roof with oak that had become almost
black in the course of centuries, here and there relieved by portraits and
shining suits of armour.
Down the centre of the room ran a long wide ta=
ble,
whereon, and on a huge sideboard, was spread the whole of the Caresfoot pla=
te,
which, catching the light of the suspended candles, threw it back in dazzli=
ng gleams
till the beholder was positively bewildered with the brilliancy of the sigh=
t.
"Oh, how beautiful!" said Maria, in
astonishment.
"Yes," answered the old gentleman as=
he
took his seat at the head of the table, placing Maria on his right, "t=
he
plate is very fine, it has taken two hundred years to get together; but my
father did more in that way than all of us put together, he spent ten thous=
and
pounds on plate during his lifetime; that gold service on the sideboard
belonged to him. I have only spent two. Mind, my love," he added in a =
low voice,
"when it comes into your keeping that it is preserved intact; but I do=
n't
recommend you to add to it, there is too much already for a simple country
gentleman's family."
Maria blushed and was silent.
The dinner, which was served on a most magnifi=
cent
scale, wore itself away, as all big county-dinners do, in bursts of sedate =
but
not profoundly interesting conversation. Indeed, had it not been for the no=
velty
of the sight, Maria would have been rather bored, the squire's stately
compliments notwithstanding. As it was, she felt inclined to envy the party=
at
the other end, amongst whom, looking down the long vista of sparkling glass=
and
silver, she could now and again catch sight of Philip's face beaming with
animation, and even in the pauses of conversation hear the echo of his dist=
ant
laughter.
"What good spirits he is in!" she
thought to herself.
And, indeed, Philip was, or appeared to be, in
excellent spirits. His handsome face, that of late had been so gloomy, was =
lit
up with laughter, and he contrived by his witty talk to keep those round hi=
m in
continual merriment.
"Philip seems very happy, doesn't he,&quo=
t;
said George, sotto voce to Mrs. Bellamy, who was sitting next to=
him.
"You must be a very bad judge of the face=
as
an index to the mind if you think that he is happy. I have been watching him
all dinner, and I draw a very different conclusion."
"Why, look how he is laughing."
"Have you never seen a man laugh to hide =
his
misery; never mind his lips, watch his eyes: they are dilated with fear, see
how he keeps glancing towards his father and Miss Lee. There, did you see h=
im start?
Believe me he is not happy, and unless I am mistaken he will be even less so
before the night is over. We are not all asked here for nothing."
"I hope not, I hope not; if so we shall h=
ave
to act upon our information, eh! But, to change the subject, you look lovel=
y to-night."
"Of course I do, I am lovely; I wish I could return the compli=
ment, but
conscientiously I can't. Did you ever see such plate? look at that centre-p=
iece."
"It is wonderful," said George. &quo=
t;I
never saw it at all out before. I wonder," he added, with a sigh, &quo=
t;if
I shall ever have the fingering of it."
"Yes," she said, with a strange look=
of
her large eyes, "if you continue to be guided by me, you shall. I tell=
you
so, and I never make mistakes. Hush, something is going =
to
happen. What is it?"
The dinner had come to an end, and in accordan=
ce
with the old- fashioned custom the cloth had been removed, leaving bare an
ancient table of polished oak nearly forty feet in length, and composed of =
slabs
of timber a good two inches thick.
When the wine had been handed round, the old
squire motioned to the servants to leave the room, and then, having first
whispered something in the ear of Miss Lee that caused her to turn very red=
, he
slowly rose to his feet in the midst of a dead silence.
"Look at your cousin's face," whispe=
red
Mrs. Bellamy. George looked; it was ghastly pale, and the black eyes were
gleaming like polished jet against white paper.
"Friends and neighbours, amongst whom or
amongst whose fathers I have lived for so many years," began the speak=
er,
whose voice, soft as it was, filled the great hall with ease, "it was,=
if
tradition does not lie, in this very room and at this very table that the o=
nly
Caresfoot who ever made an after-dinner speech of his own accord, delivered=
himself
of his burden. That man was my ancestor in the eighth degree, old yeoman
Caresfoot, and the occasion of his speech was to him a very important one,
being the day on which he planted Caresfoot's Staff, the great oak by the w=
ater
yonder, to mark the founding of a house of country gentry. Some centuries h=
ave
elapsed since my forefather stood where I stand, most like with his hand up=
on
this board as mine is now, and addressed a company not so fine or so well
dressed, but perhaps--I mean no disrespect--on the whole, as good at heart =
as
that before me now. Yes, the sapling oak has grown into the biggest tree in=
the
country-side 'twixt then and now. It seems, therefore, to be fit that on wh=
at
is to me as great a day as the planting of that oak was to my yeoman
forefather, that I, like him, should gather my ancient friends and neighbou=
rs
round me under the same ancient roof that I may, like him, make them the
partakers of my joy.
"None of you sitting at this board to-day=
can
look upon the old man who now asks your attention, without realizing what he
himself has already learned: namely, that his day is over. Now, life is har=
d to
quit. When a man grows old, the terrors of the unknown land loom just as la=
rge
and terrible as they did to his youthful imagination, larger perhaps. But i=
t is
a fact that must be faced, a hard, inevitable fact. And age, realizing this,
looks round it for consolations, and finds only two: first, that as its
interests and affections here fade and fall away, in just that same
proportion do they grow and gather there
upon the further shore; and second=
ly
that, after Nature's eternal fashion, the youth and vigour of a new generat=
ion
is waiting to replace the worn-out decrepitude of that which sinks into
oblivion. My life is done, it cannot be long before the churchyard claims i=
ts own,
but I live again in my son; and take such cold comfort as I may from that i=
dea
of family, and of long-continued and assured succession, that has so largely
helped to make this country what she is.
"But you will wonder what can be the
particular purpose for which I have bidden you here to-night. Be assured th=
at
it was not to ask you to listen to gloomy sermons on the, to others, not ve=
ry
interesting fact of my approaching end, but rather for a joyful and a defin=
ite reason.
One wish I have long had, it is--that before I go, I may see my son's child,
the little Caresfoot that is to fill my place in future years, prattling ab=
out
my knees. But this I shall never see. What I have to announce to you, howev=
er,
is the first step towards it, my son's engagement to Miss Lee, the young la=
dy
on my right."
"Look at his face," whispered Mrs.
Bellamy to her neighbour, during the murmur of applause that followed this
announcement. "Look quick."
Philip had put his hands down upon his chair as
though to raise himself up, and an expression of such mingled rage and terr=
or
swept across his features as, once seen, could not easily be forgotten. But=
so
quickly did it pass that perhaps Mrs. Bellamy, who was watching, was the on=
ly
one in all that company to observe it. In another moment he was smiling and
bowing his acknowledgements to whispered and telegraphed congratulations.
"You all know Miss Lee," went on the=
old
squire, "as you knew her father and mother before her; she is a sound
shoot from an honest stock, a girl after my own heart, a girl that I love, =
and
that all who come under her influence will love, and this engagement is to =
me
the most joyful news that I have heard for many a year. May God, ay, and man
too, so deal with my son as he deals with Maria Lee!
"And now I have done; I have already kept=
you
too long. With your consent, we will have no more speeches, no returning of
thanks; we will spare Philip his blushes. But before I sit down I will bid =
you all
farewell, for I am in my eighty-third year, and I feel that I shall never s=
ee
very many of your faces again. I wish that I had been a better neighbour to=
you
all, as there are many other things I wish, now that it is too late to fulf=
il
them; but I still hope that some of you will now and again find a kind thou=
ght
for the old man whom among yourselves you talk of as 'Devil Caresfoot.' Bel=
ieve
me, my friends, there is truth in the old proverb: the devil is not always =
as
black as he is painted. I give you my toast, my son Philip and his affiance=
d wife,
Maria Lee."
The whole company rose, actuated by a common
impulse, and drank the health standing; and such was the pathos of the old
squire's speech, that there were eyes among those present that were not free
from tears. Then the ladies retired, amongst them poor Maria, who was natur=
ally
upset at the unexpected, and, in some ways, unwelcome notoriety thus given =
to
herself.
In the drawing-room, she was so overwhelmed wi=
th
congratulations, that at last, feeling that she could not face a fresh edit=
ion
from the male portion of the gathering, she ordered her carriage, and quiet=
ly slipped
away home, to think over matters at her leisure.
Philip, too, came in for his share of honours =
down
below, and acknowledged them as best he might, for he had not the moral cou=
rage
to repudiate the position. He felt that his father had forced his hand comp=
letely,
and that there was nothing to be done, and sank into the outward calmness of
despair. But if his companions could have seen the whirlpool of hatred, ter=
ror,
and fury that raged within his breast as he sat and chatted, and sipped his
great-grandfather's port, they would have been justifiably astonished.
At length the banquet, for it was nothing less,
came to an end, and, having bowed their farewell to the last departing gues=
t,
the old man and his son were left alone together in the deserted drawing-ro=
om. Philip
was seated by a table, his face buried in his hand, whilst his father was
standing by the dying fire, tapping his eye-glass nervously on the mantelpi=
ece.
It was he who broke the somewhat ominous silence.
"Well, Philip, how did you like my
speech?"
Thus addressed, the son lifted his face from h=
is
hand; it was white as a sheet.
"By what authority," he asked in a h=
arsh
whisper, "did you announce me as engaged to Miss Lee?"
"By my own, Philip. I had it from both yo=
ur
lips that you were engaged. I did not choose that it should remain a secret=
any
longer."
"You had no right to make that speech. I =
will
not marry Miss Lee; understand once and for all, I will not marry her."
In speaking thus, Philip had nerved himself to
bear one of those dreadful outbursts of fury that had earned his father his
title; but, to his astonishment, none such came. The steely eyes glinted a
little as he answered in his most polite manner, and that was all.
"Your position, Philip, then is that you =
are
engaged, very publicly engaged, to a girl whom you have no intention of
marrying--a very disgraceful position; mine is that I have, with every poss=
ible
solemnity, announced a marriage that will not come off--a very ridiculous
position. Very good, my dear Philip; please yourself. I cannot force you in=
to a
disgraceful marriage. But you must not suppose that you can thus thwart me =
with
impunity. Allow me to show you the alternative. I see you are tired, but I =
shall
not detain you long. Take that easy-chair. This house and the land round it,
also the plate, which is very valuable, but cannot be sold--by the way, see=
that
it is safely locked up before you go to bed--are strictly entailed, and mus=
t,
of course belong to you. The value of the entailed land is about 1000 pound=
s a
year, or a little less in bad times; of the unentailed, a clear 4000 pounds=
; of
my personal property about 900 pounds. Should you persist in your refusal to
marry Miss Lee, or should the marriage in any way fall through, except from
circumstances entirely beyond your control, I must, to use your own admirab=
ly emphatic
language, ask you to 'understand, once and for all,' that, where your name
appears in my will with reference to the unentailed and personal property, =
it
will be erased, and that of your cousin George substituted. Please yourself,
Philip, please yourself; it is a matter of entire indifference to me. I am =
very
fond of George, and shall be glad to do him a good turn if you force me to =
it,
though it is a pity to split up the property. But probably you will like to
take a week to consider whether you prefer to stick to the girl you have got
hold of up in town there--oh, yes! I know there is some one--and abandon the
property, or marry Miss Lee and retain the property--a very pretty problem =
for
an amorous young man to consider. There, I won't keep you up any longer. Go=
od
night, Philip, good night. Just see to the plate, will you? Remember, you h=
ave
a personal interest in that; I can't leave it away."
Philip rose without a word and left the room, =
but
when he was gone it was his father's turn to hide his face in his hands.
"Oh, God!" he groaned aloud, "to
think that all my plans should come to such an end as this; to think that I=
am
as powerless to prevent their collapse as a child is to support a falling t=
ree;
that the only power left me is the power of vengeance--vengeance on my own =
son.
I have lived too long, and the dregs of life are bitter."
Poor Hilda found life in her London lodging
anything but cheerful, and frequently begged Philip to allow her to settle
somewhere in the country. This, however, he refused to do on two grounds: in
the first place, because few country villages would be so convenient for hi=
m to
get at as London; and in the second, because he declared that the great city
was the safest hiding-place in the world.
And so Hilda continued perforce to live her
lonesome existence, that was only cheered by her husband's short and uncert=
ain
visits. Friends she had none, nor did she dare to make any. The only person
whose conversation she could rely on to relieve the tedium of the long week=
s was
her landlady, Mrs. Jacobs, the widow of a cheesemonger, who had ruined a fi=
ne
business by his drinking and other vicious propensities, and out of a good
property had only left his wife the leasehold of a house in Lincoln's Inn
Fields, which, fortunately for her, had been settled upon her at her marria=
ge.
Like most people who have seen better days--not but what she was now very c=
omfortably
off--she delighted in talking of her misfortunes, and of the perfidiousness=
of man;
and in Hilda, who had, poor girl, nothing else to listen to, she found a mo=
st
attentive audience. As was only natural where such a charming person and su=
ch a
good listener were concerned, honest Mrs. Jacobs soon grew fond of her
interesting lodger, about whose husband's circumstances and history she soon
wove many an imaginary tale; for, needless to say, her most pertinent inqui=
ries
failed to extract much information from Hilda. One of her favourite fictions
was that her lodger was the victim of her handsome husband, who had in some=
way
beguiled her from her home beyond the seas, in order to keep her in solitary
confinement and out of the reach of a hated rival. Another, that he kept her
thus that he might have greater liberty for his own actions.
In course of time these ideas took such posses=
sion
of her mind that she grew to believe in them, and, when speaking of Hilda to
any of her other lodgers, would shake her head and talk of her mysteriously=
as
a "lamb" and a "victim."
As for that lady herself, whilst far from
suspecting her good landlady's gloomy surmises, she certainly fell more and
more a prey to depression and anxieties, and occasionally even to suspicion=
, to
all of which evils she grew increasingly liable as she drew nearer to an ev=
ent
that was no longer very distant. She could not but notice a change in Phili=
p's
manner on the rare occasions when he was able to visit her, of which the mo=
st
marked developments were fits of silence and irritability. A certain retice=
nce
also, that became more and more noticeable as time went on, led her to feel
that there was an invisible something growing up between them--a something =
that
the pride she possessed in such a striking degree forbade her to attempt to
pierce, but which was none the less galling to her on that account. Very
shortly before the events narrated in the last chapter she had taken the
occasion of a visit from Philip to complain somewhat bitterly of her positi=
on,
begging him to tell her when there was any prospect of her being allowed to
take her rightful place--a question her husband was quite unable to answer
satisfactorily. Seeing that there was nothing to be got out of him, with
womanly tact she changed the subject, and asked after Maria Lee (for whom s=
he
entertained a genuine affection)--when he last saw her, how she was looking=
, if
there was any prospect of her getting married, and other questions of the s=
ame
sort--the result of which was to evoke a most violent, and to her inexplica=
ble,
fit of irritability on the part of her husband. Something of a scene ensued,
which was finally terminated about five o'clock in the afternoon by Philip's
abrupt departure to catch his train.
Shortly afterwards Mrs. Jacobs, coming up to b=
ring
some tea, found Hilda indulging in tears that she had been too proud to shed
before her husband; and, having had an extended personal experience of such=
matters,
rightly guessed that there had been a conjugal tiff, the blame of which,
needless to say, she fixed upon the departed Philip.
"Lor, Mrs. Roberts" (as Hilda was
called), she said, "don't take on like that; they're all brutes, that's
what they are; if only you could have seen my Samuel, who's dead and gone t=
hese
ten years and buried in a private grave at Kensal Cemetery--though he didn't
leave anything to pay for it except three dozen and five of brandy--he was a
beauty, poor dear, he was; your husband ain't nothing to him."
"My husband, let me tell you, Mrs. Jacobs=
, is
not a brute at all," sobbed Hilda, with dignity.
"Ah, Mrs. Roberts, that is just what I us=
ed
to say of Samuel, but he was the biggest brute in the three kingdoms, for a=
ll
that; but if you ask me, meaning no offence, I call a man a brute as only c=
omes
to see his lawful wife about twice a month, let alone making an angel
cry."
"Mr. Roberts has his reasons, Mrs. Jacobs;
you must not talk of him like that."
"Ah, so my Samuel used to say when he sto=
pped
away from home for three nights at a time, till I followed him and found out
his 'Reason,' and a mighty pretty 'Reason' she was too, all paint and feath=
ers,
the hussy, and eyes as big as a teacup. They all have their reasons, but th=
ey
never tell 'em. But come and put on your things and go out a bit, there's a
dear; it is a beautiful warm evening. You feel tired--oh, never mind that; =
it
is necessary for people as is in an interested way to take exercise. I well
remembers----"
Here Hilda, however, cut the subject short, and
deprived herself of Mrs. Jacobs' reminiscences by going to put on her thing=
s.
It was a bright warm evening, and she found the
air so pleasant that, after strolling round Lincoln's Inn Fields, she thoug=
ht
she would extend her walk a little, and struck past Lincoln's Inn Hall into=
New
Square, and then made her way to the archway opposite to where the New Law
Courts now stand. Under this archway a legal bookseller has built his nest,=
and
behind windows of broad plate-glass were ranged specimens of his seductive
wares, baits on which to catch students avaricious of legal knowledge as th=
ey
pass on their way to chambers or Hall. Now, at this window a young man was
standing at the moment that Hilda entered the archway, his eyes fixed upon a
pamphlet on the laws of succession. That young man was George Caresfoot, who
was considering whether it would be worth his while to buy the pamphlet in =
order
to see if he would be entitled to anything if his uncle should happen to die
intestate, as he sometimes feared might be the case. He had come up to town=
on
business connected with his firm, and was now waiting till it was time to b=
egin
an evening of what he understood as pleasure; for George was a very gay you=
ng
man.
He was, however, also a very sharp one, so sha=
rp
that he even noticed shadows, especially when, as in this case, the shadow =
was
clearly defined and flung, life-sized, on the dark background of the books =
before
him. He watched it for a moment, and as its owner, with an absent air, slow=
ly
passed from the bright sunlight into the shade of the arch, it struck the
astute George that there was something familiar about this particular and b=
y no
means unpleasing shadow. Waiting till it had vanished and the footsteps gone
past him, he turned round and at a glance recognized Hilda von Holtzhausen,
Miss Lee's beautiful companion, who was supposed to have departed into the =
more
distant parts of Germany. George's eyes twinkled, and a whole host of ideas
rushed into his really able mind.
"Caught at last, for a sovereign," he
muttered.
Meanwhile Hilda walked slowly on into Chancery
Lane, then turned to the left till she came into Holborn, and thence made h=
er
way round by another route back to Lincoln's Inn Fields. Needless to say,
George followed at a respectful distance. His first impulse had been to go =
up and
speak to her, but he resisted the inclination.
On the doorstep of the house where Hilda lodge=
d,
stood her landlady giving a piece of her mind to a butcher-boy both as rega=
rded
his master's meat and his personal qualities. She paused for breath just as
Hilda passed up the steps, and, turning, said something that made the latter
laugh. The butcher-boy took the opportunity of beating a rapid retreat, lea=
ving
Mrs. Jacobs crowing after him from her own doorstep. As soon as Hilda had g=
one
into the house, George saw his opportunity. Advancing politely towards Mrs.
Jacobs, he asked her if she was the landlady of the house, and, when she had
answered in the affirmative, he made inquiries about apartments.
"Thank you, sir," said Mrs. Jacobs,
"but I do not let rooms to single gentlemen."
"You take too much for granted, ma'am. I =
am
married."
She looked at him doubtfully. "I suppose,
sir, you would have no objection to giving a reference."
"A dozen, if you like, ma'am; but shall we
look at the rooms?"
Mrs. Jacobs assented, and they made their way
upstairs, George keeping in front. On the first-floor he saw a pair of lady=
's
shoes on a mat outside the door, and guessed to whom they belonged.
"Are these the rooms?" he said, layi=
ng
his hand upon the door-handle.
"No, sir, no, they are Mrs. Roberts'; next
floor, please, sir."
"Mrs. Roberts?--I suppose the very handso=
me
young lady I saw come into the house. No offence, ma'am; but a man's bound =
to
be careful where he brings his wife. I suppose she's all right."
"Lord, yes, poor dear!" answered Mrs.
Jacobs, in indignation; "why, they came here straight from St. Jude's,
Battersea, the day they were married; a runaway match, I fancy."
"That's all right; she looked charming. I
hope her husband is worthy of her," remarked George, as he gazed round
Mrs. Jacobs' rooms.
"Well, as to that, he's handsome enough, =
for
them as likes those black men; but I don't like people as only comes to vis=
it
their lawful wives about twice a month. But," suddenly checking hersel=
f,
"it isn't any affair of mine."
"No, indeed, very reprehensible: I am, as=
a
married man, entirely of your mind. These are charming rooms, ma'am, charmi=
ng.
I shall certainly take them if my wife approves; I will let you know by to-=
morrow's
post--Jacobs, yes, I have it down. Good evening, ma'am," and he was go=
ne.
Instead of going out that evening as he had
intended, George sat in the smoking-room of his hotel and thought. He also
wrote a letter which he addressed to Mrs. Bellamy.
Next morning, taking a cab, he drove to St.
Jude's, Battersea, and inspected the register.
Presently he asked for a certified copy of the
following entry: "August 1, 1856. Philip Caresfoot, bachelor, gentlema=
n,
to Hilda von Holtzhausen, spinster (by license). Signed J. Few, curate; as
witness, Fred. Natt, Eliza Chambers."
That evening Hilda received an anonymous lette=
r,
written in a round clerk's hand, that had been posted in the City. It was
addressed to Mrs. Roberts, and its contents ran thus:
"A sincere friend warns Mrs. Philip Cares=
foot
that her husband is deceiving her, and has become entangled with a young la=
dy
of her acquaintance. Burn this; wa=
it and
watch! "
The letter fell from her hands as though it had
stung her.
"Mrs. Jacobs was right," she said al=
oud,
with a bitter laugh, "men always have a 'reason.' Oh, let him
beware!" And she threw back her beautiful head and the great blue eyes
sparkled like those of a snake about to strike. The sword of jealousy, that=
she
had hitherto repelled with the shield of a woman's trust in the man she lov=
es,
had entered into her soul, and, could Philip have seen her under these new =
circumstances,
he would have realized that he had indeed good reason to "beware."
"No wonder," she went on, "no wonder that he finds her name
irritating upon my lips; no doubt to him it is a desecration. Oh, oh!"=
And
she flung herself on her face, and wept tears of jealous rage.
"Well," said George to Mrs. Bellamy,=
as
they drove home together after the great dinner party (do not be shocked, my
reader, Bellamy was on the bow ),
"well, how shall we strike? Shall I go to the old man to-morrow, and s=
how
him my certified copy? There is no time to lose. He might die any day."=
;
"No; we must act through Mrs. Philip.&quo=
t;
"Why?"
"It is more scientific, and it will be mo=
re
amusing."
"Poor thing! it will be a blow to her. Do=
n't
you like her?"
"No."
"Why not?"
"Because she did not trust me, and because
she eclipses me. Therefore I am glad of an opportunity of destroying her.&q=
uot;
"You are a very ruthless woman."
"When I have an end in view, I march stra=
ight
to it; I do not vacillate--that is all. But never mind me; here we are near
home. Go to town by the first train to-morrow morning and post another lett=
er announcing
what has happened here. Then come back and wait."
"Ay," reflected George, "that i=
s a
wonderful woman--a woman it is good to have some hold over."
We left Hilda stretched on her face sobbing. B=
ut
the fit did not last long. She rose, and flung open the window; she seemed
stifled for want of air. Then she sat down to think what she should do. Van=
ish
and leave no trace? No; not yet. Appear and claim her place? No; not yet. T=
he
time was not ripe for choice between these two extremes. Upbraid Philip with
his faithlessness? No; not without proofs. What did that hateful letter say?
"Wait and watch;" yes, that was what she would do. But she could =
not
wait here; she felt as though she must go somewhere, get some change of sce=
ne,
or she should break down. She had heard Mrs. Jacobs speak of a village not =
more
than two hours from London that a convalescent lodger of hers had visited a=
nd
found charming. She would go there for a week, and watch the spring cast her
mantle over the earth, and listen to the laughter of the brooks, and try to
forget her burning love and jealousy, and just for that one week be happy as
she was when, as a little girl, she roamed all day through the woods of her
native Germany. Alas! she forgot that it is the heart and not the scene that
makes happiness.
That evening she wrote a note to her husband,
saying that she felt that change of air was necessary for her, and that she=
was
going out of London for a few days, to some quiet place, from whence she wo=
uld write
to him. He must not, however, expect many letters, as she wanted complete r=
est.
On the following morning she went; and, if the
sweet spring air did not bring peace to her mind, at any rate, it to a very
great extent set up her in strength. She wrote but one letter during her
absence, and that was to say that she should be back in London by midday on=
the
first of May. This letter reached Philip on the morning of the great dinner=
-party,
and was either accidentally or on purpose sent without the writer's address=
. On
the morning of the first of May--that is, two days after the dinner-party,
which was given on the twenty-ninth of April--Hilda rose early, and commenc=
ed
to pack her things with the assistance of a stout servant girl, who did all=
the
odd jobs and a great deal of the work in the old-fashioned farmhouse in whi=
ch
she was staying. Presently the cowboy came whistling up the little garden, =
bright
with crocuses and tulips, that lay in front of the house, and knocked at the
front door.
"Lawks!" said the stout girl, in acc=
ents
of deep surprise, as she drew her head in from the open lattice; "Jim's
got a letter."
"Perhaps it is for me," suggested Hi=
lda,
a little nervously; she had grown nervous about the post of late. "Will
you go and see?"
The letter was for her, in the handwriting of =
Mrs.
Jacobs. She opened it; it contained another addressed in the character the
sight of which made her feel sick and faint. She could not trust herself to
read it in the presence of the girl.
"Sally," she said, "I feel rath=
er
faint; I shall lie down a little. I will ring for you presently."
Sally retired, and she opened her letter.
Fifteen minutes after the girl received her summons. She found Hilda very pale, and with a curious look upon her face.<= o:p>
"I hope you're better, mum," she sai=
d,
for she was a kind-hearted girl.
"Better--ah, yes! thank you, Sally; I am
cured, quite cured; but please be quick with the things, for I shall leave =
by
the nine o'clock train."
The night of the dinner-party was a nearly
sleepless one for Philip, although his father had so considerately regretted
his wearied appearance, he could do nothing but walk, walk, walk, like some=
unquiet
ghost, up and down his great, oak-panelled bedroom, till, about dawn, his l=
egs
gave way beneath him; and think, think, think, till his mind recoiled, conf=
used
and helpless, from the dead wall of its objects. And, out of all this walki=
ng
and thinking, there emerged, after an hour of stupor, that it would be a
misnomer to call sleep, two fixed results. The first of these was that he h=
ated
his father as a lost soul must hate its torturing demon, blindly, madly,
impotently hated him; and the second, that he could no longer delay taking =
his wife
into his confidence. Then he remembered the letter he had received from her=
on
the previous morning. He got it, and saw that it bore no address, merely
stating that she would be in London by midday on the first of May, that was=
on
the morrow. Till then it was clear he must wait, and he was not sorry for t=
he
reprieve. His was not a pleasant story for a husband to have to tell.
Fortunately for Philip, there was an engagemen=
t of
long standing for this day, the thirtieth of April, to go, in conjunction w=
ith
other persons, to effect a valuation of the fallows, &c., of a large te=
nant
who was going out at Michaelmas. This prevented any call being made upon hi=
m to
go and see Maria Lee, as, after the events of the previous evening, it might
have been expected he would. He started early on this business, and did not
return till late, so he saw nothing of his father that day.
On the morning of the first of May he breakfas=
ted
about half-past eight, and then, without seeing his father, drove to Roxham=
to
catch a train that got him up to London about twenty minutes to twelve. As =
he steamed
slowly into Paddington Station, another train steamed out, and had he been
careful to examine the occupants of the first-class carriages as they passed
him in a slow procession, he might have seen something that would have
interested him; but he was, not unnaturally, too much occupied with his own
thoughts to allow of the indulgence of an idle curiosity. On the arrival of=
his
train, he took a cab and drove without delay to the house in Lincoln's Inn
Fields, and asked for Mrs. Roberts.
"She isn't back yet, sir," was Mrs.
Jacobs' reply. "I got this note from her this morning to say that she
would be here by twelve, but it's twenty past now, so I suppose that she has
missed the train or changed her mind; but there will be another in at three=
, so
perhaps you had best wait for that, sir."
Philip was put out by this contretemps, but at=
the
same time he was relieved to find that he had a space to breathe in before =
the inevitable
and dreadful moment of exposure and infamy, for he had grown afraid of his
wife.
Three o'clock came in due course, but no Hilda.
Philip was seriously disturbed; but there was now no train by which she cou=
ld
arrive that day, so he was forced to the conclusion that she had postponed =
her departure.
There were now two things to be done, one to follow her down to where she w=
as
staying--for he had ascertained her address from Mrs. Jacobs; the other, to=
return
home and come back on the morrow. For reasons which appeared to him imperat=
ive,
but which need not be entered into here, he decided on the latter course; so
leaving a note for his wife, he drove, in a very bad temper, back to Paddin=
gton
in time to catch the five o'clock train to Roxham.
Let us now return to the Abbey House, where,
whilst Philip was cooling his heels in Lincoln's Inn Fields, a rather curio=
us
scene was in progress.
At one o'clock, old Mr. Caresfoot, as was his
rule, sat down to lunch, which, frugal as it was, so far as he was concerne=
d,
was yet served with some old-fashioned ceremony by a butler and a footman. =
Just
as the meal was coming to an end, a fly, with some luggage on it, drove up =
to
the hall-door. The footman went to open it.
"Simmons," said the squire, to the o=
ld
butler, "look out and tell me who that is."
Simmons did as he was bid, and replied:
"I don't rightly know, squire; but it's a
lady, and she be wonderful tall."
Just then the footman returned, and said that a
lady, who would not give her name, wished to speak to him in private.
"Are you sure the lady did not mean Mr.
Philip?"
"No, sir; she asked for Mr. Philip first,=
and
when I told her that he was out, she asked for you, sir. I have shown her i=
nto
the study."
"Humph! at any rate, she has come off a
journey, and must be hungry. Set another place and ask her in here."
In another moment there was a rustle of a silk
dress, and a lady, arrayed in a long cloak and with a thick veil on, was sh=
own
into the room. Mr. Caresfoot, rising with that courteous air for which he w=
as remarkable,
bowed and begged her to be seated, and then motioned to the servants to lea=
ve
the room.
"Madam, I am told that you wish to speak =
to
me; might I ask whom I have the honour of addressing?"
She, with a rapid motion, removed her hat and
veil, and exposed her sternly beautiful face to his inquiring gaze.
"Do you not know me, Mr. Caresfoot?"=
she
said, in her foreign accent.
"Surely, yes, you are the young lady who
lived with Maria, Miss von Holtzhausen."
"That <=
/span>was
my name; it is now Hilda Caresfoot=
. I am
your son Philip's wife."
As this astounding news broke upon his ears, h=
er
hearer's face became a shifting study. Incredulity, wonder, fury, all swept
across it, and then in a single second it seemed to freeze. Next moment he
spoke with overpowering politeness.
"So, madam; then I have to congratulate
myself on the possession of a very lovely daughter-in-law."
A silence ensued that they were both too moved=
to
break; at last, the old man said, in an altered tone:
"We have much to talk of, and you must be
tired. Take off your cloak, and eat whilst I think."
She obeyed him, and he saw that not only was s=
he
his son's wife, but that she must before long present the world with an hei=
r to
the name of Caresfoot. This made him think the more; but meanwhile he conti=
nued
to attend to her wants. She ate little, but calmly.
"That woman has nerve," said he to
himself.
Then he rang the bell, and bade Simmons wait t=
ill
he had written a note.
"Send James to Roxham at once with this. =
Take
this lady's things off the fly, and put them in the red bedroom. By the way=
, I
am at home to nobody except Mr. Bellamy;" and then, turning to Hilda,
"Now, if you will come into my study, we will continue our chat,"=
and
he offered her his arm. "Here we are secure from interruption," he
said, with a ghost of a smile. "Take this chair. Now, forgive my
impertinence, but I must ask you if I am to understand that you are my son'=
s legal =
wife?"
She flushed a little as she answered:
"Sir, I am. I have been careful to bring =
the
proof; here it is;" and she took from a little hand-bag a certified co=
py
of the register of her marriage, and gave it to him. He examined it careful=
ly
through his gold eye-glass, and handed it back.
"Perfectly in order. Hum! some eight mont=
hs
since, I see. May I ask why I am now for the first time favoured with a sig=
ht
of this interesting document--in short, why you come down, like an angel fr=
om the
clouds, and reveal yourself at the present moment?"
"I have come," she answered,
"because of these." And she handed him two letters. "I have =
come
to ascertain if they are true; if my husband is a doubly perjured or a base=
ly
slandered man."
He read the two anonymous letters. With the
contents of the first we are acquainted; the second merely told of the publ=
ic
announcement of Philip's engagement.
"Speak," she said, with desperate
energy, the calm of her face breaking up like ice before a rush of waters.
"You must know everything; tell me my fate!"
"Girl, these villanous letters are in eve=
ry
particular true. You have married in my son the biggest scoundrel in the
county. I can only say that I grieve for you."
She listened in silence; then rising from her
chair, said, with a gesture infinitely tragic in its simplicity:
"Then it is finished; before God and man I
renounce him. Listen," she went on, turning to her father-in-law, &quo=
t;I
loved your son, he won my heart; but, though he said he loved me, I suspect=
ed
him of playing fast and loose with me, on the one hand, and with my friend,
Maria Lee, on the other. So I determined to go away, and told him so. Then =
it
was that he offered to marry me at once, if I would change my purpose. I lo=
ved
him, and I consented--yes, because I loved him so, I consented to even more=
. I
agreed to keep the marriage secret from you. You see what it has led to. I,=
a
Von Holtzhausen, and the last of my name, stand here a byword and a scorn; =
my
story will be found amusing at every dinner-table in the country-side, and =
my
shame will even cling to my unborn child. This is the return he has made me=
for
my sacrifice of self-respect, and for consenting to marry him at all; to ou=
trage
my love and make me a public mockery."
"We have been accustomed," broke in =
the
old squire, his pride somewhat nettled, "to consider our own a good fa=
mily
to marry into. You do not seem to share that view."
"Good; yes, there is plenty of your money=
for
those who care for it; but, sir, as I told your son, it is not a family . He did me no honour in marrying=
me,
though I was nothing but a German companion, with no dower but her beauty.
I,"--and here she flung her head back with an air of ineffable
pride--"did him the honour. My ancestors, sir, were princes, when his =
were
plough-boys."
"Well, well," answered the old man, =
testily,
"ten generations of country gentry, and the Lord only knows how many m=
ore
of stout yeomen before them, is a good enough descent for us; but I like yo=
ur
pride, and I am glad that you spring from an ancient race. You have been sh=
amefully
treated, Hilda--is not your name Hilda?--but there are others, more free fr=
om
blame than you are, who have been treated worse."
"Ah, Maria! then she knows nothing?"=
"Yes, there is Maria and myself. But never
mind that. Philip will, I suppose, be back in a few hours--oh, yes! he will=
be
back," and his eyes glinted unpleasantly, "and what shall you do
then? what course do you intend to take?"
"I intend to claim my rights, to force hi=
m to
acknowledge me here where he suffered his engagement to another woman to be
proclaimed, and then I intend to leave him. He has killed my respect; I will
not live with him again. I can earn my living in Germany. I have done with =
him;
but, sir, do not you be hard upon him. It is a matter between me and him. L=
et
him not suffer on my account."
"My dear, pray confine yourself to your o=
wn
affairs, and leave me to settle mine. There shall be no harshness; nobody s=
hall
suffer more than they deserve. There, don't break down, go and rest, for th=
ere
are painful scenes before you."
He rang the bell, and sent for the housekeeper.
She came presently, a pleasant-looking woman of about thirty years of age, =
with
a comely face and honest eyes.
"This lady, Pigott," said the old
squire, addressing her, "is Mrs. Philip Caresfoot, and you will be so =
kind
as to treat her with all respect. Don't open your eyes, but attend to me. F=
or
the present, you had best put her in the red room, and attend to her yourse=
lf.
Do you understand?"
"Oh, yes, sir! I understand," Pigott
replied, curtseying. "Will you be pleased to come along with me,
ma'am?"
Hilda rose and took Pigott's arm. Excitement a=
nd
fatigue had worn her out. Before she went, however, she turned, and with te=
ars
in her eyes thanked the old man for his kindness to a friendless woman.
The hard eyes grew kindly as he stooped and ki=
ssed
the broad, white brow, and said in his stately way--
"My dear, as yet I have shown you nothing=
but
the courtesy due to a lady. Should I live, I hope to bestow on you the
affection I owe to a much-wronged daughter. Good-by."
And thus they parted, little knowing where they
should meet again.
"A woman I respect--well, English or Germ=
an,
the blood will tell"--he said as soon as the door had closed. "Po=
or
thing--poor Maria too. The scoundrel!--ah! there it is again;" and he
pressed his hand to his heart. "This business has upset me, and no
wonder."
The pang passed, and sitting down he wrote a
letter that evidently embarrassed him considerably, and addressed it to Miss
Lee. This he put in the post-box, and then, going to a secretaire, he unloc=
ked
it, and taking out a document he began to puzzle over it attentively.
Presently Simmons announced that Mr. Bellamy w=
as
waiting.
"Show him in at once," said the old =
man
briskly.
It was some minutes past seven that evening wh=
en
the lawyer left, and he had not been gone a quarter of an hour before a hir=
ed
gig drove up to the door containing Philip, who had got back from town in t=
he
worst of bad tempers, and, as no conveyance was waiting for him, had been f=
orced
to post over from Roxham. Apparently his father had been expecting his arri=
val,
for the moment the servant opened the door he appeared from his study, and
addressed him in a tone that was as near to being jovial as he ever went.
"Hallo, Philip, back again, are you? Been=
up
to town, I suppose, and driven over in the 'George' gig? That's lucky; I wa=
nted
to speak to you. Come in here, there's a good fellow, I want to speak to
you."
"Why is he so infernally genial?"
reflected Philip. "Timeo Danaos et dona ferentes;" then aloud,
"All right, father; but if it is all the same to you, I should like to=
get
some dinner first."
"Dinner! why, I have had none yet; I have
been too busy. I shall not keep you long; we will dine together
presently."
Philip was surprised, and glanced at him suspiciously. His habits were extremely regular; why had he had no dinner?<= o:p>
Meanwhile his father led the way into the stud=
y,
muttering below his breath--
"One more chance--his last chance."<= o:p>
A wood fire was burning brightly on the hearth,
for the evening was chilly, and some sherry and glasses stood upon the tabl=
e.
"Take a glass of wine, Philip; I am going=
to
have one; it is a good thing to begin a conversation on. What says the
Psalmist: 'Wine that maketh glad the heart of man, and oil to make him a ch=
eerful
countenance'--a cheerful countenance! Ho, ho! my old limbs are tired; I am
going to sit down--going to sit down."
He seated himself in a well-worn leather arm-c=
hair
by the side of the fire so that his back was towards the dying daylight. But
the brightness of the flames threw the clear-cut features into strong relief
against the gloom, and by it Philip could see that the withered cheeks were
flushed. Somehow the whole strongly defined scene made him feel uncanny and
restless.
"Cold for the first of May, isn't it, lad?
The world is very cold at eighty-two. Eighty-two, a great age, yet it seems=
but
the other day that I used to sit in this very chair and dandle you upon my
knee, and make this repeater strike for you. And yet that is twenty years
since, and I have lived through four twenties and two years. A great age, a=
cold
world!"
"Ain't you well?" asked his son,
brusquely, but not unkindly.
"Well; ah, yes! thank you, Philip, I never
felt better, my memory is so good, I can see things I have forgotten seventy
years or more. Dear, dear, it was behind that bookcase in a hole in the boa=
rd
that I used to hide my flint and steel which I used for making little fires=
at
the foot of Caresfoot's Staff. There is a mark on the bark now. I was
mischievous as a little lad, and thought that the old tree would make a fine
blaze. I was audacious, too, and delighted to hide the things in my father's
study under the very nose of authority. Ay, and other memories come upon me=
as
I think. It was here upon this very table that they stood my mother's coffi=
n. I
was standing where you are now when I wrenched open the half-fastened shell=
to
kiss her once more before they screwed her down for ever. I wonder would yo=
u do
as much for me? I loved my mother, and that was fifty years ago. I wonder s=
hall
we meet again? That was on the first of May, a long-gone first of May. They
threw branches of blackthorn bloom upon her coffin. Odd, very odd! But
business, lad, business--what was it? Ah! I know," and his manner chan=
ged
in a second and became hard and stern. "About Maria, have you come to a
decision?"
Philip moved restlessly on his chair, poked the
logs to a brighter blaze, and threw on a handful of pine chips from a baske=
t by
his side before he answered. Then he said--
"No, I have not."
"Your reluctance is very strange, Philip,=
I
cannot understand it. I suppose that you are not already married, are you,
Philip?"
There was a lurid calm about the old man's fac=
e as
he asked this question that was very dreadful in its intensity. Under the
shadow of his thick black eyebrows, gleams of light glinted and flickered in
the expanded pupils, as before the outburst of a tempest the forked lightni=
ng
flickers in the belly of the cloud. His voice too was constrained and harsh=
.
Owing to the position of his father's head, Ph=
ilip
could not see this play of feature, but he heard the voice and thought that=
it
meant mischief. He had but a second to decide between confession and the li=
e that
leaped to his lips. An inward conviction told him that his father was not l=
ong
for this world, was it worth while to face his anger when matters might yet=
be
kept dark till the end? The tone of the voice-- ah! how he mistook its
meaning--deceived him. It was not, he thought, possible that his father cou=
ld
know anything. Had he possessed a little more knowledge of the world, he mi=
ght
have judged differently.
"Married, no, indeed; what put that idea =
into
your head?" And he laughed outright.
Presently he became aware that his father had
risen and was approaching towards him. Another moment and a hand of iron was
laid upon his shoulder, the awful eyes blazed into his face and seemed to p=
ierce
him through and through, and a voice that he could not have recognized hiss=
ed
into his ear--
"You unutterable liar, you everlasting ho=
und,
your wife is at this moment in this house."
Philip sprang up with an exclamation of rage a=
nd
cursed Hilda aloud.
"No," went on his father, standing
before him, his tall frame swaying backwards and forwards with excitement;
"no, do not curse her, she, like your other poor dupe, is an honest wo=
man;
on yourself be the damnation, you living fraud, you outcast from all honour,
who have brought shame and reproach upon our honest name, on you be it; may=
every
curse attend you , and may remorse
torture you . Listen: you lied to =
me,
you lied to your wife, trebly did you lie to the unfortunate girl you have
deceived; but, if you will not speak it, for once hear the truth, and remem=
ber
that you have to deal with one so relentless, that fools, mistaking justice=
for
oppression, call him 'devil.' I, 'Devil Caresfoot,' tell you that I will
disinherit you of every stick, stone, and stiver that the law allows me, and
start you in the enjoyment of the rest with my bitterest curse. This I will=
do now
whilst I am alive; when I am dead, by Heaven, I will haunt you if I can.&qu=
ot;
Here he stopped for want of breath, and stood =
for
a moment in the full light of the cheery blaze, one hand raised above his h=
ead
as though to strike, and, presenting with his glittering eyes and working
features, so terrible a spectacle of rage that his son recoiled involuntari=
ly before
him.
But fury begets fury as love begets love, and =
in
another second Philip felt his own wicked temper boil up within him. He
clenched his teeth and stood firm.
"Do your worst," he said; "I ha=
te
you; I wish to God that you were dead."
Hardly had these dreadful words left his lips =
when
a change came over the old man's face; it seemed to stiffen, and putting one
hand to his heart he staggered back into his chair, pointing and making sig=
ns
as he fell towards a little cupboard in the angle of the wall. His son at o=
nce
guessed what had happened; his father had got one of the attacks of the hea=
rt
to which he was subject, and was motioning to him to bring the medicine whi=
ch
he had before shown him, and which alone could save him in these seizures.
Actuated by a common impulse of humanity, Philip for the moment forgot their
quarrel, and stepped with all speed to fetch it. As it happened, there stood
beneath this cupboard a table, and on this table lay the document which his
father had been reading that afternoon before the arrival of Mr. Bellamy. I=
t was
his will, and, as is usual in the case of such deeds, the date was endorsed
upon the back. All this Philip saw at a single glance, and he also saw that=
the
will was dated some years back, and therefore one under which he would inhe=
rit,
doubtless the same that his father had some months before offered to show h=
im.
It flashed through his mind that his father had
got it out in order to burn it; and this idea was followed by another that =
for
a moment stilled his heart.
" If he should die now he cannot destroy =
it! If he does not take the medicine he will die."
Thought flies fast in moments of emergency.
Philip, too, was a man of determined mind where his own interests were
concerned, and his blood
was heated and his reason blinded by fury and
terror. He was not long in settling on his course of action. Taking the bot=
tle
from the cupboard, he poured out its contents into one of the wine-glasses =
that
stood upon the table, and coming up to his father with it addressed him. He
knew that these attacks, although they were of a nature to cause intense pa=
in,
did not rob the sufferer of his senses. The old man, though he lay before h=
im
gasping with agony, was quite in a condition to understand him.
"Listen to me," he said, in a slow,
distinct voice. "Just now you said that you would disinherit me. This
medicine will save your life, and if I let it fall you will die, and there =
is
no more in the house. Swear before God that you will not carry out your thr=
eat,
and I will give it to you. Lift up your hand to show me that you swear.&quo=
t;
Silence followed, only broken by the gasps of =
the
dying man.
"If you will not swear, I will pour it ou=
t before
your eyes."
Again there was silence; but this time the old=
man
made an effort to rise and ring the bell.
His son threw him roughly back.
"For the last time," he said, in a
hoarse whisper, "will you swear?"
A struggle passed over his father's face, now
nearly black with pain; and presently from the distended lips, that did not
seem to move, there burst a single word--destined to echo for ever in his s=
on's
ears--
" Murderer! "
It was his last. He sank back, groaned, and di=
ed;
and at the same moment the flame from the pine-chips flickered itself away,=
and
of a sudden the room grew nearly dark. Philip stood for awhile aghast at his
own handiwork, and watched the dull light glance on the dead white of his
father's brow. He was benumbed by terror at what he had done, and in that a=
wful
second of realization would have given his own life to have it undone.
Presently, however, the instinct of
self-preservation came to his aid. He lit a candle, and taking some of the
medicine in the glass, smeared it over the dead man's chin and coat, and th=
en
broke the glass on the floor by his side--thus making it appear that he had
died whilst attempting to swallow the medicine.
Next he raised a loud outcry, and violently ra=
ng
the bell. In a minute the room was full of startled servants, one of whom w=
as
instantly despatched for Mr. Caley, the doctor. Meanwhile, after a vain att=
empt
to restore animation, the study-table was cleared and the corpse laid on it=
, as
its mother's had been on that day fifty years before.
Then came a dreadful hush, and the shadow of d=
eath
came down upon the house and brooded over it. The men-servants moved to and=
fro
with muffled feet, and the women wept, for in a way they had all loved the =
imperious
old man, and the last change had come very suddenly. Philip's brain burned;=
he
was consumed by the desire of action. Suddenly he bethought him of his wife
upstairs: after what he had just passed through, no scene with her could
disturb him--it would, he even felt, be welcome. He went up to the room whe=
re
she was, and entered. It was evident that she had been told of what had
happened, as both she and Pigott, who was undressing her--for she was weari=
ed
out--were weeping. She did not appear surprised at his appearance; the shoc=
k of
the old man's death extinguished all surprise. It was he who broke the sile=
nce.
"He is dead," he said.
"Yes, I have heard."
"If you are at liberty for a few minutes,=
I
wish to talk to you," he said savagely.
"I, too," she answered, "have
something to say, but I am too weary and upset to say it now. I will see you
to-morrow."
He turned and went without answering, and Pigo=
tt
noticed that no kiss or word of endearment passed between them, and that the
tone of their words was cold.
Soon after Philip got downstairs the doctor ca=
me.
Philip met him in the hall and accompanied him into the study, where the bo=
dy
was. He made a rapid examination, more as a matter of form than anything el=
se, for
his first glance had told him that life was extinct.
"Quite dead," he said sorrowfully;
"my old friend gone at last. One of a fine sort too; a just man for all
his temper. They called him 'devil,' and he was fierce when he was younger,=
but
if I never meet a worse devil than he was I shall do well. He was very kind=
to
me once-- very. How did he go?--in pain, I fear."
"We were talking together, when suddenly =
he
was seized with the attack. I got the medicine as quick as I could and trie=
d to
get it down his throat, but he could not swallow, and in the hurry the glas=
s was
knocked by a jerk of his head right out of my hands. Next second he was
dead."
"Very quick--quicker than I should have
expected. Did he say anything?"
"No."
Now, just as Philip delivered himself of this =
last
lie, a curious incident happened, or rather an incident that is apt to seem
curious to a person who has just told a lie. The corpse distinctly moved it=
s right
hand--the same that had been clasped over the old man's head as he denounced
his son.
"Good God!" said Philip, turning pal=
e as
death, "what's that?" and even the doctor started a little, and c=
ast
a keen look at the dead face.
"Nothing," he said. "I have seen
that happen before where there has been considerable tension of the muscles
before death; it is only their final slackening, that is all. Come, will you
ring the bell? They had better come and take it upstairs."
This sad task had just been performed, and Mr.
Caley was about to take his leave, when Pigott came down and whispered
something into his ear that evidently caused him the most lively astonishme=
nt.
Drawing Philip aside, he said--
"The housekeeper asks me to come up and s=
ee
'Mrs. Philip Caresfoot,' whom she thinks is going to be confined. Does she =
mean
your wife?"
"Yes," answered Philip sullenly,
"she does. It is a long story, and I am too upset to tell it you now. =
It
will soon be all over the country I suppose."
The old doctor whistled, but judged it advisab= le not to put any more questions, when suddenly an idea seemed to strike him.<= o:p>
"You said you were talking to your father
when the fit took him; was it about your marriage?"
"Yes."
"When did he first know of it?"
"To-day, I believe."
"Ah, thank you;" and he followed Pig=
ott
upstairs.
That night, exactly at twelve o'clock, another
little lamp floated out on the waters of life: Angela was born.
When the doctor had gone upstairs, Philip went
into the dining-room to eat something, only to find that food was repugnant=
to
him; he could scarcely swallow a mouthful. To some extent, however, he supp=
lied
its place by wine, of which he drank several glasses. Then, drawn by a stra=
nge
fascination, he went back into the little study, and, remembering the will,
bethought himself that it might be as well to secure it. In taking it off t=
he
table, however, a folded and much erased sheet of manuscript was disclosed.
Recognizing Bellamy's writing, he took it up and commenced to read the draf=
t,
for it was nothing else. Its substance was as follows.
The document began by stating that the testato=
r's
former will was declared null and void on account of the "treacherous =
and dishonourable
conduct of his son Philip." It then, in brief but sweeping terms,
bequeathed and devised to trustees, of whom Philip was not one, the unentai=
led
property and personalty to be held by them: firstly, for the benefit of any=
son that might be born to the said disinheri=
ted
Philip by his wife Hilda --the que=
stion
of daughters being, probably by accident, passed over in silence--and faili=
ng
such issue, then to the testator's nephew, George Caresfoot, absolutely, su=
bject,
however, to the following curious condition: Should the said George Caresfo=
ot, either by deed of gift or will , attempt=
to
convey the estate to his cousin Philip, or to descendants of the said Phili=
p, then
the gift over to the said George was to be of none effect, and the whole wa=
s to
pass to some distant cousins of the testator's who lived in Scotland. Then
followed several legacies and one charge on the estate to the extent of 1000
pounds a year payable to the separ=
ate use of the aforesaid Hilda Caresfoot for=
life,
and reverting at death to the holder of the estate.
In plain English, Philip was, under this draft,
totally disinherited, first in favour of his own male issue, by his wife Hi=
lda,
all mention of daughters being omitted, and failing such issue, in favour o=
f his
hated cousin George, who, as though to add insult to injury, was prohibited
from willing the property back either to himself or his descendants, by whom
the testator had probably understood the children of a second marriage.
Philip read the document over twice carefully.=
"Phew!" he said, "that was touch
and go. Thank heavens he had no time to carry out his kind intentions."=
;
But presently a terrible thought struck him. He
rang the bell hastily. It was answered by the footman, who, since he had an
hour before helped to carry his poor master upstairs, had become quite demo=
ralized.
It was some time before Philip could get an answer to his question as to
whether or no any one had been with his father that day whilst he was out. =
At
last he succeeded in extracting a reply from the man that nobody had been
except the young lady--"leastways, he begged pardon, Mrs. Caresfoot, a=
s he
was told she was."
"Never mind her," said Philip, feeli=
ng
as though a load had been taken from his breast, "you are sure nobody =
else
has been?"
"No, sir, nobody, leastways he begged par=
don,
nobody except lawyer Bellamy and his clerk, who had been there all the
afternoon writing, with a black bag, and had sent for Simmons to be
witnessed."
"You can go," said Philip, in a quiet
voice. He saw it all now, he had let the old man die after he had executed the fresh will disinheri=
ting
him. He had let him die; he had effectually and beyond redemption cut his o=
wn
throat. Doubtless, too, Bellamy had taken the new will with him; there was =
no chance
of his being able to destroy it.
By degrees, however, his fit of brooding gave =
way
to one of sullen fury against his wife, himself, but most of all against his
dead father. Drunk with excitement, rage, and baffled avarice, he seized and
candle and staggered up to the room where the corpse had been laid, launchi=
ng
imprecations as he went at his dead father's head. But when he came face to
face with that dread Presence his passion died, and a cold sense of the awf=
ul
quiet and omnipotence of death came upon him and chilled him into fear. In =
some
indistinct way he realized how impotent is the chafing of the waters of
Mortality against the iron- bound coasts of Death. To what purpose did he r=
ail
against that solemn quiet thing, that husk and mask of life which lay in
unmoved mockery of his reviling?
His father was dead, and he, even he, had kill=
ed
his father. He was his father's murderer. And then a terror of the reckoning
that must one day be struck between that dead man's spirit and his own took=
possession
of him, and a foreknowledge of the awful shadow under which he must hencefo=
rth
live crept into his mind and froze the very marrow in his bones. He looked
again at the face, and, to his excited imagination, it appeared to have ass=
umed
a sardonic smile. The curse of Cain fell upon him as he looked, and weighed=
him
down; his hair rose, and the cold sweat poured from his forehead. At length=
he
could bear it no longer, but, turning, fled out of the room and out of the =
house,
far into the night.
When, haggard with mental and bodily exhaustio=
n,
he at length returned, it was after midnight. He found Dr. Caley waiting for
him; he had just come from the sick-room and wore an anxious look upon his =
face.
"Your wife has been delivered of a fine girl," he said; "but I am bound to tell you that her condition is= far from satisfactory. The case is a most complicated and dangerous one."<= o:p>
"A girl!" groaned Philip, mindful of=
the
will. "Are you sure that it is a girl?"
"Of course I am sure," answered the
doctor, testily.
"And Hilda ill--I don't understand."=
"Look here, my good fellow, you are upset;
take a glass of brandy and go to bed. Your wife does not wish to see you no=
w,
but, if necessary, I will send for you. Now, do as I tell you, or you will =
be
down next. Your nerves are seriously shaken."
Philip did as he was bid, and, as soon as he h=
ad
seen him off to his room, the doctor returned upstairs.
In the early morning he sent for two of his
brother-practitioners, and they held a consultation, the upshot of which wa=
s that
they had come to the conclusion nothing short of a miracle could save Hilda=
's
life-- a conclusion that she herself had arrived at some hours before.
"Doctor," she said, "I trust to=
you
to let me know when the end is near. I wish my husband to be present when I
die, but not before."
"Hush, my child--never talk of dying yet.
Please God, you have many years of life before you."
She shook her golden head a little sadly.
"No, doctor, my sand has run out, and per=
haps
it as as well. Give me the child--why do you keep the child away from me? I=
t is
the messenger sent to call me to a happier world. Yes, she is an angel
messenger. When I am gone, see that you call her 'Angela,' so that I may kn=
ow
by what name to greet her when the time comes."
During the course of the morning, she expresse=
d a
strong desire to see Maria Lee, who was accordingly sent for.
It will be remembered that old Mr. Caresfoot h=
ad
on the previous day, immediately after Hilda had left him, sat down and wri=
tten
to Maria Lee. In this note he told her the whole shameful truth, ending it =
with
a few words of bitter humiliation and self-reproach that such a thing should
have befallen her at the hands of one bearing his name. Over the agony of s=
hame
and grief thus let loose upon this unfortunate girl we will draw a veil. It=
is
fortunate for the endurance of human reason that life does not hold many su=
ch
hours as that through which she passed after the receipt of this letter. As=
was
but natural, notwithstanding old Mr. Caresfoot's brief vindication of Hilda=
's conduct
in his letter, Maria was filled with indignation at what to herself she cal=
led
her treachery and deceit.
While she was yet full of these thoughts, a
messenger came galloping over from Bratham Abbey, bringing a note from Dr.
Caley that told her of her old friend's sudden death, and of Hilda's danger=
ous
condition, and her desire to see her. The receipt of this news plunged her =
into
a fresh access of grief, for she had grown fond of the old man; nor had the
warm affection for Hilda that had found a place in her gentle heart been
altogether wrenched away; and, now that she heard that her rival was face to
face with that King of Terrors before whom all earthly love, hate, hope, and
ambition must fall down and cease their troubling, it revived in all its fo=
rce;
nor did any thought of her own wrongs come to chill it.
Within half an hour she was at the door of the
Abbey House, where the doctor met her, and, in answer to her eager question,
told her that, humanly speaking, it was impossible her friend could live
through another twenty-four hours, adding an injunction that she must not s=
tay with
her long.
She entered the sick-room with a heavy heart, =
and
there from Hilda's dying lips she heard the story of her marriage and of
Philip's perfidy. Their reconciliation was as complete as her friend's fail=
ing voice
and strength would allow. At length she tore herself away, and, turning at =
the
door, took her last look at Hilda, who had raised herself upon her elbow, a=
nd
was gazing at her retreating form with an earnestness that was very touchin=
g.
The eyes, Maria felt, were taking their fill of what they looked upon for t=
he
last time in this world. Catching her tearful gaze, the dying woman smiled,
and, lifting her hand, pointed upwards. Thus they parted.
But Maria could control herself no longer: her=
own
blasted prospects, the loss of the man she loved, and the affecting scene
through which she had just passed, all helped to break her down. Running
downstairs into the dining-room, she threw herself on a sofa, and gave full=
passage
to her grief. Presently she became aware that she was not alone. Philip sto=
od
before her, or, rather, the wreck of him whom she knew as Philip. Indeed, it
was hard to recognize in this scared man, with dishevelled hair, white and =
trembling
lips, and eyes ringed round with black, the bold, handsome youth whom she h=
ad
loved. The sight of him stayed her sorrow, and a sense of her bitter injuri=
es
rushed in upon her.
"What do you want with me?" she aske=
d.
"Want! I want forgiveness. I am crushed,
Maria, crushed--quite crushed," and he put his hands to his face and
sobbed.
She answered him with the quiet dignity that g=
ood
women can command in moments of emergency--dignity of a very different stamp
from Hilda's haughty pride, but perhaps as impressive in its way.
"You ask forgiveness of me, and say that =
you
are crushed. Has it occurred to you that, without fault of my own, except t=
he
fault of trusting you as entirely as I loved you, I too am crushed? Do you =
know
that you have wantonly, or to gain selfish ends, broken my heart, blighted =
my
name, and driven me from my home, for I can live here no more? Do you
understand that you have done me one of the greatest injuries one person ca=
n do
to another? I say, do you know all this, Philip Caresfoot, and, knowing it,=
do
you still ask me to forgive you? Do you think it possible that I can forgive?"
He had never heard her speak like this before,=
and
did not remember that intense feeling is the mother of eloquence. He gazed =
at
her for a moment in astonishment; then he dropped his face into his hands a=
gain
and groaned, making no other answer. After waiting awhile, she went on--
"I am an insignificant creature, I know, =
and
perhaps the mite of my happiness or misery makes little difference in the s=
cale
of things; but to me the gift of all my love was everything. I gave it to y=
ou, Philip--gave
it without a doubt or murmur, gave it with both hands. I can never have it =
back
to give again! How you have treated it you best know." Here she broke =
down
a little, and then continued: "It may seem curious, but though my love=
has
been so mistakenly given; though you to whom it was given have dealt so ill
with it; yet I am anxious that on my side there should be no bitter memory,
that, in looking back at all this in after years, you should never be able =
to
dwell upon any harsh or unkind word of mine. It is on that account, and also
because I feel that it is not for me to judge you, and that you have alread=
y much
to bear, that I do as you ask me, and say, 'Philip, from my heart I forgive
you, as I trust that the Almighty may forgive me.'"
He flung himself upon his knees before her, and
tried to take her hand. "You do not know how you have humbled me,"=
; he
groaned.
She gazed at him with pity.
"I am sorry," she said; "I did =
not
wish to humble you. I have one word more to say, and then I must go. I have
just bid my last earthly farewell to--your wife. My farewell to you must be=
as
complete as that, as complete as though the grave had already swallowed one=
of
us. We have done with each other for ever. I do not think that I shall come
back here. In my waking moments your name shall never willingly pass my lips
again. I will say it for the last time now. Philip, Philip, Philip , whom I chose to=
love
out of all the world, I pray God that He will take me, or deaden the edge of
what I suffer, and that He may never let my feet cross your path or my eyes
fall upon your face again."
In another second she had passed out of the ro=
om
and out of his life.
That night, or rather just before dawn on the
following morning, Hilda, knowing that her end was very near, sent for her
husband.
"Go quickly, doctor," she said. &quo=
t;I
shall die at dawn."
The doctor found him seated in the same spot w=
here
Maria Lee had left him.
"What, more misery!" he said, when he
had told his errand. "I cannot bear it. There is a curse upon me--death
and wickedness, misery and death!"
"You must come if you wish to see your wi=
fe
alive."
"I will come;" and he rose and follo=
wed
him.
A sad sight awaited him. The moment of the grey
dawn was drawing near, and, by his wife's request, a window had been
unshuttered, that her dimmed eyes might once more look upon the light. On t=
he
great bed in the centre of the room lay Hilda, whose life was now quickly
draining from her, and by her side was placed the sleeping infant. She was =
raised
and supported on either side by pillows, and her unbound golden hair fell
around her shoulders, enclosing her face as in a frame. Her pallid countena=
nce
seemed touched with an awful beauty that had not belonged to it in life, wh=
ilst
in her eyes was that dread and prescient gaze which sometimes come to those=
who
are about to solve death's mystery.
By the side of the bed knelt Mr. Fraser, the
clergyman of the parish, repeating in an earnest tone the prayers for the
dying, whilst the sad-faced attendants moved with muffled tread backwards a=
nd
forwards from the ring of light around the bed into the dark shadows that l=
ay beyond.
When Philip came, the clergyman ceased praying,
and drew back into the further part of the room, as did Pigott and the nurs=
e,
the former taking the baby with her.
Hilda motioned to him to come close to her. He
came, and bent over and kissed her, and she, with an effort, threw one ivory
arm around his neck, and smiled sweetly. After about a minute, during which=
she
was apparently collecting her thoughts, she spoke in a low voice, and in her
native tongue.
"I have not sent for you before, Philip, =
for
two reasons--first, because I wished to spare you pain; and next, in order =
that
I might have time to rid my mind of angry thoughts against you. They are al=
l gone
now--gone with every other earthly interest; but I was angry with you, Philip. And now listen to
me--for I have not much time--and do not forget my words in future years, w=
hen
the story of my life will seem but as a shadow that once fell upon your pat=
h.
Change your ways, Philip dear, abandon deceit, atone for the past; if you c=
an,
make your peace with Maria Lee, and marry her--ah! it is a pity that you did
not do that at first, and leave me to go my ways--and, above all, humble yo=
ur
heart before the Power that I am about to face. I love you, dear, and,
notwithstanding all, I am thankful to have been your wife. Please God, we s=
hall
meet again."
She paused awhile, and then spoke in English. =
To
the astonishment of all, her voice was strong and clear, and she uttered her
words with an energy that, under the circumstances, seemed almost awful.
"Tell her to bring the child."
There was no need for Philip to repeat what sh=
e said,
for Pigott heard her, and at once came forward with the baby, which she laid
beside her.
The dying woman placed her hand upon its tiny
head, and, turning her eyes upwards with the rapt expression of one who see=
s a
vision, said--
"May the power of God be about you to pro=
tect
you, my motherless babe, may angels guard you, and make you as they are; and
may the heavy curse and everlasting doom of the Almighty fall upon those who
would bring evil upon you."
She paused, and then addressed her husband.
"Philip, you have heard my words; in your
charge I leave the child, see that you never betray my trust."
Then, turning to Pigott, she said, in a fainter
voice--
"Thank you for your kindness to me. You h=
ave
a good face; if you can, stop with my child, and give her your love and car=
e.
And now, may God have mercy on my soul!"
Then came a minute's silence, broken only by t=
he
stifled sobs of those who stood around, till a ray of light from the rising=
sun
struggled through the grey mist of the morning, and, touching the heads of =
mother
and child, illumined them as with a glory. It passed as quickly as it came,
drawing away with it the mother's life. Suddenly, as it faded, she spread o=
ut
her arms, sighed, and smiled. When the doctor reached the bed, her story wa=
s told:
she had fallen asleep.
Death had been very gentle with her.
Go, my reader, if the day is dull, and you feel
inclined to moralize-- for whatever may be said to the contrary, there are =
less
useful occupations--and look at your village churchyard. What do you see be=
fore
you? A plot of enclosed ground backed by a grey old church, a number of
tombstones more or less decrepit, and a great quantity of little oblong mou=
nds
covered with rank grass. If you have any imagination, any power of thought,=
you
will see more than that. First, with the instinctive selfishness of human
nature, you will recognize your own future habitation; perhaps your eye will
mark the identical spot where the body you love must lie through all seasons
and weathers, through the slow centuries that will flit so fast for you, ti=
ll
the crash of doom. It is good that you should think of that, although it ma=
kes
you shudder. The English churchyard takes the place of the Egyptian mummy at
the feast, or the slave in the Roman conqueror's car--it mocks your vigour,=
and
whispers of the end of beauty and strength.
Probably you need some such reminder. But if,
giving to the inevitable the sigh that is its due, you pursue the vein of
thought, it may further occur to you that the plot before you is in a sense=
a
summary of the aspirations of humanity. It marks the realization of human h=
opes,
it is the crown of human ambitions, the grave of human failures. Here, too,=
is
the end of the man, and here the birthplace of the angel or the demon. It is
his sure inheritance, one that he never solicits and never squanders; and,
last, it is the only certain resting-place of sleepless, tired mortality.
Here it was that they brought Hilda, and the o=
ld
squire, and laid them side by side against the coffin of yeoman Caresfoot,
whose fancy it had been to be buried in stone, and then, piling primroses a=
nd blackthorn
blooms upon their graves, left them to their chilly sleep. Farewell to them,
they have passed to where as yet we may not follow. Violent old man and pro=
ud
and lovely woman, rest in peace, if peace be the portion of you both!
To return to the living. The news of the sudden
decease of old Mr. Caresfoot; of the discovery of Philip's secret marriage =
and
the death of his wife; of the terms of the old man's will, under which, Hil=
da being
dead, and having only left a daughter behind her, George inherited all the
unentailed portion of the property, with the curious provision that he was
never to leave it back to Philip or his children; of the sudden departure of
Miss Lee, and of many other things, that were some of them true and some of
them false, following as they did upon the heels of the great dinner-party,=
and
the announcement made thereat, threw the country-side into a state of indes=
cribable
ferment. When this settled down, it left a strong and permanent residuum of
public indignation and contempt directed against Philip, the more cordially,
perhaps, because he was no longer a rich man. People very rarely express
contempt or indignation against a rich man who happens to be their neighbou=
r in
the country, whatever he may have done. They keep their virtue for those who
are impoverished, or for their unfortunate relations. But for Philip it was
felt that there was no excuse and no forgiveness; he had lost both his
character and his money, and must therefore be cut, and from that day forwa=
rd
he was cut accordingly.
As for Philip himself, he was fortunately, as =
yet,
ignorant of the kind intentions of his friends and neighbours, who had been=
so
fond of him a week ago. He had enough upon his shoulders without that--for =
he had
spoken no lie when he told Maria Lee that he was crushed by the dreadful and
repeated blows that had fallen upon him, blows that had robbed him of
everything that made life worth living, and given him in return nothing but=
an
infant who could not inherit, and who was therefore only an incumbrance.
Who is it that says, "After all, let a bad
man take what pains he may to push it down, a human soul is an awful, ghost=
ly,
unique possession for a bad man to have?" During the time that had ela=
psed
between the death and burial of his father and wife, Philip had become
thoroughly acquainted with the truth of this remark.
Do what he would, he could never for a single =
hour
shake himself free from the recollection of his father's death; whenever he
shut his eyes, his uneasy mind continually conjured up the whole scene with=
uncanny
distinctness; the gloomy room, the contorted face of the dying man, the red
flicker of the firelight on the wall--all these things were burnt deep into=
the
tablets of his memory. More and more did he recognize the fact that, even
should he live long enough to bury the events of that hour beneath the debr=
is
of many years, the lapse of time would be insufficient to bring forgetfulne=
ss,
and the recognition brought with it moral helplessness. He had, too, suffic=
ient
religious feeling to make him uneasy as to his future fate, and possessed a=
certain
amount of imagination, which was at this time all directed towards that awf=
ul
day when he and his dead father must settle their final accounts. Already, =
in
the quiet nights, he would wake with a start, thinking that the inevitable =
time
had come. Superstitious fears also would seize him with their clammy finger=
s,
and he would shake and tremble at the fancied step of ghostly feet, and his
blood would curdle in his veins as his mind hearkened to voices that were f=
or
ever still.
And, worst of all, what had been done, and cou=
ld
never be undone, had been done in vain. These deadly torments must be endur=
ed,
whilst the object for which they had been incurred had utterly escaped him.=
He had
sold himself to the powers of evil for a price, and that price had not been
paid. But the bond was good for all that.
And so he would brood, hour after hour, till he
felt himself drawing near to madness. Sometimes by a strong effort he would
succeed in tearing his mind away from the subject, but then its place was i=
nstantly
filled by a proud form with reproachful eyes, and he would feel that there,
too, death had put it out of his power to make atonement. Of those whom he =
had
wronged Maria Lee alone survived, and she had left him in sorrow, more bitt=
er
than any anger. Truly, Philip Caresfoot was in melancholy case. Somewhere he
had read that the wages of sin is death, but surely what he felt surpassed =
the
bitterness of death. His evil-doing had not prospered with him. The snare he
had set for his father had fallen back upon himself, and he was a crushed a=
nd ruined
man.
It affords a curious insight into his characte=
r to
reflect that all these piled-up calamities, all this wreck and sudden death,
did not bring him penitent on his knees before the Maker he had outraged. T=
he crimes
he had committed, especially if unsuccessful, or the sorrows that had fallen
upon him, would have sufficed to reduce nine-tenths of ordinary men to a
condition of humble supplication. For, generally speaking, irreligion, or
rather forgetfulness of God, is a plant of no deep growth in the human hear=
t,
since its roots are turned by the rock of that innate knowledge of a higher
Power that forms the foundation of every soul, and on which we are glad eno=
ugh
to set our feet when the storms of trouble and emergency threaten to destroy
us. But with Philip this was not so. He never thought of repentance. His was
not the nature to fall down and say, "Lord, I have sinned, take Thou m=
y burden
from me." Indeed, he was not so much sorry for the past as fearful for=
the
future. It was not grief for wrong-doing that wrung his heart and broke his
spirit, but rather his natural sorrow at losing the only creature he had ev=
er
deeply loved, chagrin at the shame of his position and the failure of his
hopes, and the icy fingers of superstitious fears.
The crisis had come and passed: he had sinned
against his Father in heaven and his father on earth, and he did not sorrow=
for
his sin; his wife had left him, murmuring with her dying lips exhortations =
to repentance,
and he did not soften; shame and loss had fallen upon him, and he did not t=
urn
to God. But his pride was broken, all that remained to him of strength was =
his
wickedness; the flood that had swept over him had purged away not the evil =
but
the good, from the evil it only took its courage. Henceforth, if he sins at
all, his will be no bold and hazardous villany which, whilst it excites hor=
ror,
can almost compel respect, but rather the low and sordid crime, the safe and
treacherous iniquity.
Ajax no longer defies the lightning--he mutters
curses on it beneath his breath.
On the evening of the double funeral--which Ph=
ilip
did not feel equal to attending, and at which George, in a most egregious
hatband and with many sobs and tears, officiated as chief mourner--Mr. Fras=
er thought
it would be a kind act on his part to go and offer such consolation to the
bereaved man as lay within his power, if indeed he would accept it. Somewhat
contrary to his expectation, he was, on arrival at the Abbey House, asked in
without delay.
"I am glad to see a human face," said
Philip to the clergyman, as he entered the room; "this loneliness is
intolerable. I am as much alone as though I lay stark in the churchyard lik=
e my
poor wife."
Mr. Fraser did not answer him immediately, so
taken up was he in noticing the wonderful changes a week had wrought in his
appearance. Not only did his countenance bear traces of the illness and
exhaustion that might not unnaturally be expected in such a case of
bereavement, but it faithfully reflected the change that had taken place in=
his
mental attitude. His eyes had lost the frank boldness that had made them ve=
ry
pleasing to some people, they looked scared; the mouth too was rendered
conspicuous by the absence of the firm lines that once gave it character;
indeed the man's whole appearance was pitiful and almost abject.
"I am afraid," he said at length, in=
a
tone of gentle compassion, "that you must have suffered a great deal,
Caresfoot."
"Suffered! I have suffered the tortures of
the damned! I still suffer them, I shall always suffer them."
"I do not wish," said the clergyman,
with a little hesitation, "to appear officious or to make a mockery of
your grief by telling you that it is for your good; but I should fail in my
duty if I did not point out to you that He who strikes the blow has the pow=
er
to heal the wound, and that very often such things are for our ultimate ben=
efit,
either in this world or the next. Carry your troubles to Him, my dear fello=
w,
acknowledge His hand, and, if you know in your heart of any way in which you
have sinned, offer Him your hearty repentance; do this, and you will not be
deserted. Your life, that now seems to you nothing but ashes, may yet be bo=
th a
happy and a useful one."
Philip smiled bitterly as he answered--
"You talk to me of repentance--how can I
repent when Providence has treated me so cruelly, robbing me at a single bl=
ow
of my wife and my fortune? I know that I did wrong in concealing my marriag=
e,
but I was driven to it by fear of my father. Ah! if you had seen him as I s=
aw him,
you would have known that they were right to call him 'Devil Caresfoot.'&qu=
ot;
He checked himself, and then went on--"He forced me into the engagement
with Miss Lee, and announced it without my consent. Now I am ruined--everyt=
hing
is taken from me."
"You have your little daughter, and all t=
he
entailed estate--at least, so I am told."
"My little daughter!--I never want to see=
her
face; she killed her mother. If it had been a boy, it would have been
different, for then, at any rate, that accursed George would not have got my
birthright. My little daughter, indeed! don't enumerate her among my earthl=
y blessings."
"It is rather sad to hear you talk like t=
hat
of your child; but, at any rate, you are not left in want. You have one of =
the
finest old places in the county, and a thousand a year, which to most men w=
ould
be riches."
"And which to me," answered Philip,
"is beggary. I should have had six, and I have got one. But look you h=
ere,
Fraser, I swear before God----"
"Hush! I cannot listen to such talk."=
;
"Well, then, before anything you like, th=
at,
while I live, I will never rest one single moment until I get my own back
again. It may seem impossible, but I will find a way. For instance," he
added, as a thought struck him, "strangely enough, the will does not
forbid me to buy the lands back. If I can get them no other way, I will buy
them-- do you hear?--I will buy them. I <=
/span>must
have them again before I die."=
;
"How will you get the money?"
"The money--I will save it, make it, steal
it, get it somehow. Oh! do not be afraid; I will get the money. It will tak=
e a
few years, but I will get it somehow. It is not the want of a few thousands
that will stop a determined man."
"And suppose your cousin won't sell?"=
;
"I will find a way to make him sell--some
bribe, something. There, there," and his enthusiasm and eagerness vani=
shed
in a moment, and the broken look came back upon his face. "It's all
nonsense; I am talking impossibilities--a little weak in my mind, I suppose.
Forget it, there's a good fellow; say nothing about it. And so you buried t=
hem?
Ah, me! ah, me! And George did chief mourner. I suppose he blubbered freely=
; he
always could blubber freely when he liked. I remember how he used to take f=
olks
in as a lad, and then laugh at them; that's why they called him 'Crocodile'=
at
school. Well, he's my master now, and I'm his very humble servant; perhaps =
one
day it will be the other way up again. What, must you go? If you knew how
fearfully lonely I am, you would not go. My nerves have quite gone, and I f=
ancy
all sorts of things. I can think of nothing but those two graves out there =
in
the dark. Have they sodded them over? Tell them to sod them over. It was ki=
nd
of you to come and see me. You mustn't pay any attention to my talk; I am n=
ot
quite myself. Good night."
Mr. Fraser was an extremely unsuspicious man, =
but
somehow, as he picked his way to the vicarage to eat his solitary chop, he =
felt
a doubt rising in his mind as to whether, his disclaimer notwithstanding, P=
hilip
had not sincerely meant all he said.
"He is shockingly changed," he mused,
"and I am not sure that it is a change for the better. Poor fellow, he=
has
a great deal to bear, and should be kindly judged. It is all so painful tha=
t I
must try to divert my mind. Mrs. Brown, will you bring me a little chocolat=
e- coloured
book, that you will see on the table in my study, when you come back with t=
he
potatoes? It has Plato--P-l-a-t-o--printed on the back."
The jubilation of George at the turn events had
taken may perhaps be more easily imagined than described. There is generally
one weak point about all artful schemes to keep other people out of their
rights; they break down over some unforeseen detail, or through the neglect=
of some
trivial and obvious precaution. But this was one of the glorious instances =
to
the contrary that prove the rule. Nothing had broken down, everything had p=
rospered
as a holy cause always should, and does --in theory. The stars in their cou=
rses
had fought for Sisera, everything had succeeded beyond expectation, nothing=
had
failed. In the gratitude of his heart, George would willingly have given a =
thousand
pounds towards the establishment of a training-school for anonymous
letter-writers, or the erection of a statue to Hilda Caresfoot, whose outra=
ged
pride and womanly jealousy had done him such yeoman service.
Speaking seriously, he had great cause for rej=
oicing.
Instead of a comparatively slender younger son's portion, he had stepped in=
to a
fine and unencumbered property of over five thousand a year, and that in the
heyday of his youth, when in the full possession of all his capacities for
enjoyment, which were large indeed. Henceforth everything that money could =
buy
would be his, including the respect and flattery of his poorer neighbours. =
An
added flavour too was given to the overflowing cup of his good fortune by t=
he
fact that it had been wrenched from the hands of the cousin whom he hated, =
and
on whom he had from a boy sworn to be avenged. Poor Philip! bankrupt in hon=
our and
broken in fortune, he could afford to pity him now, to pity him ostentatiou=
sly
and in public. He was open-handed with his pity was George. Nor did he lack=
a
sympathizer in these delicious moments of unexpected triumph.
"Did I not tell you," said Mrs. Bell=
amy,
in her full, rich tones, on the afternoon of the reading of the will--"=
;did
I not tell you that, if you would consent to be guided by me, I would pull =
you
through, and have I not pulled you through? Never misdoubt my judgment agai=
n,
my dear George; it is infinitely sounder than your own."
"You did, Anne, you certainly did; you ar=
e a
charming woman, and as clever as you are charming."
"Compliments are all very well, and I am =
sure
I appreciate yours"--and she gave a little curtsey--"at their pro=
per
value; but I must remind you, George, that I have done my part of the barga=
in,
and that now you must do yours."
"Oh! that's all right; Bellamy shall have=
the
agency and two hundred a year with it, and, to show you that I have not
forgotten you, perhaps you will accept this in memorial of our joint
achievement;" and he drew from his pocket and opened a case containing=
a
superb set of sapphires.
Mrs. Bellamy had all a beautiful woman's love =
for
jewels, and especially adored sapphires.
"Oh!" she said, clasping her hands,
"thank you, George; they are perfectly lovely!"
"Perhaps," he replied, politely;
"but not half so lovely as their wearer. I wonder," he added, wit=
h a
little laugh, "what the old boy would say, if he could know that a
thousand pounds of his personalty had gone by anticipation to buy a necklace
for Anne Bellamy."
To this remark she made no reply, being appare=
ntly
absorbed in her own thoughts. At last she spoke.
"I don't want to seem ungracious, George,=
but
these"--and she touched the jewels--"were not the reward I expect=
ed:
I want the letters you promised me back."
"My dear Anne, you are under a mistake, I
never promised you the letters; I said that, under the circumstances, I mig=
ht
possibly restore them--a very different thing from promising."
Mrs. Bellamy flushed a little, and the great
pupils of her sleepy eyes contracted till she looked quite dangerous.
"Then I must have strangely misunderstood
you," she said.
"What do you want the letters for? Can't =
you
trust me with them?"
"Don't you think, George, that if you had
passed through something very terrible, you would like to have all the
mementoes of that dark time destroyed? Those letters are the record of my
terrible time; nothing remains of it but those written lines. I want to burn
them, to stamp them into powder, to obliterate them as I have obliterated a=
ll the
past. Whilst they exist I can never feel safe. Supposing you were to turn
traitor to me and let those letters fall into the hands of others, supposing
that you lost them, I should be a ruined woman. I speak frankly, you see; I
fully appreciate my danger, principally because I know that, the more intim=
ate
a man and woman have been, the more chance there is of their becoming bitter
enemies. George, give me those letters; do not overcloud my future with the
shadows of the past."
"You talk as well as you do everything el=
se,
Anne; you are really a very remarkable woman. But, curiously enough, those
letters, the existence of which is so obnoxious to you, are to me a source =
of
great interest. You know that I love to study character--curious occupation=
for
a young man, isn't it?--but I do. Well, in my small experience, I have never
yet, either in fiction or in real life, come across such a fascinating disp=
lay
as is reflected in those letters. There I can, and often do, trace in minut=
est
detail the agony of a strong mind, can see the barriers of what people call
religion, early training, self- respect, and other curiosities which we name
virtues, bursting away one by one under pressure, like the water-tight
bulkheads they put in passenger steamers, till at length the work is done; =
the
moral ship sinks, and the writer stands revealed what you are, my dear Anne,
the loveliest, the cleverest, and the most utterly unscrupulous woman in the
three kingdoms."
She rose very quietly, but quite white with
passion, and answered in her low voice--
"Whatever I am you made me, and you =
span>are
a devil, George Caresfoot, or you could not take pleasure in the tortures y=
ou
inflicted before you destroyed. But, don't go too far, or you may regret it=
. Am
I a woman to be played with? I think that you have trained me too well.&quo=
t;
He laughed a little uneasily.
"There, you see; grattez le Russe , &c., and out come=
s the
true character. Look at your face in the glass; it is magnificent, but not =
pleasant;
rather dangerous, indeed. Why, Anne, do be reasonable; if I gave you those
letters, I should never be able to sleep in peace. For the sake of my own
safety I dare not abandon the whip-hand I have of you. Remember you could, =
if
you chose, say some unpleasant things about me, and I don't want that any m=
ore
than you do just now. But, you see, whilst I hold in my power what would, if
necessary, effectually ruin you, and probably Bellamy too--for this country=
society
is absurdly prejudiced--I have little cause for fear. Perhaps in the future=
you
may be able to render me some service for which you shall have the letters-=
-who
knows? You see I am perfectly frank with you, for the simple reason that I =
know
that it is useless to try to conceal my thoughts from a person of your
perception."
"Well, well, perhaps you are right: it is
difficult to trust oneself, much less any one else. At any rate," she
said, with a bitter smile, "you have given me Bellamy, a start in soci=
ety,
and a sapphire necklace. In twenty years, I hope, if the fates are kind, to
have lost Bellamy on the road--he is really unendurable--to rule society, a=
nd
to have as many sapphire necklaces and other fine things as I care for. In
enumerating my qualities, you omitted one, ambition."
"With your looks, your determination, and
your brains, there is nothing that you will not be able to do if you set yo=
ur
mind to it, and don't make an enemy of your devoted friend."
And thus the conversation ended.
Now little Bellamy had, after much anxious
thought, just about this time come to a bold determination--namely, to asset
his marital authority over Mrs. Bellamy. Indeed, his self-pride was much
injured by the treatment he received at his wife's hands, for it seemed to =
him that
he was utterly ignored in his own house. In fact, it would not be too much =
to
say that he was an entire nonentity. He had married Mrs.=
Bellamy
for love, or rather from fascination, though she had nothing in the
world--married her in a fortnight from the time that George had first
introduced him. When he had walked out of church with his beautiful bride, =
he
had thought himself the luckiest man in London, whereas now he could not but
feel that matrimony had not fulfilled his expectations. In the first place,
Love's young dream--he was barely thirty--came to a rude awakening, for, on=
ce
married, it was impossible --though he had, in common with the majority of
little men, a tolerably good opinion of himself--but that he should perceive
that his wife did not care one brass farthing about him. To his soft advanc=
es
she was as cold as a marble statue, the lovely eyes never grew tender for h=
im.
Indeed, he found that she was worse than a statue, for statues cannot indul=
ge
in bitter mockery and contemptuous comments, and Mrs. Bellamy could, and, w=
hat
is more, frequently did.
"It is very well," reflected her
husband, "to marry the loveliest woman in the county, but I don't see =
the
use of it if she treats one like a dog."
At last this state of affairs had grown
intolerable, and, meditating in the solitude of his office, Mr. Bellamy
resolved to assert himself once and for all, and set matters on a proper
footing, and Mrs. Bellamy in her place. But it is one thing for husbands of=
the
Bellamy stamp to form high-stomached resolutions, and another for them to p=
ut those
resolutions into active and visible operation on wives of the Mrs. Bellamy
stamp. Indeed, had it not been for a little incident about to be detailed, =
it
is doubtful if Mr. Bellamy would have ever come to the scratch at all.
When George had gone, Mrs. Bellamy sat down in=
by
no means the sweetest of tempers to think. But thinking in this instance pr=
oved
an unprofitable occupation, and she gave it up, in order to admire the sapp=
hire
necklace that lay upon her knee. At that moment her husband entered the roo=
m,
but she took no notice, merely going on examining the stones. After moving
about a little, as though to attract attention, the gentleman spoke.
"I have managed to get home to lunch, my
dear."
"Indeed.
"Well, you might take a little notice of
me."
"Why? Is there anything remarkable about =
you
this morning?"
"No, there is not; but, remarkable or not=
, a
man who has been fool enough"--Mr. Bellamy laid great emphasis on the =
word
"fool"--"to get married has a right to expect when he comes =
into
his own house that he will have a little notice taken of him, and not be as
completely overlooked as--as though he were a tub of butter in a grocer's
shop;" and he pugged out his chest, rubbed his hands, and looked defia=
nt.
The lady laid her head back on the chair, and
laughed with exquisite enjoyment.
"Really, my dear John, you will kill
me," she said at length.
"May I ask," he replied, looking as
though there was nothing in the world that he would like better, "what=
you
are laughing at?"
"Your slightly vulgar but happy simile; i=
t is
easy to see where you draw your inspiration from. If you had only said
butterine, inferior butter, you know, the counterfeit article, it would have
been perfect."
Her husband gave a glance at his tubby little
figure in the glass.
"Am I to understand that you refer to me =
as
'butterine,' Mrs. Bellamy?"
"Oh! certainly yes, if you like; but, but=
ter
or not, you will melt if you lose your temper so."
"I have not lost my temper, madam; I am
perfectly cool," he replied, positively gasping with fury. Here his eye
fell upon the necklace. "What necklace is that? who gave you that neck=
lace?
I demand to know."
"You =
span>demand
to know! Be careful what you say,
please. Mr. George Caresfoot gave me the necklace. It cost a thousand pound=
s.
Are you satisfied?"
"No, I am not satisfied; I will not have =
that
cursed George Caresfoot continually here. I will send him back his necklace=
. I
will assert my rights as an Englishman and a spouse, I will----"
"You will sit down and listen to me."=
;
The tone of the voice checked his absurd
linguistic and physical capers, and caused him to look at his wife. She was
standing and pointing to a chair. Her face was calm and immovable, only her
eyes appeared to expand and contract with startling rapidity. One glance was
enough for Bellamy. He felt frightened, and sat down in the indicated chair=
.
"That's right," she said, pleasantly;
"now we can have a cosy chat. John, you are a lawyer, and therefore, I
suppose, more or less a man of the world. Now, as a
lawyer and a man of the world, I ask you to look at me and then at yourself,
and say if you think it likely or even possible that I married you for love=
. To
be frank, I did nothing of the sort; I married you because you were the per=
son
most suited to my purpose. If you will only understand that it will save us
both a great deal of trouble. As for your talk about asserting yourself and=
exercising
your authority, it is simple nonsense. You are very well in your way, my de=
ar
John, and a fair attorney, but do you suppose for one moment that you are
capable of matching yourself against me? If so, you make a shocking mistake=
. Be
advised, and do not try the experiment. But don't think that the bargain is=
all
my side--it is not. If you will behave yourself properly and be guided by my
advice, I will make you one of the richest and most powerful men in the cou=
nty.
If you will not, I shall shake myself free of you as soon as I am strong
enough. Rise I must and will, and if you will not rise with me, I will rise
alone. As regards your complaints of my not caring about you, the world is
wide, my dear John; console yourself elsewhere. I shall not be jealous. And=
now
I think I have explained everything. It is so much more satisfactory to hav=
e a
clear understanding. Come, shall we go to lunch?"
But Bellamy wanted no lunch that day.
"After all," he soliloquized to hims=
elf,
between the pangs of a racking headache brought on by his outburst of tempe=
r,
"time sometimes brings its revenges, and, if it does, you may look out,
Mrs. Bellamy."
It is perhaps time that the reader should know=
a
little of the ancient house and loyalty where many of the personages of who=
se
history these pages treat, lived and moved and had their being.
The Abbey House, so called, was in reality that
part of the monastery which had been devoted to the use of successive
generations of priors. It was, like the ruins that lay to its rear, entirely
built of grey masonry, rendered greyer still by the lichens that fed upon i=
ts
walls, which were of exceeding strength and thickness. It was a long, irreg=
ular
building, and roofed with old and narrow tiles, which from red had, in the
course of ages, faded to sober russet. The banqueting- hall was a separate
building at its northern end, and connected with the main dwelling by a cov=
ered
way. The aspect of the house was westerly, and the front windows looked on =
to
an expanse of park-like land, heavily timbered with oaks of large size, som=
e of
them pollards that might have pushed their first leaves in the time of Will=
iam
the Conqueror. In spring their vivid green was diversified by the reddish b=
rown
of a double line of noble walnut-trees, a full half mile in length, marking=
the
track of the carriage-drive that led to the Roxham high-road.
Behind the house lay the walled garden, celebr=
ated
in the time of the monks as being a fortnight earlier than any other in the=
neighbourhood.
Skirting the southern wall of this garden, which was a little less than a
hundred paces long, the visitor reached the scattered ruins of the old
monastery that had for generations served as a stone quarry to the surround=
ing
villages, but of which enough was left, including a magnificent gateway, to
show how great had been its former extent. Passing on through these, he wou=
ld
come to an enclosure that marked the boundaries of the old graveyard, now
turned to agricultural uses, and then to the church itself, a building with=
a very
fine tower, but possessing no particular interest, if we except some
exceedingly good brasses and a colossal figure of a monk cut out of the sol=
id
heart of an oak, and supposed to be the effigy of a prior of the abbey who =
died
in the time of Edward I. Below the church again, and about one hundred and
fifty paces from it, was the vicarage, a comparatively modern building,
possessing no architectural attraction, and evidently reared out of the rem=
ains
of the monastery.
At the south end of the Abbey House itself lay=
a
small grass plot and pleasure-garden fringed with shrubberies, and adorned =
with
two fine cedar-trees. One of these trees was at its further extremity, and =
under
it there ran a path cut through the dense shrubbery. This path, which was e=
dged
with limes and called the "Tunnel Walk," led to the lake, and
debouched in the little glade where stood Caresfoot's Staff. The lake itself
was a fine piece of water, partly natural and partly constructed by the mon=
ks,
measuring a full mile round, and from fifty to two hundred yards in width. =
It
was in the shape of a man's shoe, the heel facing west like the house, but
projecting beyond it, the narrow part representing the hollow of the instep,
being exactly opposite to it, and the sole swelling out in an easterly
direction.
Bratham Abbey was altogether a fine old place,=
but
the most remarkable thing about it was its air of antiquity and the solemni=
ty
of its peace. It did not, indeed, strike the spirit with that religious awe=
which
is apt to fall upon us as we gaze along the vaulted aisles of great cathedr=
als,
but it appealed perhaps with equal strength to the softer and more reflecti=
ve
side of our nature. For generation after generation that house had been the
home of men like ourselves; they had passed and were forgotten, but it
remained, the sole witness of the stories of their lives. Hands of which the
very bones had long since crumbled into dust had planted those old oaks and
walnuts, that still donned their green robes in summer, and shed them in the
autumn, to stand great skeletons through the winter months, awaiting the re=
surrection
of the spring.
There lay upon the place and its surroundings a
burden of dead lives, intangible, but none the less real. The air was thick=
with
memories, as suggestive as the grey dust in a vault. Even in the summer, in=
the
full burst of nature revelling in her strength, the place was sad. But in t=
he
winter, when the wind came howling through the groaning trees, and drove the
grey scud across an ashy sky, when the birds were dumb, and there were no
cattle on the sodden lawn, its isolated melancholy was a palpable thing.
That hoary house might have been a gateway of =
the
dim land we call the Past, looking down in stony sorrow on the follies of t=
hose
who so soon must cross its portals, and, to the wise who could hear the les=
son,
pregnant with echoes of the warning voices of many generations.
Here it was that Angela grew up to womanhood.<= o:p>
Some nine and a half years had passed from the
date of the events described in the foregoing pages, when one evening Mr.
Fraser bethought him that he had been indoors all day, and proposed reading=
till
late that night, and that therefore he had better take some exercise.
A tall and somewhat nervous-looking man, with =
dark
eyes, a sensitive mouth, and that peculiar stoop and pallor of complexion w=
hich
those devoted to much study almost invariably acquire, he had
"student" written on his face. His history was a sufficiently com=
mon
one. He possessed academical abilities of a very high order, and had in his=
youth
distinguished himself greatly at college, both as a classical and a
mathematical scholar. When quite young, he was appointed, through the influ=
ence
of a relation, to his present living, where the income was good and the
population very small indeed. Freed from all necessity for exertion, he shut
himself up with his books, having his little round of parish work for
relaxation, and never sought to emerge from the quiet of his aimless studie=
s to
struggle for fame and place in the laborious world. Mr. Fraser was what peo=
ple
call an able man thrown away. If they had known his shy, sensitive nature a
little better, they would have understood that he was infinitely more suite=
d for
the solitary and peaceful lot in life which he had chosen, than to become a
unit in the turbulent and greedy crowd that is struggling through all the a=
ges
up the slippery slopes of the temple of that greatest of our gods--Success.=
There are many such men, probably you, my read=
er,
know one or two. With infinite labour they store up honey from the fields of
knowledge, collect endless data from the statistics of science, pile up the=
ir calculations
against the very stars; and all to no end. As a rule, they do not write boo=
ks;
they gather the learning for the learning's sake, and for the very love of =
it
rejoice to count their labour lost. And thus they go on from year to year,
until the golden bowl is broken and the pitcher broken at the fountain, and=
the
gathered knowledge sinks, or appears to sink, back to whence it came. Alas,
that one generation cannot hand on its wisdom and experience--more especial=
ly its
experience--to another in its perfect form! If it could, we men should soon
become as gods.
It was a mild evening in the latter end of Oct=
ober
when Mr. Fraser started on his walk. The moon was up in the heavens as he, =
an
hour later, made his way from the side of the lake, where he had been wande=
ring,
back to the churchyard through which he had to pass to reach the vicarage. =
Just
before he came to the gate, however, he was surprised, in such a solitary s=
pot,
to see a slight figure leaning against the wall opposite the place where lay
the mortal remains of the old squire and his daughter-in-law, Hilda. He sto=
od
still and watched; the figure appeared to be gazing steadily at the graves.=
Presently
it turned and saw him, and he recognized the great grey eyes and golden hai=
r of
little Angela Caresfoot.
"Angela, my dear, what are you doing here=
at
this time of night?" he asked, in some surprise.
She blushed a little as she shook hands rather
awkwardly with him.
"Don't be angry with me," she said i=
n a
deprecatory voice; "but I was so lonely this evening that I came here =
for
company."
"Came here for company! What do you
mean?"
She hung her head.
"Come," he said, "tell me what =
you
mean."
"I don't quite know myself. How can I tell
you?"
He looked more puzzled than ever, and she obse=
rved
it and went on:
"I will try to tell you, but you must not=
be
cross like Pigott when she cannot understand me. Sometimes I feel ever so m=
uch
alone, as though I was looking for something and could not find it, and the=
n I come
and stand here and look at my mother's grave, and I get company and am not
lonely any more. That is all I know; I cannot tell you any more. Do you thi=
nk
me silly? Pigott does."
"I think you are a very strange child. Are
you not afraid to come here alone at night?"
"Afraid--oh, no! Nobody comes here; the
people in the village dare not come here after dark, because they say that =
the
ruins are full of spirits. Jakes told me that. But I must be stupid; I cann=
ot
see them, and I want so very much to see them. I hope it is not wrong, but =
I told
my father so the other day, and he turned white and was angry with Pigott f=
or
giving me such ideas; but you know Pigott did not give them to me at all. I=
am
not afraid to come; I like it, it is so quiet, and, if one listens enough in
the quiet, I always think one may hear something that other people do not
hear."
"Do you hear anything, then?"
"Yes, I hear things, but I cannot underst=
and
them. Listen to the wind in the branches of that tree, the chestnut, off wh=
ich
the leaf is falling now. It says something, if only I could catch it."=
"Yes, child, yes, you are right in a way;=
all
Nature tells the same eternal tale, if our ears were not stopped to its
voices," he answered, with a sigh; indeed, the child's talk had struck=
a
vein of thought familiar to his own mind, and, what is more, it deeply inte=
rested
him; there was a quaint, far-off wisdom in it.
"It is pleasant to-night, is it not, Mr.
Fraser?" said the little maid, "though everything is dying. The
things die softly without any pain this year; last year they were all kille=
d in
the rain and wind. Look at that cloud floating across the moon, is it not
beautiful? I wonder what it is the shadow of; I think all the clouds are
shadows of something up in heaven."
"And when there are no clouds?"
"Oh! then heaven is quite still and
happy."
"But heaven is always happy."
"Is it? I don't understand how it can be
always happy if we go there. There must be so many to be so=
rry
for."
Mr. Fraser mused a little; that last remark was
difficult to answer. He looked at the fleecy cloud, and, falling into her
humour, said--
"I think your cloud is the shadow of an e=
agle
carrying a lamb to its little ones."
"And I think," she answered confiden=
tly,
"that it is the shadow of an angel carrying a baby home."
Again he was silenced; the idea was infinitely
more poetical than his own.
"This," he reflected, "is a chi=
ld
of a curious mental calibre."
Before he could pursue the thought further, she
broke in upon it in quite a different strain.
"Have you seen Jack and Jill? They are jolly."
"Who are Jack and Jill?"
"Why, my ravens, of course. I got them ou=
t of
the old tree with a hole in it at the end of the lake."
"The tree at the end of the lake! Why, the
hole where the ravens nest is fifty feet up. Who got them for you?"
"I got them myself. Sam--you know Sam--was
afraid to go up. He said he should fall, and that the old birds would peck =
his
eyes. So I went by myself one morning quite early, with a bag tied round my
neck, and got up. It was hard work, and I nearly tumbled once; but I got on=
the
bough beneath the hole at last. It shook very much; it is so rotten, you ha=
ve
no idea. There were three little ones in the nest, all with great mouths. I
took two, and left one for the old birds. When I was nearly down again, the=
old
birds found me out, and flew at me, and beat my head with their wings, and
pecked--oh, they did peck! Look here," and she showed him a scar on her
hand; "that's where they pecked. But I stuck to my bag, and got down at
last, and I'm glad I did, for we are great friends now; and I am sure the c=
ross
old birds would be quite pleased if they knew how nicely I am educating the=
ir young
ones, and how their manners have improved. But I say, Mr. Fraser, don't tell
Pigott; she cannot climb trees, and does not like to see me do it. She does=
not
know I went after them myself."
Mr. Fraser laughed.
"I won't tell her, Angela, my dear; but y=
ou
must be careful--you might tumble and kill yourself."
"I don't think I shall, Mr. Fraser, unles=
s I
am meant to. God looks after me as much when I am up a tree as when I am up=
on
the ground."
Once more he had nothing to say; he could not
venture to disturb her faith.
"I will walk home with you, my dear. Tell=
me.
Angela, would you like to learn?"
"Learn!--learn what?"
"Books, and the languages that other nati=
ons,
nations that have passed away, used to talk, and how to calculate numbers a=
nd
distances."
"Yes, I should like to learn very much; b=
ut
who will teach me? I have learnt all Pigott knows two years ago, and since =
then
I have been trying to learn about the trees and flowers and stars; but I lo=
ok
and watch, and can't understand."
"Ah! my dear, contact with Nature is the
highest education; but the mind that would appreciate her wonders must have=
a
foundation of knowledge to work upon. The uneducated man is rarely sensitiv=
e to
the thousand beauties and marvels of the fields around him, and the skies a=
bove
him. But, if you like, I will teach you, Angela. I am practically an idle m=
an,
and it will give me great pleasure; but you must promise to work and do wha=
t I
tell you."
"Oh, how good you are! Of course I will w=
ork.
When am I to begin?"
"I don't know--to-morrow, if you like; bu=
t I
must speak to your father first."
Her face fell a little at the mention of her
father's name, but presently she said, quietly--
"My father, he will not care if I learn or
not. I hardly ever see my father; he does not like me. I see nobody but Pig=
ott
and you and old Jakes, and Sam sometimes. You need not ask my father; he wi=
ll
never miss me whilst I am learning. Ask Pigott."
At that moment Pigott herself hove into view, =
in a
great flurry.
"Oh, here you are, Miss Angela! Where have
you been to, you naughty girl? At some of your star-gazing tricks again, I'=
ll
be bound, frightening the life out of a body. It's just too bad of you, Mis=
s Angela."
The little girl looked at her with a peculiarly
winning smile, and took her very solid hand between her own tiny palms.
"Don't be cross, Pigott, dear," she
said. "I didn't mean to frighten you. I couldn't help going--I couldn't
indeed; and then I stopped talking to Mr. Fraser."
"There, there, I should just like to know=
who
can be cross with you when you put on those ways. Are your feet wet? Ah! I
thought so. Run on in and take them off."
"Won't that be just a little difficult?&q=
uot;
and she was gone with a merry laugh.
"There, sir, that's just like her, catchi=
ng a
body up like and twisting what she says, till you don't know which is head =
and
which is heels. I'll be bound you found her down yonder;" and she nodd=
ed towards
the churchyard.
"Yes."
Pigott drew a little nearer, and spoke in a low
voice.
"'Tis my belief, sir, that that child see=
s things ; she is just the oddest child I =
ever
saw. There's nothing she likes better than to slip out of a night, and to g=
o to
that there beastly churchyard, saving your presence, for 'company,' as she
calls it--nice sort of company, indeed. And it is just the same way with
storms. You remember that dreadful gale a month ago, the one that took down=
the
North Grove and blew the spire off Rewtham Church. Well, just when it was at
its worst, and I was a-sitting and praying that the roof might keep over our
heads, I look round for Angela, and can't see her. 'Some of your tricks aga=
in,'
thinks I to myself; and just then up comes Mrs. Jakes to say that Sam had s=
een
little missy creeping down the tunnel walk. I was that scared that I ran do=
wn,
got hold of Sam, for Jakes said he wouldn't go out with all them trees a-fl=
ying
about in the air like straws--no, not for a thousand pounds, and off we set
after her." Here Pigott paused to groan at the recollection of that wa=
lk.
"Well," said Mr. Fraser, who was rat=
her
interested--everything about this queer child interested him; "where d=
id
you find her?"
"Well, sir, you know where the old wall r=
uns
out into the water, before Caresfoot's Staff there? Well, at the end of it
there's a post sunk in, with a ring in it to tie boats to. Now, would you
believe it? out there at the end of the wall, and tied to the ring by a sca=
rf passed
round her middle, was that dreadful child. She was standing there, her back
against the post, right in the teeth of the gale, with the spray dashing ov=
er
her, her arms stretched out before her, her hat gone, her long hair standing
out behind straight as an iron bar, and her eyes flashing as though they we=
re
on fire, and all the while there were the great trees crashing down all rou=
nd
in a way enough to make a body sick with fright. We got her back safe, thank
God; but how long we shall keep her, I'm sure I don't know. Now she is drow=
ning
herself in the lake, for she takes to the water like a duck, and now breaki=
ng her
neck off trees, and now going to ghosts in the churchyard for company. It's
wearing me to the bone--that's what it is."
Mr. Fraser smiled, for, to tell the truth,
Pigott's bones were pretty comfortably covered.
"Come," he said, "you would not
part with her for all her wicked deeds, would you?"
"Part with her," answered Pigott, in=
hot
indignation, "part with my little beauty? I would rather part with my
head. The love, there never was another like her, nor never will be, with h=
er
sweet ways; and, if I know anything about girls, she'll be the beauty of
England, she will. She's made for a beautiful woman; and look at them eyes =
and forehead
and hair--where did you ever see the like? And, as for her queer ways, what=
can
you expect from a child as has got a great empty mind and nothing to put in=
it,
and no one to talk to but a common woman like me, and a father"--here =
she
dropped her voice--"as is a miser, and hates the sight of his own flesh
and blood?"
"Hush! you should not say such things,
Pigott! Now I will tell you something; I am going on to ask your master to
allow me to educate Angela."
"I'm right glad to hear it, sir. She's sh=
arp
enough to learn anything, and it's kind of you to teach her. If you can make
her mind like what her body will be if she lives, somebody will be a lucky =
man
one of these days. Good-night, sir, and many thanks for bringing missy
home."
Next day Angela began her education.
Reader, we are about to see Angela again, and =
to
see a good deal of her; but you must be prepared for a change in her person=
al
appearance, for the curtain has been down for ten years since last you met =
the child
whose odd propensities excited Pigott's wonder and indignation and Mr. Fras=
er's
interest; and ten years, as we all know, can work many changes in the histo=
ry
of the world and individuals. In ten years some have been swept clean off t=
he
board, and their places taken by others; a few have grown richer, many poor=
er,
some of us sadder, some wiser, and all of us ten years older. Now, this was
exactly what had happened to little Angela--that is, the Angela we knew as
little, and ten years make curious differences between the slim child of ni=
ne
and a half and the woman of nearly twenty.
When we last saw her, Angela was about to comm=
ence
her education. Let us re-introduce ourselves on the memorable evening when,
after ten years of study, Mr. Fraser, a master by no means easily pleased, =
expressed
himself unable to teach her any more.
It is Christmas Eve. Drip, drop, drip, falls t=
he
rain from the leafless boughs on to the sodden earth. The apology for dayli=
ght
that has been doing its dull duty for the last few hours is slowly effacing=
itself,
and the gale is celebrating the fact, and showing its joy at the closing-in=
of
the melancholy night by howling its loudest through the trees, and flogging=
the
flying scud it has brought with it from the sea, till it whirls across the =
sky
like a succession of ghostly racehorses.
This is outside the vicarage; let us look with=
in.
In a well-worn arm- chair in the comfortable study, near to a table covered
with books and holding some loose sheets of foolscap in his hand, sits Mr.
Fraser. His hair is a little greyer than when he began Angela's education, =
about
as grey as rather accommodating hair will get at the age of fifty-three;
otherwise his general appearance is much the same, and his face as refined =
and
gentlemanlike as ever. Presently he lays down the sheets of paper which he =
has
been studying attentively, and says:
"Your solution is perfectly sound, Angela;
but you have arrived at it in a characteristic fashion, and by your own roa=
d.
Not but what your method has some merits--for one thing, it is more concise
than my own; but, on the other hand, it shows a feminine weakness. It is no=
t possible
to follow every step from your premises to your conclusion, correct as it
is."
"Ah!" says a low voice, with a happy
ripple in it, the owner of which is busy with some tea-things out of range =
of
the ring of light thrown by the double reading-lamp, "you often blame =
me
for jumping to conclusions; but what does it matter, provided they are righ=
t?
The whole secret is that I used the equivalent algebraic formula, but suppr=
essed
the working in order to puzzle you," and the voice laughed sweetly.
"That is not worthy of a mathematician,&q=
uot;
said Mr. Fraser, with some irritation; "it is nothing but a trick, a <=
span
style=3D'mso-spacerun:yes'> tour de force ."
"The solution is correct, you say?"<= o:p>
"Quite."
"Then I maintain that it is perfectly
mathematical; the object of mathematics is to arrive at the truth."
" Vox et preterea nihil. Come out of that corner, my dear. I hate=
arguing
with a person I cannot see. But there, there, what is the use of arguing at
all? The fact is, Angela, you are a first-class mathematician, and I am only
second-class. I am obliged to stick to the old tracks; you cut a Roman road=
of
your own. Great masters are entitled to do that. The algebraic formula never
occurred to me when I worked the problem out, and it took me two days to
do."
"You are trying to make me vain. You forg=
et
that whatever I know, which is just enough to show me how much I have to le=
arn,
I have learnt from you. As for being your superior in mathematics, I don't =
think
that, as a clergyman, you should make such a statement. Here is your tea.&q=
uot;
And the owner of the voice came forward into the ring of light.
She was tall beyond the ordinary height of wom=
an,
and possessed unusual beauty of form, that the tight-fitting grey dress she
wore was well calculated to display. Her complexion, which was of a dazzlin=
g fairness,
was set off by the darkness of the lashes that curled over the deep grey ey=
es.
The face itself was rounded and very lovely, and surmounted by an ample
forehead, whilst her hair, which was twisted into a massive knot, was of a
tinge of chestnut gold, and marked with deep-set ripples. The charm of her
face, however, did not, as is so often the case, begin and end with its
physical attractions. There was more, much more, in it than that. But how i=
s it
possible to describe on paper a presence at once so full of grace and digni=
ty,
of the soft loveliness of woman, and of a higher and more spiritual beauty?
There hangs in the Louvre a picture by Raphael, which represents a saint pa=
ssing
with light steps over the prostrate form of a dragon. There is in that
heaven-inspired face, the equal of which has been rarely, if ever, put on
canvas, a blending of earthly beauty and of the calm, awe-compelling
spirit-gaze--that gaze, that holy dignity which can only come to such as ar=
e in
truth and in deed "pure in heart"--that will give to those who kn=
ow
it a better idea of what Angela was like than any written description.
At times, but, ah, how rarely! we may have seen
some such look as that she wore on the faces of those around us. It may be
brought by a great sorrow, or be the companion of an overwhelming joy. It m=
ay
announce the consummation of some sublime self-sacrifice, or convey the swi=
ft assurance
of an everlasting love. It is to be found alike on the features of the happy
mother as she kisses her new-born babe, and on the pallid countenance of the
saint sinking to his rest. The sharp moment that brings us nearer God, and =
goes
nigh to piercing the veil that hides His presence, is the occasion that cal=
ls
it into being. It is a beauty born of the murmuring sound of the harps of
heaven; it is the light of the eternal lamp gleaming faintly through its
earthly casket.
This spirit-look, before which all wickedness =
must
feel ashamed, had found a home in Angela's grey eyes. There was a strange
nobility about her. Whether it dwelt in the stately form, or on the broad b=
row,
or in the large glance of the deep eyes, it is not possible to say; but it =
was
certainly a part of herself as self-evident as her face or features. She mi=
ght
well have been the inspiration of the lines that run:
"Truth in her mig=
ht,
beloved, Gran=
d in
her sway; Truth=
with
her eyes, beloved, Clearer than day; <=
span
style=3D'mso-spacerun:yes'> Holy and pure, belove=
d, Spotless and free; =
Is there one thing,
beloved, Fair=
er
than thee?"
Mr. F=
raser
absently set down the tea that Angela was giving him when we took the liber=
ty
to describe her personal appearance.
"Now, Angela, read a little."
"What shall I read?"
"Oh! anything you like; please
yourself."
Thus enjoined, she went to a bookshelf, and,
taking down two volumes, handed one to Mr. Fraser, and then, opening her co=
py
at haphazard, announced the page to her companion, and, sitting down, began=
to
read.
What sound is this, now soft and melodious as =
the
sweep of a summer gale over a southern sea, and now again like to the dista=
nt
stamp and rush and break of the wave of battle? What can it be but the roll=
of those
magnificent hexameters with which Homer charms a listening world. And rarely
have English lips given them with a juster cadence.
"Stop, my dear, shut up your book; you ar=
e as
good a Greek scholar as I can make you. Shut up your book for the last time.
Your education, my dear Angela, is satisfactorily completed. I have succeed=
ed
with you----"
"Completed, Mr. Fraser!" said Angela,
open-eyed. "Do you mean to say that I am to stop now just as I have be=
gun
to learn?"
"My dear, you have learnt everything that=
I
can teach you, and, besides, I am going away the day after to-morrow."=
"Going away!" and then and there,
without the slightest warning, Angela--who, for all her beauty and learning,
very much resembled the rest of her sex--burst into tears.
"Come, come, Angela," said Mr. Frase=
r,
in a voice meant to be gruff, but only succeeding in being husky, for, oddly
enough, it is trying even to a clergyman on the wrong side of middle-age to=
be
wept over by a lovely woman; "don't be nonsensical; I am only going fo=
r a
few months."
At this intelligence she pulled up a little.
"Oh," she said, between her sobs,
"how you frightened me! How could you be so cruel! Where are you going
to?"
"I am going for a long trip in southern
Europe. Do you know that I have scarcely been away from this place for twen=
ty
years, so I mean to celebrate the conclusion of our studies by taking a
holiday."
"I wish you would take me with you."=
Mr. Fraser coloured slightly, and his eye
brightened. He sighed as he answered--
"I am afraid, my dear, that it would be
impossible."
Something warned Angela not to pursue the subj=
ect.
"Now, Angela, I believe that it is usual,=
on
the occasion of the severance of a scholastic connection, to deliver someth=
ing
in the nature of a farewell oration. Well, I am not going to do that, but I=
want
you to listen to a few words."
She did not answer, but, drawing a stool to a
corner of the fireplace, she wiped her eyes and sat down almost at his feet,
clasping her knees with her hands, and gazing rather sadly into the fire.
"You have, dear Angela," he began,
"been educated in a somewhat unusual way, with the result that, after =
ten
years of steady work that has been always interesting, though sometimes
arduous, you have acquired information denied to the vast majority of your =
sex,
whilst at the same time you could be put to the blush in many things by a s=
chool-girl
of fifteen. For instance, though I firmly believe that you could at the pre=
sent
moment take a double first at the University, your knowledge of English
literature is almost nil, and your history of the weakest. All a woman's
ordinary accomplishments, such as drawing, playing, singing, have of necess=
ity
been to a great extent neglected, since I was not able to teach them to you
myself, and you have had to be guided solely by books and by the light of
Nature in giving to them such time as you could spare.
"Your mind, on the other hand, has been d=
aily
saturated with the noblest thoughts of the intellectual giants of two thous=
and
years ago, and would in that respect be as much in place in a well-educated=
Grecian
maiden living before the time of Christ as in an English girl of the ninete=
enth
century.
"I have educated you thus, Angela, partly=
by
accident and partly by design. You will remember when you began to come here
some ten years since--you were a little thing then--and I had offered to gi=
ve
you some teaching, because you interested me, and I saw that you were runni=
ng
wild in mind and body. But, when I had undertaken the task I was somewhat
puzzled how to carry it out. It is one thing to offer to educate a little g=
irl,
and another to do it. Not knowing where to begin, I fell back upon the Latin
grammar, where I had begun myself, and so by degrees you slid into the
curriculum of a classical and mathematical education. Then, after a year or
two, I perceived your power of work and your great natural ability, and I
formed a design. I said to myself, 'I will see how far a woman cultivated u=
nder
favourable conditions can go. I will patiently teach this girl till the
literature of Greece and Rome become as familiar to her as her mother-tongu=
e,
till figures and symbols hide no mysteries from her, till she can read the
heavens like a book. I will teach her mind to follow the secret ways of
knowledge, I will train it till it can soar above its fellows like a falcon
above sparrows.' Angela, my proud design, pursued steadily through many yea=
rs,
has been at length accomplished; your bright intellect has risen to the str=
ain
I have put upon it, and you are at this moment one of the best all-round
scholars of my acquaintance."
She flushed to the eyes at this high praise, a=
nd
was about to speak, but he stopped her with a motion of the hand, and went =
on:
"I have recognized in teaching you a fact=
but
too little known, that a classical education, properly understood, is the
foundation of all learning. There is little that is worth saying which has =
not
already been beautifully said by the ancients, little that is worthy of med=
itation
on which they have not already profoundly reflected, save, indeed, the one
great subject of Christian meditation. This foundation, my dear Angela, you
possess to an eminent degree. Henceforth you will need no assistance from m=
e or
any other man, for, to your trained mind, all ordinary knowledge will be ea=
sy
to assimilate. You will receive in the course of a few days a parting prese=
nt
from myself in the shape of a box of carefully chosen books on European
literature and history. Devote yourself to the study of these, and of the
German language, which was your mother's native tongue, for the next year, =
and
then I shall consider that you are fairly finished, and then, too, my dear
Angela, I shall expect to reap a full reward for my labours."
"What is it that you will expect of me?&q=
uot;
"I shall expect, Angela," and he rose
from his chair and walked up and down the room in his excitement--"I s=
hall
expect to see you take your proper place in your generation. I shall say:
'Choose your own line, become a critical scholar, a practical mathematician,
or--and perhaps that is what you are most suited for with your imaginative
powers--a writer of fiction. For remember that fiction, properly understood=
and
directed to worthy aims, is the noblest and most far-reaching, as it is also
the most difficult of the arts.' In watching the success that will assuredly
attend you in this or any other line, I shall be amply rewarded for my
trouble."
Angela shook her head with a gesture of doubt,=
but
he did not wait for her to answer.
"Well, my dear, I must not keep you any
longer--it is quite dark and blowing a gale of wind--except to say one more
word. Remember that all this is--indirectly perhaps, but still none the less
truly--a means to an end. There are two educations, the education of the mi=
nd
and the education of the soul; unless you minister to the latter, all the t=
ime and
toil spent upon the former will prove to little purpose. The learning will,=
it
is true, remain; but it will be as the quartz out of which the gold has been
already crushed, or the dry husks of corn. It will be valueless and turn to=
no
good use, will serve only to feed the swine of intellectual voluptuousness =
and
infidelity. It is, believe me, the higher learning of the soul that gilds o=
ur
earthly lore. The loftier object of all education is so to train the intell=
ect
that it may become competent to understand something, however little, of th=
e nature
of our God, and to the true Christian the real end of learning is the
appreciation of His attributes as exemplified in His mysteries and earthly
wonders. But perhaps that is a subject on which you are as well fitted to d=
iscourse
as I am, so I will not enter into it. 'Finis,' my dear, 'finis.'"
Angela's answer to this long oration was a sim=
ple
one. She rose slowly from her low seat, and, putting her hands upon Mr.
Fraser's shoulders, kissed him on the forehead and said--
"How shall I ever learn to be grateful en=
ough
for all I owe you? What should I have been now but for you? How good and
patient you have been to me!"
This embrace affected the clergyman strangely;=
he
put his hand to his heart, and a troubled look came into his eyes. Thrusting
her gently away from him, he sat down.
"Angela," he said presently, "go
away now, dear, I am tired to-night; I shall see you at church to-morrow to=
say
good-by."
And so she went homewards, through the wind and
storm, little knowing that she left her master to struggle with a tempest f=
ar
more tremendous than that which raged around her.
As for him, as the door closed, he gave a sigh=
of
relief.
"Pray God I have not put it off too
long," he said to himself. "And now for to-morrow's sermon. Sleep=
for
the young! laughter for the happy! work for old fools--work, work, work!&qu=
ot;
And thus it was that Angela became a scholar.<= o:p>
The winter months passed away slowly for Angel=
a,
but not by any means unhappily. Though she was quite alone and missed Mr.
Fraser sadly, she found considerable consolation in his present of books, a=
nd
in the thought that she was getting a good hold of her new subjects of stud=
y. And
then came the wonder of the spring with its rush of budding life, and who, =
least
of all Angela, could be sad in springtime? But nevertheless that spring mar=
ked
an important change in our heroine, for it was during its sweet hours, when,
having put her books aside, she would roam alone, or in company with her
ravens, through the flower-starred woods around the lake, that a feeling of
restlessness, amounting at times almost to dissatisfaction, took possession=
of
her. Indeed, as the weeks crept on and she drew near the completion of her =
twentieth
year, she realized with a sigh that she could no longer call herself a girl,
and began to feel that her life was incomplete, that something was wanting =
in
it. And this was what was wanting in Angela's life: she had, if we except h=
er
nurse, no one to love, and she had so much love to give!
Did she but guess it, the still recesses of her
heart already tremble to the footfall of one now drawing near: out of the
multitude of the lives around her, a life is marked to mingle with her own.=
She
does not know it, but as the first reflection of the dawn strikes the uncon=
scious
sky and shadows the coming of its king, so the red flush that now so often
springs unbidden to her brow, tells of girlhood's twilight ended, and procl=
aims
the advent of woman's life and love.
"Angela," called her father one day,=
as
he heard her footsteps passing his study, "come in here; I want to spe=
ak
to you."
His daughter stopped, and a look of blank
astonishment spread itself over her face. She had not been called into that
study for years. She entered, however, as bidden. Her father, who was seate=
d at
his writing-table, which was piled up with account-books, did not greatly d=
iffer
in appearance from what he was when we last saw him twenty years ago. His f=
rame
had grown more massive, and acquired a slight stoop, but he was still a you=
ng,
powerful-looking man, and certainly did not appear a day more than his age =
of
forty-two. The eyes, however, so long as no one was looking at them, had
contracted a concentrated stare, as though they were eternally gazing at so=
me object
in space, and this appearance was rendered the more marked by an apparently
permanent puckering of the skin of the forehead. The moment, however, that =
they
came under the fire of anybody else's optics, and, oddly enough, more
particularly those of his own daughter, the stare vanished, and they grew
shifty and uncertain to a curious degree.
Philip was employed in adding up something when
his daughter entered, and motioned to her to sit down. She did so, and fixed
her great grey eyes on him with some curiosity. The effect was remarkable; =
her
father fidgeted, made a mistake in his calculations, glanced all round the =
room
with his shifty eyes (ah, how changed from those bold black eyes with which
Maria Lee fell in love four-and-twenty years ago!) and finally threw down h=
is
pen with an exclamation that would have shocked Angela had she understood i=
t.
"How often, Angela, have I asked you not = to stare me out of countenance! It is a most unladylike trick of yours."<= o:p>
She blushed painfully.
"I beg your pardon; I forgot. I will look=
out
of the window."
"Don't be a fool; look like other people.=
But
now I want to speak to you. In the first place, I find that the household
expenditure for the last year was three hundred and fifty pounds. That is m=
ore
than I can afford; it must not exceed three hundred this year."
"I will do my best to keep the expenses d=
own,
father; but I can assure you that there is no money wasted now."
Then came a pause, which, after humming and ha=
wing
a little, Philip was the first to break.
"Do you know that I saw your cousin George
yesterday? He is back at last at Isleworth."
"Yes, Pigott told me that he had come. He=
has
been away a long while."
"When did you last see him?"
"When I was about thirteen, I believe; be=
fore
he lost the election, and went away."
"He has been down here several times since
then. I wonder that you did not see him."
"I always disliked him, and kept out of h=
is
way."
"Gad, you can't dislike him more than I d=
o;
but I keep good friends with him for all that, and you must do the same. No=
w,
look here, Angela, will you promise to keep a secret?"
"Yes, father, if you wish it."
"Well, then, I appear to be a poor man, d=
on't
I? And remember," he added, hastily, "that, with reference to
household expenses, I am poor; but, as a matter of fact"--and here he =
sunk
his voice, and glanced suspiciously round--"I am worth at this moment
nearly one hundred and fifty thousand pounds in hard cash."
"That is six thousand pounds a year at fo=
ur
per cent.," commented Angela, without a moment's hesitation. "The=
n I
really think you might put a flue into the old greenhouse, and allow a shil=
ling
a week to Mrs. Jakes' mother."
"Curse Mrs. Jakes' mother! Nobody but a w=
oman
would have interrupted with such nonsense. Listen. You must have heard how I
was disinherited on account of my marriage with your mother, and the Islewo=
rth
estates left to your cousin George, and how, with a refined ingenuity, he w=
as forbidden
to bequeath them back to me or to my children. But mark this, he is not
forbidden to sell them to me; no doubt the old man never dreamt that I shou=
ld
have the money to buy them; but, you see, I have almost enough."
"How did you get so much money?"
"Get it! First, I took the gold plate my
grandfather bought, and sold it. I had no right to do it, but I could not
afford to have so much capital lying idle. It fetched nearly five thousand
pounds. With this I speculated successfully. In two years I had eighteen
thousand. The eighteen thousand I invested in a fourth share in a coal-mine,
when money was scarce and coals cheap. Coals rose enormously just then, and=
in
five years' time I sold my share to the co-holders for eighty-two thousand,=
in
addition to twenty-one thousand received by way of interest. Since then I h=
ave
not speculated, for fear my luck should desert me. I have simply allowed the
money to accumulate on mortgage and other investments, and bided my time, f=
or I
have sworn to have those estates back before I die. It is for this cause th=
at I
have toiled, and thought, and screwed, and been cut by the whole neighbourh=
ood
for twenty years; but now I think that, with your help, my time is
coming."
"With <=
/span>my
help. What is it that you wish me =
to
do?"
"Listen," answered her father, nervo=
usly
tapping his pencil on the account-book before him. "George is not very
fond of Isleworth--in fact, he rather dislikes it; but, like all the
Caresfoots, he does not care about parting with landed property, and, thoug=
h we
appear to be good friends, he hates me too much ever to consent, under ordi=
nary
circumstances, to sell it to me. It is to you I look to overcome that objec=
tion."
"I! How?"
"You are a woman and you ask me how you
should get the blind side of a man!"
"I do not in the least understand you.&qu=
ot;
Philip smiled incredulously.
"Then I suppose I must explain. If ever y= ou take the trouble to look at yourself in the glass, you will probably see th= at Nature has been very kind to you in the matter of good looks; nor are you by any means deficient in brains. Your cousin George is very fond of a pretty = woman, and, to be plain, what I want you to do is to make use of your advantages to get him under your thumb and persuade him into selling the property."<= o:p>
"Oh! father, how can you?" ejaculated
Angela, in an agony of shame.
"You idiot, I won't want you to marry him=
; I
only want you to make a fool of him. Surely, being of the sex you are, you
won't find that an uncongenial occupation."
Angela's blushes had given away to pallor now,=
and
she answered with cold contempt:
"I don't think you quite understand what a
girl feels--at least, what I feel, for I know no other girls. Perhaps it wo=
uld
be useless for me to try to explain. I had rather go blind than use my eyes=
for
such a shameful purpose."
"Angela," said her father, with as m=
uch
temper as he ever showed now, "let me tell you that you are a silly fo=
ol;
you are more, you are an encumbrance. Your birth," he added, bitterly,
"robbed me of your mother, and the fact of your being a girl deprived =
our
branch of the family of their rights. Now that you have grown up, you prefe=
r to
gratify your whims rather than help me to realize the object of my life by a
simple course of action that could do no one any harm. I never asked you to
commit yourself in any way. Well, well, it is what I must expect. We have n=
ot
seen much of each other heretofore, and perhaps the less we meet in the fut=
ure
the better."
"You have no right to talk to me so,"
she answered, with flashing eyes, "though I am your daughter, and it is
cowardly to reproach me with my birth, my sex, and my dependence. Am I resp=
onsible
for any of these things? But I will not burden you long. And as to what you=
wanted
me to do, and think such a little of, I ask you, is it what my poor mother
would have wished her daughter----"
Here Philip abruptly rose, and left the room a=
nd
the house.
"She is as like her mother as possible,&q=
uot;
he mused, as soon as he was clear of the house. "It might have been Hi=
lda
herself, only she is twice as beautiful as Hilda was. I shall have another =
bad
night after this, I know I shall. I must get rid of that girl somehow, I ca=
nnot
bear her about me; she is a daily reminder of things I dare not remember, a=
nd
whenever she stares at me with those great eyes of hers, I feel as though s=
he
were looking through me. I wonder if she knows the story of Maria Lee!"=
;
And then dismissing, or trying to dismiss, the
matter from his mind, he took his way across the fields to Isleworth Hall, a
large white brick mansion in the Queen Anne style, about two miles distant =
from
the Abbey, and, on arrival, asked for his cousin George, and was at once sh=
own
into that gentleman's presence.
Years had told upon George more than they had =
upon
Philip, and, though there were no touches of grey in the flaming red of his
hair, the bloodshot eyes, and the puckered crowsfeet beneath them, to say n=
othing
of the slight but constant trembling of the hand, all showed that he was a =
man
well on in middle-life, and who had lived every day of it. Time, too, had m=
ade
the face more intensely unpleasant and vulgar-looking than ever. Such Cares=
foot
characteristics as it possessed were, year by year, giving place, in an
increasingly greater degree, to the kitchen-maid strain introduced by the
mother. In short, George Caresfoot did not even look a gentleman, whereas
Philip certainly did.
"You don't seem very well, George. I am
afraid that your travels have not agreed with you."
"My dear Philip," answered his cousi=
n,
in a languid and affected voice, "if you had lived the life that I have
for the last twenty years, you would look a little knocked up. I have had s=
ome
very good times; but the fact is, that I have been too prodigal of my stren=
gth,
not thought enough about the future. It is a great mistake, and one of the
worst results is that I am utterly blase
of everything; even la belle passion is played out for me. I haven't seen a w=
oman I
care twopence about for ten years."
"Ah! you should sell this place, and take=
a
house in town; it would suit you much better."
"I can do that without selling the place.=
I
don't intend to sell the place--in fact, nothing would induce me to do so. =
Some
day I may marry, and want to transmit it to some future Caresfoot; but I
confess I don't mean to do that just yet. Marry when you want a nurse, but =
never
before; that's my maxim. Marriage is an excellent institution for parsons a=
nd
fools, the two classes that Providence has created to populate the world; b=
ut a
wise man should as soon think of walking into a spring-trap. Take your own
case, for instance, my dear Philip; look what marriage led to."
"At any rate," answered his cousin,
bitterly, "it led to your advantage."
"Exactly; and that is one of the reasons =
why
I have such a respect for the institution in the abstract. It has been my
personal benefactor, and I worship it accordingly--at a distance. By the wa=
y,
talking of marriage reminds me of its legitimate fruits. Bellamy tells me t=
hat your
daughter Angela (if I had a daughter, I should call her Diabola, it is more
appropriate for a woman) has grown uncommonly handsome. Bring her to see me=
; I
adore beauty in all its forms, especially its female form. Is she really so
handsome?"
"I am no judge, but you will soon have an
opportunity of forming an opinion--that is, I hope so. I propose coming with
Angela to make a formal call on you to-morrow."
"Good. Tell my fair cousin that I shall be
certain to be in, and be prepared, metaphorically, to fall at the feet of so
much loveliness. By the way, that reminds me; you have heard of Bellamy's, =
or
rather Mrs. Bellamy's, good fortune, I suppose?"
"No."
"What--not? Why, he is now Sir John Bella=
my,
knight."
"Indeed! How is that?"
"You remember the bye-election six months
back?"
"Oh, yes! I was actually badgered by Mrs.
Bellamy into promising to
vote, much against my personal convenience.&qu=
ot;
"Exactly. Well, just at the time, old Pre=
scott
died, you may remember that Mr. Showers, the member of the Government, was
unseated on petition from some borough or other, and came down here post-ha=
ste
to get re-elected. But he had Sir Percy Vivyan against him, and, as I know =
to
my cost, this benighted country is not fond of those who preach the gospel =
of
progress. Bellamy, who is a stout Radical, as you know--chiefly, I fancy,
because there is more to be got out of that side of politics--got the job as
Showers' agent. But, three days before, it became quite clear that his caus=
e,
cabinet minister or not, was hopeless. Then it was that Mrs.--I beg her par=
don,
Lady--Bellamy came to the fore. Just as Showers was thinking of withdrawing,
she demanded a private interview with him. Next day she posted off to old S=
ir
Percy, who is a perfect fool of the chivalrous school, and was desperately =
fond
of her, and, mirabile dictu , that
evening Sir Percy withdraws on the plea of ill-health or some such rubbish,=
and
Showers walks over. Within three months, Mr. Bellamy becomes Sir John Bella=
my, nominally
for his services as town-clerk of Roxham, and I hear that old Sir Percy is =
now
perfectly rampant, and goes about cursing her ladyship up hill and down dal=
e,
and declaring that he has been shockingly taken-in. How our mutual friend
worked the ropes is more than I can tell you, but she did work them, and to
some purpose."
"She is an uncommonly handsome woman.&quo=
t;
"Ah! yes, you're right there, she is A1; =
but
let us stroll out a little; it is a fine evening for the 30th of April.
To-morrow will be the 1st of May, so it will, a day neither of us are likel=
y to
forget."
Philip winced at the allusion, but said nothin=
g.
"By the way," George went on, "=
I am
expecting a visitor, my ward, young Arthur Heigham, who is just back from
India. He will be twenty- five in a few days, when he comes of age, and is
coming down to settle up. The fact is, that ten thousand of his money is on=
the
Jotley property, and both Bellamy and myself are anxious that it should sto=
p there
for the present, as if the mortgage were called in it might be awkward.&quo=
t;
"Is he well off?"
"Comfortably; about a thousand a year; co=
mes
of an old family too. Bellamy and I knew his father, Captain Heigham, sligh=
tly,
when we were in business. His wife, by the way, was a distant cousin of our=
s.
They are both dead now; the captain was wiped out at Inkerman, and, for some
unknown reason, left me the young gentleman's sole guardian and joint trust=
ee
with a London lawyer, a certain Mr. Borley. I have never seen him yet--my w=
ard,
I mean--he has always been at Eton, or Cambridge, or in India, or
somewhere."
Here Philip began to manifest signs of
considerable uneasiness, the cause of which was sufficiently apparent; for,
whilst they were talking, a very large and savage-looking animal of the
sheep-dog order had emerged from the house, and was following him up and do=
wn, growling
in a low and ominous undertone, its nose being the while glued to his calve=
s as
they alternately presented themselves in his line of vision.
"Would you mind calling off this animal,
George?" he said at length. "He does not look amiable."
"Oh! that's Snarleyow; don't mind him, he
never bites unless you stop." Philip instinctively quickened his pace.
"Isn't he a beauty? He's a pure bred Thibet sheep-dog, and I will back=
him
to fight against any animal of his own weight. He killed two dogs in one mo=
rning
the other day, and pulled down a beggar-woman in the evening. You should ha=
ve
heard her holler."
At that moment, fortunately for Philip's calve=
s,
which were beginning to tingle with an unwholesome excitement, Mr. Snarleyo=
w's
attention was diverted by the approach of a dog-cart, and he left to enjoy =
the amusement
of snapping and barking at the horse. The cart pulled up at the door, and o=
ut
of it emerged a tall and extremely gentlemanly- looking young fellow, follo=
wed
by a very large red bull-dog.
"Mr. Caresfoot, I believe," said the
young gentleman to George, taking off his hat.
"Yes, Mr. Heigham, at your service. I am =
very
glad to see you. My cousin, Mr. Philip Caresfoot."
"I must apologize for having brought Alec=
k,
my dog, you know, with me," began Arthur Heigham; "but the fact w=
as,
that at the very last moment the man I was going to leave him with had to go
away, and I had no time to find another place before the train left. I thou=
ght
that, if you objected to dogs, he could easily be sent somewhere into the v=
illage.
He is very good-tempered, though appearances are against him."
"Oh! he will be all right, I daresay,&quo=
t;
said George, rather sulkily; for, with the exception of Snarleyow, in whose
fiendish temper he found something refreshing and congenial, he liked no do=
gs.
"But you must be careful, or Snarleyow, my dog,
will give him a hammering. Here, good dog, good dog," and he attempted=
to
pat Aleck on the head, but the animal growled savagely, and avoided him.
"I never knew him do that before,"
ejaculated Arthur, in confusion, and heartily wishing Aleck somewhere else.
"I suppose he has taken a dislike to you. Dogs do sometimes, you know.=
"
Next second it struck him that this was one of
those things that had better have been left unsaid, and he grew more
uncomfortable than ever. But at this very moment the situation was rendered
intensely lively by the approach of the redoubtable Snarleyow himself, who,=
having
snapped at the horse's heels all the way to the stables, had on his return =
to
the front of the house spotted Aleck from afar. He was now advancing on tip=
toe
in full order of battle, his wicked-looking teeth gleaming, and his coat an=
d tail
standing out like an angry bear's.
Arthur, already sufficiently put out about the=
dog
question, thought it best to take no notice; and even when he distinctly he=
ard
George quietly "sah" on his dog as he passed him, he contented
himself with giving Aleck a kick by way of a warning to behave himself, and
entered into some desultory conversation with Philip. But presently a serie=
s of
growls behind him announced that an encounter was imminent. Looking round, =
he
perceived that Snarleyow was standing over the bull-dog, of which he was mo=
re
than twice the size, and holding on to the skin of his neck with his long
teeth; whilst George was looking on with scarcely suppressed amusement.
"I think, Mr. Caresfoot, that you had bet=
ter
call your dog off," said Arthur, good-temperedly. "Mine is a
peaceable animal, but he is an awkward customer when he does fight."
"Oh! better let them settle it; they will=
be
much better friends afterwards. Hold him, Snarleyow."
Thus encouraged, the big dog seized the other,=
and
fairly lifted him off the ground, shaking him violently--a proceeding that =
had
the effect of thoroughly rousing Aleck's temper. And then began a most Home=
ric
combat. At first the bull-dog was dreadfully mauled; his antagonist's size,
weight, and length of leg and jaw, to say nothing of the thick coat by whic=
h he
was protected, all telling against him. But he took his punishment very
quietly, never so much as uttering a growl, in strange contrast to the big
dog's vociferous style of doing business. And at last patience was rewarded=
by
his enemy's fore-paw finding its way into Aleck's powerful jaw, and remaini=
ng
there till Snarleyow's attentions to the back of his neck forced him to shi=
ft
his hold. From that time forward the sheep-dog had to fight on three legs, =
which
he found demoralizing. But still he had the advantage, and it was not until=
any
other dog of Aleck's size would have retreated half killed that the bull-do=
g's
superior courage and stamina began to tell. Quite heedless of his injuries,=
and
the blood that poured into his eyes, he slowly but surely drove the great
sheep-dog, who by this time would have been glad to stop, back into an angl=
e of
the wall, and then suddenly pinned him by the throat. Down went Snarleyow on
the top of the bull-dog, and rolled right over him, but when he staggered to
his legs again, his throat was still in its cruel grip.
"Take your dog off!" shouted George,
seeing that affairs had taken a turn he very little expected.
"I fear that is impossible," replied
Arthur, politely, but looking anything but polite.
"If you don't get it off, I will shoot
it."
"You will do nothing of the sort, Mr.
Caresfoot; you set the dog on, and you must take the consequences. Ah! the
affair is finished."
As he spoke, the choking Snarleyow, whose black
tongue was protruding from his jaws, gave one last convulsive struggle, and
ceased to breathe. Satisfied with this result, Aleck let go, and having sni=
ffed
contemptuously at his dead antagonist, returned to his master's side, and,
sitting quietly down, began to lick such of his numerous wounds as he could
reach.
George, when he realized that his favourite was
dead, turned upon his guest in a perfect fury. His face looked like a devil=
's.
But Arthur, acting with wonderful self-possession for so young a man, stopp=
ed
him.
"Remember, Mr. Caresfoot, before you say
anything that you may regret, that neither I nor my dog is to blame for what
has happened. I am exceedingly sorry that your dog should have been killed,=
but
it is your own fault. I am afraid, however, that, after what has happened, =
I shall
be as unwelcome here as Aleck; so, if you will kindly order the cart for me
again, I will move on. Our business can no doubt be finished off by
letter."
George made no reply: it was evident that he c=
ould
not trust himself to speak, but, turning sullenly on his heel, walked towar=
ds
the house.
"Wait a bit, Mr. Heigham," said Phil=
ip,
who had been watching the whole scene with secret delight. "You are
perfectly in the right. I will go and try to bring my cousin to his senses.=
I
am very thankful to your dog for killing that accursed brute."
He was away for about ten minutes, during which
Arthur took Aleck to a fountain there was in the centre of a grass plot in
front of the house, and washed his many wounds, none of which, however, wer=
e, thanks
to the looseness of his hide, very serious. Just as he had finished that
operation, a gardener arrived with a wheelbarrow to fetch away the deceased
Snarleyow.
"Lord, sir," he said to Arthur, &quo=
t;I
am glad to have the job of tucking up this here brute. He bit my missus last
week, and killed a whole clutch of early ducks. I seed the row through the
bushes. That 'ere dog of yours, sir, he did fight in proper style; I should
like to have a dog like he."
Just then the re-arrival of Philip put a stop =
to
the conversation. Drawing Arthur aside, he told him that George begged to
apologize for what had occurred, and hoped that he would not think of going
away.
"But," added Philip, with a little
laugh, "I don't pretend that he has taken a fancy to you, and, if I we=
re
you, I should cut my visit short."
"That is exactly my view of the case. I w=
ill
leave to-morrow evening."
Philip made no further remarks for a few momen=
ts.
He was evidently thinking. Presently he said,
"I see you have a fishing-rod amongst your
things; if you find the time hang heavy on your hands to-morrow, or wish to
keep out of the way, you had better come over to Bratham Lake and fish. The=
re
are some very large carp and perch there, and pike too, for the matter of t=
hat,
but they are out of season."
Arthur thanked him, and said that he should
probably come, and, having received instructions as to the road, they parte=
d,
Arthur to go and shut up Aleck in an outhouse pointed out to him by his fri=
end
the gardener, and thence to dress for a dinner that he looked forward to wi=
th
dread, and Philip to make his way home. As he passed up through the little
flower-garden at the Abbey House, he came across his daughter, picking the
blight from her shooting rose-trees.
"Angela," he said, "I am sorry =
if I
offended your prejudices this afternoon. Don't let us say anything more abo=
ut
it; but I want you to come and pay a formal call with me at Isleworth
to-morrow. It will only be civil that you should do so."
"I never paid a call in my life," she
answered, doubtfully, "and I don't want to call on my cousin George.&q=
uot;
"Oh! very well," and he began to move
on. She stopped him.
"I will go, if you like."
"At three o'clock, then. Oh! by the way,
don't be surprised if you see a young gentleman fishing here to-morrow.&quo=
t;
Angela reflected to herself that she had never=
yet
seen a young gentleman to speak to in her life, and then asked, with
undisguised interest, who he was.
"Well, he is a sort of connection of your
own, through the Prestons, who are cousins of ours, if any of them are left.
His mother was a Preston, and his name is Arthur Preston Heigham. George to=
ld
me something about him just now, and, on thinking it over, I remember the w=
hole
story. He is an orphan, and George's ward."
"What is he like?" asked Angela,
ingenuously.
"Really I don't know; rather tall, I thin=
k--a
gentlemanly fellow. It really is a relief to speak to a gentleman again. Th=
ere
has been a nice disturbance at Isleworth," and then he told his daught=
er
the history of the great dog fight.
"I should think Mr. Heigham was perfectly=
in
the right, and I should like to see his dog," was her comment on the
occurrence.
As Arthur dressed himself for dinner that even=
ing
he came to the conclusion that he disliked his host more than any man he ev=
er
saw, and, to say the truth, he descended into the dining-room with consider=
able
misgivings. Just as he entered, the opposite door opened, and Sir John Bell=
amy
was announced. On seeing him, George emerged from the sulky silence into wh=
ich
he was plunged, and advanced to meet him.
"Hullo, Bellamy! I must congratulate you =
upon
your accession to rank."
"Thank you, Caresfoot, thank you,"
replied Mr. Bellamy, who, with the exception that he had grown a size large=
r,
and boasted a bald patch on the top of his head that gave him something of a
appearance of a jolly little monk, looked very much the same as when we last
saw him as a newly married man.
"A kind Providence," he went on, rub=
bing
his dry hands, and glancing nervously under the chairs, "has put this
honour into my hands."
"A Providence in petticoats, you mean,&qu=
ot;
broke in George.
"Possibly, my dear Caresfoot; but I do not
see him. Is it possible that he is lurking yonder, behind the sofa?"
"Who on earth do you mean?"
"I mean that exceedingly fine dog of your=
s,
Snarleyow. Snarleyow, where are you? Excuse me for taking precautions, but =
last
time he put his head under my chair and bit me severely, as I dare say you =
remember."
Arthur groaned at hearing the subject thus bro=
ught
forward.
"Mr. Heigham's dog killed Snarleyow this
afternoon," said George, in a savage voice.
At this intelligence, Sir John's face became
wreathed in smiles.
"I am deeply delighted--I mean grieved--to
hear it. Poor Snarleyow! he was a charming dog; and to think that such a fa=
te
should have overtaken him, when it was only last week that he did the same =
kind
office for Anne's spaniel. Poor Snarleyow! you should really have him stuff=
ed.
But, my dear Caresfoot, you have not yet introduced me to the hero of the
evening, Mr. Heigham. Mr. Heigham, I am delighted to make your
acquaintance," and he shook hands with Arthur with gentle enthusiasm, =
as
though he were the last scion of a race that he had known and loved for
generations.
Presently dinner was announced, and the three =
sat
down at a small round table in the centre of the big dining-room, on which =
was
placed a shaded lamp. It was not a cheerful dinner. George, having said gra=
ce,
relapsed into moody silence, eating and drinking with gusto but in moderati=
on,
and savouring every sup of wine and morsel of food as though he regretted i=
ts
departure. He was not free from gluttony, but he was a judicious glutton. F=
or
his part, Arthur found a certain fascination in watching his guardian's red
head as he bobbed up and down opposite to him, and speculating on the thick=
ness
of each individual hair that contributed to give it such a spiky effect. Wh=
at had
his mother been like, he wondered, that she had started him in life with su=
ch
an entirely detestable countenance? Meanwhile he was replying in monosyllab=
les
to Sir John's gentle babblings, till at last even that gentleman's flow of
conversation ran dry, and Arthur was left free to contemplate the head in
solemn silence. As soon as the cloth had been cleared away, George suggested
that they had better get to work. Arthur assented, and Sir John, smiling wi=
th
much sweetness, remarked profoundly that business was one of the ills of li=
fe,
and must be attended to.
"At any rate, it is an ill that has agreed
uncommonly well with you," growled George, as, rising from the table, =
he
went to a solid iron safe that stood in the corner of the room, and, unlock=
ing
it with a small key that he took from his pocket, extracted a bundle of doc=
uments.
"That is an excellent deed-box of yours,
Caresfoot," said Sir John carelessly.
"Yes; that lock would not be very easy to
pick. It is made on my own design."
"But don't you find that small parcels su=
ch
as private letters are apt to get lost in it? It is so big."
"Oh! no; there is a separate compartment =
for
them. Now, Mr. Heigham." And then, with the able and benign assistance=
of
Sir John, he proceeded to utterly confuse and mystify Arthur, till stocks, =
preference-shares,
consols, and mortgages were all whirling in his bewildered brain. Having
satisfactorily reduced him to this condition, he suddenly sprang upon him t=
he
proposal he had in view with reference to the Jotley mortgage, pointing out=
to
him that it was an excellent investment, and strongly advising him, "a=
s a
friend," to leave the money upon the land. Arthur hesitated a little, =
more
from natural caution than anything he could urge to the contrary, and Georg=
e, noticing
it, said,
"It is only right that, before you come to
any decision, you should see the map of the estate, and a copy of the deed.=
I
have both in the next room, if you care to come and look at them."
Arthur assented, and they went off together; S=
ir
John, whose eyes appeared to be a little heavy under the influence of the p=
ort,
presuming that he was not wanted. But, no sooner had the door closed, than =
the
worthy knight proved himself very wide-awake. Indeed, he commenced a singul=
ar
course of action. Advancing on tiptoe to the safe in the corner of the room=
, he
closely inspected it through his eyeglass. Then he cautiously tried the lid=
of
an artfully contrived subdivision.
"Um!" he muttered, half aloud,
"that's where they are; I wish I had ten minutes."
Next he returned swiftly to the table, and, ta=
king
a piece of the soft bread which he was eating instead of biscuit with his w=
ine,
he rapidly kneaded it into dough, and, going to the safe, divided the mater=
ial into
two portions. One portion he carefully pressed upon the keyhole of the
subdivision, and then, extracting the key of the safe itself, took a very f=
air
impress of its wards on the other. This done, he carefully put the pieces of
dough in his breast-pocket in such a way that they were not likely to be
crushed, and, with a smile of satisfaction, returned to his chair, helped
himself to a glass of port, and dozed off.
"Hullo, Bellamy, gone to sleep! Wake up, =
man.
We have settled this business about the mortgage. Will you write to Mr. Bor=
ley,
and convey Mr. Heigham's decision? And perhaps"--addressing
Arthur--"you will do the same on your own account."
"Certainly I will write, Caresfoot; and n=
ow I
think that I must be off. Her ladyship does not like having to sit up for
me."
George laughed in a peculiarly insulting way.<= o:p>
"I don't think she would care much, Bella=
my,
if you stayed away all night. But look here, tell her I want to see her to-=
morrow;
don't forget."
Sir John bit his knightly lip, but answered,
smiling, that he would remember, and begging George not to ring, as his trap
was at the hall- door, and the servant waiting, he bade an affectionate
good-night to Arthur, to whom he expressed a hope that they would soon meet
again, and let himself out of the room. But, as soon as the door was closed=
, he
went through another performance exceedingly inappropriate in a knight. Tur=
ning
round, his smug face red with anger, he pirouetted on his toes, and shook h=
is
fist violently in the direction of the door.
"You scoundrel!" he said between his
teeth, "you have made a fool of me for twenty years, and I have been
obliged to grin and bear it; but I will be even with you yet, and her too, =
more
especially her."
So soon as Sir John had left, Arthur told his =
host
that, if the morning was fine, he proposed to go and fish in Bratham Lake, =
and
that he also proposed to take his departure by the last train on the follow=
ing
evening. To these propositions George offered no objection-- indeed, they w=
ere
distinctly agreeable to him, as lessening the time he would be forced to sp=
end
in the society of a guest he cordially detested, for such was the feeling t=
hat
he had conceived towards Arthur.
Then they parted for the night; but, before he
left the room, George went to lock up the safe that was still open in the
corner. Struck by some thought, he unlocked the separate compartment with a=
key
that hung on his watch-chain, and extracted therefrom a thick and neatly fo=
lded
packet of letters. Drawing out one or two, he glanced through them and repl=
aced
them.
"Oh! Lady Anne, Lady Anne," he said =
to
himself as he closed the case, "you are up in the world now, and you
aspire to rule the county society, and have both the wealth and the wit to =
do
it; but you must not kick over the traces, or I shall be forced to suppress
you, Lady Anne, though you are the wife of a Brummagem knight, and I think =
that
it is time you had a little reminder. You are growing a touch too independe=
nt."
Arthur's sleep was oppressed that night by
horrible nightmares of fighting dogs, whereof the largest and most ferocious
was fitted with George's red head, the effect of which, screwed, without any
eye to the fitness of things, to the body of the deceased Snarleyow, struck=
him
as peculiarly disagreeable. He himself was armed with a gun, and whilst he =
was
still arguing with Sir John Bellamy the nice point whether, should he execu=
te
that particular animal, as he felt a carnal longing to do, it would be
manslaughter or dogslaughter, he found himself wide awake.
It was very early in the morning of the 1st of
May, and, contrary to the usual experience of the inhabitants of these isla=
nds,
the sky gave promise of a particularly fine day, just the day for fishing. =
He
did not feel sleepy, and, had he done so, he had had enough of his doggy dr=
eams;
so he got up, dressed, and taking his fishing-rod, let himself out of the h=
ouse
as he had been instructed to do on the previous evening, and, releasing Ale=
ck
from his outhouse, proceeded towards Bratham Lake.
And about this time Angela woke up too, for she
always rose early, and ran to the window to see what sort of a day she had =
got
for her birthday. Seeing it to be so fine, she threw open the old lattice, =
at which
her pet raven Jack was already tapping to be admitted, and let the sweet air
play upon her face and neck, and thought what a wonderful thing it was to be
twenty years old. And then, kneeling by the window, she said her prayers af=
ter
her own fashion, thanking God who had spared her to see this day, and prayi=
ng
Him to show her what to do with her life, and, if it was His will, to make =
it a
little less lonely. Then she rose and dressed herself, feeling that now that
she had done with her teens, she was in every respect a woman grown-- indee=
d,
quite old. And, in honour of the event, she chose out of her scanty store of
dresses, all of them made by Pigott and herself, her very prettiest, the one
she had had for Sunday wear last summer, a tight-fitting robe of white stuf=
f,
with soft little frills round the neck and wrists. Next she put on a pair of
stout boots calculated to keep out the morning dew, and started off.
Now all this had taken a good time, nearly an =
hour
perhaps; for, being her birthday, and there having been some mention of a y=
oung
gentleman who might possibly come to fish, she had plaited up her shining h=
air with
extra care, a very laborious business when your hair hangs down to your kne=
es.
Meanwhile our other early riser, Arthur, had m=
ade his
way first to the foot of the lake and then along the little path that skirt=
ed
its area till he came to Caresfoot Staff. Having sufficiently admired that =
majestic
oak, for he was a great lover of timber, he proceeded to investigate the
surrounding water with the eye of a true fisherman. A few yards further up
there jutted into the water that fragment of wall on which stood the post, =
now
quite rotten, to which Angela had bound herself on the day of the great sto=
rm.
At his feet, too, the foundations of another wall ran out for some distance
into the lake, being, doubtless, the underpinning of an ancient boathouse, =
but
this did not rise out of the water, but stopped within six inches of the su=
rface.
Between these two walls lay a very deep pool.
"Just the place for a heavy fish,"
reflected Arthur, and, even as he thought it, he saw a five-pound carp rise
nearly to the surface, in order to clear the obstruction of the wall, and s=
ink
silently into the depths.
Retiring carefully to one of two quaintly carv=
en
stone blocks placed at the foot of the oak-tree, on which, doubtless, many a
monk had sat in meditation, he set himself to get his fishing-gear together=
. Presently,
however, struck by the beauty of the spot and its quiet, only broken by the
songs of many nesting birds, he stopped a while to look around him. Above h=
is
head the branches of a great oak, now clothing themselves with the most viv=
id
green, formed a dome-like roof, beneath the shade of which grew the softest
moss, starred here and there with primroses and violets. Outside the circle=
of
its shadow the brushwood of mingled hazel and ash-stubs rose thick and high=
, ringing-in
the little spot as with a wall, except where its depths were pierced by the
passage of a long green lane of limes that, unlike the shrubberies, appeare=
d to
be kept in careful order, and of which the arching boughs formed a perfect
leafy tunnel. Before him lay the lake where the long morning lights quivered
and danced, as its calm was now and again ruffled by a gentle breeze. The w=
hole
scene had a lovely and peaceful look, and, gazing on it, Arthur fell into a=
reverie.
Sitting thus dreamily, his face looked at its
best, its expression of gentle thoughtfulness giving it an attraction beyond
what it was entitled to, judged purely from a sculptor's point of view. It =
was
an intellectual face, a face that gave signs of great mental possibilities,=
but
for all that a little weak about the mouth. The brow indicated some degree =
of
power, and the mouth and eyes no small capacities for affection and all sor=
ts
of human sympathy and kindness. These last, in varying lights, could change=
as
often as the English climate; their groundwork, however, was blue, and they
were honest and bonny. In short, a man in looking at Arthur Heigham at the =
age
of twenty-four would have reflected that, even among English gentlemen, he =
was
remarkable for his gentleman-like appearance, and a "fellow one would =
like
to know;" a girl would have dubbed him "nice-looking;" and a
middle-aged woman--and most women do not really understand the immense
difference between men until they are getting on that way-- would have
recognized in him a young man by no means uninteresting, and one who might,
according to the circumstances of his life, develop into anything or--nothi=
ng
in particular.
Presently, drawn by some unguessed attraction,
Arthur took his eyes off an industrious water-hen, who was building a nest =
in a
hurried way, as though she were not quite sure of his intentions, and perce=
ived
a large raven standing on one leg on the grass, about three yards from him,=
and
peering at him comically out of one eye. This was odd. But his glance did n=
ot
stop at the raven, for a yard or two beyond it he caught sight of a white
skirt, and his eyes, travelling upwards, saw first a rounded waist, and the=
n a
bust and pair of shoulders such as few women can boast, and at last, another
pair of eyes; and he then and there fell utterly and irretrievably in love.=
"Good heavens!" he said, aloud--poor
fellow, he did not mean to say it, it was wrung from the depths of his
heart--"good heavens, how lovely she is!"
Let the reader imagine the dreadful confusion
produced in that other pair of eyes at the open expression of such a sentim=
ent,
and the vivid blush that stained the fair face in which they were set, if he
can. But somehow they did not grow angry--perhaps it was not in the nature =
of
the most sternly repressive young lady to grow angry at a compliment which,
however marked, was so evidently genuine and unpremeditated. In another mom=
ent
Arthur bethought him of what he had said, and it was his turn to blush. He
recovered himself pretty well, however. Rising from his stone seat, he took=
off
his hat, and said, humbly,
"I beg your pardon, but you startled me s=
o,
and really for a moment I thought that you were the spirit of the place,
or," he added, gracefully, pointing to a branch of half-opened hawthorn
bloom she held in her hand, "the original Queen of the May."
Angela blushed again. The compliment was only
implied this time; she had therefore no possible pretext for getting angry.=
For a moment she dropped the sweet eyes that
looked as though they were fresh from reading the truths of heaven before h=
is
gaze of unmistakable admiration, and stood confused; and, as she stood, it =
struck
Arthur that there was something more than mere beauty of form and feature a=
bout
her--an indescribable something, a glory of innocence, a reflection of God's
own light that tinged the worship her loveliness commanded with a touch of
reverential awe.
"The angels must look like that," he
thought. But he had no time to think any more, for next moment she had gath=
ered
up her courage in both her hands, and was speaking to him in a soft voice, =
of
which the tones went ringing on through all the changes of his life.
"My father told me that he had asked you =
to
come and fish, but I did not expect to meet you so early. I--I fear that I =
am
disturbing you," and she made as though she would be going.
Arthur felt that this was a contingency to be
prevented at all hazards.
"You are Miss Caresfoot," he said,
hurriedly, "are you not?"
"Yes--I am Angela; I need not ask your na=
me,
my father told it me. You are Mr. Arthur Heigham."
"Yes. And do you know that we are
cousins?" This was a slight exaggeration, but he was glad to advance a=
ny
plea to her confidence that occurred to him.
"Yes; my father said something about our
being related. I have no relations except my cousin George, and I am very g=
lad
to make the acquaintance of one," and she held out her hand to him in a
winning way.
He took it almost reverently.
"You cannot," he said with much
sincerity, "be more glad than I am. I, too, am without relations. Till
lately I had my mother, but she died last year."
"Were you very fond of her?" she ask=
ed,
softly.
He nodded in reply, and, feeling instinctively
that she was on delicate ground, Angela pursued the conversation no further=
.
Meanwhile Aleck had awoke from a comfortable s=
leep
in which he was indulging on the other stone seat, and, coming forward, sni=
ffed
at Angela and wagged his tail in approval--a liberty that was instantly res=
ented
by the big raven, who had now been joined by another not quite so large.
Advancing boldly, it pecked him sharply on the tail--a proceeding that caus=
ed
Master Aleck to jump round as quickly as his maimed condition would allow h=
im,
only to receive a still harder peck from its companion bird; indeed, it was=
not
until Angela intervened with the bough of hawthorn that they would cease fr=
om
their attack.
"They are such jealous creatures," s=
he
explained; "they always follow me about, and fly at every dog that com=
es
near me. Poor dog! that is the one, I suppose, who killed Snarleyow. My fat=
her
told me all about it."
"Yes, it is easy to see that," said
Arthur, laughing, and pointing to Aleck, who, indeed, was in lamentable cas=
e,
having one eye entirely closed, a large strip of plaster on his head, and a=
ll
the rest of his body more or less marked with bites. "It is an uncommo=
nly
awkward business for me, and your cousin will not forgive it in a hurry, I =
fancy;
but it really was not poor Aleck's fault--he is gentle as a lamb, if only h=
e is
let alone."
"He has a very honest face, though his no=
se
does look as though it were broken," she said, and, stooping down, she
patted the dog.
"But I must be going in to breakfast,&quo=
t;
she went on, presently. "It is eight o'clock; the sun always strikes t=
hat
bough at eight in spring," and she pointed to a dead limb, half hidden=
by
the budding foliage of the oak.
"You must observe closely to have noticed
that, but I do not think that the sun is quite on it yet. I do not like to =
lose
my new-found relations in such a hurry," he added, with a somewhat for=
ced
smile, "and I am to go away from here this evening."
The intelligence was evidently very little
satisfactory to Angela, nor did she attempt to conceal her concern.
"I am very sorry to hear that," she
said. "I hoped you were going to stay for some time."
"And so I might have, had it not been for
that brute Aleck, but he has put a long sojourn with your cousin and the gh=
ost
of Snarleyow out of the question; so I suppose I must go by the 6.20 train.=
At
any rate," he added, more brightly, as a thought struck him, "I m=
ust
go from Isleworth."
She did not appear to see the drift of the last
part of his remark, but answered,
"I am going with my father to call at
Isleworth at three this afternoon, so perhaps we shall meet again there; but
now, before I go in, I will show you a better place than this to fish, a li=
ttle
higher up, where Jakes, our gardener, always sets his night-lines."
Arthur assented, as he would have been glad to
assent to anything likely to prolong the interview, and they walked off slo=
wly
together, talking as cheerfully as a sense that the conversation must soon =
come
to an end would allow. The spot was reached all too soon, and Angela with
evident reluctance, for she was not accustomed to conceal her feelings, said
that she must now go.
"Why must you go so soon?"
"Well, to tell you the truth, to-day is my
birthday--I am twenty to-day--and I know that Pigott, my old nurse, means to
give me a little present at breakfast, and she will be dreadfully disappoin=
ted if
I am late. She has been thinking a great deal about it, you see."
"May I wish you many, very many, happy
returns of the day? and"--with a little hesitation--"may I also o=
ffer
you a present, a very worthless one I fear?"
"How can I----" stammered Angela, wh=
en
he cut her short.
"Don't be afraid; it is nothing tangible,
though it is something that you may not think worth accepting."
"What do you mean?" she said bluntly=
, for
her interest was aroused.
"Don't be angry. My present is only the o=
ffer
of myself as your sincere friend."
She blushed vividly as she answered,
"You are very kind. I have never had but =
one
friend--Mr. Fraser; but, if you think you can like me enough, it will make =
me
very happy to be your friend too." And in another second she was gone,
with her ravens flying after her, to receive her present and a jobation from
Pigott for being late, and to eat her breakfast with such appetite as an en=
tirely
new set of sensations can give.
In the garden she met her father, walking up a=
nd
down before the house, and informed him that she had been talking to Mr.
Heigham. He looked up with a curious expression of interest.
"Why did you not ask him in to
breakfast?" he said.
"Because there is nothing to eat except b=
read
and milk."
"Ah!--well, perhaps you were right. I wil=
l go
down and speak to him. No; I forgot I shall see him this afternoon."
And Arthur, let those who disbelieve in love at
first sight laugh if they will, sat down to think, trembling in every limb,
utterly shaken by the inrush of a new and strong emotion. He had not come to
the age of twenty-four without some experience of the other sex, but never =
before
had he known any such sensation as that which now overpowered him, never be=
fore
had he fully realized what solitude meant as he did now that she had left h=
im.
In youth, when love does come, he comes as a strong man armed.
And so, steady and overwhelming all resistance,
the full tide of a pure passion poured itself into his heart. There was no
pretence or make-believe about it; the bold that sped from Angela's grey ey=
es
had gone straight home, and would remain an "ever-fixed mark," so
long as life itself should last.
For only once in a lifetime does a man succumb
after this fashion. To many, indeed, no such fortune--call it good or ill--=
will
ever come, since the majority of men flirt or marry, indulge in "plato=
nic friendships,"
or in a consistent course of admiration of their neighbours' wives, as fate=
or fancy
leads them, and wear their time away without ever having known the meaning =
of
such love as this. There is no fixed rule about it; the most unlikely, even=
the
more sordid and contemptible of mankind, are liable to become the subjects =
of
an enduring passion; only then it raises them; for though strong affection,
especially, if unrequited, sometimes wears and enervates the mind, its
influence is, in the main, undoubtedly ennobling. But, though such affectio=
n is
bounded by no rule, it is curious to observe how generally true are the old
sayings which declare that a man's thoughts return to his first real love, =
as
naturally and unconsciously as the needle, that has for a while been drawn
aside by some overmastering influence, returns to its magnetic pole. The ne=
edle
has wavered, but it has never shaken off its allegiance; that would be agai=
nst
nature, and is therefore impossible; and so it is with the heart. It is the
eves that he loved as a lad which he sees through the gathering darkness of=
his
death-bed; it is a chance but that he will always adore the star which first
came to share his loneliness in this shadowed world above all the shining
multitudes in heaven.
And, though it is not every watcher who will f=
ind
it, early or late, that star may rise for him, as it did for Arthur now. A =
man
may meet a face which it is quite beyond his power to forget, and be touche=
d of
lips that print their kiss upon his very heart. Yes, the star may rise, to
pursue its course, perhaps beyond the ken of his horizon, or only to set ag=
ain
before he has learnt to understand its beauty-- rarely, very rarely, to shed
its perfect light upon him for all his time of watching. The star may rise =
and
set; the sweet lips whose touch still thrills him after so many years may l=
ie
to-day
"Beyond the graveyar=
d's
barren wall,"
or, w=
orse
still, have since been sold to some richer owner. But if once it has risen,=
if
once those lips have met, the memory must
remain; the Soul knows no forgetfu=
lness,
and, the little thread of life spun out, will it not claim its own? For the
compact that it has sealed is holy among holy things; that love which it has
given is of its own nature, and not of the body alone--it is inscrutable as
death, and everlasting as the heavens.
Yes, the fiat has gone forth; for good or for
evil, for comfort or for scorn, for the world and for eternity, he loves he=
r!
Henceforth that love, so lightly and yet so irredeemably given, will become=
the
guiding spirit of his inner life, rough-hewing his destinies, directing his
ends, and shooting its memories and hopes through the whole fabric of his b=
eing
like an interwoven thread of gold. He may sin against it, but he can never
forget it; other interests and ties may overlay it, but they cannot extingu=
ish
it; he may drown its fragrance in voluptuous scents, but, when these have
satiated and become hateful, it will re-arise, pure and sweet as ever. Time=
or separation
cannot destroy it--for it is immortal; use cannot stale it, pain can only
sanctify it. It will be to him as a beacon-light to the sea-worn mariner th=
at
tells of home and peace upon the shore, as a rainbow-promise set upon the s=
ky.
It alone of all things pertaining to him will defy the attacks of the consu=
ming
years, and when, old and withered, he lays him down to die, it will at last
present itself before his glazing eyes, an embodied joy, clad in shining ro=
bes,
and breathing the airs of Paradise!
For such is love to those to whom it has been
given to see him face to face.
Arthur did not do much fishing that morning;
indeed, he never so much as got his line into the water--he simply sat there
lost in dreams, and hoping in a vague way that Angela would come back again.
But she did not come back, though it would be difficult to say what prevent=
ed her;
for, had he but known it, she was for the space of a full hour sitting with=
in a
hundred yards of him, and occasionally peeping out to watch his mode of fis=
hing
with some curiosity. It was, she reflected, exceedingly unlike that practis=
ed
by Jakes. She, too, was wishing that he would detect her, and come to talk =
to
her; but, amongst other new sensations, she was now the victim of a most
unaccountable shyness, and could not make up her mind to reveal her
whereabouts.
At last Arthur awoke from his long reverie, and
remembered with a sudden pang that he had had nothing to eat since the prev=
ious
evening, and that he was consequently exceedingly hungry. He also discovere=
d, on
consulting his watch, that it was twelve o'clock, and, moreover, that he was
quite stiff from sitting so long in the same position. So, sighing to think
that such a vulgar necessity as that of obtaining food should force him to
depart, he put up his unused fishing-rod and started for Isleworth, where he
arrived just as the bell was ringing for lunch.
George received him with cold civility, and as=
ked
him what sport he had, to which he was forced to reply--none.
"Did you see anybody there?"
"Yes, I met Miss Caresfoot."
"Ah! trust a girl to trail out a man. Wha=
t is
she like? I remember her a raw-boned girl of fourteen with fine eyes."=
"I think that she is the handsomest woman=
I
ever saw," Arthur replied, coldly.
"Ah!" said George, with a rude little
laugh, "youth is always enthusiastic, especially when the object is of=
the
dairymaid cut."
There was something so intensely insolent in h=
is
host's way of talking that Arthur longed to throw a dish at him, but he
restrained his feelings, and dropped the subject.
"Let me see, you are only just home from
India, are you?" asked George, presently.
"I got back at the beginning of last
month."
"And what were you doing there?"
"Travelling about and shooting."
"Did you get much sport?"
"No, I was rather unfortunate, but I and
another fellow killed two tigers, and went after a rogue elephant; but he
nearly killed us. I got some very good ibix-shooting in Cashmere,
however."
"What do you intend to do with yourself n=
ow?
Your education has been extravagantly expensive, especially the Cambridge p=
art
of it. Are you going to turn it to any account?"
"Yes. I am going to travel for another ye=
ar,
and then read for the Bar. There is no particular object in being called too
young, and I wish to see something more of the world first."
"Ah! I see, idleness called by a fine
name."
"Really I cannot agree with you," sa=
id
Arthur, who was rapidly losing his temper.
"Of course you can't, but every man has a
right to choose his own road to the dogs. Come," he added, with a smil=
e of
malice, as he noticed Arthur's rising colour, "no need to get angry; y=
ou
see I stand in loco parentis , and=
feel
bound to express my opinion."
"I must congratulate you on the success w=
ith
which you assume the character," answered Arthur, now thoroughly put-o=
ut;
"but, as everything I have done or mean to do is so distasteful to you=
, I
think it is a pity that you did not give me the benefit of your advice a li=
ttle
sooner."
George's only answer was a laugh, and presently
the two parted, detesting each other more cordially than ever.
At half-past three, when George was still away,
for he had gone out with his bailiff immediately after lunch, Philip and his
daughter were shown into the drawing-room, where we may be sure Arthur was
awaiting them.
"Mr. Caresfoot is not back yet," said
Arthur, "but I do not suppose that he will be long."
"Oh! he will be here soon," said Phi=
lip,
"because I told him we were coming to call. What sort of sport did you
have? What, none! I am very sorry. You must come and try again--ah! I forgot
you are going away. by the way, Mr. Heigham, why should you go just yet? If=
you
are fond of fishing, and have nothing better to do, come and put up at the =
Abbey
House for a while; we are plain people, but there is plenty of room, and you
shall have a hearty welcome. Would you care to come?"
It would have been amusing to any outsider to
watch Angela's face as she heard this astounding proposition, for nobody had
been invited inside her father's doors within her recollection. It assumed
first of all a look of blank amazement, which was presently changed into on=
e of
absolute horror.
"Would he come, indeed?" reflected
Arthur. "Would he step into Paradise? would he accept the humble offer=
of
free quarters in the Garden of Eden?" Rapture beamed so visibly from e=
very
feature of his face that Philip saw it and smiled. Just as he was about to
accept with enthusiasm, he caught sight of Angela's look of distress. It ch=
illed
him like the sudden shock of cold water; she did not wish him to come, he
thought, she did not care for him. Obliged, however, to give an answer, he
said,
"I shall be delighted if"--and here =
he
bowed towards her--"Miss Caresfoot does not object."
"If father," broke in Angela, with
hesitation, "you could arrange that Mr. Heigham came to-morrow, not
to-day, it would be more convenient. I must get a room ready."
"Ah! domestic details; I had overlooked t=
hem.
I daresay you can manage that--eh, Heigham?"
"Oh! yes, easily, thank you."
As he said the words, the door was flung open,=
and
"Lady Bellamy" was announced with the energy that a footman always
devotes to the enunciation of a title, and next second a splendid creature,=
magnificently
dressed, sailed into the room.
"Ah! how do you do, Mr. Caresfoot?" =
she
said, in that low, rich voice that he remembered so well. "It is some =
time
since we met; indeed, it quite brings back old times to see you, when we we=
re
all young people together."
"At any rate, Lady Bellamy, you show no s=
igns
of age; indeed, if you will permit me to say so, you look more beautiful th=
an
ever."
"Ah! Mr. Caresfoot, you have not forgotten
how to be gallant, but let me tell you that it entirely depends upon what l=
ight
I am in. If you saw me in the midst of one of those newfangled electric
illuminations, you would see that I do look old; but what can one expect at
forty?" Here her glance fell upon Angela's face for the first time, and
she absolutely started; the great pupils of her eyes expanded, and a dark f=
rown
spread itself for a moment over her countenance. Next second it was gone.
"Is it possible that that beautiful girl is your daughter? But, rememb=
ering
her mother, I need not ask. Look at her, Mr. Caresfoot, and then look at me,
and say whether or not I look old. And who is the young man? Her lover, I
suppose--at any rate, he looks like it; but please introduce me."
"Angela," said Philip, crossing to t=
he
window where they were talking, "let me introduce you to Lady Bellamy.=
Mr.
Heigham--Lady Bellamy."
"I am delighted to make your acquaintance,
Miss Caresfoot, though I think it is very generous of me to say so."
Angela looked puzzled.
"Indeed!" she said.
"What! do you not guess why it is generou=
s?
Then look at yourself in the glass, and you will see. I used to have some
pretension to good looks, but I could never have stood beside you at the be=
st
of times, and now---- Your mother, even when I was at my best, always killed =
me
if I was in the same room with her, and you are even handsomer than your
mother."
Angela blushed very much at this unqualified
praise, and, putting it and the exclamation her appearance had that morning
wrung from Arthur together, she suddenly came to the conclusion--for, odd a=
s it
may seem, she had never before taken the matter into serious consideration =
--that
she must be very good-looking, a conclusion that made her feel extremely ha=
ppy,
she could not quite tell why.
It was whilst she was thus blushing and looking
her happiest and loveliest that George, returning from his walk, chanced to
look in at the window and see her, and, gradually drawn by the attraction of
her beauty, his eyes fixed themselves intently upon her, and his coarse fea=
tures
grew instinct with a mixture of hungry wickedness and delighted astonishmen=
t.
It was thus that Arthur and Lady Bellamy saw him. Philip, who was looking a=
t a
picture in the corner of the room, did not see him; nor, indeed, did Angela.
The look was unmistakable, and once more the dark frown settled upon Lady
Bellamy's brow, and the expanding pupils filled the heavy-lidded eyes. As f=
or
Arthur, it made him feel sick with unreasonable alarm.
Next minute George entered the room with a stu=
pid
smile upon his face, and looking as dazed as a bat that has suddenly been s=
hown
the sun. Angela's heaven-lit beauty had come upon his gross mind as a revel=
ation;
it fascinated him, he had lost his command over himself.
"Oh! here you are at last, George," =
said
Lady Bellamy--it was always her habit to call him George. "We have all
been like sheep without a shepherd, though I saw you keeping an eye on the
flock through the window."
George started. He did not know that he had be=
en
observed.
"I did not know that you were all here, o= r I would have been back sooner," he said, and then began to shake hands.<= o:p>
When he came to Angela, he favoured her with a
tender pressure of the fingers and an elaborate and high-flown speech of
welcome, both of which were inexpressibly disagreeable to her. But here Lady
Bellamy intervened, and skilfully forced him into a conversation with her, =
in which
Philip joined.
"What does Lady Bellamy remind you of?&qu=
ot;
Angela asked Arthur, as soon as the hum of talk made it improbable that they
would be overheard.
"Of an Egyptian sorceress, I think. Look =
at
the low, broad forehead, the curling hair, the full lips, and the inscrutab=
le
look of the face."
"To my mind she is an ideal of the Spirit=
of
Power. I am very much afraid of her, and, as for him"--nodding towards
George--"I dislike him even more than I was prepared to," and she
gave a little shudder. "By the way, Mr. Heigham, you really must not b=
e so
rash as to accept my father's invitation."
"If you do not wish to see me, of course =
I will
not," he answered, in a hurt and disappointed tone.
"Oh! it is not that, indeed; how could you
think so, when only this morning we agreed to be friends?"
"Well, what is it, then?" he asked,
blankly.
"Why, Mr. Heigham, the fact is that we--t=
hat
is, my old nurse and I, for my father is irregular in his meals, and always
takes them by himself--live so very plainly, and I am ashamed to ask you to
share our mode of life. For instance, we have nothing but bread and milk fo=
r breakfast;"
and the golden head sunk in some confusion before his amused gaze.
"Oh! is that all?" he said, cheerily.
"I am very fond of bread and milk."
"And then," went on Angela with her confession, "we never drink wine, and I know that gentlemen do."<= o:p>
"I am a teetotaller, so that does not
matter."
"Really?"
"Yes--really."
"But then, you know, my father shuts hims=
elf
up all day, so that you will have nobody but myself to talk to."
"Oh! never mind"--encouragingly. &qu=
ot;I
am sure that we shall get on."
"Well, if, in spite of all this and a gre=
at
deal more--ah! a very great deal that I have not time to tell you--you still
care to come, I will do my best to amuse you. At any rate, we can read
together; that will be something, if you don't find me too stupid. You must
remember that I have only had a private education, and have never been to c=
ollege
like you. I shall be glad of the opportunity of rubbing up my classics a
little; I have been neglecting them rather lately, and actually got into a =
mess
over a passage in Aristophanes that I shall ask you to clear up."
This was enough for Arthur, whose knowledge of=
the
classics was that of the ordinary University graduate; he turned the subject
with remarkable promptitude.
"Tell me," he said, looking her stra=
ight
in the face, "are you glad that I am coming?"
The grey eyes dropped a little before the bold=
ness
of his gaze, but she answered, unhesitatingly,
"Yes, for my own sake I am glad; but I fe=
ar
that you will find it very dull."
"Come, Angela, we must be off; I want to =
be
home by a quarter to six," said Philip just then.
She rose at once and shook hands with Arthur,
murmuring, "Good-by till to-morrow morning," and then with Lady
Bellamy.
George, meanwhile, with the most unwonted
hospitality, was pressing her father to stay to dinner, and, when he declin=
ed,
announcing his intention of coming over to see him on the morrow. At last he
got away, but not before Lady Bellamy had bid him a seemingly cordial adieu=
.
"You and your charming daughter must come=
and
see me at Rewtham House, when we get in. What, have you not heard that Sir =
John
has bought it from poor Maria Lee's executors?"
Philip turned pale as death, and hurried from =
the
room.
"It is good," reflected Lady Bellamy=
, as
she watched the effect of her shaft, "to let him know that I never
forget."
But, even when her father had gone, the path w=
as
still blocked to Angela.
"What!" said George, who was, when i=
n an
amiable mood, that worst of all cads, a jocose cad, "are you going to =
play
truant, too, my pretty cousin? Then first you must pay the penalty, not a v=
ery
heavy one, however." And he threw his long arm round her waist, and
prepared to give her a cousinly embrace.
At first Angela, not being accustomed to little
jokes of the sort, did not understand what his intentions were, but as soon=
as
she did, being an extremely powerful young woman, she soon put a stop to th=
em, shaking
George away from her so sharply by a little swing of her lithe body, that,
stumbling over a footstool in his rapid backward passage, he in a trice
measured his length upon the floor. Seeing what she had done, Angela turned=
and
fled after her father.
As for Arthur, the scene was too much for his
risible nerves, and he fairly roared with laughter, whilst even Lady Bellamy
went as near to it as she ever did.
George rose white with wrath.
"Mr. Heigham," he said, "I see
nothing to laugh at in an accident."
"Don't you?" replied Arthur. "I=
do;
it is just the most ludicrous accident that I ever saw."
George turned away muttering something that it=
was
perhaps as well his guest did not hear, and at once began to attack Lady
Bellamy.
"My dear George," was her rejoinder,
"let this little adventure teach you that it is not wise for middle-ag=
ed
men to indulge in gallantries towards young ladies, and especially young la=
dies
of thews and sinews. Good-night."
At the same moment the footman announced that =
the
dog-cart which Arthur had ordered was waiting for him.
"Good-by, Mr. Heigham, good-by," said
George, with angry sarcasm. "Within twenty-four hours you have killed =
my
favourite dog, taken offence at my well-meant advice, and ridiculed my
misfortune. If we should ever meet again, doubtless you will have further
surprises in store for me;" and, without giving Arthur time to make any
reply, he left the room.
Early on the day following Arthur's departure =
from
Isleworth, Lady Bellamy received a note from George requesting her, if
convenient, to come and see him that morning, as he had something rather
important to talk to her about.
"John," she said to her husband at
breakfast, "do you want the brougham this morning?"
"No. Why?"
"Because I am going over to Isleworth.&qu=
ot;
"Hadn't you better take the luggage-cart =
too,
and your luggage in it, and live there altogether? It would save trouble,
sending backwards and forwards," suggested her husband, with severe
sarcasm.
Lady Bellamy cut the top off an egg with a sin=
gle
clean stroke--all her movements were decisive--before she answered.
"I thought," she said, "that we=
had
done with that sort of nonsense some years ago; are you going to begin it
again?"
"Yes, Lady Bellamy, I am. I am not going =
to
stand being bullied and jeered at by that damned scoundrel Caresfoot any mo=
re.
I am not going to stand your eternal visits to him."
"You have stood them for twenty years; ra=
ther
late in the day to object now, isn't it?" she remarked, coolly, beginn=
ing
her egg.
"It is never too late to mend; it is not =
too
late for you to stop quietly at home and do your duty by your husband."=
;
"Most men would think that I had done my =
duty
by him pretty well. Twenty years ago you were nobody, and had, comparatively
speaking, nothing. Now you have a title and between three and four thousand=
a year.
Who have you to thank for that? Certainly not yourself."
"Curse the title and the money! I had rat=
her
be a poor devil of an attorney with a large family, and five hundred a year=
to
keep them on, than live the life I do between you and that vulgar beast
Caresfoot. It's a dog's life, not a man's;" and poor Bellamy was so
overcome at his real or imaginary wrongs that the tears actually rolled down
his puffy little face.
His wife surveyed him with some amusement.
"I think," she said, "that you =
are
a miserable creature."
"Perhaps I am, Anne; but I tell you what =
it
is, even a miserable creature can be driven too far. It may perhaps be worth
your while to be a little careful."
She cast one swift look at him, a look not wit=
hout
apprehension in it, for there was a ring about his voice that she did not l=
ike,
but his appearance was so ludicrously wretched that it reassured her. She f=
inished
her egg, and then, slowly driving the spoon through the shell, she said,
"Don't threaten, John; it is a bad habit,=
and
shows an un-Christian state of mind; besides, it might force me to cr-r-rush
you, in self- defence, you know;" and John and the egg-shell having
finally collapsed together, Lady Bellamy ordered the brougham.
Having thus sufficiently scourged her husband,=
she
departed in due course to visit her own taskmaster, little guessing what
awaited her at his hands. After all, there is a deal of poetic justice in t=
he world.
Little Smith, fresh from his mother's apron-strings, is savagely beaten by =
the
cock of the school, Jones, and to him Jones is an all-powerful, cruel devil,
placed above all possibility of retribution. If, however, little Smith could
see the omnipotent Jones being mentally ploughed and harrowed by his papa t=
he
clergyman, in celebration of the double event of his having missed a
scholarship and taken too much sherry, it is probable that his wounded feel=
ings
would be greatly soothed. Nor does it stop there. Robinson, the squire of t=
he
parish, takes it out of the Reverend Jones, and speaks ill of him to the
bishop, a Low Churchman, on the matter of vestments, and very shortly
afterwards Sir Buster Brown, the Chairman of the Quarter Sessions, expresses
his opinion pretty freely of Robinson in his magisterial capacity, only in =
his
turn to receive a most unexampled wigging from Her Majesty's judge, Baron
Muddlebone, for not showing him that respect he was accustomed to receive f=
rom
the High Sheriff of the county. And even over the august person of the judge
himself there hangs the fear of the only thing that he cannot commit for
contempt, public opinion. Justice! why, the world is full of it, only it is=
mostly
built upon a foundation of wrong.
Lady Bellamy found George sitting in the
dining-room beside the safe that had so greatly interested her husband. It =
was
open, and he was reading a selection from the bundle of letters which the
reader may remember having seen in his hands before.
"How do, Anne?" he said, without ris=
ing.
"You look very handsome this morning. I never saw a woman wear
better."
She vouchsafed no reply to his greeting, but
turned as pale as death.
"What!" she said, huskily, pointing =
with
her finger to the letters in his hand, "what are you doing with those
letters?"
"Bravo, Anne; quite tragic. What a Lady
Macbeth you would make! Come quote, 'All the perfumes of Araby will not swe=
eten
this little hand. Oh, oh, oh!' Go on."
"What are you doing with those letters?&q=
uot;
"Have you never broken a dog by showing h=
im
the whip, Anne? I have got something to ask of you, and I wish to get you i=
nto
a generous frame of mind first. Listen now, I am going to read you a few
extracts from a past that is so vividly recorded here."
She sank into a chair, hid her face in her han=
ds,
and groaned. George, whose own features betrayed a certain nervousness, too=
k a
yellow sheet of paper, and began to read.
"'Do you know how old I am to-day? Ninete=
en,
and I have been married a year and a half. Ah! what a happy lass I was befo=
re I
married; how they worshipped me in my old home! "Queen Anne," they
always called me. Well, they are dead now, and pray God they sleep so sound
that they can neither hear nor see. Yes, a year and a half--a year of happi=
ness,
half a year of hell; happiness whilst I did not know you, hell since I saw =
your
face. What secret spring of wickedness did you touch in my heart? I never h=
ad a
thought of wrong before you came. But when I first set eyes upon your face,=
I
felt some strange change come over me: I recognized my evil destiny. How you
discovered my fascination, how you led me on to evil, you best know. I am no
coward, I do not wish to excuse myself, but sometimes I think that you have=
much
to answer for, George. Hark, I hear my baby crying, my beautiful boy with h=
is
father's eyes. Do you know, I believe that the child has grown afraid of me=
: it
beats at me with its tiny hands. I think that my very dog dislikes me now. =
They
know me as I am; Nature tells them; everybody knows me except him . He will come in presently from vis=
iting
his sick and poor, and kiss me and call me his sweet wife, and I shall act =
the
living lie. Oh! God, I cannot bear it much longer----'
"There is more of the same sort,"
remarked George, coolly. "It affords a most interesting study of mental
anatomy, but I have no time to read more of it. We will pass on to
another."
Lady Bellamy did not move; she sat trembling a
little, her face buried in her hands.
He took up a second letter and began to read a
marked passage.
"'The die is cast, I will come; I can no
longer resist your influence; it grows stronger every day, and now it makes=
me
a murderess, for the shock will kill him. And yet I am tired of the sameness
and smallness of my life; my mind is too big to be cramped in such narrow
fetters.'
"That extract is really very funny,"
said George, critically. "But don't look depressed, Anne, I am only go=
ing
to trouble you with one more dated a year or so later. Listen.
"'I have several times seen the man you s=
ent
me; he is a fool and contemptible in appearance, and, worst of all, shows s=
igns
of falling in love with me; but, if you wish it, I will go through the marr=
iage
ceremony with him, poor little dupe! You will not marry me yourself, and I
would do more than that to keep near you; indeed, I have no choice, I must keep near you. I went to the Zoological
Gardens the other day and saw a rattlesnake fed upon a live rabbit; the poor
thing had ample room to run away in, but could not, it was fascinated, and =
sat
still and screamed. At last the snake struck it, and I thought that its eyes
looked like yours. I am as helpless as that poor animal, and you are much m=
ore
cruel than the snake. And yet my mind is infinitely stronger than your own =
in
every way. I cannot understand it. What is the source of your power over me?
But I am quite reckless now, so what does it matter? I will do anything that
does not put me within reach of the law. You know that my husband is dead. =
I knew <=
/span>that
he would die; he expired with my name upon his lips. The child, too, I hear,
died in a fit of croup; the nurse had gone out, and there was no one to look
after it. Upon my word, I may well be reckless, for there is no forgiveness=
for
such as you and I. As for little B----, as I think I told you, I will lead =
him
on and marry him: at any rate, I will make his fortune for him: I must devote myself to something, and ambition=
is
more absorbing than anything else--at least, I shall rise to something grea=
t.
Good-night; I don't know which aches most, my head or my heart.'
"Now that extract would be interesting
reading to Bellamy, would it not?"
Here she suddenly sprang forward and snatched =
at
the letter. But George was too quick for her; he flung it into the safe by =
his
side, and swung the heavy lid to.
"No, no, my dear Anne, that property is t=
oo
valuable to be parted with except for a consideration."
Her attempt frustrated, she dropped back into =
her
chair.
"What are you torturing me for?" she
asked, hoarsely. "Have you any object in dragging up the ghost of that
dead past, or is it merely for amusement."
"Did I not tell you that I had a favour to ask of you, and wished to get you into a proper frame of mind first?"<= o:p>
"A favour. You mean that you have some
wickedness in hand that you are too great a coward to execute yourself. Out
with it; I know you too well to be shocked."
"Oh, very well. You saw Angela Caresfoot,
Philip's daughter, here yesterday."
"Yes, I saw her."
"Very good. I mean to marry her, and you =
must
manage it for me."
Lady Bellamy sat quite still, and made no answ=
er.
"You will now," continued George,
relieved to find that he had not provoked the outburst he had expected,
"understand why I read you those extracts. I am thoroughly determined =
upon
marrying that girl at whatever cost, and I see very clearly that I shall no=
t be
able to do so without your help. With your help, the matter will be easy; f=
or
no obstacle, except the death of the girl herself, can prevail against your
iron determination and unbounded fertility of resource."
"And if I refuse?"
"I must have read those extracts to very
little purpose for you to talk about refusing. If you refuse, the pangs of
conscience will overcome me, and I shall feel obliged to place these letter=
s,
and more especially those referring to himself, in the hands of your husban=
d. Of
course it will, for my own sake, be unpleasant to me to have to do so, but I
can easily travel for a year or two till the talk has blown over. For you it
will be different. Bellamy has no cause to love you now; judge what he will
feel when he knows all the truth. He will scarcely keep the story to himsel=
f,
and, even were he to do so, it could easily be set about in other ways, and=
, in
either case, you will be a ruined woman, and all that you have toiled and
schemed for for twenty years will be snatched from you in an instant. If, on
the other hand, you do not refuse, and I cannot believe that you will, I wi=
ll
on my wedding-day burn these uncomfortable records before your eyes, or, if=
you
prefer it, you shall burn them yourself."
"You have only seen this girl once; is it
possible that you are in earnest in wishing to marry her?"
"Do you think that I should go through th=
is
scene by way of a joke? I never was so much in earnest in my life before. I=
am
in love with her, I tell you, as much in love as though I had known her for
years. What happened to you with reference to me has happened to me with
reference to her, or something very like it, and marry her I must and
will."
Lady Bellamy, as she heard these words, rose f=
rom
her chair and flung herself on the ground before him, clasping his knees wi=
th
her hands.
"Oh, George, George!" she cried, in a
broken voice, "have some little pity; do not force me to do this unnat=
ural
thing. Is your heart a stone, or are you altogether a devil, that by such c=
ruel
threats you can drive me into becoming the instrument of my own shame? I kn=
ow
what I am, none better: but for whose sake did I become so? Surely, George,=
I
have some claim on your compassion, if I have none on your love. Think agai=
n,
George; and, if you will not give her up, choose some other means to compass
this poor girl's ruin."
"Get up, Anne, and don't talk sentimental
rubbish. Not but what," he added, with a sneer, "it is rather amu=
sing
to hear you pitying your successful rival."
She sprang to her feet, all the softness and
entreaty gone from her face, which was instead now spread with her darkest =
and
most vindictive look.
" I pity her!" she said. "I hate h=
er.
Look you, if I have to do this, my only consolation will be in knowing that
what I do will drag my successor down below my own level. I suffer; she sha=
ll
suffer more; I know you a fiend, she shall find a whole hell with you; she =
is
purer and better than I have ever been; soon you shall make her worse than =
I have
dreamt of being. Her purity shall be dishonoured, her love betrayed, her li=
fe
reduced to such chaos that she shall cease to believe even in her God, and =
in
return for these things I will give her-- you . Your new plaything shall pa=
ss
through my mill, George Caresfoot, before ever she comes to yours; and on h=
er I
will repay with interest all that I have suffered at your hands;" and,
exhausted with the fierceness of her own invective and the violence of conf=
licting
passions, she sank back into her chair.
"Bravo, Anne! quite in your old style. I
daresay that the young lady will require a little moulding, and she could n=
ot
be in better hands; but mind, no tricks--I am not going to be cheated out o=
f my
bride."
"You need not fear, George; I shall not
murder her. I do not believe in violence; it is the last resort of fools. I=
f I
did, you would not be alive now."
George laughed a little uneasily.
"Well, we are good friends again, so ther=
e is
no need to talk of such things," he said. "The campaign will not =
be
by any means an easy one-- there are many obstacles in the way, and I don't
think that my intended has taken a particular fancy to me. You will have to
work for your letters, Anne; but first of all take a day or two to think it=
over,
and make a plan of the campaign. And now good-by; I have got a bad headache,
and am going to lie down."
She rose, and went without another word; but a=
ll
necessity for setting about her shameful task was soon postponed by news th=
at
reached her the next morning, to the effect that George Caresfoot was serio=
usly
ill.
The dog-cart that Arthur had hired to take him
away belonged to an old-fashioned inn in the parish of Rewtham, situated ab=
out
a mile from Rewtham House (which had just passed into the hands of the
Bellamys), and two from Bratham Abbey, and thither Arthur had himself drive=
n.
His Jehu, known through all the country round as "Old Sam," was an
ancient ostler, who had been in the service of the Rewtham "King's
Head," man and boy, for over fifty years, and from him Arthur collecte=
d a
good deal of inaccurate information about the Caresfoot family, including a=
garbled
version of all the death of Angela's mother and Philip's disinheritance.
After all, there are few more comfortable plac=
es
than an inn; not a huge London hotel, where you are known as No. 48, and ha=
ve
to lock the door of your cell when you come out of it, and deliver up your =
key
to the warder in the hall; but an old-fashioned country establishment where
they cook your breakfast exactly as you like it, and give you sound ale and=
a
four-poster. At least, so thought Arthur, as he sat in the private parlour
smoking his pipe and reflecting on the curious vicissitudes of existence. N=
ow,
here he was, with all the hopes and interests of his life utterly changed i=
n a
single space of six-and- twenty hours. Why, six-and-twenty hours ago, he had
never met his respected guardian, nor Sir John and Lady Bellamy, nor Philip=
and
his daughter. He could hardly believe that it was only that morning that he=
had
first seen Angela. It seemed weeks ago, and, if time could have been measur=
ed
on a new principle, by events and not by minutes, it would have been weeks.=
The
wheel of life, he thought, revolves with a strange irregularity. For months=
and
years it turns slowly and steadily under the even pressure of monotonous
events. But, on some unexpected day, a tide comes rushing down the stream of
being, and spins it round at speed; and then tears onward to the ocean call=
ed
the Past, leaving its plaything to creak and turn, to turn and creak, or wr=
ecked
perhaps and useless.
Thinking thus, Arthur made his way to bed. The
excitement of the day had wearied him, and for a while he slept soundly, bu=
t,
as the fatigue of the body wore off, the activity of his mind asserted itse=
lf,
and he began to dream vague, happy dreams of Angela, that by degrees took s=
hape
and form, till they stood out clear before the vision of his mind. He dreamt
that he and Angela were journeying, two such happy travellers, through the
green fields in summer, till by-and-by they came to the dark entrance of a
wood, into which they plunged, fearing nothing. Thicker grew the overshadow=
ing
branches, and darker grew the path, and now they journeyed lover-wise, with
their arms around each other. But, as they passed along, they came to a pla=
ce
where the paths forked, and here he stooped to kiss her. Already he could f=
eel
the thrill of her embrace, when she was swept from him by an unseen force, =
and
carried down the path before them, leaving him rooted where he was. But sti=
ll
he could trace her progress as she went, wringing her hands in sorrow; and
presently he saw the form of Lady Bellamy, robed as an Egyptian sorceress, =
and
holding a letter in her hand, which she offered to Angela, whispering in her
ear. She took it, and then in a second the letter turned to a great snake, =
with
George's head, that threw its coils around her and struck at her with its
fangs. Next, the darkness of night rushed down upon the scene, and out of t=
he
darkness came wild cries and mocking laughter, and the choking sounds of de=
ath.
And his senses left him.
When sight and sense came back, he dreamt that=
he
was still walking down a wooded lane, but the foliage of the overhanging tr=
ees
was of a richer green. The air was sweet with the scent of unknown flowers,=
beautiful
birds flitted around him, and from far-off came the murmur of the sea. And =
as
he travelled, broken-hearted, a fair woman with a gentle voice stood by his
side, and kissed and comforted him, till at length he grew weary of her kis=
ses,
and she left him, weeping, and he went on his way alone, seeking his lost
Angela. And then at length the path took a sudden turn, and he stood on the
shore of an illimitable ocean, over which brooded a strange light, as where=
"The quiet end of evening smiles=
Miles on miles."=
And t=
here,
with the soft light lingering on her hair, and tears of gladness in her eye=
s,
stood Angela, more lovely than before, her arms outstretched to greet him. =
And
then the night closed in, and he awoke.
His eyes opened upon the solemn and beautiful =
hour
of the first quickening of the dawn, and the thrill and softness that comes
from contact with the things we meet in sleep was still upon him. He got up=
and
flung open his lattice window. From the garden beneath rose the sweet scent=
of
May flowers, very different from that of his dream which yet lingered in his
nostrils, whilst from a neighbouring lilac- bush streamed the rich melody of
the nightingale. Presently it ceased before the broadening daylight, but in=
its
stead, pure and clear and cold, arose the notes of the mavis, giving tuneful
thanks and glory to its Maker. And, as he listened, a great calm stole upon=
his
spirit, and kneeling down there by the open window, with the breath of spri=
ng upon
his brow, and the voice of the happy birds within his ears, he prayed to the
Almighty with all his heart that it might please Him in His wise mercy to
verify his dream, inasmuch as he would be well content to suffer, if by
suffering he might at last attain to such an unutterable joy. And rising fr=
om
his knees, feeling better and stronger, he knew in some dim way that that
undertaking must be blest which, in such a solemn hour of the heart, he did=
not
fear to pray God to guide, to guard, and to consummate.
And on many an after-day, and in many another
place, the book of his life would reopen at this well-conned page, and he w=
ould
see the dim light in the faint, flushed sky, and hear the song of the thrus=
h swelling
upwards strong and sweet, and remember his prayer and the peace that fell u=
pon
his soul.
By ten o'clock that morning, Arthur, his dog, =
and
his portmanteau, had all arrived together in front of the Abbey House. Befo=
re
his feet had touched the moss-grown gravel, the hall-door was flung open, a=
nd Angela
appeared to welcome him, looking, as old Sam the ostler forcibly put it
afterwards to his helper, "just like a hangel with the wings off."
Jakes, too, emerged from the recesses of the garden, and asked Angela, in a
tone of aggrieved sarcasm, as he edged his way suspiciously past Aleck, why=
the
gentleman had not brought the "rampingest lion from the Zoologic
Gardens" with him at once? Having thus expressed his feelings on the
subject of bull-dogs, he shouldered the portmanteau, and made his way with =
it
upstairs. Arthur followed him up the wide oak stairs, every one of which was
squared out of a single log, stopping for a while on the landing, where the
staircase turned, to gaze at the stern-faced picture that hung so that it
looked through the large window facing it, right across the park and over t=
he whole
stretch of the Abbey lands, and to wonder at the deep-graved inscription of
"Devil Caresfoot" set so conspicuously beneath.
His room was the largest upon the first landin=
g,
and the same in which Angela's mother had died. It had never been used from
that hour to this, and, indeed, in a little recess or open space between a
cupboard and the wall, there still stood two trestles, draped with rotten b=
lack
cloth, that had originally been brought there to rest her coffin on, and wh=
ich
Angela had overlooked in getting the room ready.
This spacious but somewhat gloomy apartment was
hung round with portraits of the Caresfoots of past ages, many of which bor=
e a
marked resemblance to Philip, but amongst whom he looked in vain for one in=
the
slightest degree like Angela, whose handiwork he recognized in two large bo=
wls
of flowers placed upon the dark oak dressing-table.
Just as Jakes had finished unbuckling his
portmanteau, a task that he had undertaken with some groaning, and was
departing in haste, lest he should be asked to do something else, Arthur ca=
ught
sight of the trestles.
"What are those?" he asked, cheerful=
ly.
"Coffin-stools," was the abrupt repl=
y.
"Coffin-stools!" ejaculated Arthur,
feeling that it was unpleasant to have little details connected with one's
latter end brought thus abruptly into notice. "What the deuce are they
doing here?"
"Brought to put the last as slept in that
'ere bed on, and stood ever since."
"Don't you think," insinuated Arthur,
gently, "that you had better take them away?"
"Can't do so; they be part of the furnitu=
re,
they be--stand there all handy for the next one, too, maybe you;" and =
he
vanished with a sardonic grin.
Jakes did not submit to the indignities of
unbuckling portmanteaus and having his legs sniffed at by bull-dogs for
nothing. Not by any means pleased by suggestions so unpleasant, Arthur took=
his
way downstairs, determined to renew the coffin-stool question with his host=
. He
found Angela waiting for him in the hall, and making friends with Aleck.
"Will you come in and see my father for a
minute before we go out?" she said.
Arthur assented, and she led the way into the
study, where Philip always sat, the same room in which his father had died.=
He
was sitting at a writing-table as usual, at work on farm accounts. Rising, =
he greeted
Arthur civilly, taking, however, no notice of his daughter, although he had=
not
seen her since the previous day.
"Well, Heigham, so you have made up your =
mind
to brave these barbarous wilds, have you? I am delighted to see you, but I =
must
warn you that, beyond a pipe and a glass of grog in the evening, I have not
much time to put at your disposal. We are rather a curious household. I don=
't know
whether Angela has told you, but for one thing we do not take our meals
together, so you will have to make your choice between the dining-room and =
the
nursery, for my daughter is not out of the nursery yet;" and he gave a
little laugh. "On the whole, perhaps you had better be relegated to the
nursery; it will, at any rate, be more amusing to you that the society of a
morose old fellow like myself. And, besides, I am very irregular in my habi=
ts.
Angela, you are staring at me again; I should be so very much obliged if you
would look the other way. I only hope, Heigham, that old Pigott won't talk =
your
head off; she has got a dreadful tongue. Well, don't let me keep you any
longer; it is a lovely day for the time of year. Try to amuse yourself some=
how,
and I hope for your sake that Angela will not occupy herself with you as she
does with me, by staring as though she wished to examine your brains and
backbone. Good-by for the present."
"What does he mean?" asked Arthur, as
soon as they were fairly outside the door, "about your staring at
him?"
"Mean!" answered poor Angela, who lo=
oked
as though she were going to cry. "I wish I could tell you; all I know =
is
that he cannot bear me to look at him--he is always complaining of it. That=
is
why we do not take our meals together--at least, I believe it is. He detest=
s my
being near him. I am sure I don't know why; it makes me very unhappy. I can=
not
see anything different in my eyes from anybody else's, can you?" and s=
he
turned them, swimming as they were with tears of mortification, full upon A=
rthur.
He scrutinized their depths very closely, so
closely indeed, that presently she turned them away again with a blush.
"Well," she said, "I am sure you
have looked long enough. Are they different?"
"Very different," replied the oracle,
with enthusiasm.
"How?"
"Well, they--they are larger."
"Is that all?"
"And they are deeper."
"Deeper--that is nothing. I want to know =
if
they produce any unpleasant effect upon you--different from other people's
eyes, I mean?"
"Well, if you ask me, I am afraid that yo=
ur
eyes do produce a strange effect upon me, but I cannot say that it is an
unpleasant one. But you did not look long enough for me to form a really so=
und
opinion. Let us try again."
"No, I will not; and I do believe that you
are laughing at me. I think that is very unkind;" and she marched on in
silence.
"Don't be angry with me, or I shall be
miserable. I really was not laughing at you; only, if you knew what wonderf=
ul
eyes you have got, you would not ask such ridiculous questions about them. =
Your
father must be a strange man to get such ideas. I am sure I should be delig=
hted
if you would look at me all day long. But tell me something more about your
father: he interests me very much."
Angela felt the tell-tale blood rise to her fa=
ce
as he praised her eyes, and bit her lips with vexation; it seemed to her th=
at
she had suddenly caught an epidemic of blushing.
"I cannot tell you very much about my fat=
her,
because I do not know much; his life is, to a great extent, a sealed book to
me. But they say that once he was a very different man, when he was quite
young, I mean. But all of a sudden his father--my grand-father, you know--w=
hose
picture is on the stairs, died, and within a day or two my mother died too;
that was when I was born. After that he broke down, and became what he is n=
ow.
For twenty years he has lived as he does now, poring all day over books of
accounts, and very rarely seeing anybody, for he does all his business by
letter, or nearly all of it, and he has no friends. There was some story ab=
out
his being engaged to a lady who lived at Rewtham when he married my mother,
which I daresay you have heard; but I don't know much about it. But, Mr.
Heigham"--and here she dropped her voice--"there is one thing tha=
t I
must warn you of: my father has strange fancies at times. He is dreadfully
superstitious, and thinks that he has communications with beings from anoth=
er
world. I believe that it is all nonsense, but I tell you so that you may no=
t be
surprised at anything he says or does. He is not a happy man, Mr. Heigham.&=
quot;
"Apparently not. I cannot imagine any one
being happy who is superstitious; it is the most dreadful bondage in the
world."
"Where are your ravens to-day?" asked
Arthur, presently.
"I don't know; I have not seen very much =
of
them for the last week or two. They have made a nest in one of the big tree=
s at
the back of the house, and I daresay that they are there, or perhaps they a=
re
hunting for their food--they always feed themselves. But I will soon tell y=
ou,"
and she whistled in a soft but penetrating note.
Next minute there was a swoop of wings, and the
largest raven, after hovering over her for a minute, lit upon her shoulder,=
and
rubbed his black head against her face.
"This is Jack, you see; I expect that Jil=
l is
busy sitting on her eggs. Fly away, Jack, and look after your wife." S=
he
clapped her hands, and the great bird, giving a reproachful croak, spread h=
is wings,
and was gone.
"You have a strange power over animals to
make those birds so fond of you."
"Do you think so? It is only because I ha=
ve,
living as I do quite alone, had time to study all their ways, and make frie=
nds
of them. Do you see that thrush there? I know him well; I fed him during the
frost last winter. If you will stand back with the dog, you shall see."=
;
Arthur hid himself behind a thick bush and
watched. Angela whistled again, but in another note, with a curious result.=
Not
only the thrush in question, but quite a dozen other birds of different sor=
ts
and sizes, came flying round her, some settling at her feet, and one, a lit=
tle
robin, actually perching itself upon her hat. Presently she dismissed them =
as
she had done the raven, by clapping her hands, and came back to Arthur.
"In the winter time," she said, &quo=
t;I
could show you more curious things than that."
"I think that you are a witch," said
Arthur, who was astounded at the sight.
She laughed as she answered,
"The only witchery that I use is
kindness."
Pigott, Angela's old nurse, was by no means so=
rry
to hear of Arthur's visit to the Abbey House, though, having in her youth b=
een
a servant in good houses, she was distressed at the nature of his reception=
. But,
putting this aside, she thought it high time that her darling should see a
young man or two, that she might "learn what the world was like."
Pigott was no believer in female celibacy, and Angela's future was a freque=
nt
subject of meditation with her, for she knew very well that her present mod=
e of
life was scarcely suited either to her birth, her beauty, or her capabiliti=
es.
Not that she ever, in her highest flights, imagined Angela as a great lady,=
or
one of society's shining stars; she loved to picture her in some quiet, hap=
py
home, beloved by her husband, and surrounded by children as beautiful as he=
rself.
It was but a moderate ambition for one so peerlessly endowed, but she would
have been glad to see it fulfilled. For of late years there had sprung up in
nurse Pigott's mind an increasing dislike of her surroundings, which someti=
mes
almost amounted to a feeling of horror. Philip she had always detested, with
his preoccupied air and uncanny ways.
"There must," she would say, "be
something wicked about a man as is afraid to have his own bonny daughter lo=
ok
him in the face, to say nothing of his being that mean as to grudge her the
clothes on her back, and make her live worse nor a servant-girl."
Having, therefore, by a quiet peep through the
curtains, ascertained that he was nice-looking and about the right age, Pig=
ott
confessed to herself that she was heartily glad of Arthur's arrival, and
determined that, should she take to him on further acquaintance, he should =
find
a warm ally in her in any advances he might choose to make on the fortress =
of
Angela's affections.
"I do so hope that you don't mind dining =
at
half-past twelve, and with my old nurse," Angela said, as they went
together up the stairs to the room they used as a dining-room.
"Of course I don't--I like it, really I
do."
Angela shook her head, and, looking but partia=
lly
convinced, led the way down the passage, and into the room, where, to her
astonishment, she perceived that the dinner-table was furnished with a more=
sumptuous
meal than she had seen upon it for years, the fact being that Pigott had
received orders from Philip which she did not know of, not to spare expense
whilst Arthur was his guest.
"What waste," reflected Angela, in w=
hom
the pressure of circumstances had developed an economical turn of mind, as =
she
glanced at the unaccustomed jug of beer. "He said he was a
teetotaller."
A loud "hem!" from Pigott, arresting=
her
attention, stopped all further consideration of the matter. That good lady,
who, in honour of the occasion, was dressed in a black gown of a formidable
character and a many-ribboned cap, was standing up behind her chair waiting=
to be
introduced to the visitor. Angela proceeded to go through the ceremony which
Pigott's straight-up-and-down attitude rendered rather trying.
"Nurse, this is the gentleman that my fat=
her
has asked to stay with us. Mr. Heigham, let me introduce you to my old nurse
Pigott."
Arthur bowed politely, whilst Pigott made two
obligatory curtsies, requiring a step backwards after each, as though to ma=
ke
room for another. Her speech, too, carefully prepared for the occasion, is =
worthy
of transcription.
"Hem!" she said, "this, sir, is=
a pleasure
as I little expected, and I well knows that it is not what you or the likes=
is
accustomed to, a-eating of dinners and teas with old women; which I hopes, =
sir,
how as you will put up with it, seeing how as the habits of this house is w=
hat
might, without mistake, be called peculiar, which I says without any offenc=
e to
Miss Angela, 'cause though her bringing-up has been what I call odd, she kn=
ows
it as well as I do, which, indeed, is the only consolation I has to offer,
being right sure, as indeed I am, how as any young gentleman as ever breath=
ed
would sit in a pool of water to dine along with Miss Angela, let alone an o=
ld
nurse. I ain't such a fool as I may look; no need for you to go a-blushing =
of,
Miss Angela. And now, sir, if you please, we will sit down, for fear lest t=
he
gravy should begin to grease;" and, utterly exhausted by the exuberanc=
e of
her own verbosity, she plunged into her chair--an example which Arthur, bow=
ing
his acknowledgements of her opening address, was not slow to follow.
One of his first acts was, at Pigott's invitat=
ion,
to help himself to a glass of beer, of which, to speak truth, he drank a go=
od
deal.
Angela watched the proceeding with interest.
"What," she asked presently, "i=
s a
teetotaller?"
The recollection of his statement of the previ=
ous
day flashed into his mind. He was, however, equal to the occasion.
"A teetotaller," he replied, with
gravity, "is a person who only drinks beer," and Angela, the appa=
rent
discrepancy explained, retired satisfied.
That was a very pleasant dinner. What a thing =
it
is to be young and in love! How it gilds the dull gingerbread of life; what=
new
capacities of enjoyment it opens up to us, and, for the matter of that, of =
pain
also; and oh! what stupendous fools it makes of us in everybody else's eyes
except our own, and, if we are lucky, those of our adored!
The afternoon and evening passed much as the
morning had done. Angela took Arthur round the place, and showed him all the
spots connected with her strange and lonely childhood, of which she told him
many a curious story. In fact, before the day was over, he knew all the his=
tory
of her innocent life, and was struck with amazement at the variety and dept=
h of
her scholastic acquirements and the extraordinary power of her mind, which,
combined with her simplicity and total ignorance of the ways of the world,
produced an affect as charming as it was unusual. Needless to say that every
hour he knew her he fell more deeply in love with her.
At length, about eight o'clock, just as it was
beginning to get dark, she suggested that he should go and sit a while with=
her
father.
"And what are you going to do?" asked
Arthur.
"Oh! I am going to read a little, and the=
n go
to bed; I always go to bed about nine;" and she held out her hand to s=
ay
good-night. He took it and said,
"Good-night, then; I wish it were
to-morrow."
"Why?"
"Because then I should be saying,
'Good-morning, Angela,' instead of 'Good-night, Angela,' May I call you Ang=
ela?
We seem to know each other so well, you see."
"Yes, of course," she laughed back;
"everybody I know calls me Angela, so why shouldn't you?"
"And will you call me Arthur? Everybody I
know calls me Arthur."
Angela hesitated, and Angela blushed, though w=
hy
she hesitated and why she blushed was perhaps more than she could have exac=
tly
said.
"Y-e-s, I suppose so--that is, if you like
it. It is a pretty name, Arthur. Good-night, Arthur," and she was gone=
.
His companion gone, Arthur turned and entered =
the
house. The study- door was open, so he went straight in. Philip, who was
sitting and staring in an abstracted way at the empty fireplace with a ligh=
t behind
him, turned quickly round as he heard the footstep.
"Oh! it's you, is it, Heigham? I suppose
Angela has gone upstairs; she goes to roost very early. I hope that she has=
not
bored you, and that old Pigott hasn't talked your head off. I told you that=
we
were an odd lot, you know; but, if you find us odder than you bargained for=
, I should
advise you to clear out."
"Thank you, I have spent a very happy
day."
"Indeed, I am glad to hear it. You must be
easily satisfied, have an Arcadian mind, and that sort of thing. Take some
whisky, and light your pipe."
Arthur did so, and presently Philip, in that t=
one
of gentlemanly ease which above everything distinguished him from his cousi=
n,
led the conversation round to his guest's prospects and affairs, more espec=
ially
his money affairs. Arthur answered him frankly enough, but this money talk =
had
not the same charms for him that it had for his host. Indeed, a marked
repugnance to everything that had to do with money was one of his
characteristics; and, wearied out at length with pecuniary details and endl=
ess
researches into the mysteries of investment, he took advantage of a pause to
attempt to change the subject.
"Well," he said, "I am much obl=
iged
to you for your advice, for I am very ignorant myself, and hate anything to=
do
with money. I go back to first principles, and believe that we should all be
better without it."
"I always thought," answered Philip,
with a semi-contemptuous smile, "that the desire of money, or, amongst
savage races, its equivalent, shells or what not, was the first principle of human nature."
"Perhaps it is--I really don't know; but I heartily wish that it could be eliminated off the face of the earth."<= o:p>
"Forgive me," laughed Philip, "=
but
that is the speech of a very young man. Why, eliminate money, and you take =
away
the principal interest of life, and destroy the social fabric of the world.
What is power but money, comfort?--money, social consideration?--money, ay,=
and
love, and health, and happiness itself? Money, money, money. Tell me,"=
he went
on, rising, and addressing him with a curious earnestness, "what god is
there more worthy of our adoration than Plutus, seeing that, if we worship =
him
enough, he alone of the idols we set in high places, will never fail us at
need?"
"It is a worship that rarely brings lasti=
ng
happiness with it. In our greed to collect the means of enjoyment, surely we
lose the power to enjoy?"
"Pshaw! that is the cant of fools, of tho=
se
who do not know, of those who cannot feel. But I know and I feel, and I tell
you that it is not so. The collection of those means is in itself a pleasur=
e,
because it gives a consciousness of power. Don't talk to me of Fate; that s=
overeign"
(throwing the coin on to the table) "is Fate's own seal. You see me, f=
or
instance, apparently poor and helpless, a social pariah, one to be avoided,=
and
even insulted. Good; before long these will right all that for me. I shall =
by
their help be powerful and courted yet. Ay, believe me, Heigham, money is a
living moving force; leave it still, and it accumulates; expend it, and it
gratifies every wish; save it, and that is best of all, and you hold in your
hand a lever that will lift the world. I tell you that there is no height t=
o which
it cannot bring you, no gulf it will not bridge you."
"Except," soliloquized Arthur, "=
;the
cliffs of the Hereafter, and--the grave."
His words produced a curious effect. Philip's
eloquence broke off short, and for a moment a great fear crept into his eye=
s.
Silence ensued which neither of them seemed to
care to break. Meanwhile the wind suddenly sprang up, and began to moan and
sigh amongst the half-clad boughs of the trees outside--making, Arthur thou=
ght
to himself, a very melancholy music. Presently Philip laid his hand upon his
guest's arm, and he felt that it shook like an aspen- leaf.
"Tell me," he said, in a hoarse whis=
per,
"what do you see there?"
Arthur started, and followed the direction of =
his
eyes to the bare wall opposite the window, at that end of the room through
which the door was made.
"I see," he said, "some moving
shadows."
"What do they resemble?"
"I don't know; nothing in particular. What
are they?"
"What are they?" hissed Philip, whose
face was livid with terror, "they are the shades of the dead sent here=
to
torture me. Look, she goes to meet him; the old man is telling her. Now she
will wring her hands."
"Nonsense, Mr. Caresfoot, nonsense," said Arthur, shaking himself together; "I see nothing of the sort. Why= , it is only the shadows flung by the moonlight through the swinging boughs of t= hat tree. Cut it down, and you will have no more writing upon your wall."<= o:p>
"Ah! of course you are right, Heigham, qu=
ite
right," ejaculated his host, faintly, wiping the cold sweat from his b=
row;
"it is nothing but the moonlight. How ridiculous of me! I suppose I am=
a
little out of sorts--liver wrong. Give me some whisky, there's a good fello=
w,
and I'll drink damnation to all the shadows and the trees that throw them . Ha, ha, ha!&=
quot;
There was something so uncanny about his host's
manner, and his evident conviction of the origin of the wavering figures on=
the
wall (which had now disappeared), that Arthur felt, had it not been for Ang=
ela,
he would not be sorry to get clear of him and his shadows as soon as possib=
le,
for superstition, he knew, is as contagious as small-pox. When at length he
reached his great bare bed-chamber, not, by the way, a comfortable sort of
place to sleep in after such an experience, it was only after some hours, in
the excited state of his imagination, that, tired though he was, he could g=
et
the rest he needed.
Next morning, when they met at their eight o'c=
lock
breakfast, Arthur noticed that Angela was distressed about something.
"There is bad news," she said, almost
before he greeted her; "my cousin George is very ill with typhus
fever."
"Indeed!" remarked Arthur, rather
coolly.
"Well, I must say it does not appear to
distress you very much."
"No, I can't say it does. To be honest, I=
detest
your cousin, and I don't care if he is ill or not; there."
As she appeared to have no reply ready, the
subject then dropped.
After breakfast Angela proposed that they shou=
ld
walk--for the day was again fine--to the top of a hill about a mile away, w=
hence
a view of the surrounding country could be obtained. He consented, and on t=
he way
told her of his curious experiences with her father on the previous night. =
She
listened attentively, and, when he had finished, shook her head.
"There is," she said, "something
about my father that separates him from everybody else. His life never comes
out into the sunlight of the passing day, it always gropes along in the sha=
dow
of some gloomy past. What the mystery is that envelops him I neither know n=
or
care to inquire; but I am sure that there is one."
"How do you explain the shadows?"
"I believe your explanation is right; they
are, under certain conditions of light, thrown by a tree that grows some
distance off. I have seen something that looks like figures on that wall my=
self
in full daylight. That he should interpret such a simple thing as he does s=
hows
a curious state of mind."
"You do not think, then," said Arthu=
r,
in order to draw her out, "that it is possible, after all, he was righ=
t,
and that they were something from another place? The reality of his terror =
was
almost enough to make one believe in them, I can tell you."
"No, I do not," answered Angela, aft=
er a
minute's thought. "I have no doubt that the veil between ourselves and=
the
unseen world is thinner than we think. I believe, too, that communication, =
and
even warnings sometimes, under favourable conditions, or when the veil is w=
orn
thin by trouble or prayer, can pass from the other world to ourselves. But =
the
very fact of my father's terror proves to me that his shadows are nothing of
the sort, for it is hardly possible that spirits can be permitted to come to
terrify us poor mortals; if they come at all, it is in love and gentleness,=
to
comfort or to warn, and not to work upon our superstitions."
"You speak as though you knew all about i=
t;
you should join the new Ghost Society," he answered, irreverently, sit=
ting
himself down on a fallen tree, an example that she followed.
"I have thought about it sometimes, that =
is
all, and, so far as I have read, I think that my belief is a common one, and
what the Bible teaches us; but, if you will not think me foolish, I will te=
ll
you something that confirms me in it. You know that my mother died when I w=
as
born; well, it may seem strange to you, but I am convinced that she is
sometimes very near me."
"Do you mean that you see or hear her?&qu=
ot;
"No, I only feel her presence; more rarely
now, I am sorry to say, as I grow older."
"How do you mean?"
"I can hardly explain what I mean, but
sometimes--it may be at night, or when I am sitting alone in the daytime--a
great calm comes upon me, and I am a changed woman. All my thoughts rise in=
to a
higher, purer air, and are, as it were, tinged with a reflected light;
everything earthly seems to pass away from me, and I feel as though fetters=
had
fallen from my soul, and I know that I am near my mother. Then everything
passes, and I am left myself again."
"And what are the thoughts you have at th=
ese
times?"
"Ah! I wish I could tell you; they pass a=
way
with her who brought them, leaving nothing but a vague after-glow in my mind
like that in the sky after the sun has set. But now look at the view; is it=
not
beautiful in the sunlight? All the world seems to be rejoicing."
Angela was right; the view was charming. Below=
lay
the thatched roofs of the little village of Bratham, and to the right the
waters of the lake shone like silver in the glancing sunlight, whilst the
gables of the old house, peeping out from amongst the budding foliage, look=
ed very
picturesque. The spring had cast her green garment over the land; from every
copse rang out the melody of birds, and the gentle breeze was heavy with the
scent of the unnumbered violets that starred the mossy carpet at their feet=
. In
the fields where grew the wheat and clover, now springing into lusty life, =
the
busy weeders were at work, and on the warm brown fallows the sower went for=
th
to sow. From the early pastures beneath, where purled a little brook, there
came a pleasant lowing of kine, well-contented with the new grass, and a ch=
eerful
bleating of lambs, to whom as yet life was nothing but one long skip. It wa=
s a
charming scene, and its influence sank deep into the gazers' hearts.
"It is depressing to think," said
Arthur, rather sententiously, but really chiefly with the object of getting=
at
his companion's views, "that all this cannot last, but is, as it were,
like ourselves, under sentence of death."
"It rose and fel=
l and
fleeted Upon e=
arth's
troubled sea, =
A wave
that swells to vanish Into eternity. Oh! mystery and wond=
er Of wings that cannot=
fly, Of ears that cannot
hearken, Of li=
fe
that lives--to die!"
quoth Angela, by way of comment.
"Whose lines are those?" asked Arthu=
r.
"I don't know them."
"My own," she said, shyly; "that
is, they are a translation of a verse of a Greek ode I wrote for Mr. Fraser=
. I
will say you the original, if you like; I think it better than the translat=
ion,
and I believe that it is fair Greek."
"Thank you, thank you, Miss Blue-stocking=
; I
am quite satisfied with your English version. You positively alarm me, Ange=
la.
Most people are quite content if they can put a poem written in English into
Greek; you reverse the process, and, having coolly given expression to your=
thoughts
in Greek, condescend to translate them into your native tongue. I only wish=
you
had been at Cambridge, or--what do they call the place?--Girton. It would h=
ave
been a joke to see you come out double-first."
"Ah!" she broke in, blushing, "=
you
are like Mr. Fraser, you overrate my acquirements. I am sorry to say I am n=
ot
the perfect scholar you think me, and about most things I am shockingly
ignorant. I should indeed be silly if, after ten years' patient work under =
such
a scholar as Mr. Fraser, I did not know some classics and mathematics. Why,=
do you
know, for the last three years that we worked together, we used as a rule to
carry on our ordinary conversations during work in Latin and Greek, month a=
nd
month about, sometimes with the funniest results. One never knows how little
one does know of a dead language till one tries to talk it. Just try to spe=
ak
in Latin for the next five minutes, and you will see."
"Thank you, I am not going to expose my
ignorance for your amusement, Angela."
She laughed.
"No," she said, "it is you who =
wish
to amuse yourself at my expense by trying to make me believe that I am a gr=
eat
scholar. But what I was going to say, before you attacked me about my fanci=
ed
acquirements, was that, in my opinion, your remark about the whole world be=
ing
under sentence of death, was rather a morbid one."
"Why? It is obviously true."
"Yes, in a sense; but to my mind this sce=
ne
speaks more of resurrection than of death. Look at the earth pushing up her
flowers, and the dead trees breaking into beauty. There is no sign of death=
there,
but rather of a renewed and glorified life."
"Yes, but there is still the awful fact <=
/span>of
death to face; Nature herself has been temporarily dead before she blooms i=
nto
beauty; she dies every autumn, to rise again in the same form every spring.=
But
how do we know in what form we
"I remember," answered Angela,
"once thinking very much in the same way, and I went to Mr. Fraser for
advice. 'The Bible,' he said, 'will satisfy your doubts and fears, if only =
you
will read it in a right spirit.' And indeed, more or less, it did. I cannot=
, of
course, venture to advise you, but I pass his advice on; it is that of a ve=
ry good
man."
"Have you, then, no dread of death, or,
rather, of what lies beyond it?"
She turned her eyes upon him with something of
wonder in them.
"And why," she said, "should I,=
who
am immortal, fear a change that I know has no power to harm me, that can, on
the contrary, only bring me nearer to the purpose of my being? Certainly I
shrink from death itself, as we all must, but of the dangers beyond I have =
no
fear.
Pleasant as this world is at times, there is
something in us all that strives to rise above it, and, if I knew that I mu=
st
die within this hour, I believe that I could meet my fate without a qual=
m. I
am sure that when our trembling hands have drawn the veil from Death, we sh=
all find
His features, passionless indeed, but very beautiful."
Arthur looked at her with astonishment, wonder=
ing
what manner of woman this could be, who, in the first flush of youth and
beauty, could face the great unknown without a tremor. When he spoke again,=
it
was with something of envious bitterness.
"Ah! it is very well for you, whose life =
has
been so pure and free from evil, but it is different for me, with all my
consciousness of sins and imperfections. For me, and thousands like me, str=
ive
as we will, immortality has terrors as well as hopes. It is, and always wil=
l be,
human to fear the future, for human nature never changes. You know the line=
s in
'Hamlet.' It is
=
"'that the dread of something after death,-- The undiscovered country from=
whose
bourn No traveller
returns,--puzzles the will And makes us rather bear thos=
e ills
we have Than fly to oth=
ers
that we know not of. Th=
us
conscience does make cowards of us all.'
"They are true, and, while men last, they
always will be true."
"Oh! Arthur," she answered, earnestl=
y,
and for the first time addressing him in conversation by his Christian name,
"how limited your trust must be in the mercy of a Creator, whose mercy=
is
as wide as the ocean, that you can talk like that! You speak of me, too, as=
better
than yourself--how am I better? I have my bad thoughts and do bad things as
much as you, and, though they may not be the same, I am sure they are quite=
as
black as yours, since everybody must be responsible according to their
characters and temptations. I try, however, to trust in God to cover my sin=
s,
and believe that, if I do my best, He will forgive me, that is all. But I h=
ave
no business to preach to you, who are older and wiser than I am."
"If," he broke in, laying his hand
involuntarily upon her own, "you knew--although I have never spoken of
them to any one before, and could not speak of them to anybody but
yourself--how these things weigh upon my mind, you would not say that, but
would try to teach me your faith."
"How can I teach you, Arthur, when I have=
so
much to learn myself?" she answered, simply, and from that moment, tho=
ugh
she did not know it as yet, she loved him.
This conversation--a very curious one, Arthur
thought to himself afterwards, for two young people on a spring morning--ha=
ving
come to an end, nothing more was said for some while, and they took their w=
ay down
the hill, varying the route in order to pass through the little hamlet of
Bratham. Under a chestnut-tree that stood upon the village green, Arthur
noticed, not a village blacksmith, but a small crowd,=
mostly
composed of children, gathered round somebody. On going to see who it was, =
he
discovered a battered-looking old man with an intellectual face, and the
remnants of a gentlemanlike appearance, playing on the violin. A very few
touches of his bow told Arthur, who knew something of music, that he was in=
the
presence of a performer of no mean merit. Seeing the quality of his two
auditors, and that they appreciated his performance, the player changed his
music, and from a village jig passed to one of the more difficult opera air=
s,
which he executed in brilliant fashion.
"Bravo!" cried Arthur, as the last n=
otes
thrilled and died away; "I see you understand how to play the
fiddle."
"Yes, sir, and so I should, for I have pl=
ayed
first violin at Her Majesty's Opera before now. Name what you like, and I w=
ill
play it you. Or, if you like it better, you shall hear the water running in=
a brook,
the wind passing through the trees, or the waves falling on the beach. Only=
say
the word."
Arthur thought for a moment.
"It is a beautiful day, let us have a
contrast--give us the music of a storm."
The old man considered a while.
"I understand, but you set a difficult
subject even for me," and taking up his bow he made several attempts at
beginning. "I can't do it," he said, "set something else.&qu=
ot;
"No, no, try again, that or nothing."=
;
Again he started, and this time his genius took
possession of him. The notes fell very softly at first, but with an ominous
sound, then rose and wailed like the rising of the wind. Next the music cam=
e in
gusts, the rain pattered, and the thunder roared, till at length the tempes=
t seemed
to spend its force and pass slowly away into the distance.
"There, sir, what do you say to that--hav=
e I
fulfilled your expectations?"
"Write it down and it will be one of the
finest pieces of violin music in the country."
"Write it down. The divine 'afflatus' is =
not
to be caged, sir, it comes and goes. I could never write that music down.&q=
uot;
Arthur felt in his pocket without answering, a=
nd
found five shillings.
"If you will accept this?" he said.<= o:p>
"Thank you, sir, very much. I am gladder =
of
five shillings now than I once was of as many pounds;" and he rose to =
go.
"A man of your talent should not be wande=
ring
about like this."
"I must earn a living somehow, for all
Talleyrand's witticism to the contrary," was the curious answer.
"Have you no friends?"
"No, sir, this is my only friend; all the
rest have deserted me," and he tapped his violin and was gone.
"Lord, sir," said a farmer, who was
standing by, "he's gone to get drunk; he is the biggest old drunkard in
the countryside, and yet they do say he was gentleman once, and the best
fiddler in London; but he can't be depended on, so no one will hire him
now."
"How sad," said Angela, as they moved
homewards.
"Yes, and what music that was; I never he=
ard
any with such imagination before. You have a turn that way, Angela; you sho=
uld
try to put it into words, it would make a poem."
"I complain like the old man, that you se=
t a
difficult subject," she said; "but I will try, if you will promise
not to laugh at the result."
"If you succeed on paper only half so wel=
l as
he did on the violin, your verses will be worth listening to, and I certain=
ly
shall not laugh."
On the following day the somewhat curious
religious conversation between Arthur and Angela--a conversation which, beg=
un
on Arthur's part out of curiosity, had ended on both sides very much in
earnest-- the weather broke up and the grand old English climate reasserted=
its
treacherous supremacy. From summer weather the inhabitants of the county of
Marlshire suddenly found themselves plunged into a spell of cold that was by
contrast almost Arctic. Storms of sleet drove against the window-panes, and
there was even a very damaging night-frost, while that dreadful scourge, wh=
ich
nobody in his senses except Kingsley can
ever have liked, the east wind,
literally pervaded the whole place, and went whistling through the surround=
ing
trees and ruins in a way calculated to make even a Laplander shiver.
Under these cheerless circumstances our pair of
companions--for as yet they were, ostensibly at any rate, nothing more--gav=
e up
their outdoor excursions and took to rambling over the disused rooms in the=
old
house, and hunting up many a record, some of them valuable and curious enou=
gh,
of long-forgotten Caresfoots, and even of the old priors before them; a
splendidly illuminated missal being amongst the latter prizes. When this
amusement was exhausted, they sat together over the fire in the nursery, and
Angela translated to him from her favourite classical authors, especially
Homer, with an ease and fluency of expression that, to Arthur, was little s=
hort
of miraculous. Or, when they got tired of that, he read to her from standard
writers, which, elaborate as her education had been, in certain respects, s=
he
had scarcely yet even opened, notably Shakespeare and Milton. Needless to s=
ay,
herself imbued with a strong poetic feeling, these immortal writers were a
source of intense delight to her.
"How is it that Mr. Fraser never gave you
Shakespeare to read?" asked Arthur one day, as he shut up the volume,
having come to the end of "Hamlet."
"He said that I should be better able to
appreciate it when my mind had been prepared to do so by the help of a clas=
sical
and mathematical education, and that it would be 'a mistake to cloy my ment=
al
palate with sweets before I had learnt to appreciate their flavours.'"=
"There is some sense in that," remar=
ked
Arthur. "By the way, how are the verses you promised to write me getti=
ng
on? Have you done them yet?"
"I have done something," she answere=
d,
modestly, "but I really do not think that they are worth producing. It=
is
very tiresome of you to have remembered about them."
Arthur, however, by this time knew enough of A=
ngela's
abilities to be sure that her "something" would be something more=
or
less worth hearing, and mildly insisted on their production, and then, to h=
er confusion,
on her reading them aloud. They ran as follows, and whatever Angela's opini=
on
of them may have been, the reader shall judge of them for himself:
A STORM ON THE ST=
RINGS
"The minstrel sat in his lonely room, Its walls were bare, and the twil=
ight
grey Fell and crept and gat=
hered
to gloom; It came like the =
ghost
of the dying day, And the c=
hords
fell hushed and low. =
Pianissimo!
"His arm was raised, and the violin Quivered and shook with the strai=
n it
bore, While the swelling fo=
rth of
the sounds within Rose with=
a
sweetness unknown before, A=
nd the
chords fell soft and low. =
Piano!
"The first cold flap of the tempest's wings Clashed with the silence before t=
he
storm, The raindrops patter=
ed
across the strings As the
gathering thunder-clouds took form-- Drip, drop, high and low. =
Staccato!
"Heavily rolling the thunder roared, Sudden and jagged the lightning p=
layed,
Faster and faster the raind=
rops
poured, Sobbing and surging=
the
tree-crests swayed, Crackin=
g and
crashing above, below. Crescendo!
"The wind tore howling across the wold, And tangled his train in the groa=
ning
trees, Wrapped the dense cl=
ouds
in his mantle cold, Then sh=
ivered
and died in a wailing breeze, Whistling and weeping high and lo=
w, =
Sostenuto!
"A pale sun broke from the driving cloud, And flashed in the raindrops sere=
nely
cool: At the touch of his f=
inger
the forest bowed, As it shi=
mmered
and glanced in the ruffled pool, While the rustling leaves soughed=
soft
and low. =
Gracioso!
"It was only a dream on the throbbing strings, An echo of Nature in phantasy wro=
ught, =
A
breath of her breath and a touch of her wings From a kingdom outspread in the r=
egions
of thought. Below rolled the
sound of the city's din, An=
d the
fading day, as the night drew in, Showed the quaint old face and th=
e pointed
chin, And the arm that was =
raised
o'er the violin, As the old=
man
whispered his hope's dead tale, To the friend who could comfort, =
though
others might fail, And the =
chords
stole hushed and low. Pianissimo!&=
quot;
He st=
opped,
and the sheet of paper fell from his hands.
"Well," she said, with all the eager=
ness
of a new-born writer, "tell me, do you think them very bad?"
"Well, Angela, you know----"
"Ah! go on now; I am ready to be crushed.
Pray don't spare my feelings."
"I was about to say that, thanks be to
Providence, I am not a critic; but I think----"
"Oh! yes, let me hear what you think. You=
are
speaking so slowly, in order to get time to invent something extra cutting.
Well, I deserve it."
"Don't interrupt; I was going to say that=
I
think the piece above the average of second-class poetry, and that a few of=
the
lines touch the first-class standard. You have caught something of the 'div=
ine afflatus'
that the drunken old fellow said he could not cage. But I do not think that=
you
will ever be popular as a writer of verses if you keep to that style; I dou=
bt
if there is a magazine in the kingdom that would take those lines unless th=
ey
were by a known writer. They would return them marked, 'Good, but too vague=
for
the general public.' Magazine editors don't like lines from 'a kingdom
outspread in the regions of thought,' for, as they say, such poems are apt =
to
excite vagueness in the brains of that dim entity, the 'general public.' Wh=
at they
do like are commonplace ideas, put in pretty language, and sweetened with
sentimentality or emotional religious feelings, such as the thinking powers=
of
their subscribers are competent to absorb without mental strain, and without
leaving their accustomed channels. To be popular it is necessary to be
commonplace, or at the least to describe the commonplace, to work in a
well-worn groove, and not to startle--requirements which, unfortunately, si=
mple
as they seem, very few persons possess the art of acting up to. See what
happens to the unfortunate novelist, for instance, who dares to break the
unwritten law, and defraud his readers of the orthodox transformation scene=
of the
reward of virtue and the discomfiture of vice; or to make his creation fini=
sh
up in a way that, however well it may be suited to its tenor, or illustrate=
its
more subtle meaning, is contrary to the 'general reader's' idea as to how it
should end--badly, as it is called. He simply collapses, to rise no more, i=
f he
is new at the trade, and, if he is a known man, that book won't sell."=
"You talk quite feelingly," said Ang=
ela,
who was getting rather bored, and wanted, not unnaturally, to hear more abo=
ut
her own lines.
"Yes," replied Arthur, grimly; "=
;I
do. Once I was fool enough to write a book, but I must tell you that it is a
painful subject with me. It never came out. Nobody would have it."
"Oh! Arthur, I am so sorry; I should like=
to
read your book. But, as regards the verses, I am glad that you like them, a=
nd I
really don't care what a hypothetical general public would say; I wrote the=
m to
please you, not the general public."
"Well, my dear, I am sure I am much oblig=
ed
to you; I shall value them doubly, once for the giver's sake, and once for
their own."
Angela blushed, but did not reprove the term of
endearment which had slipped unawares from his lips. Poetry is a dangerous
subject between two young people who at heart adore one another; it is apt =
to
excite the brain, and bring about startling revelations.
The day following the reading of Angela's piec=
e of
poetry was rendered remarkable by two events, of which the first was that t=
he
weather suddenly turned a somersault, and became beautifully warm; and the =
second
that news reached the Abbey House that, thanks chiefly to Lady Bellamy's
devoted nursing--who, fearless of infection, had, to the great admiration of
all her neighbours, volunteered her services when no nurse could be found to
undertake the case--George was pronounced out of danger. This piece of news=
was
peculiarly grateful to Philip, for, had his cousin died, the estates must h=
ave
passed away for ever under the terms of his uncle's will, for he knew that
George had made none. Angela, too, tried, like a good girl as she was, to l=
ash
herself into enthusiasm about it, though in her heart she went as near hati=
ng her
cousin, since his attempted indignity towards herself, as her gentle nature
would allow. Arthur alone was cynically indifferent; he hated George without
any reservation whatsoever.
And after this their came for our pair of embr=
yo
lovers some ten or twelve such happy days (for there was no talk of Arthur's
departure, Philip having on several occasions pointedly told him that the h=
ouse
was at his disposal for as long as he chose to remain in it). The sky was b=
lue
in those days, or only flecked with summer clouds, just as Arthur and Angel=
a's
perfect companionship was flecked and shaded with the deeper hues of dawning
passion. Alas, the sky in this terrestrial clime is never quite blue!
But as yet nothing of love had passed between
them, no kiss or word of endearment; only when hand touched hand a strange
thrill had moved them both, and sent the warm blood to stain Angela's clear
brow, like a wavering tint of sunlight thrown upon the marble features of s=
ome white
Venus; only in each other's eyes they found a holy mystery. The spell was n=
ot
yet fully at work, but the wand of earth's great enchanter had touched them,
and they were changed. Angela is hardly the same girl she was when we met h=
er a
little more than a fortnight back. A nameless change has come over her face=
and
manner; the merry smile, once so bright, has grown softer and more sweet, a=
nd
the laughing light of her grey eyes has given place to a look of some such =
gratitude
and wonder, as that with which the traveller in lonely deserts gazes on the
oasis of his perfect rest.
Many times Arthur had almost blurted out the t=
ruth
to the woman he passionately adored, and every day so added to the suppress=
ed
fire of his love that at length he felt that he could not keep his secret t=
o himself
much longer. And yet he feared to tell it; better, he thought, to live happ=
y,
if in doubt, than to risk all his fortune on a single throw, for before his
eyes there lay the black dread of failure; and then, what would life be wor=
th?
Here with Angela he lived in a Garden of Eden that no forebodings, no
anxieties, no fear of that partially scotched serpent George, could render
wretched, so long as it was gladdened by the presence of her whom he hoped =
to
make his Eve. But without, and around where she could not be, there was not=
hing
but clods and thistles and a black desolation that, even in imagination, he
dared not face.
And Angela, gazing on veiled mysteries with
wondering eyes, was she happy during those spring-tide days? Almost; but st=
ill
there was in her heart a consciousness of effort, a sense of transformation=
and
knowledge of the growth of hidden things. The bud bursting into the glory of
the rose, must, if there be feeling in a rose, undergo some such effort bef=
ore
it can make its beauty known; the butterfly but newly freed from the dull h=
usk
that hid its splendours, at first must feel the imperfect wings it stretche=
s in
the sun to be irksome to its unaccustomed sense. And so it was with Angela;=
she
spread her half- grown wings in the sun of her new existence, and found them
strange, not knowing as yet that they were shaped to bear her to the flower=
- crowned
heights of love.
Hers was one of those rare natures in which the
passion that we know by the generic term of love, approached as near perfec=
tion
as is possible in our human hearts. For there are many sorts and divisions =
of
love, ranging from the affection, pure, steady, and divine, that is showered
upon us from above, to the degrading madness of such a one as George Caresf=
oot.
It is surely one of the saddest evidences of our poor humanity that, even a=
mong
the purest of us, there are none who can altogether rid the whiteness of the
love they have to offer of its earthly stain. Indeed, if we could so far
conquer the promptings of our nature as to love with perfect purity, we sho=
uld
become like angels. But, just as white flowers are sometimes to be found on=
the
blackest peak, so there do bloom in the world spirits as pure as they are
rare--so free from evil, so closely shadowed by the Almighty wing, that they
can almost reach to this perfection. Then the love they have to give is too
refined, too holy and strong, to be understood of the mass of men: often it=
is
squandered on some unequal and unanswering nature; sometimes it is wisely
offered up to Him from whom it came.
We gaze upon an ice-bound river, and there is
nothing to tell us that beneath that white cloak its current rushes to the
ocean. But presently the spring comes, the prisoned waters burst their fett=
ers,
and we see a glad torrent sparkling in the sunlight. And so it was with our
heroine's heart; the breath of Arthur's passion and the light of Arthur's e=
yes
had beat upon it, and almost freed the river of its love. Already the liste=
ner
might hear the ice-sheets crack and start; soon they will be gone, and her =
deep
devotion will set as strong towards him as the tide of the torrent towards =
its
receiving sea.
"Fine writing!" perhaps the reader w=
ill
say; but surely none too fine to describe the most beautiful thing in this
strange world, the irrevocable gift of a good woman's love!
However that may be, it will have served its
purpose if it makes it clear that a crisis is at hand in the affairs of the
heart of two of the central actors on this mimic stage.
One Saturday morning, when May was three-parts
gone, Philip announced his intention of going up to London till the Monday =
on
business. He was a man who had long since become callous to appearances, and
though Arthur, fearful lest spiteful things should be said of Angela, almos=
t hinted
that it would look odd, his host merely laughed, and said that he had little
doubt but that his daughter was quite able to look after herself, even when
such a fascinating young gentleman as himself was concerned. As a matter of
fact, his object was to get rid of Angela by marrying her to this young
Heigham, who had so opportunely tumbled down from the skies, and whom he ra=
ther
liked than otherwise. This being the case, he rightly concluded that, the m=
ore
the two were left together, the greater probability there was of his object
being attained. Accordingly he left them together as much as possible.
It was on the evening of this Saturday that Ar=
thur
gathered up his courage and asked Angela to come and walk through the ruins
with him. Angela hesitated a little; the shadow of something about to happen
had fallen on her mind; but the extraordinary beauty of the evening, to say
nothing of the prospect of his company, turned the scale in Arthur's favour=
.
It was one of those nights of which, if we are lucky, we get some five or six in the course of an English summer. The moon= was at her full, and, the twilight ended, she filled the heavens with her light. Every twig and blade of grass showed out as clearly as in the day, but look= ed like frosted silver. The silence was intense, and so still was the air that= the sharp shadows of the trees were motionless upon the grass, only growing with the growing hours. It was one of those nights that fill us with an indescribable emotion, bringing us into closer companionship with the unseen than ever does the garish, busy day. In such an hour, we can sometimes feel= , or think that we can feel, other presences around us, and involuntarily we lis= ten for the whisper of the wings and the half-forgotten voices of our beloved.<= o:p>
On this particular evening some such feeling w=
as
stirring in Angela's heart as with slow steps she led the way into the litt=
le
village churchyard, a similar spot to that which is to be found in many a c=
ountry
parish, except that, the population being very small, there were but few re=
cent
graves. Most of the mounds had no head-stones to recall the names of the
neglected dead, but here and there were dotted discoloured slabs, some sunk=
a
foot or two into the soil, a few lying prone upon it, and the remainder thr=
own
by the gradual subsidence of their supports into every variety of angle, as
though they had been suddenly halted in the maddest whirl of a grotesque da=
nce
of death.
Picking her way through these, Angela stopped =
under
an ancient yew, and, pointing to one of the two shadowed mounts to which the
moonlight scarcely struggled, said, in a low voice,
"That is my mother's grave."
It was a modest tenement enough, a little heap=
of
close green turf, surrounded by a railing, and planted with sweet-williams =
and
forget- me-nots. At its head was placed a white marble cross, on which Arth=
ur could
just distinguish the words "Hilda Caresfoot," and the date of dea=
th.
He was about to speak, but she stopped him wit=
h a
gentle movement, and then, stepping forward to the head of the railing, she
buried her face in her hands, and remained motionless. Arthur watched her w=
ith curiosity.
What, he wondered, was passing in the mind of this strange and beautiful wo=
man,
who had grown up so sweet and pure amidst moral
desolation, like a white lily blooming alone on
the black African plains in winter? Suddenly she raised her head, and saw t=
he
inquiring look he bent upon her. She came towards him, and, in that sweet,
half- pleading voice which was one of her greatest charms, she said,
"I fear you think me very foolish?"<= o:p>
"Why should I think you foolish?"
"Because I have come here at night to sta=
nd
before a half-forgotten grave."
"I do not think you foolish, indeed. I was
only wondering what was passing in your mind."
Angela hung her head and made no answer, and t=
he
clock above them boomed out the hour, raising its sullen note in insolent
defiance of the silence. What is it that is so solemn about the striking of=
the
belfry-clock when one stands in a churchyard at night? Is it that the hour
softens our natures, and makes them more amenable to semi- superstitious
influences? Or is it that the thousand evidences of departed mortality which
surround us, appealing with dumb force to natural fears, throw open for a s=
pace
the gates of our world-sealed imagination, to tenant its vast halls with
prophetic echoes of our end? Perhaps it is useless to inquire. The result
remains the same: few of us can hear those tones at night without a qualm, =
and,
did we put our thoughts into words, they would run something thus:
"That sound once broke upon the living ea=
rs
of those who sleep around us. We hear it now. In a little while, hour after
hour, it will echo against the tombstones of our graves, and new generations, coming out =
of the
silent future, will stand where we stand, and hearken; and muse, as we muse=
d,
over the old problems that we have gone to solve; whilst we--shall we not be
deaf to hear and dumb to utter?"
Such, at any rate, were the unspoken thoughts =
that
crept into the hearts of Arthur and Angela as the full sound from the belfry
thinned itself away into silence. She grew a little pale, and glanced at hi=
m, and
he gave an involuntary shiver, while even the dog Aleck sniffed and whined
uncomfortably.
"It feels cold," he said. "Shal=
l we
go?"
They turned and walked towards the gate, and, =
by
the time they reached it, all superstitious thoughts had vanished--at any r=
ate,
from Arthur's mind, for he recollected that he had set himself a task to do,
and that now would be the time to do it. Absorbed in this reflection, he fo=
rgot
his politeness, and passed first through the turnstile. On the further side=
he
paused, and looked earnestly into his beloved's face. Their eyes met, and t=
here
was that in his that caused her to swiftly drop her own. A silence ensued as
they stood by the gate. He broke it.
"It is a lovely night. Let us walk through
the ruins."
"I shall wet my feet: the dew must be
falling."
"There is no dew falling to-night. Won't =
you
come?"
"Let us go to-morrow; it is later than I
generally go in. Pigott will wonder what has become of me."
"Never mind Pigott. The night is too fine=
to
waste asleep; besides, you know, one should always look at ruins by moonlig=
ht.
Please come."
She looked at him doubtfully, hesitated, and c=
ame.
"What do you want to see?" she said
presently, with as near an approach to irritation as he had ever heard her
indulge in. "That is the famous window that Mr. Fraser always goes into
raptures about."
"It is beautiful. Shall we sit down here =
and
look at it?"
They sat down on a low mass of fallen masonry =
some
fifteen paces from the window. Around them lay a delicate tracery of shadow=
s,
whilst they themselves were seated in the eye of the moonlight, and remained
for a while as silent and as still as though they had been the shades of th=
e painted
figures that had once filled the stony frame above them.
"Angela," he said at
length--"Angela, listen, and I will tell you something. My mother, a w=
oman
to whom sorrow had become almost an inspiration, when she was dying, spoke =
to
me something thus: 'There is,' she said, 'but one thing that I know of that=
has
the power to make life happy as God meant it to be, and as the folly and
weakness of men and women render it nearly impossible for it to be, and tha=
t is
--love. Love has been the consolation of my own existence in the midst of m=
any
troubles; first, the great devotion I bore your father, and then that which=
I
entertain for yourself. Without these two ties, life would indeed have been=
a
desert. And yet, though it is a grief to me to leave you, and though I shri=
nk
from the dark passage that lies before me, so far does that first great love
outweigh the love I bear you, that in my calmer moments I am glad to go,
because I know I am awaited by your father. And from this I wish you to lea=
rn a
lesson: look for your happiness in life from the love of your life, for the=
re only
will you find it. Do not fritter away your heart, but seek out some woman, =
some
one good and pure and true, and in giving her your devotion, you will reap a
full reward, for her happiness will reflect your own, and, if your choice is
right, you will, however stormy your life may be, lay up for yourself, as I
feel that I have done, an everlasting joy.'"
She listened to him in silence.
"Angela," he went on, boldly enough,=
now
that the ice was broken, "I have often thought about what my mother sa=
id,
but until now I have never quite <=
span
style=3D'mso-spacerun:yes'> understood her meaning. I do understand =
it
now. Angela, do you understand me?"
There was no answer; she sat there upon the fa=
llen
masonry, gazing at the ruins round her, motionless and white as a marble
goddess, forgotten in her desecrated fane.
"Oh, Angela, listen to me--listen to me! I
have found the woman of whom my mother spoke, who must be so 'good and pure=
and
true.' You are she. I love you, Angela, I love you with my whole life and s=
oul;
I love you for this world and the next. Oh! do not reject me; though I am so
little worthy of you, I will try to grow so. Dearest, can you love me?"=
;
Still there was silence, but he thought that he
saw her breast heave gently. Then he placed his hand, all trembling with the
fierce emotion that throbbed along his veins, upon the palm that hung listl=
ess
by her side, and gazed into her eyes. Still she neither spoke nor shrank, a=
nd,
in the imperfect light, her face looked very pale, while her lovely eyes we=
re
dark and meaningless as those of one entranced.
Then slowly he gathered up his courage for an
effort, and, raising his face to the level of her own, he kissed her full u=
pon
her lips. She stirred, she sighed. He had broken the spell; the sweet face =
that
had withdrawn itself drew nearer to him; for a second the awakened eyes loo=
ked
into his own, and filled them with reflected splendour, and then he became
aware of a warm arm thrown about his neck, and next-- the stars grew dim, a=
nd
sense and life itself seemed to shake upon their thrones, for a joy almost =
too
great for mortal man to bear took possession of his heart as she laid her
willing lips upon his own. And then, before he knew her purpose, she slid d=
own
upon her knees beside him, and placed her head upon her breast.
"Dearest," he said, "don't kneel
so; look at me."
Slowly she raised her face, wreathed and lovely
with many blushes, and looked upon him with tearful eyes. He tried to raise
her.
"Let me be," she said, speaking very
low. "I am best so; it is the attitude of adoration, and I have found-=
-my
divinity."
"But I cannot bear to see you kneel to
me."
"Oh! Arthur, you do not understand; a min=
ute
since I did not understand that a woman is very =
humble
when she really loves.
"Do you--really love me, Angela?"
"I do."
"Have you known that long?"
"I only knew <=
/span>it
when--when you kissed me. Before then there was something in my heart, but I
did not know what it was. Listen, dear," she went on, "for one mi=
nute
to me first, and I will get up" (for he was again attempting to raise
her). "What I have to say is best said upon my knees, for I want to th=
ank
God who sent you to me, and to thank you too for your goodness. It is so
wonderful that you should love a simple girl like me, and I am so thankful =
to
you. Oh! I have never lived till now, and" (rising to her full stature)
"I feel as though I had been crowned a queen of happy things. Dethrone=
me,
desert me, and I will still be grateful to you for this hour of imperial ha=
ppiness.
But if you, after a while, when you know all my faults and imperfections
better, can still care for me, I know that there is something in me that wi=
ll
enable me to repay you for what you have given me, by making your whole life
happy. Dear, I do not know if I speak as other women do, but, believe me, i=
t is
out of the fulness of my heart. Take care, Arthur, oh! take care, lest your
fate should be that of the magician you spoke of the other day, who evoked =
the spirit,
and then fell down before it in terror. You have also called up a spirit, a=
nd I
pray that it was not done in sport, lest it should trouble you hereafter.&q=
uot;
"Angela, do not speak so to me; it is I w=
ho
should have knelt to you. Yes, you were right when you called yourself 'a q=
ueen
of happy things.' You are a queen----"
"Hush! Don't overrate me; your disillusion
will be the more painful. Come, Arthur, let us go home."
He rose and went with her, in a dream of joy t=
hat
for a moment precluded speech. At the door she bade him good-night, and, oh=
! happiness,
gave him her lips to kiss. Then they parted, their hearts too full for word=
s.
One thing he asked her, however.
"What was it that took you to your mother=
's
grave to-night?"
She looked at him with a curiously mixed
expression of shy love and conviction on her face, and answered,
"Her spirit, who led me to your heart.&qu=
ot;
George's recovery, when the doctors had given =
up
all hope, was sufficiently marvellous to suggest the idea that a certain po=
wer
had determined--on the hangman's principle, perhaps--to give him the longes=
t of
ropes; but it could in reality be traced to a more terrestrial
influence--namely, Lady Bellamy's nursing. Had it not been for this nursing=
, it
is very certain that her patient would have joined his forefathers in the
Bratham churchyard. For whole days and nights she watched and tended him,
scarcely closing her own eyes, and quite heedless of the danger of infectio=
n;
till in the end she conquered the fever, and snatched him from the jaws of =
the
grave. How often has not a woman's devotion been successful in such a strug=
gle!
On the Monday following the events narrated in=
the
last chapter, George, now in an advanced stage of convalescence, though for=
bidden
to go abroad for another fortnight, was sitting downstairs enjoying the warm
sunshine, and the sensation of returning life and vigour that was creeping =
into
his veins, when Lady Bellamy came into the room, bringing with her some
medicine.
"Here is your tonic, George; it is the la=
st
dose that I can give you, as I am going back to my disconsolate husband at
luncheon-time."
"I can't have you go away yet; I am not w=
ell
enough."
"I must go, George; people will begin to =
talk
if I stop here any longer."
"Well, if you must, I suppose you must,&q=
uot;
he answered, sulkily. "But I must say I think that you show a great wa=
nt
of consideration for my comfort. Who is to look after me, I should like to
know? I am far from well yet--far from well."
"Believe me," she said, softly, &quo=
t;I
am very sorry to leave you, and am glad to have been of help to you, though=
you
have never thought much about it."
"Oh, I am sure I am much obliged, but it =
is
not likely that you would leave me to rot of fever without coming to look a=
fter
me."
She sighed as she answered,
"You would not do as much for me."
"Oh, bother, Anne, don't get sentimental.
Before you go, I must speak to you about that girl Angela. Have you taken a=
ny
steps?"
Lady Bellamy started.
"What, are you still bent upon that
project?"
"Of course I am. It seemed to me that all= my illness was one long dream of her. I am more bent upon it than ever."<= o:p>
"And do you still insist upon my playing =
the
part you had marked out for me? Do you know, George, that there were times =
in
your illness when, if I had relaxed my care for a single five minutes, it w=
ould
have turned the scale against you, and that once I did not close my eyes for
five nights? Look at me, how thin and worn I am: it is from nursing you. I =
have
saved your life. Surely you will not now force me to do this unnatural
thing."
"If, my dear Anne, you had saved my life
fifty times, I would still force you to do it. Ah! it is no use your lookin=
g at
that safe. I have no doubt that you got my keys and searched it whilst I was
ill, but I was too sharp for you. I had the letters moved when I heard that=
you
were coming to nurse me. They are back there now, though. How disappointed =
you
must have been!" And he chuckled.
"I should have done better to let you die,
monster of wickedness and ingratitude that you are!" she said, stamping
her foot upon the floor, and the tears of vexation standing in her eyes.
"The letters, my dear Anne; remember that=
you
have got to earn your letters. I am very much obliged to you for your nursi=
ng,
but business is business."
She was silent for a moment, and then spoke in=
her
ordinary tone.
"By the way, talking of letters, there was
one came for you this morning in your cousin Philip's handwriting, and with=
a
London postmark. Will you read it?"
"Read it--yes; anything from the father o=
f my
inamorata will be welcome."
She fetched the letter and gave it him. He rea=
d it
aloud. After a page of congratulations on his convalescence, it ended,
"And now I want to make a proposal to
you--viz., to buy back the Isleworth lands from you. I know that the place =
is
distasteful to you, and will probably be doubly so after your severe illnes=
s;
but, if you care to keep the house and grounds, I am not particularly anxio=
us
to acquire them. I am prepared to offer a good price," &c. &c.=
"I'll see him hanged first," was
George's comment. "How did he get the money?"
"Saved it and made it, I suppose."
"Well, at any rate, he shall not buy me o=
ut
with it. No, no, Master Philip; I am not fond enough of you to do you that
turn."
"It does not strike you," she said,
coldly, "that you hold in your hands a lever that may roll all your
difficulties about this girl out of the way."
"By Jove, you are right, Anne. Trust a
woman's brain. But I don't want to sell the estates unless I am forced
to."
"Would you rather part with the land, or =
give
up your project of marrying Angela Caresfoot?"
"Why do you ask?"
"Because you will have to choose between =
the
two."
"Then I had rather sell."
"You had better give it up, George. I am =
not
superstitious, but I have knowledge in things that you do not understand, a=
nd I
foresee nothing but disaster in this plan."
"Once and for all, Anne, I will not give =
it
up whilst I have any breath left in my body, and I take my oath that unless=
you
help me, and help me honestly, I will expose you."
"Oh! I am your very humble servant; you m=
ay
count on me. The galley- slave pulls well when the lash hangs over his
shoulders," and she laughed coldly.
Just then a servant announced that Mr. Caresfo=
ot
was at the door, and anxious to speak to his cousin. He was ordered to show=
him
into the drawing-room. As soon as he had gone on his errand, George said,
"I will not see him; say I am too unwell.=
But
do you go, and see that you make the most of your chance."
Lady Bellamy nodded, and left the room. She fo=
und
Philip in the drawing-room.
"Ah! how do you do, Mr. Caresfoot? I come
from your cousin to say that he cannot see you to-day; he has scarcely
recovered sufficiently from the illness through which I have been nursing h=
im;
but of course you know all about that."
"Oh! yes, Lady Bellamy, I have heard all
about it, including your own brave behaviour, to which, the doctor tells me,
George owes his life. I am sorry that he cannot see me, though. I have just
come down from town, and called in on my way from Roxham. I had some rather
important business that I wanted to speak about."
"About your offer to repurchase the Islew=
orth
lands?" she asked.
"Ah! you know of the affair. Yes, that was
it."
"Then I am commissioned to give you a
reply."
Philip listened anxiously.
"Your cousin absolutely refuses to sell a=
ny
part of the lands."
"Will nothing chance his determination? I=
am
ready to give a good price, and pay a separate valuation for the timber.&qu=
ot;
"Nothing; he does not intend to sell.&quo=
t;
A deep depression spread itself over her heare=
r's
face.
"Then there go the hopes of twenty
years," he said. "For twenty long years, ever since my misfortune=
, I
have toiled and schemed to get these lands back, and now it is all for noth=
ing.
Well, there is nothing more to be said," and he turned to go.
"Stop a minute, Mr. Caresfoot. Do you kno=
w,
you interest me very much."
"I am proud to interest so charming a
lady," he answered, a touch of depressed gallantry.
"That is as it should be; but you interes=
t me
because you are an instance of the truth of the saying that every man has s=
ome
ruling passion, if only one could discover it. Why do you want these partic=
ular
lands? Your money will buy others just as good."
"Why does a Swiss get home-sick? Why does=
a
man defrauded of his own wish to recover it?"
Lady Bellamy mused a little.
"What would you say if I showed you an ea=
sy
way to get them?"
Philip turned sharply round with a new look of
hope upon his face.
"You would earn my eternal gratitude--a
gratitude that I should be glad to put into a practical shape."
She laughed.
"Oh! you must speak to Sir John about tha=
t.
Now listen; I am going to surprise you. Your cousin wants to get married.&q=
uot;
"Get married! George wants to get
married!"
"Exactly so; and now I have a further
surprise in store for you--he wants to marry your daughter Angela."
This time Philip said nothing, but he started =
in
evident and uncomfortable astonishment. If Lady Bellamy wished to surprise =
him,
she had certainly succeeded.
"Surely you are joking!" he said.
"I never was further from joking in my li=
fe;
he is desperately in love with her, and wild to marry her."
"Well?"
"Well, don't you now see a way to force y=
our
cousin to sell the lands?"
"At the price of Angela's hand?"
"Precisely."
Philip walked up and down the room in thought.
Though, as the reader may remember, he had himself, but a month before, been
base enough to suggest that his daughter should use her eyes to forward his
projects, he had never, in justice to him be it said, dreamt of forcing her
into a marriage in every way little less than unnatural. His idea of respon=
sibility
towards his daughter was, as regards sins of omission, extremely lax, but t=
here
were some of commission that he did not care to face. Certain fears and
memories oppressed him too much to allow of it.
"Lady Bellamy," he said, presently,
"you have known my cousin George intimately for many years, and are
probably sufficiently acquainted with his habits of life to know that such a
marriage would be an infamy."
"Many a man who has been wild in his youth
makes a good husband," she answered, quietly.
"The more I think of it," went on
Philip, excitedly, after the fashion of one who would lash himself into a
passion, "the more I see the utter impossibility of any such thing, an=
d I
must say that I wonder at your having undertaken such an errand. On the one
hand, there is a young girl who, though I do not, from force of circumstanc=
es,
see much of myself, is, I believe, as good as she is handsome----"
"And on the other," broke in Lady
Bellamy, ironically, "are the Isleworth estates."
"And on the other," went on Philip,
without paying heed to her remark --"I am going to speak plainly, Lady
Bellamy--is a man utterly devoid of the foundations of moral character, who=
se
appearance is certainly against him, who I have got reason to know is not t=
o be
trusted, and who is old enough to be her father, and her cousin to boot--and
you ask me to forward such a marriage as this! I will have nothing to do wi=
th it;
my responsibilities as a father forbid it. It would be the wickedest thing I
have ever done to put the girl into the power of such a man."
Lady Bellamy burst into a low peal of laughter;
she never laughed aloud. She thought that it was now time to throw him a li=
ttle
off his balance.
"Forgive me," she said, with her
sweetest smile, "but you must admit that there is something rather
ludicrous in hearing the hero of the great Maria Lee scandal talking about
moral character, and the father who detests his daughter so much that he fe=
ars
to look her in the face, and whose sole object is to rid himself of an
encumbrance, prating of his paternal responsibilities."
Philip started visibly at her words.
"Ah! Mr. Caresfoot," she went on,
"I surprise you by my knowledge, but we women are sad spies, and it is=
my
little amusement to find out other people's secrets, a very useful little
amusement. I could tell you many things----"
"I was about to say," broke in Phili=
p,
who had naturally no desire to see more of the secrets of his life unveiled=
by
Lady Bellamy, "that, even if I did wish to get rid of Angela, I should
have little difficulty in doing so, as young Heigham, who has been stopping=
at
the Abbey House for a fortnight or so, is head over ears in love with her; =
indeed,
I should think it highly probable that they are at this moment engaged.&quo=
t;
It was Lady Bellamy's turn to start now.
"Ah!" she said, "I did not know
that; that complicates matters." And then, with a sudden change of
tone--"Mr. Caresfoot, as a friend, let me beg of you not to throw away
such a chance in a hurry for the sake of a few nonsensical ideas abut a gir=
l.
What is she, after all, that she should stand in the way of such grave
interests as you have in hand? I tell you that he is perfectly mad about he=
r.
You can make your own terms and fix your own price."
"Price! ay, that is what it would be--a p=
rice
for her body and soul."
"Well, and what of it? The thing is done
every day, only one does not talk of it in that way."
"Who taught you, who were once a young gi=
rl
yourself, to plead such a cause as this?"
"Nonsense, it is a very good cause--a cau=
se
that will benefit everybody, especially your daughter. George will get what=
he
wants; you, with the recovery of the estates, will also recover your lost p=
osition
and reputation, both to a great extent an affair of landed property. Mr.
Heigham will gain a little experience, whilst she will bloom into a great l=
ady,
and, like any other girl in the same circumstances, learn to adore her husb=
and
in a few months."
"And what will you get, Lady Bellamy?"
"I!" she replied, with a gay laugh.
"Oh! you know, virtue is its own reward. I shall be quite satisfied in
seeing everybody else made happy. Come, I do not want to press you about the
matter at present. Think it over at your leisure. I only beg you not to giv=
e a
decided answer to young Heigham, should he ask you for Angela, till I have =
seen
you again--say, in a week's time. Then, if you don't like it, you can leave=
it
alone, and nobody will be a penny the worse."
"As you like; but I tell you that I can n=
ever
consent;" and Philip took his leave.
"Your cousin entirely refuses his consent,
and Angela is by this time probably engaged to your ex-ward, Arthur
Heigham," was Lady Bellamy's not very promising report to the interest=
ing
invalid in the dining- room.
After relieving his feelings at this intellige=
nce
in language more forcible than polite, George remarked that, under these
circumstances, matters looked very bad.
"Not at all; they look very well. I shall=
see
your cousin again in a week's time, when I shall have a different tale to
tell."
"Why wait a week with that young blackgua=
rd
making the running on the spot?"
"Because I have put poison into Philip's
mind, and the surest poison always works slow. Besides, the mischief has be=
en
done. Good-by. I will come and see you in a day or two, when I have made my
plans. You see I mean to earn my letters."
With what degree of soundness our pair of love=
rs
slumbered on that memorable Saturday night, let those who have been so
fortunate or unfortunate as to have been placed in analogous circumstances,
form their own opinion.
It is, however, certain that Arthur gazed upon=
the
moon and sundry of the larger planets for some hours, until they unkindly s=
et,
and left him, for his candle had burnt out, to find his way to bed in the d=
ark.
With his reflections we will not trouble ourselves; or, rather, we will not
intrude upon their privacy. But there was another person in the house who s=
at
at an open window and looked upon the heavens-- Angela to wit. Let us avail
ourselves of our rightful privilege, and look into her thoughts.
Arthur's love had come upon her as a surprise,=
but
it had found a perfect home. All the days and hours that she had spent in h=
is company,
had, unknown to herself, been mysteriously employed in preparing a habitati=
on
to receive it. We all know the beautiful Bible story of the Creation, how f=
irst
there was an empty void, and the Spirit brooding on the waters, then light,=
and
then life, and last, man coming to turn all things to his uses. Surely that
story, which is the type and symbol of many things, is of none more so than=
of
the growth and birth of a perfected love in the human heart.
The soil is made ready in the dead winter, and
receives the seed into its bosom. Then comes the spring, and it is clothed =
with
verdure. Space is void till the sun shoots its sudden rays athwart it, and =
makes
it splendid; the heart is cold and unwitting of its ends, till the spirit
broods upon it, as upon the waters, and it grows quick with the purposes of
life. And then what a change is there! What has the flower in common with t=
he
seed from whence it sprang, or the noonday sky with the darkness before the
dawn?
Thinking in her chamber, with the night air pl=
aying
on her hot brow, and her hand pressed upon her heart, as though to still the
tumult of its joy, Angela grew vaguely conscious of these things.
"Was she the same in heart and mind that =
she
had been a month ago? No, a thousand times, no. Then what was this mysterio=
us
change that seemed to shake her inmost life to its foundations? What angel =
had
troubled the waters into which she had so newly plunged? And whence came th=
e healing
virtue that she found in them, bringing rest after the vague trouble of the=
last
two weeks, with sight to see the only good--her love, with speed to follow,=
and
strength to hold? Oh, happy, happy world! oh, merciful Creator, who gave he=
r to
drink of such a living spring! oh, Arthur, beloved Arthur!"
On Sunday mornings it was Pigott's habit to re=
lax
the Draconian severity of her laws in the matter of breakfast, which, gener=
ally
speaking, was not till about half-past eight o'clock. At that hour precisel=
y,
on the Sabbath in question, she appeared as usual--no, not as usual, for, i=
t being
Sunday, she had on her stiff, black gown--and, with all due solemnity, made=
the
tea.
A few minutes elapsed, and Angela entered, dre=
ssed
in white, and very lovely in her simple, tight-fitting robe, but a trifle p=
ale,
and with a shy look upon her face.
She greeted her nurse with a kiss.
"Why, what is the matter with you,
dearie?" ejaculated Pigott, whose watchful eye detected a change she c=
ould
not define; "you look different somehow."
"Hush! I will tell you by-and-by."
At that moment Arthur's quick step was heard
advancing down the passage, together with a pattering noise that announced =
the
presence of Aleck. And, as they came, Angela, poor Angela, grew red and red=
der,
and yet more painfully red, till Pigott, watching her face, was enabled to =
form
a shrewd guess as to what was the cause of her unaccustomed looks.
On came the steps, and open flew the door, more
and more ready to sink into the earth looked Angela, and so interested grew
nurse Pigott, that she actually poured some hot tea on to her dress, a thing
she could never remember having done before.
The first to enter was Aleck, who, following h=
is
custom, sprang upon Angela and licked her hand, and behind Aleck, looking
somewhat confused, but handsome and happy--for his was one of those faces t=
hat become
handsome when their owners are happy--came Aleck's master. And then there
ensued an infinitesimal but most awkward pause.
On such occasions as the present, namely, the
first meeting after an engagement, there is always--especially when it occu=
rs
in the presence of a third person--a very considerable difficulty in the mi=
nds
of the parties to know what demeanour they are to adopt towards one another=
. Are
they to treat the little affair of the previous evening as a kind of
confidential communication, not to be alluded to except in private conversa=
tion,
and to drop into the Mr. and Miss of yesterday? That would certainly be the
easiest, but then it would also be a decided act of mutual retreat. Or are =
they
to rush into each other's arms as becomes betrothed lovers? This process is=
so
new that they feel that it still requires private rehearsal. And, meanwhile,
time presses, and everybody is beginning to stare, and something must <=
/span>be
done.
These were very much the feelings of Arthur and
Angela. He hesitated before her, confused, and she kept her head down over =
the
dog. But presently Aleck, getting bored, moved on, and, as it would have be=
en inane
to continue to stare at the floor, she had to raise herself as slowly as she
might. Soon their eyes arrived in the same plane, and whether a mutual glan=
ce
of intelligence was exchanged, or whether their power of attraction overcame
his power of resistance, it is not easy to determine, but certain it is tha=
t,
following a primary natural law, Arthur gravitated towards her, and kissed =
her
on the face.
"My!" exclaimed Pigott, and the milk=
-jug
rolled unheeded on the floor.
"Hum! I suppose I had better explain,&quo=
t;
began he.
"I think you have spilt the milk," a=
dded
she.
"That we have become engaged and
are----"
"All to pieces, I declare," broke in
Angela, with her head somewhere near the carpet.
And then they both laughed.
"Well, I never, no, not in all my born da=
ys!
Sir and Miss Angela, all I have got to say about this extraordinary
proceeding"--they glanced at each other in alarm--"is that I am v=
ery
glad to hear on it, and I hope and pray how as you may be happy, and, if you
treat my Angela right, you'll be just the happiest and luckiest man in the
three kingdoms, including Ireland the Royal Family, and, if you treat her w=
rong,
worse will come to you; and her poor mother's last words, as I heard with my
own ears, will come true to you, and serve you right-- and there's all the =
milk
upon the floor. And God bless you both, my dears, is the prayer of an old
woman."
And here the worthy soul broke down, and began=
to
cry, nor were Angela's eyes free from tears.
After this little episode, breakfast proceeded=
in
something like the usual way. Church was at 10.30, and, a while before the
hour, Arthur and Angela strolled down to the spot that had already become as
holy ground to them, and looked into each other's eyes, and said again the =
same
sweet words. Then they went on, and mingling with the little congregation--=
that
did not number more than thirty souls--they passed into the cool quiet of t=
he
church.
"Lawks!" said a woman, as they went =
by,
"ain't she just a beauty. What a pretty wedding they'd make!"
Arthur overheard it, and noted the woman, and
afterwards found a pretext to give her five shillings, because he said it w=
as a
lucky omen.
On the communion-table of the pretty little ch=
urch
there was spread the "fair white cloth" of the rubric. It was the=
day
for the monthly celebration of the Sacrament, that met the religious
requirements of the village.
"Will you stay to the Sacrament with
me?" whispered Angela to her lover, in the interval between their seat=
ing
themselves and the entry of the clergyman, Mr. Fraser's locum tenens .
Arthur nodded assent.
And so, when the time came, those two went up together to the altar- rails, and, kneeling side by side, ate of the bread = and drank of the cup, and, rising, departed thence with a new link between them. For, be sure, part of the prayers which they offered up at that high moment= were in humble petition to the Almighty to set His solemn seal and blessing on t= heir love. Indeed, so far as Angela was concerned, there were few acts of her si= mple life that she did not consecrate by prayer, how much more, then, was she be= nt on bringing this, the greatest of all her acts, before her Maker's throne.<= o:p>
Strange indeed, and full of a holy promise, is=
the
yearning with which we turn to Heaven to seek sanctification of our deeds,
feeling our weakness and craving strength from the source of strength; a
yearning of which the church, with that subtle knowledge of human nature, w=
hich
is one of the mainsprings of its power, has not been slow to avail itself. =
And
this need is more especially felt in matters connected with the noblest of =
all
passions, perhaps because all true love and all true religion come from a
common home.
Thus pledged to one another with a new and awf=
ul
pledge, and knit together in the bonds of an universal love, embracing their
poor affection as the wide skies embrace the earth, they rose, and went the=
ir
ways, purer to worship, and stronger to endure.
That afternoon, Arthur had a conversation with=
his
betrothed that, partaking of a business nature in the beginning, ended rath=
er
oddly.
"I must speak to your father when he comes
back to-morrow, dear," he began.
"My father! Oh yes, I had forgotten about
that;" and she looked a little anxious.
"Fortunately, I am fairly well off, so I =
see
no cause why he should object."
"Well, I think that he will be rather gla=
d to
get rid of Pigott and myself. You know that he is not very fond of me."=
;
"That is strange want of taste on his
part."
"Oh, I don't know. Everybody does not see=
me
with your eyes, Arthur."
"Because they have not the chance. All the
world would love you, if it knew you. But, seriously, I think that he can
hardly object, or he would not have allowed us to be thrown so much togethe=
r;
for, in nine cases out of ten, that sort of thing has only one result."=
;
"What do you mean?"
"I mean that to import a young fellow into
the house, and throw him solely into a daughter's company, is very apt to b=
ring
about--well, what has been brought about."
"Then you mean that you think that I shou=
ld
have fallen in love with any gentleman who had come here?"
Arthur, not seeing the slight flash of indigna=
tion
in her eyes, replied,
"Well, you know, there is always a risk, =
but
I should imagine that it would very much depend upon the gentleman."
"Arthur"--with a little stamp--"=
;I
am ashamed of you. How can you think such things of me? You must have a very
poor opinion of me."
"My dear, why should I suppose myself
superior to anybody else, that you should only fall in love with me? You set
too high a value on me."
"And you set too low a value on me; you do
not understand me. You are my fate, my other self; how would it have been
possible for me to love any one but you? I feel as though I had been travel=
ling
to meet you since the beginning of the world, to stand by your side till it=
crumbles
away, yes, for eternity itself. Oh! Arthur, do not laugh at what I say. I a=
m,
indeed, only a simple girl, but, as I told you last night, there is somethi=
ng
stirring in me now, my real life, my eternal part, something that you have
awakened, and with which you have to deal, something apart from the me you
see before you. As I speak, I feel and know that when we are dead and gone,=
I
shall love you still; when more ages have passed than there are leaves upon
that tree, I shall love you still. Arthur, I am yours for ever, for the time
that is, and is to be."
She spoke with the grand freedom of one inspir=
ed,
nay, he felt that she was inspired, and the same feeling of awe that had co=
me
upon him when he first saw her face, again took possession of him. Taking h=
er hand,
he kissed it.
"Dearest," he said, "dearest
Angela, who am I that you should love me so? What have I done that such a
treasure should be given to me? I hope that it may be as you say!"
"It will be as I say," she answered,=
as
she bent to kiss him. And they went on in silence.
Philip arrived home about one o'clock on the
Monday, and, after their nursery dinner, Arthur made his way to the study, =
and
soon found himself in the dread presence--for what presence is more dread (=
most
people would rather face a chief-justice with the gout)--of the man whose
daughter he was about to ask in marriage.
Philip, whom he found seated by a tray, the contents of which he seemed in no humour to touch, received him with his customary politeness, saying, with a smile, that he hoped he had not come t= o tell him that he was sick of the place and its inhabitants, and was going away.<= o:p>
"Far from it, Mr. Caresfoot, I come to sp=
eak
to you on a very different subject."
Philip glanced up with a quick look of expecta=
nt
curiosity, but said nothing.
"In short," said Arthur, desperately,
"I come to ask you to sanction my engagement to Angela."
A pause--a very awkward pause--ensued.
"You are, then, engaged to my daughter?&q=
uot;
"Subject to your consent, I am."
Then came another pause.
"You will understand me, Heigham, when I =
say
that you take me rather by surprise in this business. Your acquaintance with
her has been short."
"That is true, but I have seen a great de=
al
of her."
"Perhaps; but she knows absolutely nothin=
g of
the world, and her preference for you--for, as you say you are engaged to h=
er,
I presume she has shown a preference--may be a mistake, merely a young girl=
's romantic
idea."
Arthur thought of his conversation of the prev=
ious
day with Angela, and could not help smiling as he answered,
"I think if you ask her that, she will te=
ll
you that is not the case."
"Heigham, I will be frank with you. I like
you, and you have, I believe, sufficient means. Of course, you know that my
daughter will have nothing--at any rate, till I am dead," he added,
quickly.
"I never thought about the matter, but I
shall be only too glad to marry her with nothing but herself."
"Very good. I was going to say that,
notwithstanding this, marriage is an important matter; and I must have time=
to
think over it before I give you a decided answer, say a week. I shall not,
however, expect you to leave here unless you wish to do so, nor shall I see=
k to
place any restrictions on your intercourse with Angela, since it would appe=
ar
that the mischief is already done. I am flattered by your proposal; but I m=
ust
have time, and you must understand that in this instance hesitation does not
necessarily mean consent."
In affairs of this nature a man is satisfied w=
ith
small mercies, and willing to put up with inconveniences that appear trifli=
ng
in comparison with the disasters that might have overtaken him. Arthur was =
no
exception to the general rule. Indeed, he was profuse in his thanks, and,
buoyed up with all the confidence of youth, felt sure in his heart that he
would soon find a way to extinguish any objections that might still linger =
in
Philip's mind.
His would-be father-in-law contented himself w= ith acknowledging his remarks with courtesy, and the interview came to an end.<= o:p>
Arthur gone, however, his host lost all his
calmness of demeanour, and, rising from his untasted meal, paced up and dow=
n the
room in thought. Everything had, he reflected, fallen out as he wished. You=
ng Heigham
wished to marry his daughter, and he could not wish for a better husband. S=
ave
for the fatality which had sent that woman to him on her fiend's errand, he
would have given his consent at once, and been glad to give it. Not that he
meant to refuse it--he had no such idea. And then he began to think what,
supposing that Lady Bellamy's embassy had been of a nature that he could
entertain, which it was not, it would mean to him. It would mean the
realization of the work and aspirations of twenty years; it would mean his
re-entry into the property and position from which he had, according to his=
own
view, been unjustly ousted; it would mean, last but not least, triumph over=
George.
And now chance, mighty chance (as fools call Providence), had at last thrown
into his hands a lever with which it would be easy to topple over every
stumbling-block that lay in his path to triumph; more, he might even be abl=
e to
spoil that Egyptian George, giving him less than his due.
Oh, how he hungered for the broad acres of his
birthright! longing for them as a lover longs for his lost bride. The
opportunity would never come again; why should he throw it away? To do so w=
ould
be to turn his cousin into an open and implacable foe. Why should he allow =
this
girl, whose birth had bereft him of the only creature he had ever loved, wh=
ose
sex had alienated the family estates, and for whose company he cared nothin=
g,
to come as a destruction on his plans? She would be well-off; the man loved
her. As for her being engaged to this young Heigham, women soon got over th=
ose
things. After all, now that he came to think of the matter calmly, what val=
id
cause was there why the thing should not be?
And as he paced to and fro, and thought thus, =
an
answer came into his mind. For there rose up before him a vision of his dyi=
ng
wife, and there sounded in his ears the murmur of her half-forgotten voice,=
that,
for all its broken softness, had, with its last accents, called down God's
winged vengeance and His everlasting doom on him who would harm her unprote=
cted
child. And, feeling that if he did this thing, on him would be the vengeance
and the doom, he thought of the shadows of the night, and grew afraid.
When Arthur and his host met, according to the=
ir
custom, that evening, no allusion was made on either side to their conversa=
tion
of the afternoon, nor did her father even speak a word to Angela on the sub=
ject.
Life, to all appearance, went on in the old house precisely as though nothi=
ng
had happened. Philip did not attempt to put the smallest restraint on Arthur
and his daughter, and studiously shut his eyes to the pretty obvious signs =
of
their mutual affection. For them, the long June days were golden, but all t=
oo
short. Every morning found their mutual love more perfect, but when the fla=
kes
of crimson light faded from the skies, and night dropped her veil over the =
tall
trees and peaceful lake, by some miracle it had grown deeper and more perfe=
ct
still. Day by day, Arthur discovered new charms in Angela; here some hidden
knowledge, there an unsuspected grace, and everywhere an all-embracing char=
ity
and love. Day by day he gazed deeper into the depths of her mind, and still
there were more to plumb. For it was a storehouse of noble thoughts and high
ambitions--ambitions, many of which could only find fulfilment in another w=
orld
than this. And, the more he saw of her, the prouder he was to think that su=
ch a
perfect creature should so dearly love himself; and with the greater joy di=
d he
look forward to that supreme and happy hour when he should call her his. An=
d so
day added itself to day, and found them happy.
Indeed, the aspect of their fortunes seemed as
smooth and smiling as the summer surface of the lake. About Philip's final
consent to their engagement they did not trouble themselves, judging, not
unnaturally, that his conduct was in itself a guarantee of approval. If he
meant to raise any serious objections, he would surely have done so before,=
Arthur
would urge, and Angela would quite agree with him, and wonder what parent c=
ould
find it in his heart to object to her bonnie-eyed lover.
What a merciful provision of Providence it is =
that
throws a veil over the future, only to be pierced by the keenest-eyed of
Scotchmen! Where should we find a flavour in those unfrequent cups that the=
shyest
of the gods, Joy, holds to our yearning lips, could we know of the bitter t=
hat
lurks in the tinselled bowl? Surely we have much to be thankful for, but for
nothing should we be so grateful as for this blessed impotence of foresight=
!
But, as it is often on the bluest days that the
mercury begins to sink beneath the breath of far-off hurricane, so there is=
a
warning spirit implanted in sensitive minds that makes them mistrustful of =
too
great happiness. We feel that, for most of us, the wheel of our fortunes re=
volves
too quickly to allow of a long continuance of unbroken joy.
"Arthur," said Angela, one morning, =
when
eight days had passed since her father's return from town, "we are too
happy. We should throw something into the lake."
"I have not got a ring, except the one you
gave me," he answered; for his signet was on his finger. "So, unl=
ess
we sacrifice Aleck or the
ravens, I don't know what it is to be."
"Don't joke, Arthur. I tell you we are too
happy."
Could Arthur have seen through an acre or so of
undergrowth as Angela uttered these words, he would have perceived a very s=
mart
page-boy with the Bellamy crest on his buttons delivering a letter to Phili=
p. It
is true that there was nothing particularly alarming about that, but its
contents might have given a point to Angela's forebodings. It ran thus:
"Rewtham House, Monday.
"=
;My
dear Mr. Caresfoot,
"=
;With
reference to our conversation last week about your daughter and G., can you come over and have a qu=
iet
chat with me this afternoon?
"Sincerely yours, =
"Anne
Bellamy."
Phili=
p read
this note, and then re-read it, knowing in his heart that now was his
opportunity to act up to his convictions, and put an end to the whole
transaction in a few decisive words. But a man who has for so many years gi=
ven
place to the devil of avarice, even though it be avarice with a legitimate
object, cannot shake himself free from his clothes in a moment; even when, =
as
in Philip's case, honour and right, to say nothing of a still more powerful
factor, superstition, speak so loudly in his ears. Surely, he thought, there
would be no harm in hearing what she had to say. He could explain his reaso=
ns
for having nothing to do with the matter so much better in person. Such men=
tal
struggles have only one end. Presently the smart page-boy bore back this no=
te:
"Dear Lady Bellamy,
"=
;I
will be with you at half-past three.
=
"P.C."
It wa=
s with
very curious sensations that Philip was that afternoon shown into a richly
furnished boudoir in Rewtham House. He had not been in that room since he h=
ad
talked to Maria Lee, sitting on that very sofa now occupied by Lady Bellamy=
's
still beautiful form, and he could not but feel that it was a place of evil
omen for him.
Lady Bellamy rose to greet him with her most
fascinating smile.
"This is very kind," she said, as she
motioned him to a seat, which Philip afterwards discovered had been careful=
ly
arranged so as to put his features in the full light, whilst, sitting on the
sofa, her own were concealed. "Well, Mr. Caresfoot," she began, a=
fter
a little pause, "I suppose I had better come to the point at once. Fir=
st
of all, I presume that, as you anticipated would be the case, there exists =
some
sort of understanding between Mr. Heigham and your daughter."
Philip nodded.
"Well, your cousin is as determined as ev=
er
about the matter. Indeed, he is simply infatuated or bewitched, I really do=
n't
know which."
"I am sorry for it, Lady Bellamy, as I
cannot----"
"One moment, Mr. Caresfoot; first let me =
tell
you his offer, then we can talk it over. He offers, conditionally on his
marriage with your daughter, to sell you the Isleworth estates at a fair
valuation hereafter to be agreed upon, and to make a large settlement."=
;
"And what part does he wish me to play in=
the
matter?"
"This. First, you must get rid of young
Heigham, and prevent him from holding any
communication, either with Angela
herself, or with any other person connected with this place, for one year f=
rom
the date of his departure. Secondly, you must throw no obstacle in George's
path. Thirdly, if required, you must dismiss her old nurse, Pigott."
"It cannot be, Lady Bellamy. I came here =
to
tell you so. I dare not force my daughter into such a marriage for all the
estates in England."
Lady Bellamy laughed.
"It is amusing," she said, "to =
see
a father afraid of his own daughter; but you are over-hasty, Mr. Caresfoot.=
Who
asked you to force her? All you are asked to do is not to interfere, and le=
ave
the rest to myself and George. You will have nothing to do with it one way =
or
the other, nor will any responsibility rest with you. Besides, it is very
probable that your cousin will live down his fancy, or some other obstacle =
will
arise to put an end to the thing, in which case Mr. Heigham will come back =
at
the end of his year's probation, and events will take their natural course.=
It
is only wise and right that you should try the constancy of these young lov=
ers,
instead of letting them marry out of hand. If, on the other hand, Angela sh=
ould
in the course of the year declare a preference for her cousin, surely that =
will
be no affair of yours."
"I don't understand what your interest is=
in
this matter, Lady Bellamy."
"My dear Mr. Caresfoot, what does my inte=
rest
matter to you? Perhaps I have one, perhaps I have not; all women love
match-making, you know; what really is important is your decision," and
she shot a glance at him from the heavy-lidded eyes, only to recognize that=
he
was not convinced by her arguments, or, if convinced, obstinate. "By t=
he
way," she went on, slowly, "George asked me to make a payment to =
you
on his account, money that has, he says, been long owing, but which it has =
not
hitherto been convenient to repay."
"What is the sum?" asked Philip,
abstractedly.
"A large one; a thousand pounds."
It did not require the peculiar intonation she
threw into her voice to make the matter clear to him. He was well aware tha=
t no
such sum was owing.
"Here is the cheque," she went on; a=
nd,
taking from her purse a signed and crossed cheque upon a London banker, she
unfolded it and threw it upon the table, watching him the while.
Philip gazed at the money with the eyes of a
hungry wolf. A thousand pounds! That might be his for the asking, nay, for =
the
taking. It would bind him to nothing. The miser's greed took possession of =
him
as he looked. Slowly he raised his hand, twitching with excitement, and str=
etched
it out towards the cheque, but, before his fingers touched it, Lady Bellamy=
, as
though by accident, dropped her white palm upon the precious paper.
"I suppose that Mr. Heigham will leave to=
-morrow
on the understanding we mentioned?" she said carelessly, but in a
significant tone.
Philip nodded.
The hand was withdrawn as carelessly as it had
come, leaving the cheque, blushing in all its naked beauty, upon the table.
Philip took it as deliberately as he could, and put it in his pocket. Then,=
rising,
he said good-bye, adding, as he passed through the door:
"Remember, I have no responsibility in the
matter. I wash my hands of it, and wish to hear nothing about it."
"The thousand pounds has done it,"
reflected Lady Bellamy. "I told George that he would rise greedily at
money. I have not watched him for twenty years for nothing. Fancy selling an
only daughter's happiness in life for a thousand pounds, and such a daughter
too! I wonder how much he would take to murder her, if he were certain that=
he
would not be found out. Upon my word, my work grows quite interesting. That
cur, Philip, is as good as a play," and she laughed her own peculiar
laugh.
Into Philip's guilty thoughts, as he wended his
homeward way, we will not inquire, and indeed, for all the warm glow that t=
he
thousand pound cheque in his pocket diffused through his system, they were =
not
to be envied. Perhaps no scoundrel presents at heart such a miserable objec=
t to
himself and all who know him, as the scoundrel who attempts to deceive hims=
elf
and, whilst reaping its profits, tries to shoulder the responsibility of his
iniquity on to the backs of others!
Unfortunately, in this prosaic world of bargai=
ns,
one cannot receive cheques for one thousand pounds without, in some shape or
form, giving a quid pro quo . Now
Philip's quid was to rid his house and the neighbourho=
od of
Arthur Heigham, his guest and his daughter's lover. It was not a task he li=
ked,
but the unearned cheque in his breeches- pocket continually reminded him of=
the
obligation it entailed.
When Arthur came to smoke his pipe with his ho=
st
that evening, the latter looked so gloomy and depressed, that he wondered to
himself if he was going to be treated to a repetition of the shadow scene,
little guessing that there was something much more personally unpleasant be=
fore
him.
"Heigham," Philip said, suddenly, and
looking studiously in the other direction, "I want to speak to you. I =
have
been thinking over our conversation of about a week ago on the subject of y=
our
engagement to Angela, and have now come to a final determination. I may say=
at
once that I approve of you in every way" (here his hearer's heart boun=
ded with
delight), "but, under all the circumstances, I don't think that I shou=
ld
be right in sanctioning an immediate engagement. You are not sufficiently s=
ure
of each other for that. I may seem old-fashioned, but I am a great believer=
in
the virtue of constancy, and I'm anxious, in your own interests, to put you=
rs
and Angela's to the test. The terms that I can offer you are these. You must
leave here to-morrow, and must give me your word of honour as a
gentleman--which I know will be the most effectual guarantee that I can take
from you--that you will not for the space of a year either attempt to see
Angela again, or to hold any written communication with her, or anybody in =
any
way connected with her. The year ended, you can return, and, should you both
still be of the same mind, you can then marry her as soon as you like. If y=
ou
decline to accede to these terms--which I believe to be to your mutual ulti=
mate
advantage--I must refuse my consent to the engagement altogether."
A silence followed this speech. The match that
Arthur had lit before Philip began, burnt itself out between his fingers
without his appearing to suffer any particular inconvenience, and now his p=
ipe fell
with a crash into the grate, and broke into fragments--a fit symbol of the =
blow
dealt to his hopes. For some moments he was so completely overwhelmed at the
idea of losing Angela for a whole long year, losing her as completely as th=
ough
she were dead, that he could not answer. At length he found his voice, and
said, hoarsely:
"Yours are hard terms."
"I cannot argue the point with you, Heigh=
am;
such as they are, they are my terms, founded on what I consider I owe to my
daughter. Do you accept them?"
"I cannot answer you off-hand. My happine=
ss
and Angela's are too vitally concerned to allow me to do so. I must consult=
her
first."
"Very good, I have no objection; but you =
must
let me have your answer by ten to-morrow."
Had Arthur only known his own strength and
Philip's weakness--the strength that honesty and honour ever have in the fa=
ce
of dishonour and dishonesty--had he known the hesitating feebleness of Phil=
ip's
avarice-tossed mind, how easy it would have been for him to tear his bald
arguments to sheds, and, by the bare exhibition of unshaken purpose, to
confound and disallow his determinations--had he then and there refused to
agree to his ultimatum, so divided was Philip in his mind and so shaken by
superstitious fears, that he would have accepted it as an omen, and have
yielded to a decision of character that had no real existence in himself. B=
ut
he did not know; indeed, how could he know? and he was, besides, too thorou=
gh a
gentleman to allow himself to suspect foul play. And so, too sad for talk, =
and
oppressed by the dread sense of coming separation from her whom he loved mo=
re
dearly than his life, he sought his room, there to think and pace, to pace =
and
think, until the stars had set.
When, wearied out at length, he threw himself =
into
bed, it was only to exchange bad for worse; for on such occasions sleep is
worse than wakefulness, it is so full of dreams, big with coming pain. Shor=
tly after
dawn he got up again, and went into the garden and listened to the birds
singing their matin hymn. But he was in no mood for the songs of birds, how=
ever
sweet, and it was a positive relief to him when old Jakes emerged, his cross
face set in the gladness of the morning, like a sullen cloud in the blue sk=
y,
and began to do something to his favourite bed of cabbages. Not that Arthur=
was
fond of old Jakes; on the contrary, ever since the coffin-stand conversatio=
n,
which betrayed, he considered, a malevolent mind, he detested him personall=
y;
but still he set a fancy value on him because he was connected with the dai=
ly
life of his betrothed.
And then at last out came Angela, having spied=
him
from behind the curtains of her window, clothed in the same white gown in w=
hich
he had first beheld her, and which he consequently considered the prettiest=
of
frocks. Never did she look more lovely than when she came walking towards h=
im
that morning, with her light, proud step, which was so full of grace and
womanly dignity. Never had he thought her more sweet and heart-compelling, =
than
when, having first made sure that Jakes had retreated to feed his pigs, she
shyly lifted her bright face to be greeted with his kiss. But she was quick=
of
sympathy, and had learned to read him like an open page, and before his lips
had fairly fallen on her own she knew that things had gone amiss.
"Oh, what is it, Arthur?" she said, =
with
a little pant of fear.
"Be brave, dear, and I will tell you.&quo=
t;
And in somewhat choky tones, he recounted word for word what had passed bet=
ween
her father and himself.
She listened in perfect silence, and bore the =
blow
as a brave woman should. When he had finished, she said, with a little trem=
or
in her voice:
"You will not forget me in a year, will y=
ou,
Arthur?"
He kissed her by way of answer, and then they
agreed to go together to Philip, and try to turn him from his purpose.
Breakfast was not a cheerful meal that day, and
Pigott, noticing the prevailing depression, remarked, with sarcasm, that th=
ey might,
for all appearance to the contrary, have been married for twenty years; but
even this spirited sally did not provoke a laugh. Ten o'clock, the hour that
was to decide their fate, came all too soon, and it was with very anxious
hearts that they took their way to the study. Philip, who was seated in
residence, appeared to view Angela's arrival with some uneasiness.
"Of course, Angela," he said, "=
I am
always glad to see you, but I hardly expected----"
"I beg your pardon for intruding,
father," she answered; "but, as this is very important to me, I
thought that I had better come too, and hear what is settled."
As it was evident that she meant to stay, Phil=
ip
did not attempt to gainsay her.
"Oh, very well, very well--I suppose you =
have
heard the terms upon which I am prepared to consent to your engagement.&quo=
t;
"Yes, Arthur has told me; and it is to
implore you to modify them that we have come. Father, they are cruel terms-=
-to
be dead to each other for a whole long year."
"I cannot help it, Angela. I am sorry to
inflict pain upon either of you; but I have arrived at them entirely in your
own interests, and after a great deal of anxious thought. Believe me, a yea=
r's
probation will be very good for both of you; it is not probable that, where=
my only
child is concerned, I should wish to do anything except what is for her
happiness!"
Arthur looked rebellion at Angela. Philip saw =
it,
and added:
"Of course you can defy me--it is, I beli=
eve,
rather the fashion for girls, nowadays, to do so--but, if you do, you must =
both
clearly understand, first, that you cannot marry without my consent till th=
e first
of May next, or very nearly a year hence, when Angela comes of age, and tha=
t I
shall equally forbid all intercourse in the interval; and secondly, that wh=
en
you do so, it will be against my wish, and that I shall cut her name out of=
my
will, for this property is only entailed in the male line. It now only rema=
ins
for me to ask you if you agree to my conditions."
Angela answered him, speaking very slowly and
clearly:
"I accept them on my own behalf, not beca=
use
I understand them, or think them right, or because of your threats, but
because, though you do not care for me, I am your daughter, and should obey
you--and believe that you wish to do what is best for me. That is why I acc=
ept,
although it will make my life wretched for a year."
"Do you hear what she says?" said
Philip, turning to Arthur. "Do you also agree?"
He answered boldly, and with some temper (how
would he have answered could he have seen the thousand pound cheque that was
reposing upon the table in Philip's rusty pocket-book, and known for what
purpose it came there?).
"If it had not been Angela's wish, I would
never have agreed. I think your terms preposterous, and I only hope that you
have some satisfactory reason for them; for you have not shown us any. But
since she takes this view of the matter, and because, so far as I can see, =
you
have completely cornered us, I suppose I must. You are her father, and cann=
ot
in nature wish to thwart her happiness; and if you have any plan of causing=
her
to forget me--I don't want to be conceited, but I believe that it will
fail." Here Angela smiled somewhat sadly. "So, unless one of us d=
ies
before the year is up, I shall come back to be married on the 9th of June n=
ext
year."
"Really, my dear Heigham, your way of tal=
king
is so aggressive, that some fathers might be tempted to ask you not to come
back at all; but perhaps it is, under the circumstances, excusable."
"You would probably think so, if you were=
in
my place," blurted out Arthur.
"You give me, then, your word of honour a=
s a
gentleman that you will attempt, either in person or by letter, no
communication with Angela or with anybody about this place for one year from
to-day?"
"On the condition that, at the end of the
year, I may return and marry her as soon as I like."
"Certainly; your marriage can take place =
on
the 9th of June next, if you like, and care to bring a license and a proper
settlement--say, of half your income--with you," answered Philip, with=
a
half smile.
"I take you at your word," said Arth=
ur,
eagerly, "that is, if Angela agrees." Angela made no signs of
disagreement. "Then, on those terms, I give you my promise."
"Very good. Then that is settled, and I w=
ill
send for a dog-cart to take you to the four o'clock train. I fear you will
hardly be ready for the 12.25. I shall, however, hope," he added, &quo=
t;to
have the pleasure of presenting this young lady to you for good and all on =
this
day next year. Good-bye for the present. I shall see you before you go.&quo=
t;
It is painful to have to record that when Arth=
ur
got outside the door, and out of Angela's hearing, he cursed Philip, in his
grief and anger, for the space of some minutes.
To linger over those last hours could only be
distressing to the sympathetic reader of this history, more especially if h=
e,
or she, has ever had the misfortune to pass through such a time in their ow=
n proper
persons. The day of any one's departure is always wretched, but much more i=
s it
wretched, when the person departing is a lover, whose face will not be seen=
and
of whom no postman will bear tidings for a whole long year.
Some comfort, however, these two took in looki=
ng
forward to that joyous day when the year of probation should have been gath=
ered
to its predecessors, and in making the most minute arrangements for their w=
edding:
how Angela was to warn Mr. Fraser that his services would be required; where
they should go to for their honeymoon, and even of what flowers the wedding
bouquet, which Arthur was to bring down from town with him, should be compo=
sed.
And thus the hours passed away, all too quickl=
y,
and each of them strove to be merry, in order to keep up the spirits of the
other. But it is not in human nature to feel cheerful with a lump of ice up=
on
the heart! Dinner was even more dismal than breakfast, and Pigott, who had =
been
informed of the impending misfortune, and who was distrustful of Philip's
motives, though she did not like to add to the general gloom by saying so,
made, after the manner of half-educated people, a painful and infectious
exhibition of her grief.
"Poor Aleck," said Angela, when the =
time
drew near, bending down over the dog to hide a tear, as she had once before
bent down to hide a blush; "poor Aleck, I shall miss you almost as muc=
h as
your master."
"You will not miss him, Angela, because I=
am
going to make you a present of him if you will keep him."
"That is very good of you, dear. I shall =
be
glad to have him for your sake."
"Well, keep him, love, he is a good dog; =
he
will quite have transferred his allegiance by the time I come back. I hope =
you
won't have done the same, Angela."
"Oh, Arthur, why will you so often make me
angry by saying such things? The sun will forget to shine before I forget
you."
"Hush, love, I did not mean it," and=
he
took her in his arms. And so they sat there together under the oak where fi=
rst
they had met, hand in hand and heart to heart, and it was at this moment th=
at
the self- reliant strength, and more beautiful serenity of Angela's charact=
er
as compared with her lover's came into visible play. For whilst, as the mom=
ent
of separation drew nigh, he could scarcely contain his grief, she on the ot=
her
hand grew more and more calm, strengthening his weakness with her quiet pow=
er;
and bidding him seek consolation in his trouble at the hands of Him who for=
His
own purposes decreed it.
"Dearest," she said, in answer to his
complainings, "there are so many things in the world that we cannot
understand, and yet they must be right and lead to a good end. What may hap=
pen
to us before this year is out, of course we cannot say, but I feel that all
love is immortal, and that there is a perfect life awaiting us, if not in t=
his
world, then in the next. Remember, dear, that these few years are, after al=
l, but
as a breath to the general air, or as that dew-drop to the waters of the la=
ke,
when compared with the future that awaits us there, and that until we attain
that future we cannot really know each other, or the true meaning and purpo=
se
of our love. So look forward to it without fear, dear heart, and if it shou=
ld
chance that I should pass out of your life, or that other ties should sprin=
g up
round you that shall forbid the outward expression of our love----" He=
re
Arthur started and was about to interrupt, but she stopped him. "Do no=
t start,
Arthur. Who can read the future? Stranger things have happened, and if, I s=
ay,
such a thing should come about in our case, then remember, I implore you, t=
hat
in that future lies the answer to the puzzles of the world, and turn your e=
yes
to it, as to the horizon beyond which you will find me waiting for you, and=
not
only me, but all that you have ever loved. Only, dear, try to be a good man=
and
love me always."
He looked at her in wonder.
"Angela," he said, "what has ma=
de
you so different from other women? With all whom I have known, love is an
affair of passion or amusement, of the world and the day, but yours gazes
towards Heaven, and looks to find its real utterance in the stillness of
Eternity! To be loved by you, my dear, would be worth a century of
sorrows."
At last the moment came, as all moments good a=
nd
bad must come. To Pigott, who was crying, he gave a hug and a five-pound no=
te,
to Aleck, a pat on the head, to Philip, who could not look him in the face,=
a shake
of the hand, and to Angela, who bravely smiled into his eyes--a long last k=
iss.
But, when the cruel wheels began to crunch upon
the gravel, the great tears welling to her eyes blotted him from sight. Bli=
ndly
she made her way up to her room, and throwing herself upon the bed let her =
unrestrained
sorrow loose, feeling that she was indeed desolate and alone.
When Angela was still quite a child, the perma=
nent
inhabitants of Sherborne Lane, King William Street, in the city of London, =
used
to note a very pretty girl, of small statue and modest ways, passing out --=
every
evening after the city gentlemen had locked up their offices and gone
home--from the quiet of the lane into the roar and rush of the city. This y=
oung
girl was Mildred James, the only daughter of a struggling, a very strugglin=
g,
city doctor, and her daily mission was to go to the cheap markets, and buy =
the
provisions that were to last the Sherborne Lane household (for her father l=
ived
in the same rooms that he practised in) for the ensuing twenty-four hours. =
The world
was a hard place for poor Mildred in those days of provision hunting, when =
so
little money had to pay for so many necessaries, and to provide also for the
luxuries that were necessaries to her invalid mother. Some years later, when
she was a sweet maiden of eighteen, her mother died, but medical competition
was keen in Sherborne Lane, and her removal did not greatly alleviate the
pressure of poverty. At last, one evening, when she was about twenty years =
of
age, a certain Mr. Carr, an old gentleman with whom her father had some
acquaintance, sent up a card with a pencilled message on it to the effect t=
hat
he would be glad to see Dr. James.
"Run, Mildred," said her father,
"and tell Mr. Carr that I will be with him in a minute. It will never =
do
to see a new patient in this coat."
Mildred departed, and, gliding into the gloomy
consulting-room like a sunbeam, delivered her message to the old gentleman,=
who
appeared to be in some pain, and prepared to return.
"Don't go away," almost shouted the =
aged
patient; "I have crushed my finger in a door, and it hurts most
confoundedly. You are something to look at in this hole, and distract my
attention."
Mildred thought to herself that this was an odd
way of paying a compliment, if it was meant for one; but then, old gentlemen
with crushed fingers are not given to weighing their words.
"Are you Dr. James' daughter?" he as=
ked,
presently.
"Yes, sir."
"Ugh, I have lived most of my life in
Sherborne Lane, and never saw anything half so pretty in it before. Confoun=
d this
finger!"
At this moment the doctor himself arrived, and
wanted to dismiss Mildred, but Mr. Carr, who was a headstrong old gentleman,
vowed that no one else should hold his injured hand whilst it was dressed, =
and
so she stayed just long enough for him to fall as completely in love with h=
er
shell-like face was though he had been twenty instead of nearly seventy.
Now, Mr. Carr was not remarkable for good look=
s,
and in addition to having seen out so many summers, had also buried two wiv=
es.
It will, therefore, be clear that he was scarcely the suitor that a lovely =
girl,
conscious of capacities for deep affection, would have selected of her own =
free
will; but, on the other hand, he was honest and kind- hearted, and, what was
more to the point, perhaps the wealthiest wine- merchant in the city. Mildr=
ed
resisted as long as she could, but want is a hard master, and a father's
arguments are difficult to answer, and in the end she married him, and, wha=
t is
more, made him a good and faithful wife.
She never had any cause to regret it, for he w=
as
kindness itself towards her, and when he died, some five years afterwards,
having no children of his own, he left her sole legatee of all his enormous=
fortune,
bound up by no restrictions as to re-marriage. About this time also her fat=
her
died, and she was left as much alone in the world as it is possible for a y=
oung
and pretty woman, possessing in her own right between twenty and thirty
thousand a year, to be.
Needless to say, Mrs. Carr was thenceforth one=
of
the catches of her generation; but nobody could catch her, though she alone
knew how many had tried. Once she made a list of all the people who had
proposed to her; it included amongst others a bishop, two peers, three memb=
ers
of parliament, no less than five army officers, an American, and a dissenti=
ng
clergyman.
"It is perfectly marvellous, my dear,&quo=
t;
she said to her companion, Agatha Terry, "how fond people are of twenty
thousand a year, and yet they all said that they loved me for myself, that =
is,
all except the dissenter, who wanted me to help to 'feed his flock,' and I
liked him the best of the lot, because he was the honestest."
Mrs. Carr had a beautiful house in Grosvenor
Square, a place in Leicestershire, where she hunted a little, a place in the
Isle of Wight that she rarely visited, and, lastly, a place at Madeira wher=
e she
lived for nearly half the year. There never had been a breath of scandal
against her name, nor had she given cause for any. "As for loving,&quo=
t;
she would say, "the only things she loved were beetles and mummies,&qu=
ot;
for she was a clever naturalist, and a faithful student of the lore of the
ancient Egyptians. The beetles, she would explain, had been the connecting =
link
between the two sciences, since beetles had led her to scarabaei, and scara=
baei
to the human husks with which they are to be found; but this statement, tho=
ugh
amusing, was not strictly accurate, as she had in reality contracted the ta=
ste
from her late husband, who had left her a large collection of Egyptian
antiquities.
"I do adore a mummy," she would say,
"I am small enough in mind and body already, but it makes me feel inch=
es
smaller, and I like to measure my own diminutiveness."
She was not much of a reader; life was, she
declared, too short to waste in study; but, when she did take up a book, it=
was
generally of a nature that most women of her class would have called stiff,=
and
then she could read it without going to sleep.
In addition to these occupations, Mrs. Carr had
had various crazes at different stages of her widowhood, which had now endu=
red
for some five years. She had travelled, she had "gone-in for art;"
once she had speculated a little, but finding that, for a woman, it was a
losing game, she was too shrewd to continue this last pastime. But she alwa=
ys came
back to her beetles and her mummies.
Still, with all her money, her places, her off=
ers
of marriage, and her self-made occupations, Mildred Carr was essentially
"a weary woman, sunk deep in ease, and sated with her life." With=
in
that little frame of hers, there beat a great active heart, ever urging her
onwards towards an unknown end. She would describe herself as an "ill-=
regulated
woman," and the description was not without justice, for she did not
possess that placid, even mind which is so necessary to the comfort of Engl=
ish
ladies, and which enables many of them to bury a husband or a lover as
composedly as they take him. She would have given worlds to be able to fall=
in
love with some one, to fill up the daily emptiness of her existence with
another's joys and griefs, but she could
not. Men passed before her in endl=
ess
procession, all sorts and conditions of them, and for the most part were
anxious to marry her, but they might as well have been a string of wax dolls
for aught she could care about them. To her eyes, they were nothing more th=
an a
succession of frock-coats and tall hats, full of shine and emptiness,
signifying nothing. For their opinion, too, and that of the society which t=
hey
helped to form, she had a most complete and wrong- headed contempt. She car=
ed
nothing for the ordinary laws of social life, and was prepared to break thr=
ough
them on emergency, as a wasp breaks through a spider's web. Perhaps she gue=
ssed
that a good deal of breaking would be forgiven to the owner of such a lovely
face, and more than twenty thousand a year. With all this, she was extremel=
y observant,
and possessed, unknown to herself, great powers of mind, and great, though
dormant, capacities for passion. In short, this little woman, with the baby
face, smiling and serene as the blue sky that hides the gathering hurricane,
was rather odder than the majority of her sex, which is perhaps saying a gr=
eat
deal.
One day, about a week before Arthur departed f=
rom
the Abbey House, Agatha Terry was sitting in the blue drawing-room in the h=
ouse
in Grosvenor Square, when Mrs. Carr came in, almost at a run, slammed the d=
oor
behind her, and plumped herself down in a chair with a sigh of relief.
"Agatha, give orders to pack up. We will =
go
to Madeira by the next boat."
"Goodness gracious, Mildred! across that
dreadful bay again; and just think how hot it will be, and the beginning of=
the
season too."
"Now, Agatha, I'm going, and there's an e=
nd
of it, so it is no use arguing. You can stay here, and give a series of bal=
ls
and dinners, if you like."
"Nonsense, dear; me give parties indeed, =
and
you at Madeira! Why, it's just as though you asked Ruth to entertain the
reapers without Naomi. I'll go and give the orders; but I do hope that it w=
ill
be calm. Why do you want to go now?"
"I'll tell you. Lord Minster has been
proposing to me again, and announces his intention of going on doing so til=
l I
accept him. You know, he has just got into the Cabinet, so he has celebrated
the event by asking me to marry him, for the third time."
"Poor fellow! Perhaps he is very fond of
you."
"Not a bit of it. He is fond of my good l=
ooks
and my money. I will tell you the substance of his speech this morning. He
stood like this, with his hands in his pockets, and said, 'I am now a cabin=
et
minister. It is a good thing that a cabinet minister should have somebody p=
resentable
to sit at the head of his table. You are presentable. I appreciate beauty, =
when
I have time to think about it. I observe that you are beautiful. I am not v=
ery
well-off for my position. You, on the other hand, are immensely rich. With =
your
money, I can, in time, become Prime Minister. It is, consequently, evidentl=
y to
my advantage that you should marry me, and I have sacrificed a very importa=
nt appointment
in order to come and settle it.'"
Agatha laughed.
"And how did you answer him?"
"In his own style. 'Lord Minster,' I said=
, 'I
am, for the third time, honoured by your flattering proposal, but I have no
wish to ornament your table, no desire to expose my beauty to your perpetua=
l admiration,
and no ambition to advance your political career. I do not love you, and I =
had
rather become the wife of a crossing-sweeper that I loved, than that of a
member of the government for whom I have every respect, but no affection.'
"'As the wife of a crossing-sweeper, it is
probable,' he answered, 'that you would be miserable. As my wife, you would
certainly be admired and powerful, and consequently happy.'
"'Lord Minster,' I said, 'you have studied
human nature but very superficially, if you have not learnt that it is bett=
er
for a woman to be miserable with the man she loves, than "admired,
powerful, and consequently happy," with one who has no attraction for
her.'
"'Your remark is interesting,' he replied;
'but I think that there is something paradoxical about it. I must be going =
now,
as I have only five minutes to get to Westminster; but I will think it over,
and answer it when we renew our conversation, which I propose to do very sh=
ortly,'
and he was gone before I could get in another word."
"But why should that make you go to
Madeira?"
"Because, my dear, if I don't, so sure as=
I
am a living woman, that man will tire me out and marry me, and I dislike hi=
m,
and don't want to marry him. I have a strong will, but his is of iron."=
;
And so it came to pass that the names of Mrs.
Carr, Miss Terry, and three servants, appeared upon the passenger list of
Messrs. Donald Currie & Co.'s royal mail steamship Warwick Castle , due to sail for Madeira=
and
the Cape ports on the 14th of June.
Arthur arrived in town in a melancholy conditi=
on.
His was a temperament peculiarly liable to suffer from attacks of depressio=
n, and
he had, with some excuse, a sufficiently severe one on him now. Do what he
would he could not for a single hour free his mind from the sick longing to=
see
or hear from Angela, that, in addition to the mental distress it occasioned
him, amounted almost to a physical pain. After two or three days of lounging
about his club--for he was in no mood for going out--he began to feel that =
this
sort of thing was intolerable, and that it was absolutely necessary for him=
to
go somewhere or do something.
It so happened that, just after he had come to
this decision, he overheard two men, who were sitting at the next table to =
him
in the club dining-room, talking of the island of Madeira, and speaking of =
it as
a charming place. He accepted this as an omen, and determined that to Madei=
ra
he would go. And, indeed, the place would suit him as well as any other to =
get
through a portion of his year of probation in, and, whilst affording a comp=
lete
change of scene, would not be too far from England.
And so it came to pass that on the morrow Arth=
ur
found himself in the office of Messrs. Donald Currie, for the purpose of
booking his berth in the vessel that was due to sail on the 14th. There he =
was
informed by the very affable clerk, who assisted him to choose his cabin, t=
hat the
vessel was unusually empty, and that, up to the present time, berths had be=
en
taken for only five ladies, and two of them Jewesses.
"However," the clerk added, by way of
consolation, "this one," pointing to Mrs. Carr's name on the list,
"is as good as a cargo," and he whistled expressively.
"What do you mean?" asked Arthur, his
curiosity slightly excited.
"I mean--my word, here she comes."
At that moment the swing doors of the office w=
ere
pushed open, and there came through them one of the sweetest, daintiest lit=
tle
women Arthur had ever seen. She was no longer quite young, she might be eig=
ht
and twenty or thirty, but, on the other hand, maturity had but added to the
charms of youth. She had big, brown eyes that Arthur thought could probably
look languishing, if they chose, and that even in repose were full of
expression, a face soft and blooming as a peach, and round as a baby's,
surmounted by a quantity of nut-brown hair, the very sweetest mouth, the li=
ps
rather full, and just showing a line of pearl, and lastly, what looked rath=
er
odd on such an infantile countenance, a firm, square, and very determined, =
if
very diminutive chin. For the rest, it was difficult to say which was the m=
ost
perfect, her figure or her dress.
All of which, of course, had little interest f=
or
Arthur, but what did rather startle him was her voice, when she spoke. From
such a woman one would naturally have expected a voice of a corresponding
nature, namely, one of the soft and murmuring order. But hers, on the contr=
ary,
though sweet, was decided, and clear as a bell, and with a peculiar ring in=
it
that he would have recognized amongst a thousand others.
On her entrance, Arthur stepped on one side.
"I have come to say," she said, with=
a
slight bow of recognition to the clerk; "that I have changed my mind a=
bout
my berth, instead of the starboard deck cabin, I should like to have the po=
rt.
I think that it will be cooler at this time of year, and also will you plea=
se
make arrangements for three horses."
"I am excessively sorry, Mrs. Carr,"=
the
clerk answered; "but the port cabin is engaged--in fact, this gentleman
has just taken it."
"Oh, in that case"--with a little
blush--"there is an end of the question."
"By no means," interrupted Arthur.
"It is a matter of perfect indifference to me where I go. I beg that y=
ou
will take it."
"Oh, thank you. You are very good, but I
could not think of robbing you of your cabin."
"I must implore you to do so. Rather than
there should be any difficulty, I will go below." And then, addressing=
the
clerk, "Be so kind as to change the cabin."
"I owe you many thanks for your
courtesy," said Mrs. Carr, with a little curtsey.
Arthur took off his hat.
"Then we will consider that settled. Good
morning, or perhaps I should say au
revoir ;" and, bowing again, he left the office.
"What is that gentleman's name?" Mrs.
Carr asked, when he was gone.
"Here it is, madam, on the list. 'Arthur
Preston Heigham, passenger to Madeira.'"
"Arthur Preston Heigham!" Mrs. Carr =
said
to herself, as she made her way down to her carriage in Fenchurch Street.
"Arthur is pretty, and Preston is pretty, but I don't much like Heigha=
m.
At any rate, there is no doubt about his being a gentleman. I wonder what h=
e is
going to Madeira for? He has an interesting face. I think I am glad we are =
going
to be fellow-passengers."
The two days that remained to him in town, Art=
hur
spent in making his preparations for departure; getting money, buying, after
the manner of young Englishmen starting on a voyage to foreign parts, a lar=
ge
and fearfully sharp hunting-knife, as though Madeira were the home of wild =
beasts,
and laying in a stock of various other articles of a useless description, s=
uch
as impenetrable sun-helmets and leather coats.
The boat was to sail at noon on Friday, and on=
the
Thursday evening he left Paddington by the mail that reaches Dartmouth about
midnight. On the pier, he and one or two other fellow-passengers found a bo=
at waiting
to take them to the great vessel, that, painted a dull grey, lay still and
solemn in the harbour as they were rowed up to her, very different from the
active, living thing that she was destined to become within the next
twenty-four hours. The tide ebbing past her iron sides, the fresh, strong s=
mell
of the sea, the tall masts pointing skywards like gigantic fingers, the chi=
me
of the bell upon the bridge, the sleepy steward, and the stuffy cabin, were=
all
a pleasant variation from the every-day monotony of existence, and contribu=
ted
towards the conclusion that life was still partially worth living, even whe=
n it
could not be lived with Angela. Indeed, so much are we the creatures of
circumstance, and so liable to be influenced by surroundings, that Arthur, =
who,
a few hours before, had been plunged into the depths of depression, turned =
into
his narrow berth, after a tremendous struggle with the sheets--which stewar=
ds
arrange on a principle incomprehensible to landlubbers, and probably only p=
artially
understood by themselves--with considerable satisfaction and a pleasurable
sense of excitement.
The next morning, or rather the earlier part of
it, he devoted, when he was not thinking about Angela, to arranging his goo=
ds
and chattels in his small domain, to examining the lovely scenery of Dartmo=
uth harbour--the
sight of which is enough to make any outward-bound individual bitterly regr=
et
his determination to quit his native land-- and to inspecting the outward m=
an
of his fellow-passengers with that icy stolidity which characterizes the
true-born Briton. But the great event of the morning was the arrival of the
mail-train, bringing the bags destined for various African ports, loose let=
ters
for the passengers, and a motley contingent of the passengers themselves. A=
mongst
these latter, he had no difficulty in recognizing the two Jewesses, of whom=
the
clerk in the office had spoken, who were accompanied by individuals, presum=
ably
their husbands, and very remarkable for the splendour of their diamond studs
and the dirtiness of their nails. The only other specimen of saloon-passeng=
er
womankind that he could see was a pretty, black-eyed girl of about eighteen,
who was, as he afterwards discovered, going out under the captain's care to=
be
a governess at the Cape, and who, to judge from the intense melancholy of h=
er
countenance, did not particularly enjoy the prospect. But, with the excepti=
on
of some heavy baggage that was being worked up from a cargo-boat by the
donkey-engine, and a luxurious cane-chair on the deck that bore her name, no
signs were there of Mrs. Carr.
Presently the purser sent round the head-stewa=
rd,
a gentleman whom Arthur mistook for the first mate, so smart was his unifor=
m,
to collect the letters, and it wrung him not a little to think that he alone
could send none. The bell sounded to warn all not sailing to hurry to their
boats, but still there was nothing to be seen of his acquaintance of the
office; and, to speak the truth, he was just a little disappointed, for wha=
t he
had seen of her had piqued his curiosity, and made him anxious to see more.=
"I can't wait any longer," he heard =
the
captain say; "she must come on by the Kinfauns ."
It was full twelve o'clock, and the last rope =
was
being loosed from the moorings. "Ting-ting," went the engine-room
bell. "Thud-thud," started the great screw that would not stop ag=
ain
for so many restless hours. The huge vessel shuddered throughout her frame =
like
an awakening sleeper, and growing quick with life, forged an inch or two a-=
head.
Next, a quartermaster, came with two men to hoist up the gangway, when sudd=
enly
a boat shot alongside and hooked on, amongst the occupants of which Arthur =
had
no difficulty in recognizing Mrs. Carr, who sat laughing, like Pleasure, at=
the
helm. The other occupants of the boat, who were not laughing, he guessed to=
be
her servants and the lady who figured on the passenger-list as Miss Terry, a
stout, solemn-looking person in spectacles.
"Now, then, Agatha," called out Mrs.
Carr from the stern-sheets, "be quick and jump up."
"My dear Mildred, I can't go up there; I
can't, indeed. Why, the thing's moving."
"But you must go up, or else be pulled up
with a rope. Here, I will show the way," and, moving down the boat, she
sprang boldly, as it rose with the swell, into the stalwart arms of the sai=
lor
who was waiting on the gangway landing-stage, and thence ran up the steps t=
o the
deck.
"Very well, I am going to Madeira. I don't know what you are going to do; but you must make up your mind quick."<= o:p>
"Can't hold on much longer, mum," sa=
id
the boatman, "she's getting way on now."
"Come on, mum; I won't let you in," =
said
the man of the ladder, seductively.
"Oh, dear, oh, dear, what shall I do?&quo= t; groaned Miss Terry, wringing the hand that was not employed in holding on.<= o:p>
"John," called Mrs. Carr to a servant
who was behind Miss Terry, and looking considerably alarmed, "don't st=
and
there like a fool; put Miss Terry on to that ladder."
Mrs. Carr was evidently accustomed to be obeye=
d,
for, thus admonished, John seized the struggling and shrieking Miss Terry, =
and
bore her to the edge of the boat, where she was caught by two sailors, and,
amidst the cheers of excited passengers, fairly dragged on to the deck.
"Oh! Mrs. Carr," said the chief offi=
cer,
reproachfully, when Miss Terry had been satisfactorily deposited on a bench,
"you are late again; you were late last voyage."
"Not at all, Mr. Thompson. I hate spending
longer than is necessary aboard ship, so, when the train got in, I took a b=
oat
and went for a row in the harbour. I knew that you would not go without
me."
"Oh, yes, we should have, Mrs. Carr; the
skipper heard about it because he waited for you before."
"Well, here I am, and I promise that I wo=
n't
do it again."
Mr. Thompson laughed, and passed on. At this
moment Mrs. Carr perceived Arthur, and, bowing to him, they fell into
conversation about the scenery through which the boat was passing on her wa=
y to
the open sea. Before very long, indeed, as soon as the vessel began to rise=
and
fall upon the swell, this talk was interrupted by a voice from the seat whe=
re
Miss Terry had been placed.
"Mildred," it said, "I do wish =
you
would not come to sea; I am beginning to feel ill."
"And no wonder, if you will insist upon
coming up ladders head downwards. Where's John? He will help you to your ca=
bin;
the deck one, next to mine."
But John had vanished with a parcel.
"Mildred, send some one quick, I beg of
you," remarked Miss Terry, in the solemn tones of one who feels that a
crisis is approaching.
"I can't see anybody except a very dirty =
sailor."
"Permit me," said Arthur, stepping to
the rescue.
"You are very kind; but she can't walk. I
know her ways; she has got to the stage when she must be carried. Can you
manage her?"
"I think so," replied Arthur, "=
if
you don't mind holding her legs, and provided that the vessel does not
roll," and, with an effort, he hoisted Miss Terry baby-fashion into his
arms, and staggered off with her towards the indicated cabin, Mrs. Carr, as
suggested, holding the lower limbs of the prostrate lady. Presently she beg=
an
to laugh.
"If you only knew how absurd we look,&quo=
t;
she said.
"Don't make me laugh," answered Arth=
ur,
puffing; for Miss Terry was by no means light, "or I shall drop her.&q=
uot;
"If you do, young man," ejaculated h=
is
apparently unconscious burden with wonderful energy, "I will never for=
give
you."
A remark, the suddenness of which so startled =
him,
that he very nearly did.
"Thank you. Now lay her quite flat, pleas=
e.
She won't get up again till we drop anchor at Madeira."
"If I live so long," murmured the in=
valid.
Arthur now made his bow and departed, wondering
how two women so dissimilar as Mrs. Carr and Miss Terry came to be living
together. As it is a piece of curiosity that the reader may share, perhaps =
it
had better be explained.
Miss Terry was a middle-aged relative of Mrs.
Carr's late husband, who had by a series of misfortunes been left quite
destitute. Her distress having come to the knowledge of Mildred Carr, she, =
with
the kind- hearted promptitude that distinguished her, at once came to her a=
id, paid
her debts, and brought her to her own house to stay, where she had remained
ever since under the title of companion. These two women, living thus toget=
her,
had nothing whatsoever in common, save that Miss Terry took some reflected
interest in beetles. As for travelling, having been brought up and lived in=
the
same house of the same county town until she reached the age of forty-five,=
it
was, as may be imagined, altogether obnoxious to her. Indeed, it is more th=
an doubtful
if she retained any clear impression whatsoever of the places she visited.
"A set of foreign holes!" as she would call them, contemptuously.
Miss Terry was, in short, neither clever nor strong minded, but so long as =
she
could be in the company of her beloved Mildred, whom she regarded with ming=
led
reverence and affection, she was perfectly happy. Oddly enough, this affect=
ion
was reciprocated, and there probably was nobody in the world for whom Mrs. =
Carr
cared so much as her cousin by marriage, Agatha Terry. And yet it would be =
impossible
to imagine two women more dissimilar.
Not long after they had left Dartmouth, the
afternoon set in dull, and towards evening the sea freshened sufficiently to
send most of the passengers below, leaving those who remained to be finally
dispersed by the penetrating drizzle that is generally to be met with off t=
he English
coast. Arthur, left alone on the heaving deck, surveyed the scene, and thou=
ght
it very desolate. Around was a grey waste of tossing waters, illumined here=
and
there by the setting rays of an angry sun, above, a wild and windy sky, with
not even a sea-gull in all its space, and in the far distance a white and
fading line, which was the shore of England.
Faint it grew, and fainter yet, and, as it
disappeared, he thought of Angela, and a yearning sorrow fell upon him. Whe=
n,
he wondered sadly, should he again look into her eyes, and hold that proud
beauty in his arms; what fate awaited them in the future that stretched bef=
ore
them, dim as the darkening ocean, and more uncertain. Alas! he could not te=
ll,
he only felt that it was very bitter to be parted thus from her to whom had
been given his whole heart's love, to know that every fleeting moment widen=
ed a
breach already far too wide, and not to know if it would again be narrowed,=
or
if this farewell would be the last. Then he thought, if it should be the la=
st,
if she should die or desert him, what would his life be worth to him? A
consciousness within him answered, "nothing." And, in a degree, h=
is
conclusion was right; for, although it is, fortunately, not often in the po=
wer
of any single passion to render life altogether worthless; it is certain th=
at,
when it strikes in youth, there is no sickness so sore as that of the heart=
; no
sorrow more keen, and no evil more lasting than those connected with its
disappointments and its griefs. For other sorrows, life has salves and
consolations, but a noble and enduring passion is not all of this world, an=
d to
cure its sting we must look to something beyond this world's quackeries. Ot=
her
griefs can find sympathy and expression, and become absorbed little by litt=
le
in the variety of love's issues. But love, as it is, and should be
understood--not the faint ghost that arrays itself in stolen robes, and say=
s,
"I am love," but love the strong and the immortal, the passkey to=
the
happy skies, the angel cipher we read, but cannot understand--such love as
this, and there is none other true, can find no full solace here, not even =
in
its earthly satisfaction.
For still it beats against its mortal bars and
rends the heart that holds it; still strives like a meteor flaming to its
central star, or a new loosed spirit seeking the presence of its God, to pa=
ss
hence with that kindred soul to the inner heaven whence it came, there to b=
e wholly
mingled with its other life and clothed with a divine identity: --there to
satisfy the aspirations that now vaguely throb within their fleshly walls, =
with
the splendour and the peace and the full measure of the eternal joys it kno=
ws
await its coming.
And is it not a first-fruit of this knowledge,
that the thoughts of those who are plunged into the fires of a pure devotion
fly upwards as surely as the sparks? Nothing but the dross, the grosser ear=
thly
part is purged away by their ever-chastening sorrow, which is, in truth, a =
discipline
for finer souls. For did there ever yet live the man or woman who, loving
truly, has suffered, and the fires burnt out, has not risen Phoenix-like fr=
om
their ashes, purer and better, and holding in the heart a bright, undying h=
ope?
Never; for these have walked bare-footed upon the holy ground, it is the fl=
ames
from the Altar that have purged them and left their own light within! And
surely this holds also good of those who have loved and lost, of those who =
have
been scorned or betrayed; of the suffering army that cry aloud of the empty
bitterness of life and dare not hope beyond. They do not understand that ha=
ving
once loved truly it is not possible that they should altogether lose: that
there is to their pain and the dry-rot of their hopes, as to everything els=
e in
Nature, an end object. Shall the soul be immortal, and its best essence but=
a
thing of air? Shall the one thought by day and the one dream by night, the
ethereal star which guides us across life's mirage, and which will still sh=
ine
serene at the moment of our fall from the precipice of Time: shall this alo=
ne, amidst
all that makes us what we are, be chosen out to see corruption, to be cast =
off
and forgotten in the grave? Never! There, by the workings of a Providence we
cannot understand, that mighty germ awaits fruition. There, too, shall we k=
now
the wherefore of our sorrow at which, sad-eyed, we now so often wonder: the=
re
shall we kiss the rod that smote us, and learn the glorious uses and pluck =
the
glowing fruits of an affliction, that on earth filled us with such sick lon=
ging,
and such an aching pain.
Let the long-suffering reader forgive these pa=
ges
of speculative writing, for the subject is a tempting one, and full of inte=
rest
for us mortals. Indeed, it may chance that, if he or she is more than five-=
and-twenty,
these lines may even have been read without impatience, for there are many =
who
have the memory of a lost Angela hidden away somewhere in the records of th=
eir
past, and who are fain, in the breathing spaces of their lives, to dream th=
at
they will find her wandering in that wide Eternity where "all human
barriers fall, all human relations end, and love ceases to be a crime."=
;
The morning after the vessel left Dartmouth
brought with it lovely weather, brisk and clear, with a fresh breeze that j=
ust
topped the glittering swell with white. There was, however, a considerable =
roll
on the ship, and those poor wretches, who for their sins are given to sea-s=
ickness,
were not yet happy. Presently Arthur observed the pretty black-eyed girl--p=
oor
thing, she did not look very pretty now--creep on to the deck and attempt to
walk about, an effort which promptly resulted in a fall into the scuppers. =
He
picked her up, and asked if she would not like to sit down, but she faintly
declined, saying that she did not mind falling so long as she could walk a
little--she did not feel so sick when she walked. Under these circumstances=
he
could hardly do less than help her, which he did in the only way at all pra=
cticable
with one so weak, namely, by walking her about on his arm.
In the midst of his interesting peregrinations=
he
observed Mrs. Carr gazing out of her deck cabin window, looking, he thought,
pale, but sweetly pretty, and rather cross. When that lady saw that she was=
observed,
she pulled the curtain with a jerk and vanished. Shortly after this Arthur's
companion vanished too, circumstances over which she had no control compell=
ing
her, and Arthur himself sat down rather relieved.
But he was destined that day to play knight-er=
rant
to ladies in distress. Presently Mrs. Carr's cabin-door opened, and that la=
dy herself
emerged therefrom, holding on to the side-rail. He had just begun to observe
how charmingly she was dressed, when some qualm seized her, and she returne=
d to
re-enter the cabin. But the door had swung-to with the roll of the vessel, =
and
she could not open it. Impelled by an agony of doubt, she flew to the side,
and, to his horror, sprang with a single bound on to the broad rail that su=
rmounted
the bulwark netting, and remained seated there, holding only to a little ro=
pe
that hung down from the awning-chain. The ship, which was at the moment rol=
ling
pretty heavily, had just reached the full angle of her windward roll, and w=
as
preparing for a heavy swing to leeward. Arthur, seeing that Mrs. Carr would=
in
a few seconds certainly be flung out to sea, rushed promptly forward and li=
fted
her from the rail. It was none too soon, for next moment down the great ship
went with a lurch into a trough of the sea, hurling him, with her in his ar=
ms,
up against the bulwarks, and, to say truth, hurting him considerably. But, =
if
he expected any thanks for this exploit, he was destined to be disappointed,
for no sooner had he set his lovely burden down, than she made use of her
freedom to stamp upon the deck.
"How could you be so foolish?" said =
he.
"In another moment you would have been flung out to sea!"
"And pray, Mr. Heigham," she answere=
d,
in a cutting and sarcastic voice, "is that my business or your own? Su=
rely
it would have been time enough for you to take a liberty when I asked you to
jump over after me."
Arthur drew himself up to his full height and
looked dignified--he could look dignified when he liked.
"I do not quite understand you, Mrs.
Carr," he said, with a little bow. "What I did, I did to save you
from going overboard. Next time that such a little adventure comes in my wa=
y, I
hope, for my own sake, that it may concern a lady possessed of less rudeness
and more gratitude."
And then, glaring defiance at each other, they
separated; she marching off with all the dignity of an offended queen to the
"sweet seclusion that a cabin grants," whilst he withdrew moodily=
to
a bench, comforted, however, not a little by the thought that he had given =
Mrs.
Carr a Roland for her Oliver.
Mrs. Carr's bound on to the bulwarks had been =
the
last effort of that prince of demons, sea-sickness, rending her ere he left.
When the occasion for remaining there had thus passed away, she soon tired =
of her
cabin and of listening to the inarticulate moans of her beloved Agatha, who=
was
a most faithful subject of the fiend, one who would never desert his manner=
so
long as he could roll the tiniest wave, and, sallying forth, took up her
position in the little society of the ship.
But between Arthur and herself there was no at=
tempt
at reconciliation. Each felt their wrongs to be as eternal as the rocks. At
luncheon they looked unutterable things from different sides of the table;
going in to dinner, she cut him with the sweetest grace, and on the followi=
ng morning
they naturally removed to situations as remote from each other as the cubic
area of a mail steamer would allow.
"Pretty, very much so, but ill-mannered; =
not
quite a lady, I should say," reflected Arthur to himself, with a super=
ior
smile.
"I detest him," said Mrs. Carr to herself, "at least, I think I do; but how neatly he put me down! There= is no doubt about his being a gentleman, though insufferably conceited."<= o:p>
These uncharitable thoughts rankled in their
respective minds about 12 A.M. What then was Arthur's disgust, on descendin=
g a
little late to luncheon that day, to be informed by the resplendent
chief-steward-- who, for some undiscovered reason, always reminded him of
Pharaoh's butler--that the captain had altered the places at table, and tha=
t this
alteration involved his being placed next to none other than Mrs. Carr.
Everybody was already seated, and it was too late to protest, at any rate f=
or
that meal; so he had to choose between submission and going without his
luncheon. Being extremely hungry, he decided for the first alternative, and
reluctantly brought himself to a halt next his avowed enemy.
But surprises, like sorrows, come in battalion=
s, a
fact that he very distinctly realized when, having helped himself to some
chicken, he heard a clear voice at his side address him by name.
"Mr. Heigham," said the voice, "=
;I
have not yet thanked you for your kindness to Miss Terry. I am commissioned=
to
assure you that she is very grateful, since she is prevented by circumstanc=
es
from doing so herself."
"I am much gratified," he replied,
stiffly; "but really I did nothing to deserve thanks, and if I had,&qu=
ot;
he added, with a touch of sarcasm, "I should not have expected any.&qu=
ot;
"Oh! what a cynic you must be," she
answered with a rippling laugh, "as though women, helpless as they are,
were not always thankful for the tiniest attention. Did not the pretty girl
with the black eyes thank you for your attentions yesterday, for
instance?"
"Did the lady with the brown eyes thank me
for my attentions--my very necessary attentions--yesterday, for instance?&q=
uot;
he answered, somewhat mollified, for the laugh and the voice would have tha=
wed
a human icicle, and, with all his faults, Arthur was not an icicle.
"No, she did not; she deferred doing so in
order that she might do it better. It was very kind of you to help me, and I
daresay that you saved my life, and I--I beg your pardon for being so cross,
but being sea-sick always makes me cross, even to those who are kindest to =
me. Do
you forgive me? Please forgive me; I really am quite unhappy when I think o=
f my
behaviour." And Mrs. Carr shot a glance at him that would have cleared=
the
North-West Passage for a man-of-war.
"Please don't apologize," he said,
humbly. "I really have nothing to forgive. I am aware that I took a
liberty, as you put it, but I thought that I was justified by the
circumstances."
"It is not generous of you, Mr. Heigham, =
to
throw my words into my teeth. I had forgotten all about them. But I will set
your want of feeling against my want of gratitude, and we kiss and be frien=
ds."
"I can assure you, Mrs. Carr, that there =
is
nothing in the world I should like better. When shall the ceremony come
off?"
"Now you are laughing at me, and actually
interpreting what I say literally, as though the English language were not =
full
of figures of speech. By that phrase," and she blushed a little--that =
is,
her cheek took a deeper shade of coral--"I meant that we would not cut
each other after lunch."
"You bring me from the seventh heaven of
expectation into a very prosaic world; but I accept your terms, whatever th=
ey
are. I am conquered."
"For exactly half an hour. But let us talk
sense. Are you going to stop at Madeira?"
"Yes."
"For how long?"
"I don't know; till I get tired of it, I
suppose. Is it nice, Madeira?"
"Charming. I live there half the year.&qu=
ot;
"Ah, then I can well believe that it is
charming."
"Mr. Heigham, you are paying compliments.=
I
thought that you looked above that sort of thing."
"In the presence of misfortune and of
beauty"--here he bowed--"all men are reduced to the same level. T=
alk
to me from behind a curtain, or let me turn my back upon you, and you may
expect to hear work-a-day prose--but face to face, I fear that you must put=
up
with compliment."
"A neat way of saying that you have had
enough of me. Your compliments are two-edged. Good-bye for the present.&quo=
t;
And she rose, leaving Arthur --well, rather amused.
After this they saw a good deal of each
other--that is to say, they conversed together for at least thirty minutes =
out
of every sixty during an average day of fourteen hours, and in the course of
these conversations she learned nearly everything about him, except his eng=
agement
to Angela, and she shrewdly guessed at that, or, rather, at some kindred
circumstance in his career. Arthur, on the other hand, learned quite everyt=
hing
about her, for her life was open as the day, and would have borne repeating=
in
the Times newspaper. But nevertheless he found it
extremely interesting.
"You must be a busy woman," he said =
one
morning, when he had been listening to one of her rattling accounts of her
travels and gaieties, sprinkled over, as it was, with the shrewd remarks, a=
nd
illumined by the keen insight into character that made her talk so charming=
.
"Busy, no; one of the idlest in the world,
and a very worthless one to boot," she answered, with a little sigh.
"Then, why don't you change your life? it=
is
in your own hands, if ever anybody's was."
"Do you think so? I doubt if anybody's li=
fe
is in their own hands. We follow an appointed course; if we did not, it wou=
ld
be impossible to understand why so many sensible, clever people make such a
complete mess of their existence. They can't do it from choice."
"At any rate, you have not made a mess of
yours, and your appointed course seems a very pleasant one."
"Yes; and the sea beneath us is very smoo=
th,
but it has been rough before, and will be rough again--there is no stabilit=
y in
the sea. As to making a mess of my life, who knows what I may not accomplis=
h in
that way? Prosperity cannot shine down fear of the future, it only throws it
into darker relief. Myself I am afraid of the future--it is unknown, and to=
me
what is unknown is not magnificent, but terrible. The present is enough for=
me.
I do not like speculation, and I never loved the dark."
And, as they talked, Madeira, in all its summer
glory, loomed up out of the ocean, for they had passed the "Desertas&q=
uot;
and "Porto Santo" by night, and for a while they were lost in the
contemplation of one of the most lovely and verdant scenes that the world c=
an
show. Before they had well examined it, however, the vessel had dropped her
anchor, and was surrounded by boats full of custom-house officials, boats f=
ull of
diving boys, of vegetables, of wicker chairs and tables, of parrots, fruit,=
and
"other articles too numerous to mention," as they say in the
auctioneer's catalogues, and they knew that it was time to go ashore.
"Well, it has been a pleasant voyage,&quo=
t;
said Mrs. Carr. "I am glad you are not going on."
"So am I."
"You will come and see me to-morrow, will=
you
not? Look, there is my house," and she pointed to a large, white house
opposite Leeuw Rock, that had a background of glossy foliage, and commanded=
a
view of the sea. "If you come, I will show you my beetles. And, if you
care to come next day, I will show you my mummies."
"And, if I come the next, what will you s=
how
me?"
"So often as you may come," she said,
with a little tremor in her voice, "I shall find something to show
you."
Then they shook hands and took their respective
ways, she--together with the unfortunate Miss Terry, who looked like a
resuscitated corpse --on to the steam-launch that was waiting for her, and =
he
in the boat belonging to Miles' Hotel.
A minute or two after the boat in which Arthur=
was
being piloted to the shore, under the guidance of the manager of Miles' Hot=
el,
had left the side of the vessel, Mrs. Carr's steam-launch shot up alongside=
of them,
its brass-work gleaming in the sunlight like polished gold. On the deck, ne=
ar
the little wheel, stood Mrs. Carr herself, and by her side, her martial clo=
ak
around her, lay Miss Terry, still as any log.
"Mr. Heigham," said Mrs. Carr, in a
voice that sounded across the water like a silver bell, "I forgot that=
you
will not be able to find your way to my place by yourself to-morrow, so I w=
ill
send down a bullock-car to fetch you; you have to travel about with bullocks
here, you know. Good-bye," and, before he could answer, the launch's h=
ead was
round, and she was tearing through the swell at the rate of fourteen knots.=
"That's her private launch," said the
manager of the hotel to Arthur, "it is the quickest in the island, and=
she
always goes at full steam. She must have come some way round to tell you th=
at,
too. There's her place, over there."
"Mrs. Carr comes here every year, does she
not?"
"Oh, yes, every year; but she is very ear=
ly
this year; our season does not begin yet, you know. She is a great blessing=
to
the place, she gives so much away to the poor peasants. At first she used to
come with old Mr. Carr, and a wonderful nurse they say she made to the old =
gentleman
till he died."
"Does she entertain much?"
"Not as a rule, but sometimes she gives g=
reat
balls, splendid affairs, and a series of dinner-parties that are the talk of
the island. She hardly ever goes out anywhere, which makes the ladies in the
place angry, but, I believe, that they all go to her balls and dinners. Mos=
tly,
she spends her time up in the hills, collecting butterflies and beetles. She
has got the most wonderful collection of Egyptian curiosities up at the hou=
se
there, too, though why she keeps them here instead of in England, I am sure=
I
don't know. Her husband began the collection when he was a young man, and
collected all his life, and she has gone on with it since."
"I wonder that she has not married again.=
"
"Well, it can't be for want of asking, if
half of what they say is true; for, according to that, every single gentlem=
an
under fifty who has been at Madeira during the last five years has had a tr=
y at
her, but she wouldn't look at one of them. But of course that is gossip-- a=
nd
here we are at the landing-place. Sit steady, sir; those fellows will pull =
the
boat up."
Had it not been for the pre-occupied and
uncomfortable state of his mind, that took the flavour out of all that he d=
id,
and persistently thrust a skeleton amidst the flowers of every landscape,
Arthur should by rights have enjoyed himself very much at Madeira.
To live in one of the lofty rooms of "Mil=
es'
Hotel," protected by thick walls and cool, green shutters, to feel that
you are enjoying all the advantages of a warm climate without its drawbacks,
and that, too, however much people in England may be shivering--which they =
mostly
do all the year round--is in itself a luxury. And so it is, if the day is h=
ot,
to dine chiefly off fish and fruit, and such fruit! and then to exchange the
dining-room for the cool portico, with the sea-breeze sweeping through it, =
and,
pipe in hand, to sink into a slumber that even the diabolical shrieks of the
parrots, tied by the leg in a line below, are powerless to disturb. Or, if =
you
be energetic --I speak of Madeira energy--you may stroll down the little
terraced walk, under the shade of your landlord's vines, and contemplate th=
e growing
mass of greenery that in this heavenly island makes a garden. You can do mo=
re
than this even; for, having penetrated through the brilliant flower-beds, a=
nd
recruited exhausted nature under a fig-tree, you can engage, in true English
fashion, in a game of lawn- tennis, which done, you will again seek the sha=
de
of the creeping vines or spreading bananas, and in a springy hammock take y=
our
well- earned repose.
All these things are the quintessence of luxur=
y,
so much so that he who has once enjoyed them will long to turn lotos-eater,
forget the painful and laborious past, and live and die at "Miles'
Hotel." Oh, Madeira! gem of the ocean, land of pine-clad mountains that
foolish men love to climb, valleys where wise ones much prefer to rest, and=
of smells
that both alike abhor; Madeira of the sunny sky and azure sea, land flowing=
with
milk and honey, and overflowing with population, if only you belonged to the
country on which you depend for a livelihood, what a perfect place you would
be, and how poetical one could grow about you! a consummation which,
fortunately for my readers, the recollection of the open drains, the
ill-favoured priests, and Portuguese officials effectually prevents.
On the following morning, at twelve punctually,
Arthur was informed that the conveyance had arrived to fetch him. He went d=
own,
and was quite appalled at its magnificence. It was sledge-like in form, bui=
lt to
hold four, and mounted on wooden runners that glided over the round pebbles
with which the Madeira streets are paved, with scarcely a sound, and as
smoothly as though they ran on ice. The chariot, as Arthur always called it
afterwards, was built of beautiful woods, and lined and curtained throughout
with satin, whilst the motive power was supplied by two splendidly harnessed
white oxen. Two native servants, handsome young fellows, dressed in a kind =
of
white uniform, accompanied the sledge, and saluted Arthur on his appearance
with much reverence.
It took him, however, some time before he could
make up his mind to embark in a conveyance that reminded him of the descrip=
tion
of Cleopatra's galley, and smelt more sweet; but finally he got in, and off=
he
started, feeling that he was the observed of all observers, and followed by=
at
least a score of beggars, each afflicted with some peculiar and dreadful
deformity or disease. And thus, in triumphal guise, they slid down the quai=
nt
and narrow streets, squeezed in for the sake of shade between a double line=
of
tall, green-shuttered houses; over the bridges that span the vast open drai=
ns;
past the ochre-coloured cathedral; down the promenade edged with great magn=
olia-trees,
that made the air heavy with their perfume, and where twice a week the band
plays, and the Portuguese officials march up and down in all the pomp and
panoply of office; onward through the dip, where the town lopes downwards to
the sea; then up again through more streets, and past a stretch of dead wal=
l,
after which the chariot wheels through some iron gates, and he is in fairyl=
and.
One each side of the carriage-way there spreads a garden calculated to make
English horticulturists gnash their teeth with envy, through the bowers of =
which
he could catch peeps of green turf and of the blue sea beyond.
Here the cabbage palm shot its smooth and lofty
trunk high into the air, there the bamboo waved its leafy ostrich plumes, a=
nd
all about and around the soil was spread like an Indian shawl, with many a =
gorgeous
flower and many a splendid fruit. Arthur thought of the garden of Eden and =
the
Isles of the Blest, and whilst his eyes, accustomed to nothing better than =
our
poor English roses, were still fixed upon the blazing masses of pomegranate
flower, and his senses were filled with the sweet scent of orange and magno=
lia
blooms, the oxen halted before the portico of a stately building, white-wal=
led
and green-shuttered like all Madeira houses.
Then the slaves of the chariot assisted him to
descend, whilst other slaves of the door bowed him up the steps, and he sto=
od
in a great cool hall, dazzling dark after the brilliancy of the sunlight. A=
nd here
no slave awaited him, but the princess of this fair domain, none other than
Mildred Carr herself, clad all in summer white, and with a smile of welcome=
in
her eyes.
"I am so glad that you have come. How do =
you
like Madeira? Do you find it very hot?"
"I have not seen much of it yet; but this
place is lovely, it is like fairyland, and, I believe, that you," he
added, with a bow, "are the fairy queen."
"Compliments again, Mr. Heigham. Well, I =
was
the sleeping beauty last time, so one may as well be a queen for a change. I
wonder what you will call me next?"
"Let me see: shall we say--an angel?"=
;
"Mr. Heigham, stop talking nonsense, and =
come
into the drawing-room."
He followed her, laughing, into an apartment t=
hat,
from its noble proportions and beauty, might fairly be called magnificent. =
Its ceiling
was panelled with worked timber, and its floor beautifully inlaid with wood=
s of
various hue, whilst the walls were thickly covered with pictures, chiefly
sea-pieces, and all by good masters. He had, however, but little time to lo=
ok
about him, for a door opened at the further end of the room, and admitted t=
he
portly person of Miss Terry, arrayed in a gigantic sun hat and a pair of gr=
een
spectacles. She seemed very hot, and held in her hand a piece of brown pape=
r, inside
of which something was violently scratching.
"I've caught him at last," she said,
"though he did avoid me all last year. I've caught him."
"Good gracious! caught what?" asked
Arthur, with great interest.
"What! why him that Mildred wanted,"=
she
replied, regardless of grammar in her excitement. "Just look at him, h=
e's
beautiful."
Thus admonished, Arthur carefully undid the br=
own
paper, and next moment started back with an exclamation, and began to dance
about with an enormous red beetle grinding its jaws into his finger.
"Oh, keep still, do, pray," called M=
iss
Terry, in alarm, "don't shake him off on any account, or we shall lose=
him
for the want of a little patience, as I did when he bit my finger last year=
. If
you'll keep him quite still, he won't leave go, and I'll ring for John to b=
ring
the chloroform bottle."
Arthur, feeling that the interests of science =
were
matters of a higher importance than the well-being of his finger, obeyed her
injunction to the letter, hanging his arm (and the beetle) over the back of=
a
chair and looking the picture of silent misery.
"Quite still, if you please, Mr. Heigham,
quite still; is not the animal's tenacity interesting?"
"No doubt to you, but I hope your pet bee=
tle
is not poisonous, for he is gnashing his pincers together inside my
finger."
"Never mind, we will treat you with caust=
ic
presently. Mildred, don't laugh so much, but come and look at him; he's lov=
ely.
John, please be quick with that chloroform bottle."
"If this sort of thing happens often, I d=
on't
think that I should collect beetles from choice, at least not large ones,&q=
uot;
groaned Arthur.
"Oh, dear," laughed Mrs. Carr, "=
;I
never saw anything so absurd. I don't know which looks most savage, you or =
the
beetle."
"Don't make all that noise, Mildred, you =
will
frighten him, and if once he flies we shall never catch him in this big
room."
Here, fortunately for Arthur, the servant arri=
ved
with the required bottle, into which the ferocious insect was triumphantly
stoppered by Miss Terry.
"I am so much obliged to you, Mr. Heigham,
you are a true collector."
"For the first and last time," mumbl=
ed
Arthur, who was sucking his finger.
"I am infinitely obliged to you, too, Mr.
Heigham," said Mrs. Carr, as soon as she had recovered from her fit of
laughing; "the beetle is really very rare; it is not even in the Briti=
sh
Museum. But come, let us go in to luncheon."
After that meal was over, Mrs. Carr asked her guest which he would like to see, her collection of beetles or of mummies.<= o:p>
"Thank you, Mrs. Carr, I have had enough =
of
beetles for one day, so I vote for the mummies."
"Very well. Will you come, Agatha?"<= o:p>
"Now, Mildred, you know very well that I
won't come. Just think, Mr. Heigham: I only saw the nasty things once, and =
then
they gave me the creeps every night for a fortnight. As though those horrid
Egyptian 'fellahs' weren't ugly enough when they were alive without going a=
nd making
great skin and bone dolls of them--pah!"
"Agatha persists in believing that my mum=
mies
are the bodies of people like she saw in Egypt last year."
"And so they are, Mildred. That last one =
you
got is just like the boy who used to drive my donkey at Cairo--the one that
died, you know--I believe they just stuffed him, and said that he was an
ancient king. Ancient king, indeed!" And Miss Terry departed, in search
for more beetles.
"Now, Mr. Heigham, you must follow me. The
museum is not in the house. Wait, I will get a hat."
In a minute she returned, and led the way acro=
ss a
strip of garden to a detached building, with a broad verandah, facing the s=
ea.
Scarcely ten feet from this verandah, and on the edge of the sheer precipic=
e, was
built a low wall, leaning over which Arthur could hear the wavelets lapping
against the hollow rock two hundred feet beneath him. Here they stopped for=
a
moment to look at the vast expanse of ocean, glittering in the sunlight lik=
e a
sea of molten sapphires and heaving as gently as an infant's bosom.
"It is very lovely; the sea moves just en=
ough
to show that it is only asleep."
"Yes; but I like it best when it is awake,
when it blows a hurricane-- it is magnificent. The whole cliff shakes with =
the
shock of the waves, and sometimes the spray drives over in sheets. That is =
when
I like to sit here; it exhilarates me, and makes me feel as though I belong=
ed
to the storm, and was strong with its strength. Come, let us go in."
The entrance to the verandah was from the end =
that
faced the house, and to gain it they passed under the boughs of a large
magnolia-tree. Going through glass doors that opened outwards into the
verandah, Mrs. Carr entered a room luxuriously furnished as a boudoir. This=
had
apparently no other exit, and Arthur was beginning to wonder where the muse=
um
could be, when she took a tiny bramah key from her watch-chain, and with it
opened a door that was papered and painted to match the wall exactly. He fo=
llowed
her, and found himself in a stone passage, dimly lighted from above, and
sloping downwards, that led to a doorway graven in the rock, on the model of
those to be seen at the entrance of Egyptian temples.
"Now, Mr. Heigham," she said, flingi=
ng
open another door, and stepping forward, "you are about the enter 'The
Hall of the Dead.'"
He went in, and a strange sight met his gaze. =
They
were standing in the centre of one side of a vast cave, that ran right and =
left
at right angles to the passage. The light poured into it in great rays from
skylights in the roof, and by it he could see that it was hollowed out of t=
he
virgin rock, and measured some sixty feet or more in length, by about forty
wide, and thirty high. Down the length of each side of the great chamber ra=
n a
line of six polished sphinxes, which had been hewn out of the surrounding
granite, on the model of those at Carnac, whilst the walls were elaborately
painted after the fashion of an Egyptian sepulchre. Here Osiris held his dr=
ead
tribunal on the spirit of the departed; here the warrior sped onward in his=
charging
chariot; here the harper swept his sounding chords; and here, again, crowned
with lotus flowers, those whose corpses lay around held their joyous festiv=
als.
In the respective centres of each end of the s=
tone
chamber a colossus towered in its silent and unearthly grandeur. That to the
right was a statue of Osiris, judge of the souls of the dead, seated on his=
judgment-seat,
and holding in his hand the source and the bent-headed sceptre. Facing him =
at
the other end of the hall was the effigy of the mighty Ramses, his broad br=
ow
encircled by that kingly symbol which few in the world's history have worn =
so
proudly, and his noble features impressing those who gaze upon them from ag=
e to
age with a sense of scornful power and melancholy calm, such as does not be=
long
to the countenance of the men of their own time. And all around, under this
solemn guardianship, each upon a polished slab of marble, and enclosed in a
case of thick glass, lay the corpses of the Egyptian dead, swathed in
numberless wrappings, as in their day the true religion that they held was
swathed in symbols and in mummeries.
Here were to be found the high-priest of the
mysteries of Isis, the astronomer whose lore could read the prophecies that=
are
written in the stars, the dark magician, the renowned warrior, the noble, t=
he musician
with his cymbals by his side, the fair maiden who had--so said her cedar
coffin-boards--died of love and sorrow, and the royal babe, all sleeping the
same sleep, and waiting the same awakening. This princess must have been we=
ll
known to Joseph, that may have been her who rescued Moses from the waters,
whilst the babe belongs to a dynasty of which the history was already mergi=
ng
into tradition when the great pyramid reared its head on Egypt's fertile
plains.
Arthur stood, awed at the wonderful sight.
"Never before," said he, in that whi=
sper
which we involuntarily use in the presence of the dead, "did I realize=
my
own insignificance."
The thought was abruptly put, but the words
represented well what was passing in his mind, what must pass in the mind of
any man of culture and sensibility when he gazes on such a sight. For in su=
ch
presences the human mite of to-day, fluttering in the sun and walking on th=
e earth
that these have known and walked four thousand years ago, must indeed learn=
how
infinitely small is the place that he occupies in the tale of things create=
d;
and yet, if to his culture and sensibility he adds religion, a word of livi=
ng
hope hovers on those dumb lips. For where are the spirits of those that lie
before him in their eternal silence! Answer, withered lips, and tell us what
judgment has Osiris given, and what has Thoth written in his awful book? Fo=
ur
thousand years! Old human husk, if thy dead carcass can last so long, what =
limit
is there to the life of the soul it held?
"Did you collect all these?" asked
Arthur, when he had made a superficial examination of the almost countless
treasures of the museum.
"Oh, no; Mr. Carr spent half his long lif=
e,
and more money than I can tell you, in getting this collection together. It=
was
the passion of his life, and he had this cave hollowed at enormous cost,
because he thought that the air here would be less likely to injure them th=
an
the English fogs. I have added to it, however. I got those papyri and that =
beautiful
bust of Berenice, the one in black marble. Did you ever see such hair?"=
;
Arthur thought to himself that he had at that
moment some not far from his heart that must be quite as beautiful, but he =
did
not say so.
"Look, there are some curious things;&quo=
t;
and she opened an air-tight case that contained some discoloured grains and=
a
few lumps of shrivelled substance.
"What are they?"
"This is wheat taken from the inside of a
mummy, and those are supposed to be hyacinth bulbs. They came from the
mummy-case of that baby prince, and I have been told that they would still =
grow
if planted."
"I can scarcely believe that: the princip=
le
of life must be extinct."
"Wise people, say, you know, that the
principle of life can never become extinct in anything that has once lived,
though it may change its form; but I do not pretend to understand these thi=
ngs.
However, we will settle the question, for we will plant one, and, if it gro=
ws,
I will give the flower to you. Choose one."
Arthur took the biggest lump from the case, and
examined it curiously.
"I have not much faith in your hyacinth; =
I am
sure that it is dead."
"Ah! but many things that seem more dead =
than
that have the strangest way of suddenly breaking into life," she said,
with a little sigh. "Give it to me; I will have it planted;" and
then, with a quick glance upward, "I wonder if you will be here to see=
it
bloom."
"I don't think that either of us will see=
it
bloom in this world," he answered, laughing, and took his leave.
Had Arthur been a little less wrapped up in
thoughts of Angela, and a little more alive to the fact that, being engaged=
or
even married to one woman, does not necessarily prevent complications arisi=
ng
with another, it might have occurred to him to doubt the prudence of the co=
urse
of life that he was pursuing at Madeira. And, as it is, it is impossible to
acquit him of showing a want of knowledge of the world amounting almost to
folly, for he should have known upon general principles that, for a man in =
his
position, a grizzly bear would have been a safer daily companion than a you=
ng
and lovely widow, and the North Pole a more suitable place of residence than
Madeira. But he simply did not think about the matter, and, as thin ice has=
a treacherous
way of not cracking till it suddenly breaks, so outward appearances gave hi=
m no
indication of his danger.
And yet the facts were full of evil promise, f=
or,
as time went on, Mildred Carr fell headlong in love with him. There was no
particular reason why she should have done so. She might have had scores of
men, handsomer, cleverer, more distinguished, for the asking, or, rather, f=
or
the waiting to be asked. Beyond a certain ability of mind, a taking manner,=
and
a sympathetic, thoughtful face, with that tinge of melancholy upon it which
women sometimes find dangerously interesting, there was nothing so remarkab=
le
about Arthur that a woman possessing her manifold attractions and
opportunities, should, unsought and without inquiry, lavish her affection u=
pon
him. There is only one satisfactory explanation of the phenomenon, which,
indeed, is a very common one, and that is, that he was her fate, the one man
whom she was to love in the world, for no woman worth the name ever loves =
two,
however many she may happen to marry. For this curious difference would app=
ear
to exist between the sexes. The man can attach himself, though in varying
degree, to several women in the course of a lifetime, whilst the woman, the
true, pure-hearted woman, cannot so adapt her best affection. Once given, l=
ike
the law of the Medes and Persians, it altereth not.
Mildred felt, when her eyes first met Arthur's= in Donald Currie's office, that this man was for her different from all other = men, though she did not put the thought in words even to herself. And from that = hour till she embarked on board the boat he was continually in her mind, a fact which so irritated her that she nearly missed the steamer on purpose, only changing her mind at the last moment. And then, when she had helped him to carry Miss Terry to her cabin, their hands had accidentally met, and the contact had sent a thrill through her frame such as she had never felt befo= re. The next development that she could trace was her jealousy of the black-eyed girl whom she saw him helping about the deck, and her consequent rudeness.<= o:p>
Up to her present age, Mildred Carr had never
known a single touch of love: she had not even felt particularly interested=
in
her numerous admirers, but now this marble Galatea had by some freak of fate
found a woman's heart, awkwardly enough, without the semblance of a supplic=
ation
on the part of him whom she destined to play Pygmalion. And, when she exami=
ned
herself by the light of the flame thus newly kindled, she shrank back disma=
yed,
like one who peeps over the crater of a volcano commencing its fiery work. =
She
had believed her heart to be callous to all affection of this nature, it had
seemed as dead as the mummied hyacinth; and now it was a living, suffering =
thing,
and all alight with love. She had tasted of a new wine, and it burnt her, a=
nd
was bitter sweet, and yet she longed for more. And thus, by slow and sad
degrees, she learnt that her life, which had for thirty years flowed on its
quiet way unshadowed by love's wing, must henceforth own his dominion, and =
be a
slave to his sorrows and caprices. No wonder that she grew afraid!
But Mildred was a woman of keen insight into
character, and it did not require that her powers of observation should be
sharpened by the condition of her affections, to show her that, however dee=
ply
she might be in love with Arthur Heigham, he was not one little bit in love
with her. Knowing the almost irresistible strength of her own beauty and
attractions, she quickly came to the conclusion--and it was one that sent a
cold chill through her--that there must be some other woman blocking the pa=
th
to his heart. For some reason or other, Arthur had never spoken to her of
Angela, either because a man very rarely volunteers information to a woman
concerning his existing relationship with another of her sex, knowing that =
to
do so would be to depreciate his value in her eyes, or from an instinctive
knowledge that the subject would not be an agreeable one, or perhaps because
the whole matter was too sacred to him. But she, on her part, was determine=
d to
probe his secret to the bottom. So one sleepy afternoon, when they were sit=
ting
on the museum verandah, about six weeks after the date of their arrival in =
the
island, she took her opportunity.
Mildred was sitting, or rather half lying, in a
cane-work chair, gazing out over the peaceful sea, and Arthur, looking at h=
er,
thought what a lovely woman she was, and wondered what it was that had made=
her
face and eyes so much softer and more attractive of late. Miss Terry was al=
so
there, complaining of the heat, but presently she moved off after an imagin=
ary
beetle, and they were alone.
"Oh, by-the-by, Mr. Heigham," Mildred
said, presently, "I was going to ask you a question, if only I can
remember what it is."
"Try to remember what it is about. 'Shoes,
sealing-wax, cabbages, or kings.' Does it come under any of those heads?&qu=
ot;
"Ah, I remember now. If you had added
'queens,' you would not have been far out. What I wanted to ask you----&quo=
t;
and she turned her large, brown eyes full upon him, and yawned slightly.
"Dear me, Agatha is right; it is hot!"
"Well, I am waiting to give you any
information in my power."
"Oh! to be sure, the question. Well, it i=
s a
very simple one. Who are you engaged to?"
Arthur nearly sprang off his chair with
astonishment.
"What makes you think that I am
engaged?" he asked.
She broke into a merry peal of laughter. Ah! i=
f he
could have known what that laugh cost her.
"What makes me think that you are
engaged!" she answered, in a tone of raillery. "Why, of course you
would have been at my feet long ago, if it had not been so. Come, don't be
reticent. I shall not laugh at you. What is she like?" (Generally a
woman's first question about a rival.) "Is she as good-looking--well, =
as I
am, say--for, though you may not think it, I have been thought
good-looking."
"She is quite different from you; she is =
very
tall and fair, like an angel in a picture, you know."
"Oh! then there is a 'she,' and a 'she li=
ke
an angel.' Very different indeed <=
span
style=3D'mso-spacerun:yes'> from me, I should think. How nicely I ca=
ught
you out;" and she laughed again.
"Why did you want to catch me out?" =
said
Arthur, on whose ear Mrs. Carr's tone jarred; he could not tell why.
"Feminine curiosity, and a natural anxiet=
y to
fathom the reasons of your sighs, that is all. But never mind, Mr. Heigham,=
you
and I shall not quarrel because you are engaged to be married. You shall te=
ll
me the story when you like, for I am sure there is a story--no, not this af=
ternoon;
the sun has given me a headache, and I am going to sleep it off. Other peop=
le's
love-stories are very interesting to me, the more so because I have reached=
the
respectable age of thirty without being the subject of one myself;" and
again she laughed, this time at her own falsehood. But, when he had gone, t=
here
was no laughter in her eyes, nothing but tears, bitter, burning tears.
"Agatha," said Mildred that evening,
"I am sick of this place. I want to go to the Isle of Wight. It must be
quite nice there now. We will go by the next Currie boat."
"My dear Mildred," replied Miss Terr=
y,
aghast, "if you were going back so soon, why did you not leave me behi=
nd
you? And just as we were getting so nicely settled here too, and I shall be=
so
sorry to say good-bye to that young Heigham, he is such a nice young man! W=
hy
don't you marry him? I really thought you liked him. But, perhaps he is com=
ing
to the Isle of Wight too. Oh, that dreadful bay!"
Mildred winced at Miss Terry's allusions to
Arthur, of whom that lady had grown extremely fond.
"I am very sorry, dear," she said,
hastily; "but I am bored to death, and it is such a bad insect year: so
really you must begin to pack up."
Miss Terry began to pack accordingly, but, when
next she alluded to the subject of their departure, Mildred affected surpri=
se,
and asked her what she meant. The astonished Agatha referred her to her own=
words,
and was met by a laughing disclaimer.
"Why, you surely did not think that I was=
in
earnest, did you? I was only a little cross."
"Well, really, Mildred, you've got so str=
ange
lately that I never know when you are in earnest and when you are not, thou=
gh,
for my part, I am very glad to stay in peace and quiet."
"Strange, grown strange, have I!" sa=
id
Mrs. Carr, looking dreamily out of a window that commanded the carriage-dri=
ve,
with her hands crossed behind her. "Yes, I think that you are right. I
think that I have lost the old Mildred somewhere or other, and picked up a =
new
one whom I don't understand."
"Ah, indeed," remarked Miss Terry, in
the most matter-of-fact way, without having the faintest idea of what her
friend was driving at.
"How it rains! I suppose that he won't co=
me
to-day."
"He! Who's he?"
"Why, how stupid you are! Mr. Heigham, of
course!"
"So you always mean him, when you say
'he!'"
"Yes, of course I do, if it isn't
ungrammatical. It is miserable this afternoon. I feel wretched. Why, actual=
ly,
here he comes!" and she tore off like a school-girl into the hall, to =
meet
him.
"Ah, indeed," again remarked Miss Te=
rry,
solemnly, to the empty walls. "I am not such a fool as I look. I suppo=
se
that Mr. Heigham wouldn't come to the Isle of Wight."
It is perhaps needless to say that Mrs. Carr h=
ad
never been more in earnest in her life than when she announced her intentio=
n of
departing to the Isle of Wight. The discovery that her suspicions about Art=
hur had
but too sure a foundation had been a crushing blow to her hopes, and she had
formed a wise resolution to see no more of him. Happy would it have been for
her, if she could have found the moral courage to act up to it, and go away=
, a
wiser, if a sadder, woman. But this was not to be. The more she contemplated
it, the more did her passion --which was now both wild and deep--take hold =
upon
her heart, eating into it like acid into steel, and graving one name there =
in ineffaceable
letters. She could not bear the thought of parting from him, and felt, or
thought she felt, that her happiness was already too deeply pledged to allow
her to throw up the cards without an effort.
Fortune favours the brave. Perhaps, after all,=
it
would declare itself for her. She was modest in her aspirations. She did not
expect that he would ever give her the love he bore this other woman; she o=
nly
asked to live in the sunlight of his presence, and would be glad to take hi=
m at
his own price, or indeed at any price. Man, she knew, is by nature as unsta=
ble
as water, and will mostly melt beneath the eyes of more women than one, as
readily as ice before a fire when the sun has hid his face. Yes, she would =
play
the game out: she would not throw away her life's happiness without an effo=
rt.
After all, matters might have been worse: he might have been actually marri=
ed.
But she knew that her hand was a difficult one=
to
lead from, though she also knew that she held the great trumps--unusual bea=
uty,
practically unlimited wealth, and considerable fascination of manner. Her p=
art
must be to attract without repelling, charm without alarming, fascinate by =
slow
degrees, till at length he was involved in a net from which there was no
escape, and, above all, never to allow him to suspect her motives till the =
ripe
moment came. It was a hard task for a proud woman to set herself, and, in a
manner, she was proud; but, alas, with the best of us, when love comes in at
the door, pride, reason, and sometimes honour, fly out the window.
And so Miss Terry heard no more talk of the Is=
le
of Wight.
Thenceforward, under the frank and open guise =
of
friendship, Mildred contrived to keep Arthur continually at her side. She d=
id
more. She drew from him all the history of his engagement to Angela, and li=
stened,
with words of sympathy on her lips, and wrath and bitter jealousy in her he=
art,
to his enraptured descriptions of her rival's beauty and perfections. So
benighted was he, indeed, that once he went so far as to suggest that he
should, when he and Angela were married, come to Madeira to spend their
honeymoon, and dilated on the pleasant trips which they three might take
together.
"Truly," thought Mildred to herself,
"that would be delightful." Once, too, he even showed her a tress=
of
Angela's hair, and, strange to say, she found that there still lingered in =
her
bosom a sufficient measure of vulgar first principles to cause her to long =
to
snatch it from him and throw it into the sea. But, as it was, she smiled
faintly, and admired openly, and then went to the glass to look at her own =
nut-
brown tresses. Never had she been so dissatisfied with them, and yet her ha=
ir
was considered lovely, and an aesthetic hair-dresser had once called it a
"poem."
"Blind fool," she muttered, stamping=
her
little foot upon the floor, "why does he torture me so?"
Mildred forgot that all love is blind, and that
none was ever blinder or more headstrong than her own.
And so this second Calypso of a lovely isle set
herself almost as unblushingly as her prototype to get our very unheroic
Ulysses into her toils. And Penelope, poor Penelope, she sat at home and sp=
an,
and defied her would-be lovers.
But as yet Ulysses--I mean Arthur--was conscio=
us
of none of those things. He was by nature an easy-going young gentleman, who
took matters as he found them, and asked no questions. And he found them ve=
ry
pleasant at Madeira, or, rather, at the Quinta Carr, for he did everything
except sleep there. Within its precincts he was everywhere surrounded with =
that
atmosphere of subtle and refined flattery, flattery addressed chiefly to the
intellect, that is one of the most effective weapons of a clever woman. Soon
the drawing-room tables were loaded with his favourite books, and no songs =
but
such as he approved were ordered from London.
He discovered one evening, for instance, that
Mildred looked best at night in black and silver, and next morning Mr. Worth
received a telegram requesting him to forward without delay a large consign=
ment
of dresses in which those colours predominated.
On another occasion he casually threw out a
suggestion about the erection of a terrace in the garden, and shortly
afterwards was surprised to find a small army of Portuguese labourers engag=
ed
upon the work. He had made this suggestion in total ignorance of the scienc=
e of
garden engineering, and its execution necessitated the removal of vast
quantities of soil and the blasting of many tons of rock. The contractor
employed by Mrs. Carr pointed out how the terrace could be made equally wel=
l at
a fifth of the expense, but it did not happen to take exactly the direction
that Arthur had indicated, so she would have none of it. His word was law, =
and,
because he had spoken, the whole place was for a month overrun with dirty
labourers, whilst, to the great detriment of Miss Terry's remaining nerves,=
and
even to the slight discomfort of His Royal Highness himself, the air resoun=
ded all
day long with the terrific bangs of the blasting powder.
But, so long as he was pleased with the progre=
ss
of the improvement, Mildred felt no discomfort, nor would she allow any one
else to express any. It even aggravated her to see Miss Terry put her hands=
to her
head and jump, whenever a particularly large piece of ordnance was discharg=
ed,
and she would vow that it must be affectation, because she never even notic=
ed
it.
In short, Mildred Carr possessed to an
extraordinary degree that faculty for blind, unreasoning adoration which is=
so
characteristic of the sex, an adoration that is at once magnificent in the
entirety of its own self-sacrifice, and extremely selfish. When she thought
that she could please Arthur, the state of Agatha's nerves became a matter =
of
supreme indifference to her, and in the same way, had she been an absolute
monarch, she would have spent the lives of thousands, and shaken empires ti=
ll
thrones came tumbling down like apples in the wind, if she had believed that
she could thereby advance herself in his affections.
But, as it never occurred to Arthur that Mrs. =
Carr
might be in love with him, he saw nothing abnormal about all this. Not that=
he
was conceited, for nobody was ever less so, but it is wonderful what an amo=
unt
of flattery and attention men will accept from women as their simple right.=
If
the other sex possesses the faculty of admiration, we in compensation are
perfectly endowed with that of receiving it with careless ease, and when we
fall in with some goddess who is foolish enough to worship us , and to whom we should be on our knees, we merely label =
her
"sympathetic," and say that she "understands us."
From all of which wise reflections the reader =
will
gather that our friend Arthur was not a hundred miles off an awkward situat=
ion.
One day, some three weeks after Arthur had gon=
e,
Angela strolled down the tunnel walk, now, in the height of summer, almost =
dark
with the shade of the lime-trees, and settled herself on one of the stone s=
eats
under Caresfoot's staff.
She had a book in hand, but it soon became cle=
ar
that she had come to this secluded spot to think rather than read, for it f=
ell
unopened from her hand, and her grey eyes were full of a far-off look as th=
ey gazed
across the lake glittering in the sunlight, away towards the hazy purple
outline of the distant hills. Her face was quite calm, but it was not that =
of a
happy person; indeed, it gave a distinct idea of mental suffering. All grie=
f,
however acute, is subject to fixed gradations, and Angela was yet in the se=
cond
stage. First there is the acute stage, when the heart aches with a physical
pain, and the mind, filled with a wild yearning or tortured by an unceasing
anxiety, well- nigh gives beneath the abnormal strain. This does not last l=
ong,
or it would kill or drive us to the mad-house. Then comes that long epoch o=
f dull
misery, enduring till at last kindly nature in pity rubs off the rough extr=
emes
of our calamity, and by slow but sure degrees softens agony into sorrow.
This was what she was now passing through, and=
--as
all highly organized natures like her own are, especially in youth, very se=
nsitive
to those more exquisite vibrations of pain and happiness that leave minds o=
f a
coarser fibre comparatively unmoved--it may be taken for granted that she w=
as
suffering sufficiently acutely.
Perhaps she had never quite realized how neces=
sary
Arthur had become to her, how deep his love had sent its fibres into her he=
art
and inner self, until he was violently wrenched away from her and she lost =
all sight
and knowledge of him in the darkness of the outside world. Still she had ma=
de
no show of her sorrow; but once, when Pigott told her some pathetic story of
the death of a little child in the village, she burst into a paroxysm of
weeping. The pity for another's pain had loosed the flood-gates of her own,=
but
it was a performance that she did not repeat.
But Angela had her anxieties as well as her
griefs, and it was over these former that she was thinking as she sat on the
great stone under the oak. Love is a wonderful quickener of the perceptions,
and, ignorant as she was of all the world's ways, the more she thought over=
the
terms imposed by her father upon her engagement, the more distrustful did s=
he
grow. Lady Bellamy, too, had been to see her twice, and on each occasion had
inspired her with a lively sense of fear and repugnance. During the first of
these visits she had shown a perfect acquaintance with the circumstances of=
her
engagement, her "flirtation with Mr. Heigham," as she was pleased=
to
call it. During the second call, too, she had been full of strange remarks
about her cousin George, talking mysteriously of "a change" that =
had
come over him since his illness, and of his being under a "new
influence." Nor was this all; for, on the very next day when she was o=
ut
walking with Pigott in the village, she had met George himself, and he had
insisted upon entering into a long rambling conversation with her, and on l=
ooking
at her in a way that made her feel perfectly sick.
"Oh, Aleck," she said, aloud, to the=
dog
that was sitting by her side with his head upon her knee, for he was now her
constant companion, "I wonder where your master is, your master and mi=
ne,
Aleck. Would to God that he were back here to protect me, for I am growing
afraid, I don't know of what, Aleck, and there are eleven long silent month=
s to
wait." At this moment the dog raised his head, listened, and sprang ro=
und with
an angry "woof." Angela rose up with a flash of hope in her eyes,=
turned,
and faced George Caresfoot.
He was still pale and shrivelled from the effe=
cts
of his illness, but otherwise little changed, except that the light-blue ey=
es
glittered with a fierce determination, and that the features had attained t=
hat fixity
and strength which sometimes come to those who are bent heart and soul upon=
an
enterprise, be it good or evil.
"So I have found you out at last, Cousin
Angela. What, are you not going to shake hands with me?"
Angela touched his fingers with her own.
"My father is not here," she said.
"Thank you, my dear cousin, but I did not
come to see your father, of whom I have seen plenty in the course of my lif=
e,
and shall doubtless see more; I came to see you, of whom I can never see
enough."
"I don't understand you," said Angel=
a,
defiantly, folding her arms across her bosom and looking him full in the fa=
ce
with fearless eyes, for her instinct warned her that she was in danger, and=
also
that, whatever she might feel, she must not show that she was afraid.
"I shall hope to make you do so before
long," he replied, with a meaning glance; "but you are not very
polite, you know, you do not offer me a seat."
"I beg your pardon, I did not know that y=
ou
wanted to sit down. I can only offer you a choice of those stones."
"Then call that brute away, and I will sit
down."
"The dog is not a brute, as you mean it. =
But
I should not speak of him like that, if I were you. He is sensible as a hum=
an
being, and might resent it."
Angela knew that George was a coward about dog=
s;
and at that moment, as though to confirm her words, Aleck growled slightly.=
"Ah, indeed; well, he is certainly a hand=
some
dog;" and he sat down suspiciously. "Won't you come and sit
down?"
"Thank you. I prefer to stand."
"Do you know what you look like, standing
there with your arms crossed? You look like an angry goddess."
"If you mean that seriously, I don't
understand you. If it is a compliment, I don't like compliments."
"You are not very friendly," said
George, whose temper was fast getting the better of him.
"I am sorry. I do not wish to be
unfriendly."
"So I hear that my ward has been staying =
here
whilst I was ill."
"Yes, he was staying here."
"And I am also told that there was some
boy-and-girl love affair between you. I suppose that he indulged in a
flirtation to wile away the time."
Angela turned upon him, too angry to speak.
"Well, you need not look at me like that.=
You
surely never expect to see him again, do you?"
"If we both live, I shall certainly see h=
im
again; indeed, I shall, in any case."
"You will never see him again."
"Why not?"
"Because he was only flirting and playing=
the
fool with you. He is a notorious flirt, and, to my certain knowledge, has b=
een
engaged to two women before."
"I do not believe that that is true, or, =
if
it is true, it is not all the truth; but, true or untrue, I am not going to
discuss Mr. Heigham with you, or allow myself to be influenced by stories t=
old
behind his back."
"Angela," said George, rising, and
seizing her hand.
She turned quite pale, and a shudder passed ov=
er
her frame.
"Leave my hand alone, and never dare to t=
ouch
me again. This is the second time that you have tried to insult me."
"So!" answered George, furious with
outraged pride and baffled passion, "you set up your will against mine=
, do
you? Very well, you shall see. I will crush you to powder. Insult you, inde=
ed!
How often did that young blackguard insult you? I warrant he did more than =
take
your hand."
"If," answered Angela, "you mean
Mr. Heigham, I shall leave you to consider whether that term is not more
applicable to the person who does his best to outrage an unprotected woman,=
and
take advantage of the absent, than to the gentleman against whom you have u=
sed
it;" and, darting on him one glance of supreme contempt, she swept away
like an angry queen.
Left to his meditations, George shook his fist
towards where she had vanished.
"Very well, my fine lady, very well,"=
; he
said, aloud. "You treat me as so much dirt, do you? You shall smart for
this, so sure as my name is George Caresfoot. Only wait till you are in my
power, and you shall learn that I was never yet defied with impunity. Oh, a=
nd
you shall learn many other things also."
From that time forward, Angela was, for a peri=
od
of two months or more, subjected to an organized persecution as harassing a=
s it
was cruel. George waylaid her everywhere, and twice actually succeeded in e=
ntering
into conversation with her, but on both occasions she managed to escape from
him before he could proceed any further. So persistently did he hunt her, t=
hat
at last the wretched girl was driven to hide herself away in odd corners of=
the
house and woods, in order to keep out of his way. Then he took to writing h=
er
letters, and sending handsome presents, all of which she returned.
Poor Angela! It was hard both to lose her love=
r,
and to suffer daily from the persecutions of her hateful cousin, which were=
now
pushed forward so openly and with such pertinacity as to fill her with vagu=
e alarm.
What made her position worse was, that she had no one in whom to confide, f=
or
Mr. Fraser had not yet returned. Pigott indeed knew more or less what was g=
oing
on, but she could do nothing, except bewail Arthur's absence, and tell her
"not to mind." There remained her father, but with him she had ne=
ver
been on sufficiently intimate terms for confidence. Indeed, as time went on,
the suspicion gathered strength in her mind that he was privy to George's
advances, and that those advances had something to do with the harsh terms
imposed upon Arthur and herself. But at last matters grew so bad that, havi=
ng
no other refuge, she determined to appeal to him for protection.
"Father," she said, boldly, one day =
to
Philip, as he was sitting writing in his study, "my cousin George is
persecuting me every day. I have borne it as long as I can, but I can bear =
it
no longer. I have come to ask you to protect me from him."
"Why, Angela, I should have thought that =
you
were perfectly capable of protecting yourself. What is he persecuting you
about? What does he want?"
"To marry me, I suppose," answered
Angela, blushing to her eyes.
"Well, that is a very complimentary wish =
on
his part, and I can tell you what it is, Angela, if only you could get that
young Heigham out of your head, you might do a deal worse."
"It is quite useless to talk to me like
that," she answered, coldly.
"Well, that is your affair; but it is very
ridiculous of you to come and ask me to protect you. The woman must, indeed=
, be
a fool who cannot protect herself."
And so the interview ended.
Next day Lady Bellamy called again.
"My dear child," she said to Angela,
"you are not looking well; this business worries you, no doubt; it is =
the
old struggle between duty and inclination, that we have most of us gone
through. Well, there is one consolation, nobody who ever did his or her dut=
y,
regardless of inclination, ever regretted it in the end."
"What do you mean, Lady Bellamy, when you
talk about my duty?"
"I mean the plain duty that lies before y=
ou
of marrying your cousin George, and of throwing up this young Heigham."=
;
"I recognize no such duty."
"My dear Angela, do look at the matter fr=
om a
sensible point of view, think what a good thing it would be for your father,
and remember, too, that it would re-unite all the property. If ever a girl =
had
a clear duty to perform, you have."
"Since you insist so much upon my 'duty,'=
I
must say that it seems to me that an honest girl in my position has three
duties to consider, and not one, as you say, Lady Bellamy. First, there is =
her
duty to the man she loves, for her the greatest duty of any in the world; n=
ext
her duty to herself, for her happiness and self-respect are involved in her
decision; and, lastly, her duty to her family. I put the family last, becau=
se,
after all, it is she who gets married, not her family."
Lady Bellamy smiled a little.
"You argue well; but there is one thing t=
hat
you overlook, though I am sorry to have to pain you by saying it; young Mr.
Heigham is no better than he should be. I have made inquiries about him, and
think that I ought to tell you that."
"What do you mean?"
"I mean that his life, young as he is, has
not been so creditable as it might have been. He has been the hero of one or
two little affairs. I can tell you about them if you like."
"Lady Bellamy, your stories are either tr=
ue
or untrue. If true, I should take no notice of them, because they must have
happened before he loved me; if untrue, they would be a mere waste of breat=
h,
so I think that we may dispense with the stories--they would influence me no
more than the hum of next summer's gnats."
Lady Bellamy smiled again.
"You are a curious woman," she said;
"but, supposing that there were to be a repetition of these little sto=
ries
after he loved you, what would you say then?&q=
uot;
Angela looked troubled, and thought awhile.
"He could never go far from me," she
answered.
"What do you mean?"
"I mean that I hold the strings of his he=
art
in my hands, and I have only to lift them to draw him back to me--so. No ot=
her
woman, no living force, can keep him from me, if I choose to bid him
come."
"Supposing that to be so, how about the
self-respect you spoke of just now? Could you bear to take your lover back =
from
the hands of another woman?"
"That would entirely depend upon the
circumstances, and upon what was just to the other woman."
"You would not then throw him up without
question?"
"Lady Bellamy, I may be very ignorant and
simple, but I am neither mad nor a fool. What do you suppose that my life w=
ould
be worth to me if I threw Arthur up? If I remained single it would be an ac=
hing
void, as it is now, and if I married any other man whilst he still lived, i=
t would
become a daily and shameful humiliation such as I had rather die than
endure."
Lady Bellamy glanced up from under her
heavy-lidded eyes; a thought had evidently struck her, but she did not expr=
ess
it.
"Then I am to tell your cousin George that
you will have absolutely nothing to do with him?"
"Yes, and beg him to cease persecuting me=
; it
is quite useless; if there were no Arthur and no other man in the world, I
would not marry him. I detest him--I cannot tell you how I detest him."=
;
"It is amusing to hear you talk so, and to
think that you will certainly be Mrs. George Caresfoot within nine
months."
"Never," answered Angela, passionate=
ly
stamping her foot upon the floor. "What makes you say such horrible
things?"
"I reflect," answered Lady Bellamy, =
with
an ominous smile, "that George Caresfoot has made up his mind to marry
you, and that I have made up mine to help him to do so, and that your will,
strong as it certainly is, is, as compared with our united wills, what a st=
raw
is to a gale. The straw cannot travel against the wind, it must <=
/span>go
with it, and you must marry George Caresfoot. You will as cert=
ainly
come to the altar-rails with him as you will to your death-bed. It is writt=
en
in your face. Good-bye."
For the first time Angela's courage really gave
way as she heard these dreadful words. She remembered how she herself had
called Lady Bellamy an embodiment of the "Spirit of Power," and n=
ow
she felt that the comparison was just. The woman was power incarnate, and h=
er
words, which from anybody else she would have laughed at, sent a cold chill=
through
her.
"She is a fine creature both in mind and =
body,"
reflected Lady Bellamy, as she stepped into her carriage. "Really, tho=
ugh
I try to hate her, I can find it in my heart to be sorry for her. Indeed, I=
am not
sure that I do not like her; certainly I respect her. But she has come in my
path and must be crushed--my own safety demands it. At least, she is worth
crushing, and the game is fair, for perhaps she will crush me. I should not=
be
surprised; there is a judgment in those grey eyes of hers--Qui vivra verra.
Home, William."
Angela's appeal for protection set Philip
thinking.
As the reader is aware, his sole motive in
consenting to become, as it were, a sleeping partner in the shameful plot, =
of
which his innocent daughter was the object, was to obtain possession of his
lost inheritance, and it now occurred to him that even should that plot suc=
ceed,
which he very greatly doubted, nothing had as yet been settled as to the te=
rms
upon which it was to be reconveyed to him. The whole affair was excessively
repugnant to him: indeed, he regarded the prospect of its success with litt=
le
less than terror, only his greed over-mastered his fear.
But on one point he was very clear: it should =
not
succeed except upon the very best of terms for himself, his daughter should=
not
be sacrificed unless the price paid for the victim was positively princely,
such guilt was not to be incurred for a bagatelle. If George married Angela,
the Isleworth estates must pass back into his hands for a very low sum inde=
ed.
But would his cousin be willing to accept such a sum? That was the rub, and
that, too, was what must be made clear without any further delay. He had no
wish to see Angela put to needless suffering, suffering which would not bri=
ng
an equivalent with it, and which might, on the contrary, entail consequences
upon himself that he shuddered to think of.
Curiously enough, however, he had of late been
signally free from his superstitious fears; indeed, since the night when he=
had
so astonished Arthur by his outbreak about the shadows on the wall, no fit =
had
come to trouble him, and he was beginning to look upon the whole thing as an
evil dream, a nightmare that he had at last lived down. But still the night=
mare
might return, and he was not going to run the risk unless he was very well =
paid
for it. And so he determined to offer a price so low for the property that =
no
man in his senses would accept it, and then wrote a note to George asking h=
im
to come over on the following evening after dinner, as he wished to speak to
him on a matter of business.
"There," he said to himself, "t=
hat
will make an end of the affair, and I will get young Heigham back and they =
can
be married. George can never take what I mean to offer; if he should, the
Egyptian will be spoiled indeed, and the game will be worth the candle. Not
that I have any responsibility about it, however; I shall put no pressure o=
n Angela,
she must choose for herself." And Philip went to bed, quite feeling as
though he had done a virtuous action.
George came punctually enough on the following
evening, which was that of the day of Lady Bellamy's conversation with Ange=
la,
a conversation which had so upset the latter that she had already gone to h=
er
room, not knowing anything of her cousin's proposed visit.
The night was one of those dreadfully oppressi=
ve
ones that sometimes visit us in the course of an English summer. The day had
been hot and sultry, and with the fall of the evening the little breeze tha=
t stirred
in the thunder-laden air had died away, leaving the temperature at much the
same point that is to be expected in a tropical valley, and rendering the h=
eat
of the house almost unbearable.
"How do you do, George?" said Philip.
"Hot, isn't it?"
"Yes, there will be a tempest soon."=
"Not before midnight, I think. Shall we go
and walk down by the lake, it will be cooler there, and we shall be quite
undisturbed? Walls have ears sometimes, you know."
"Very well; but where is Angela?"
"I met her on the stairs just now, and she
said that she was going to bed--got a headache, I believe. Shall we
start?"
So soon as they were well away from the house,
Philip broke the ice.
"Some months back, I had a conversation w=
ith
Lady Bellamy on the subject of a proposal that you made to me through her f=
or
Angela's hand. It is about that I wish to speak to you now. First, I must a=
sk if
you still wish to go on with the business?"
"Certainly, I wish it more than ever.&quo=
t;
"Well, as I intimated to Lady Bellamy, I =
do
not at all approve of your suit. Angela is already, subject to my consent, =
very
suitably engaged to your late ward, a young fellow whom, whatever you may t=
hink
about him, I like very much; and I can assure you that it will require the =
very
strongest inducements to make me even allow such a thing. In any case, I wi=
ll
have nothing to do with influencing Angela; she is a perfectly free
agent."
"Which means, I suppose, that you intend =
to
screw down the price?"
"In wanting to marry Angela," went on
Philip, "you must remember that you fly high. She is a very lovely wom=
an,
and, what is more, will some day or other be exceedingly well off, whilst
you--you must excuse me for being candid, but this is a mere matter of
business, and I am only talking of you in the light of a possible
son-in-law--you are a middle-aged man, not prepossessing in appearance, bro=
ken
in health, and, however well you may have kept up your reputation in these
parts, as you and I well know, without a single shred of character left; al=
together
not a man to who a father would marry his daughter of his own free will, or=
one
with whom a young girl is likely to find happiness."
"You draw a flattering picture of me, I m=
ust
say."
"Not at all, only a true one."
"Well, if I am all you say, how is it that
you are prepared to allow your daughter to marry me at all?"
"I will tell you; because the rights of
property should take precedence of the interests of a single individual.
Because my father and you between you cozened me out of my lawful own, and =
this
is the only way that I see of coming by it again."
"What does it matter? in any case after y=
our
death the land will come back to Angela and her children."
"No, George, it will not; if ever the
Isleworth estates come into my hands, they shall not pass again to any chil=
d of
yours."
"What would you do with them, then?"=
"Marry, and get children of my own."=
George whistled.
"Well, I must say that your intentions are
amiable, but you have not got the estates yet, my dear cousin."
"No, and never shall have, most likely; b=
ut
let us come to the point. Although I do not approve of your advances, I am
willing to waive my objections and accept you as a son-in-law, if you can w=
in
Angela's consent, provided that before the marriage you consent to give me =
clear
transfer, at a price, of all the Isleworth estates, with the exception of t=
he
mansion and the pleasure-grounds."
"Very good; but now about the price. That=
is
the real point."
They had taken a path that ran down through the shrubberies to the side of the lake, and then turned up towards Caresfoot's Staff. Before answering George's remark, Philip proposed that they should s= it down, and, suiting the action to the word, placed himself upon the trunk of= a fallen tree that lay by the water's edge, just outside the spread of the branches of the great oak, and commanding a view of the area beneath them.<= o:p>
"The moon will come out again
presently," he said, when George had followed his example. "She h=
as
got behind that thunder-cloud. Ah!" as a bright flash of lightning pas=
sed
from heaven to earth, "I thought that we should get a storm; it will be
here in half an hour."
All this Philip said to gain time; he had not
quite made up his mind what price to offer.
"Never mind the lightning. What do you of=
fer
for the property, inclusive of timber, and with all improvements--just as it
stands, in short."
"One hundred thousand pounds cash," =
said
Philip, deliberately.
George sprang from his seat, and sat down again
before he answered.
"Do you think that I am drunk, or a fool,
that you come to me with such a ridiculous offer? Why, the probate valuation
was two hundred thousand, and that was very low."
"I offer one hundred thousand, and am wil=
ling
to settle thirty thousand absolutely on the girl should she marry you, and
twenty thousand more on my death. That is my offer--take it, or leave it.&q=
uot;
"Talk sense, man; your terms are
preposterous."
"I tell you that, preposterous or not, I =
will
not go beyond them. If you don't like them, well and good, leave them alone,
and I'll put myself in communication with young Heigham to-morrow, and tell=
him
that he can come and marry the girl as soon as he likes. For my part, I am =
very
glad to have the business settled."
"You ask me to sacrifice half my
property," groaned George.
"My property, you mean, that you stole. B=
ut I
don't ask you to do anything one way or the other. I am to understand that =
you
refuse my offer?"
"Give me a minute to think," and Geo=
rge
hid his face in his hand, and Philip, looking at him with hatred gleaming in
his dark eyes, muttered between his teeth,
"I believe that my turn has come at
last."
When some thirty seconds had passed in silence,
the attention of the pair was attracted by the cracking of dead leaves that
sounded quite startling in the intense stillness of the night, and next sec=
ond
a tall figure in white glided up to the water's edge, and stood still within
half a dozen paces of them.
Involuntarily Philip gripped his cousin's arm,=
but
neither of them moved. The sky had rapidly clouded up, and the faint light =
that
struggled from the moon only served to show that the figure appeared to be
lifting its arms. In another second that was gone too, and the place was
totally dark.
"Wait till the moon comes out, and we sha=
ll
see what it is," whispered George, and, as he spoke, there came from t=
he
direction of the figure a rustling sound as of falling garments.
"What can it be?" whispered Philip.<= o:p>
They were not left long in doubt, for at that
instant a vivid flash from the thunder-cloud turned the darkness into the m=
ost
brilliant day, and revealed a woman standing up to her knees in the water, =
with
her arms lifted, knotting her long hair. It was Angela. For one moment the
fierce light shone upon the stately form that gleamed whiter than ivory--wh=
ite
as snow against the dense background of the brushwood, and, as it passed, t=
hey
heard her sink into the water softly as a swan, and strike out with steady
strokes towards the centre of the lake.
"It is only Angela," said Philip, wh=
en
the sound of the strokes grew faint. "Phew! what a state she gave
me."
"Is she safe?" asked George, in a hu=
sky
voice. "Hadn't I better get a boat?"
"She needs no help from you, she is quite
capable of looking after herself, especially in the water, I can tell
you," Philip answered, sharply.
Nothing more was said till they reached the ho=
use,
when, on entering the lighted study, Philip noticed that his cousin's face =
was
flushed, and his hands shaking like aspen leaves.
"Why, what is the matter with you, man?&q=
uot;
he asked.
"Nothing--nothing. I am only rather cold.
Give me some brandy."
"Cold on such a night as this? That's
curious," said Philip, as he got the spirit from a cupboard.
George drank about a wine-glassful neat, and
seemed to recover himself.
"I accept your offer for the land,
Philip," he said, presently.
His cousin looked at him curiously, and a
brilliant idea struck him.
"You agree, then, to take fifty thousand pounds for the Isleworth estate=
s in
the event of your marrying my daughter, the sale to be completed before the
marriage takes place?"
"Fifty thousand! No, a hundred thousand--=
you
said a hundred thousand just now."
"You must have misunderstood me, or I must
have made a mistake; what I meant is fifty
thousand , and you to put a thousand down as earnest money--to be forfeited
whether the affair comes off or not."
George ground his teeth and clutched at his red
hair, proceedings that his cousin watched with a great deal of quiet enjoym=
ent.
When at length he spoke, it was in a low, hoarse voice; quite unlike his us=
ual hard
tones:
"Damn you!" he said, "you have =
me
at your mercy. Take the land for the money, if you like, though it will nea=
rly
ruin me. That woman has turned my head; I must marry her, or I shall go mad."
"Very good; that is your affair. Remember
that I have no responsibility in the matter, and that I am not going to put=
any
pressure on Angela. If you want to marry her, you must win her within the n=
ext
eight months. Then that is settled. I suppose that you will pay in the thou=
sand
to-morrow. The storm is coming up fast, so I won't keep you. Good night,&qu=
ot;
and they separated, George to drive home--with fever in his heart, and the
thunderstorm, of which he heard nothing, rattling round him--and Philip to =
make
his way to bed, with the dream of his life advanced a step nearer realizati=
on.
"That was a lucky swim of Angela's
to-night," he thought. "Fifty thousand pounds for the estate. He =
is
right; he must be going mad. But will he get her to marry him, I wonder. If=
he
does, I shall cry quits with him, indeed."
George had spoken no falsehood when he said th=
at
he felt as though he must marry Angela or go mad. Indeed, it is a striking
proof of how necessary he thought that step to be to his happiness, that he=
had
been willing to consent to his cousin's Shylock-like terms about the sale of
the property, although they would in their result degrade him from his posi=
tion
as a large landed proprietor, and make a comparatively poor man of him. The
danger or suffering that could induce a Caresfoot to half ruin himself with=
his
eyes open had need to be of an extraordinarily pressing nature.
Love's empire is this globe and all mankind; t=
he
most refined and the most degraded, the cleverest and the most stupid, are =
all
liable to become his faithful subjects. He can alike command the devotion o=
f an
archbishop and a South-Sea Islander, of the most immaculate maiden lady
(whatever her age) and of the savage Zulu girl. From the pole to the equato=
r,
and from the equator to the further pole, there is no monarch like Love. Wh=
ere
he sets his foot, the rocks bloom with flowers, or the garden becomes a
wilderness, according to his good- will and pleasure, and at his whisper all
other allegiances melt away like ropes of mud. He is the real arbiter of the
destinies of the world.
But to each nature of all the millions beneath=
his
sway, Love comes in a fitting guise, to some as an angel messenger, telling=
of
sympathy and peace, and a strange new hope; to others draped in sad robes i=
ndeed,
but still divine. Thus when he visits such a one as George Caresfoot, it is=
as
a potent fiend, whose mission is to enter through man's lower nature, to
torture and destroy; to scorch the heart with fearful heats, and then to cr=
ush
it, and leave its owner's bosom choked with bitter dust.
And, so far as George is concerned, there is no
doubt but what the work was done right well, for under the influence of wha=
t is,
with doubtful propriety, known as the "tender passion," that
estimable character was rapidly drifting within a measurable distance of a =
lunatic
asylum. The checks and repulses that he had met with, instead of cooling his
ardour, had only the effect of inflaming it to an extraordinary degree.
Angela's scornful dislike, as water thrown upon burning oil, did but diffuse
the flames of his passion throughout the whole system of his mind, till he =
grew
wild with its heat and violence. Her glorious beauty daily took a still
stronger hold upon his imagination, till it scorched into his very soul. For
whole nights he could not sleep, for whole days he would scarcely eat or do=
anything
but walk, walk, walk, and try to devise means to win her to his side. The
irritation of the mind produced its natural effects upon his conduct, and he
would burst into fits of the most causeless fury. In one of these he dismis=
sed
every servant in the house, and so evil was his reputation among that class,
that he had great difficulty in obtaining others to take their place. In
another he hurled a heavy pot containing an azalea-bush at the head of one =
of
the gardeners, and had to compromise an action for assault. In short, the
lunatic asylum loomed very near indeed.
For a week or so after the memorable night of =
his
interview with Philip, an interview that he, at least, would never forget,
George was quite unable, try as he would, to get a single word with Angela.=
At last, one day, when he was driving, by a
seldom-used road, past the fields near the Abbey House on his way from Roxh=
am,
chance gave him the opportunity that he had for so long sought without succ=
ess.
For, far up a by-lane that led to a turnip-field, his eye caught sight of t=
he
flutter of a grey dress vanishing round a corner, something in the make of
which suggested to him that Angela was its wearer. Giving the reins to the
servant, and bidding him drive on home, he got out of the dog-cart and hurr=
ied
up the grassy track, and on turning the corner came suddenly upon the objec=
t of
his search. She was standing on the bank of the hedge-row, and struggling w=
ith
a bough of honeysuckle from which she wished to pluck its last remaining au=
tumn
bloom. So engaged was she that she did not hear his step, and it was not un=
til
his hard voice grated on her ear, that she knew that she was trapped.
"Caught at last. You have given me a pret=
ty
hunt, Angela."
The violent start she gave effectually carried=
out
her purpose as regards the honeysuckle, which snapped in two under the stra=
in
of her backward jerk, and she turned round upon him panting with fear and e=
xertion,
the flowery bough grasped within her hand.
"Am I, then, a wild creature, that you sh=
ould
hunt me so?"
"Yes, you are the loveliest and the wilde=
st
of creatures, and, now I have caught you, you must listen to me."
"I will not listen to you; you have nothi=
ng
to say to me that can interest me. I will not listen to you."
George laughed a little--a threatening, nervous
laugh.
"I am accustomed to have my own way, Ange=
la,
and I am not going to give it up now. You must and you shall listen. I have=
got
my opportunity at last, and I mean to use it. I am sorry to have to speak so
roughly, but you have only yourself to thank; you have driven me to it.&quo=
t;
His determination frightened her, and she took
refuge in an armour of calm and freezing contempt.
"I don't understand you," she said.<= o:p>
"On the contrary, you understand me very
well. You always avoid me; I can never see you, try how I will. Perhaps,&qu=
ot;
he went on, still talking quite quietly, "if you knew what a hell ther=
e is
in my heart and brain you would not treat me so. I tell you that I am in
torture," and the muscles of the pallid face twitched in a way that we=
nt
far to confirm his words.
"I do not understand your meaning, unless,
indeed, you are trying to frighten and insult me, as you have done
before," answered Angela.
Poor girl, she did not know what else to say; =
she
was not of a nervous disposition, but there was something about George's ma=
nner
that alarmed her very much, and she glanced anxiously around to see if any =
one
was within call, but the place was lonely as the grave.
"There is no need for you to look for hel=
p, I
wish neither to frighten nor insult you; my suit is an honourable one enoug=
h. I
wish you to promise to marry me, that is all; you must and shall promise it=
, I will
take no refusal. You were made for me and I for you; it is quite useless for
you to resist me, for you must marry me at last. I love you, and by that ri=
ght
you belong to me. I love you--I love you."
"You--love--me--you----"
"Yes, I do, and why should you look at me
like that? I cannot help it, you are so beautiful; if you knew your lovelin=
ess,
you would understand me. I love those grey eyes of yours, even when they fl=
ash and
burn as they do now. Ah! they shall look softly at me yet, and those sweet =
lips
that curl so scornfully shall shape themselves to kiss me. Listen, I loved =
you
when I first saw you there in the drawing-room at Isleworth, I loved you mo=
re
and more all the time that I was ill, and now I love you to madness. So you
see, Angela, you must marry me soon."
" I marry you!"
"Oh! don't say you won't, for God's sake,
don't say you won't," said George, with a sudden change of manner from=
the
confident to the supplicatory. "Look, I beg you not to, on my knees,&q=
uot;
and he actually flung himself down on the grass roadway and grovelled before
her in an abandonment of passion hideous to behold.
She turned very pale, and answered him in a co=
ld,
quiet voice, every syllable of which fell upon him like the stroke of a kni=
fe.
"Such a thing would be quite impossible f=
or
many reasons, but I need only repeat you one that you are already aware of.=
I
am engaged to Mr. Heigham."
"Bah, that is nothing. I know that; but y=
ou
will not throw away such a love as I have to offer for the wavering affecti=
on
of a boy. We can soon get rid of him. Write and tell him that you have chan=
ged
your mind. Listen, Angela," he went on, catching her by the skirt of h=
er dress;
"he is not rich, he has only got enough for a bare living. I have five
times the money, and you shall help to spend it. Don't marry a young beggar
like that; you won't get value for yourself. It will pay you ever so much
better to marry me."
George was convinced from his experience of the
sex that every woman could be bought if only you bid high enough; but, as t=
he
sequel showed, he could not well have used a worse argument to a person lik=
e Angela,
or one more likely to excite the indignation that fear of him, together wit=
h a
certain respect for the evident genuineness of his suffering, had hitherto =
kept
in suppression. She wrenched her dress free from him, leaving a portion of =
its
fabric in his hand.
"Are you not ashamed?" she said, her
voice trembling with indignation and her eyes filled with angry tears;
"are you not ashamed to talk to me like this, you , my own father's cousin, and yourse=
lf old
enough to be my father? I tell you that my love is already given, which wou=
ld have
been a sufficient answer to any ge=
ntleman
, and you reply by saying that you are richer than the man I love. Do you
believe that a woman thinks of nothing but money? or do you suppose that I =
am
to be bought like a beast at the market? Get up from the ground, for, since=
your
brutality forces me to speak so plainly in my own defence, I must tell you =
once
and for all that you will get nothing by kneeling to me. Listen: I would ra=
ther
die than be your wife; rather than always see your face about me, I would p=
ass
my life in prison; I had sooner be touched by a snake than by you. You are
quite hateful to me. Now you have your answer, and I beg that you will get =
up
and let me pass!"
Drawn up the full height of her majestic statu=
re,
her face flushed with emotion, and her clear eyes flashing scornful fire,
whilst in her hand she still held the bough of sweet honeysuckle; Angela fo=
rmed
a strange contrast to the miserable man crouched at her feet, swaying himse=
lf
to and fro and moaning, his hat off and his face hidden in his trembling ha=
nds.
As he would not, or could not move, she left h=
im
there, and slipping through a neighbouring gap vanished from sight. When she
was fairly gone, he stirred, and having risen and recovered his hat, which =
had fallen
off in his excitement, his first action was to shake his fist in the direct=
ion
in which she had vanished, his next to frantically kiss the fragment of her
dress that he still held in her hand.
"You =
span>shall
marry me yet, my fine lady," =
he
hissed between his teeth; "and, if I do not repay your gentle words wi=
th
interest, my name is not George Caresfoot;" and then, staggering like a
drunken man, he made his way home.
"Oh, Arthur," thought Angela, as she
crept quite broken in spirit to the solitude of her room, "if I only k=
new
where you were, I think that I would follow you, promise or no promise. The=
re
is no one to help me, no one; they are all in league against me--even my own
father."
Notwithstanding his brave threats made behind
Angela's back, about forcing her to marry him in the teeth of any opposition
that she could offer, George reached home that night very much disheartened
about the whole business. How was he to bow the neck of this proud woman to=
his
yoke, and break the strong cord of her allegiance to her absent lover. With
many girls it might have been possible to find a way, but Angela was not an
ordinary girl. He had tried, and Lady Bellamy had tried, and they had both
failed, and as for Philip he would take no active part in the matter. What =
more
could be done? Only one thing that he could think of, he could force Lady
Bellamy to search her finer brains for a fresh expedient. Acting upon this
idea, he at once despatched a note to her, requesting her to come and see h=
im
at Isleworth on the following morning.
That night passed very ill for the love-lorn
George. Angela's vigorous and imaginative expression of her entire loathing=
of
him had pierced even the thick hide of his self-conceit, and left him sore =
as a
whipped hound, altogether too sore to sleep. When Lady Bellamy arrived on t=
he
following morning, she found him marching up and down the dining-room, in t=
he
worst of his bad tempers, and that was a very shocking temper indeed. His l=
ight
blue eyes were angry and bloodshot, his general appearance slovenly to the =
last
degree, and a red spot burned upon each sallow cheek.
"Well, George, what is the matter? You do=
n't
look quite so happy as a lover should."
He grunted by way of answer.
"Has the lady been unkind, failed to
appreciate your advances, eh?"
"Now look here, Anne," he answered,
savagely, "if I have to put up with things from that confounded girl, =
I am
not going to stand your jeers, so stop them once and for all."
"It is very evident that she has been unk=
ind.
Supposing that instead of abusing me you tell me the details. No doubt they=
are
interesting," and she settled herself in a low chair, and glanced at h=
im
keenly from under her heavy eyelids.
Thus admonished, George proceeded to giver her
such a version of his melancholy tale as best suited him, needless to say n=
ot a
full one, but his hearer's imagination easily supplied the gaps, and, as he=
proceeded,
a slow smile crept over her face as she conjured up the suppressed details =
of
the scene in the lane.
"Curse you! what are you laughing at? You
came here to listen, not laugh," broke out George furiously, when he s=
aw
it.
She made no answer, and he continued his thril=
ling
tale without comment on her part.
"Now," he said, when it was finished,
"what is to be done?"
"There is nothing to be done; you have fa=
iled
to win her affections, and there is an end of the matter."
"Then you mean I must give it up?"
"Yes, and a very good thing too, for the
ridiculous arrangement that you have entered into with Philip would have
half-ruined you, and you would be tired of the girl in a month."
"Now, look you here, Anne," said Geo=
rge,
in a sort of hiss, and standing over her in a threatening attitude, "I
have suspected for some time that you were playing me false in this busines=
s,
and now I am sure of it. You have put the girl up to treating me like this,=
you
treacherous snake; you have struck me from behind, you Red Indian in pettic=
oats.
But, look here, I will be square with you; you shall not have all the laugh=
on
your side."
"George, you must be mad."
"You shall see whether I am mad or not. D=
id
you see what the brigands did to a fellow they caught in Greece the other d=
ay
for whom they wanted ransom? First, they sent his ear to his friends, then =
his
nose, then his foot, and, last of all, his head--all by post, mark you. Wel=
l,
dear Anne, that is just how I am going to pay you out. You shall have a wee=
k to
find a fresh plan to trap the bird you have frightened, and, if you find no=
ne,
first, I shall post one of those interesting letters that I have yonder to =
your
husband--anonymously, you know--not a very compromising one, but one that w=
ill
pique his curiosity and set him making inquiries; then I shall wait another
week."
Lady Bellamy could bear it no longer. She spra=
ng
up from her chair, pale with anger.
"You fiend in human form, what is it, I
wonder, that has kept me so long from destroying you and myself too? Oh! you
need not laugh; I have the means to do it, if I choose: I have had them for
twenty years."
George laughed again, hoarsely.
"Quite penny-dreadful, I declare. But I d=
on't
think you will come to that; you would be afraid, and, if you do, I don't m=
uch
care--I am pretty reckless, I can tell you."
"For your threats," she went on, wit=
hout
heeding him, "I care nothing, for, as I tell you, I have their antidot=
e at
hand. You have known me for many years, tell me, did you ever see my nerve
desert me? Do you suppose that I am a woman who would bear failure when I c=
ould
choose death? No, George, I had rather pass into eternity on the crest of t=
he wave
of my success, such as it has been, and let it break and grind me to powder
there, or else bear me to greater heights. All that should have been a woma=
n's
better part in the world you have destroyed in me. I do not say that it was
altogether your fault, for an evil destiny bound me to you, and it must seem
odd to you when I say that, knowing you for what you are, I still love you.=
And
to fill up this void, to trample down those surging memories, I have made
myself a slave to my ambition, and the acquisition of another power that you
cannot understand. The man you married me to is rich and a knight to-day. I=
made
him so. If I live another twenty years, his wealth shall be colossal and his
influence unbounded, and I will be one of the most powerful women in the
kingdom. Why do you suppose that I so fear your treachery? Do you think tha=
t I
should mind its being known that I had thrown aside that poor fig-leaf,
virtue--the green garment that marks a coward or a fool; for, mark you, all
women, or nearly all, would be vicious if they dared. Fear and poverty of
spirit restrain them, not virtue. Why, it is by their vices, properly manag=
ed,
that women have always risen, and always will rise. To be really great, I t=
hink
that a woman must be vicious with discrimination, and I respect vice accord=
ingly.
No, it is not that I fear. I am afraid because I have a husband whose bitter
resentment is justly piling up against me from year to year, who only lies =
in
wait for an opportunity to destroy me. Nor is he my only enemy. In his skil=
ful
hands, the letters you possess can, as society is in this country, be used =
so
as to make me powerless. Yes, George, all the good in me is dead; the mad l=
ove
I have given you is hourly outraged, and yet I cannot shake it off. There alone my strength fails me, and I am wea=
k as a
child. Only the power to exercise my will, my sense of command over the
dullards round me, and a yet keener pleasure you do not know of, are left to
me. If these are taken away, what will my life be? A void, a waste, a howli=
ng wilderness,
a place where I will not stay! I had rather tempt the unknown. Even in Hell
there must be scope for abilities such as mine!"
She paused awhile, as if for an answer, and th=
en
went on--
"And as for you, poor creature that you a=
re,
words cannot tell how I despise you. You discard me and my devotion, to fol=
low
a nature, in its way, it is true, greater even than my own, representing th=
e principle
of good, as I represent the principle of evil, but one to which yours is
utterly abhorrent. Can you mix light with darkness, or filthy oil with wate=
r?
As well hope to merge your life, black as it is with every wickedness, with
that of the splendid creature you would defile. Do you suppose that a woman
such as she will ever be really faithless to her love, even though you trap=
her
into marriage? Fool, her heart is as far above you as the stars; and withou=
t a
heart a woman is a husk that none but such miserables as yourself would own=
. But
go on--dash yourself against a white purity that will, in the end, blind and
destroy you. Dree your own doom! I will find you expedients; it is my busin=
ess
to obey you. You shall marry her, if you will, and taste of the judgment th=
at
will follow. Be still, I will bear no more of your insolence to-day." =
And
she swept out of the room, leaving George looking somewhat scared.
When Lady Bellamy reached Rewtham House, she w=
ent
straight to her husband's study. He received her with much politeness, and
asked her to sit down.
"I have come to consult you on a matter of
some importance," she said.
"That is, indeed, an unusual
occurrence," answered Sir John, rubbing his dry hands and smiling.
"It is not my own affair: listen," a=
nd
she gave him a full, accurate, and clear account of all that had taken place
with reference to George's determination to marry Angela, not omitting the =
most
trivial detail. Sir John expressed no surprise; he was a very old bird was =
Sir John,
one for whom every net was spread in vain, whether in or out of his sight.
Nothing in this world, provided that it did not affect his own comfort or
safety, could affect his bland and appreciative smile. He was never surpris=
ed.
Once or twice he put a shrewd question to elucidate some point in the
narrative, and that was all. When his wife was finished, he said,
"Well, Anne, you have told a very interes=
ting
and amusing little history, doubly so, if you will permit me to say it, see=
ing
that it is told of George Caresfoot by Lady Bellamy; but it seems that your
joint efforts have failed. What is it that you wish me to do?"
"I wish to ask you if you can suggest any
plan that will not fail. You are very cunning in your way, and your advice =
may
be good."
"Let me see, young Heigham is in Madeira,=
is
he not?"
"I am sure I do not know."
"But I do," and he extracted a note-=
book
from a drawer. "Let me see, I think I have an entry somewhere here. Ah!
here we are. 'Arthur P. Heigham, Esq., passenger, per Warwick Castle , to Madeira, June 16.' (=
Copied
from passenger-list, Western Daily=
News .)
His second name is Preston, is it not? Lucky I kept that. Now, the thing wi=
ll
be to communicate with Madeira, and see if he is still there. I can easily =
do
that; I know a man there."
"Have you formed any plan, then?"
"Yes," answered Sir John, with great
deliberation, "I think I see my way; but I must have time to think of =
it.
I will speak to you about it to-morrow."
When Lady Bellamy had gone, the little man ros=
e,
peeped round to see that nobody was within hearing, and then, rubbing his d=
ry
hands with infinite zest, said aloud, in a voice that was quite solemn in t=
he intensity
of its satisfaction,
"The Lord hath delivered mine enemies into
mine hand."
Two days after Sir John had been taken into
confidence, Philip received a visit from Lady Bellamy that caused him a good
deal of discomfort. After talking to him on general subjects for awhile, sh=
e rose
to go.
"By the way, Mr. Caresfoot," she sai=
d,
"I really had almost forgotten the object of my visit. You may remembe=
r a
conversation we had together some time ago, when I was the means of paying a
debt owing to you?"
Philip nodded.
"Then you will not have forgotten that on=
e of
the articles of our little verbal convention was, that if it should be
considered to the interest of all the parties concerned, your daughter's old
nurse was not to remain in your house?"
"I remember."
"Well, do you know, I cannot help thinking
that it must be a bad thing for Angela to have so much of the society of an
ill-educated and not very refined person like Pigott. I really advise you to
get rid of her."
"She has been with me for twenty years, a=
nd
my daughter is devoted to her. I can't turn her off."
"It is always painful to dismiss an old
servant--almost as bad as discarding an old dress; but when a dress is worn=
out
it must be thrown away. Surely the same applies to servants."
"I don't see how I am to send her away.&q=
uot;
"I can quite understand your feelings; but
then, you see, an agreement implies obligations on both sides, doesn't it?
especially an agreement 'for value received,' as the lawyers say."
Philip winced perceptibly.
"I wish I had never had anything to do wi=
th
your agreements."
"Oh! if you think it over, I don't think =
that
you will say so. Well, that is settled. I suppose she will go pretty soon. =
I am
glad to see you looking so well--very different from your cousin, I assure =
you.
I don't think much of his state of health. Good-bye; remember me to Angela.=
By
the way, I don't know if you have heard that George has met with a repulse =
in
that direction; he does not intend to press matters any more at present; bu=
t,
of course, the agreement holds all the same. Nobody knows what the morrow m=
ay
bring forth."
"Where you and my amiable cousin are
concerned, I shall be much surprised if it does not bring forth villany,&qu=
ot;
thought Philip, as soon as he heard the front door close. "I suppose t=
hat
it must be done about Pigott. Curse that woman, with her sorceress face. I =
wish
I had never put myself into her power; the iron hand can be felt pretty pla=
inly
through her velvet glove."
Life is never altogether clouded over, and that
morning Angela's horizon had been brightened by two big rays of sunshine th=
at
came to shed their cheering light on the grey monotony of her surroundings.=
For
of late, notwithstanding its occasional spasms of fierce excitement, her li=
fe
had been as monotonous as it was miserable. Always the same anxious grief, =
the
same fears, the same longing pressing hourly round her like phantoms in the
mist--no, not like phantoms, like real living things peeping at her from the
dark. Sometimes, indeed, the presentiments and intangible terrors that were=
gradually
strengthening their hold upon her would get beyond her control, and arouse =
in
her a restless desire for action--any action, it did not matter what--that
would take her away out of these dull hours of unwholesome mental growth. It
was this longing to be doing something that drove her, fevered physically w=
ith
the stifling air of the summer night, and mentally by thoughts of her absent
lover and recollections of Lady Bellamy's ominous words, down to the border=
s of
the lake on the evening of George's visit to her father, and once there,
prompted her to try to forget her troubles for awhile in the exercise of an=
art
of which she had from childhood been a mistress.
The same feeling it was too, that led her to s=
pend
long hours of the day and even of the night, when by rights she should have
been asleep, immersed in endless mathematical studies, and in solving, or a=
ttempting
to solve, almost impossible problems. She found that the strenuous effort of
the brain acted as a counter-irritant to the fretting of her troubles, and
though it may seem an odd thing to say, mathematics alone, owing to the int=
ense
application they required, exercised a soothing effect upon her. But, as one
cannot constantly sleep induced by chloral without paying for it in some sh=
ape
or form, Angela's relief from her cares was obtained at no small cost to he=
r health.
When the same brain, however well developed it may be, has both to study ha=
rd
and suffer much, there must be a waste of tissue somewhere. In Angela's case
the outward and visible result of this state of things was to make her grow
thinner, and the alternate mental effect to increasingly rarefy an intellect
already too ethereal for this work-a-day world, and to plunge its owner into
fits of depression which were rendered dreadful by sudden forebodings of ev=
il
that would leap to life in the recesses of her mind, and for a moment cast =
a lurid
glare upon its gloom, such as at night the lightning gives to the blackness
which surrounds it.
It was in one of the worst of these fits, her
"cloudy days" as she would call them to Pigott, that good news fo=
und
her. As she was dressing, Pigott brought her a letter, which, recognizing L=
ady Bellamy's
bold handwriting, she opened in fear and trembling. It contained a short no=
te
and another letter. The note ran as follows:
"Dear Angela,
"=
;I
enclose you a letter from your cousin George, which contains what I suppose you will consider good n=
ews. For your own sake I beg
you not to send it back unopened as you did the last.
=
span> "A. B."
For a
moment Angela was tempted to mistrust this enclosure, and almost come to the
determination to throw it into the fire, feeling sure that a serpent lurked=
in
the grass and that it was a cunningly disguised love-letter. But curiosity
overcame her, and she opened it as gingerly as though it were infected,
unfolding the sheet with the handle of her hair-brush. Its contents were
destined to give her a surprise. They ran thus:
"Isleworth Hall, September 20.
"=
;My
dear Cousin,
"=
;After
what passed between us a few days ago you will perhaps be surprised at hearing from me, but, if y=
ou
have the patience to read this sh=
ort
letter, its contents will not, I fear, be altogether displeasing to you. They are=
very
simple. I write to say that I acc=
ept
your verdict, and that you need fear no further advances from me. Whether I quite deser=
ved
all the bitter words you poured o=
ut
upon me I leave you to judge at leisure, seeing that my only crime was that I loved you=
. To
most women that offence would not=
have
seemed so unpardonable. But that is as it may be. After what you said there is on=
ly one
course left for a man who has any
pride--and that is to withdraw. So let the past be dead between us. I shall never allude t=
o it
again. Wishing you happiness in t=
he
path of life which you have chosen,
"I remain, "Your
affectionate cousin, =
span>"George
Caresfoot."
It wo=
uld
have been difficult for any one to have received a more perfectly satisfact=
ory
letter than this was to Angela.
"Pigott," she called out, feeling the
absolute necessity of a confidant in her joy, and forgetting that that wort=
hy
soul had nothing but the most general knowledge of George's advances, "=
;he
has given me up; just think, he is going to let me alone. I declare that I =
feel
quite fond of him."
"And who might you be talking of, miss?&q=
uot;
"Why, my cousin George, of course; he is
going to let me alone, I tell you."
"Which, seeing how as he isn't fit to tou=
ch
you with a pair of tongs, is about the least as he can do, miss, and, as for
letting you alone, I didn't know as he ever proposed doing anything else. B=
ut
that reminds me, miss, though I am sure I don't know why it should, how as =
Mrs.
Hawkins, as was put in to look after the vicarage while the Reverend Fraser=
was
away, told me last night how as she had got a telegraft the sight of which,=
she
said, knocked her all faint like, till she turned just as yellow as the cov=
er,
to say nothing of four- and-six porterage, the which, however, she intends =
to
recover from the Reverend--Lord, where was I?"
"I am sure I don't know, Pigott, but I
suppose you were going to tell me what was in the telegram."
"Yes, miss, that's right; but my head does
seem to wool up somehow so at times that I fare to lose my way."
"Well, Pigott, what was in the
telegram?"
"Lord, miss, how you do hurry one, begging
your pardon; only that the Reverend Fraser--not but what Mrs. Hawkins do say
that it can't be true, because the words warn't in his writing nor nothing
like, as she has good reason to know, seeing that----"
"Yes, but what about Mr. Fraser, Pigott?
Isn't he well?"
"The telegraft didn't say, as I remembers,
miss; bless me, I forget if it was to-day or to-morrow."
"Oh, Pigott," groaned Angela, "=
do
tell me what was in the telegram."
"Why, miss, surely I told you that the th=
ing
said, though I fancy likely to be in error----"
"What?" almost shouted Angela.
"Why, that the Reverend Fraser would be h=
ome
by the midday train, and would like a beefsteak for lunch, not mentioning,
however, anything about the onions, which is very puzzling to Mrs.----"=
;
"Oh, I am glad; why could you not tell me
before? Cousin George disposed of and Mr. Fraser coming back. Why, things a=
re
looking quite bright again; at least they would be if only Arthur were
here," and her rejoicing ended in a sigh.
As soon as she thought that he would have fini=
shed
his beefsteak, with or without the onions, Angela walked down to the vicara=
ge
and broke in upon Mr. Fraser with something of her old gladsome warmth. Run=
ning
up to him without waiting to be announced, she seized him by both hands.
"And so you are back at last? what a long
time you have been away. Oh, I am so glad to see you."
Mr. Fraser, who, it struck her, looked older s=
ince
his absence, turned first a little red and then a little pale, and said,
"Yes, Angela, here I am back again in the=
old
shop; it is very good of you to come so soon to see me. Now, sit down and t=
ell
me all about yourself whilst I go on with my unpacking. But, bless me, my d=
ear,
what is the matter with you, you look thin, and as though you were not happ=
y,
and--where has your smile gone to, Angela?"
"Never mind me, you must tell me all about
yourself first. Where have you been and what have you been doing all these =
long
months?"
"Oh, I have been enjoying myself over half
the civilized globe," he answered, with a somewhat forced laugh.
"Switzerland, Italy, and Spain have all been benefited by my presence,=
but
I got tired of it, so here I am back in my proper sphere, and delighted to
again behold these dear familiar faces," and he pointed to his ample
collection of classics. "But let me hear about yourself, Angela. I am
tired of No. 1, I can assure you."
"Oh, mine is a long story, you will scarc=
ely
find patience to listen to it."
"Ah, I thought that there was a story from
your face; then I think that I can guess what it is about. Young ladies'
stories generally turn upon the same pivot," and he laughed a little
softly, and sat down in a corner well out of the light. "Now, my dear,=
I
am ready to give you my best attention."
Angela blushed very deeply, and, looking
studiously out of the window, began, with many hesitations, to tell her sto=
ry.
"Well, Mr. Fraser, you must understand fi=
rst
of all--I mean, you know, that I must tell you that--" desperately,
"that I am engaged."
"Ah!"
There was a something so sharp and sudden about
this exclamation that Angela turned round quickly.
"What's the matter, have you hurt
yourself?"
"Yes; but go on, Angela."
It was an awkward story to tell, especially the
George complication part of it, and to any one else she felt that she would
have found it almost impossible to tell it, but in Mr. Fraser she was, she
knew, sure of a sympathetic listener. Had she known, too, that the mere men=
tion
of her lover's name was a stab to her listener's heart, and that every
expression of her own deep and enduring love and each tone of endearment we=
re
new and ingenious tortures, she might well have been confused.
For so it was. Although he was fifty years of =
age,
Mr. Fraser had not educated Angela with impunity. He had paid the penalty t=
hat
must have resulted to any heart-whole man not absolutely a fossil, who had =
been
brought into close contact with such a woman as Angela. Her loveliness appe=
aled
to his sense of beauty, her goodness to his heart, and her learning to his
intellectual sympathies. What wonder that he learnt by imperceptible degree=
s to
love her; the wonder would have been if he had not.
The reader need not fear, however; he shall no=
t be
troubled with any long account of Mr. Fraser's misfortune, for it never cam=
e to
light or obtruded itself upon the world or even upon its object. His was on=
e of
those earnest, secret, and self-sacrificing passions of which, if we only k=
new
it, there exist a good many round about us, passions which to all appearance
tend to nothing and are entirely without object, unless it to be make the
individuals on whom they are inflicted a little less happy, or a little more
miserable, as the case may be, than he or she would otherwise have been. It=
was
to strive to conquer this passion, which in his heart he called dishonourab=
le,
that Mr. Fraser had gone abroad, right away from Angela, where he had wrest=
led with
it, and prayed against it, and at last, as he thought, subdued it. But now,=
on
his first sight of her, it rose again in all its former strength, and rushed
through his being like a storm, and he realized that such love is of those
things that cannot die. And perhaps it is a question if he really wished to
lose it. It was a poor thing indeed, a very poor thing, but his own. There =
is
something so divine about all true love that there lurks a conviction at the
bottom of the hearts of most of us that it is better to love, however much =
we suffer,
than not to love at all. Perhaps, after all, those really to be pitied are =
the
people who are not capable of any such sensation.
But what Mr. Fraser suffered listening that au=
tumn
afternoon to Angela's tale of another's love and of her own deep return of =
that
love, no man but himself ever knew. Yet still he heard and was not shaken in
his loyal-heartedness, and comforted and consoled her, giving her the best
advice in his power, like the noble Christian gentleman that he was; showing
her too that there was little need of anxiety and every ground for hope that
things would come to a happy and successful issue. The martyr's abnegation =
of
self is not yet dead in the world.
At last Angela came to the letter that she had
that very morning received from George. Mr. Fraser read it carefully.
"At any rate," he said, "he is
behaving like a gentleman now. On the whole, that is a nice letter. You wil=
l be
troubled with him no more."
"Yes," answered Angela, and then
flushing up at the memory of George's arguments in the lane, "but it is
certainly time that he did, for he had no business, oh, he had no business =
to
speak to me as he spoke, and he a man old enough to be my father."
Mr. Fraser's pale cheeks coloured a little.
"Don't be hard upon him because he is old,
Angela--which by the way he is not, he is nearly ten years my junior--for I
fear that old men are just as liable to be made fools of by a pretty face as
young ones."
From that moment, not knowing the man's real
character, Mr. Fraser secretly entertained a certain sympathy for George's
sufferings, arising no doubt from a fellow-feeling. It seemed to him that he
could understand a man going very far indeed when his object was to win Ang=
ela:
not that he would have done it himself, but he knew the temptation and what=
it
cost to struggle against it.
It was nearly dark when at length Angela, risi=
ng
to go, warmly pressed his hand, and thanked him in her own sweet way for his
goodness and kind counsel. And then, declining his offer of escort, and say=
ing
that she would come and see him again on the morrow, she departed on her ho=
meward
path.
The first thing that met her gaze on the
hall-table at the Abbey House was a note addressed to herself in a handwrit=
ing
that she had seen in many washing bills, but never before on an envelope. S=
he
opened it in vague alarm. It ran as follows:
"Miss,--Yore father has just dismis=
sed
me, saying that he is too pore to=
keep
me any longer, which is a matter as I holds my own opinion on, and that I am too uneddicat=
ed to
be in yore company, which is a pe=
rfect
truth. But, miss, not feeling any how ekal to bid you good-bye in person after bringi=
ng you
up by hand and doing for you thes=
e many
years, I takes the liberty to write to you, miss, to say good-bye and God bless you=
, my
beautiful angel, and I shall be t=
o be
found down at the old housen at the end of the drift as my pore husband left me, which=
is
fortinately just empty, and p'rap=
s you
will come and see me at times, miss.
"=
Yore
obedient servant, =
"Pigott.
"=
;I
opens this again to say how as I have tied up your things a bit afore I left leaving mine till to-morro=
w,
when, if living, I shall send for=
them.
If you please, miss, you will find yore clean night-shift in the left hand drawyer, a=
nd
sorry am I that I can't be there =
to lay
it out for you. I shall take the liberty to send up for your washing, as it can't be tru=
sted
to any one."
Angel=
a read
the letter through, and then sank back upon a chair and burst into a storm =
of
tears. Partially recovering herself, however, she rose and entered her fath=
er's
study.
"Is this true?" she asked, still
sobbing.
"Is what true?" asked Philip,
indifferently, and affecting not to see her distress.
"That you have sent Pigott away?"
"Yes, yes, you see, Angela----"
"Do you mean that she is really to stop
away?"
"Of course I do, I really must be allowed,
Angela----"
"Forgive me, father, but I do not want to
listen to your reasons and excuses." Her eyes were quite dry now.
"That woman nursed my dying mother, and played a mother's part to me. =
She
is, as you know, my only woman friend, and yet you throw her away like a wo=
rn-out
shoe. No doubt you have your reasons, and I hope that they are satisfactory=
to you,
but I tell you, reasons or no reasons, you have acted in a way that is cowa=
rdly
and cruel;" and casting one indignant glance at him she left the room.=
Philip quailed before his daughter's anger.
"Thank goodness she's gone, and that job =
is
done with. I am downright afraid of her, and the worst of it is she speaks =
the
truth," said Philip to himself, as the door closed.
Ten days after this incident, Angela heard cas=
ually
from Mr. Fraser that Sir John and Lady Bellamy were going on a short trip
abroad for the benefit of the former's health. If she thought about the mat=
ter
at all, it was to feel rather glad. Angela did not like Lady Bellamy, indeed
she feared her. Of George she neither heard nor saw anything. He had also g=
one
away.
Meanwhile at Madeira matters were going on muc=
h as
we left them; there had indeed been little appreciable change in the situat=
ion.
For his part, our friend Arthur continued to d=
ance
or rather stroll along the edge of his flowery precipice, and found the view
pleasant and the air bracing.
And no doubt things were very nicely arranged =
for
his satisfaction, and had it not been for the ever-present thought of
Angela--for he did think of her a great deal and with deep longing--he shou=
ld
have enjoyed himself thoroughly, for every day was beautiful, and every day=
brought
its amusements with it. Perhaps on arriving at the Quinta Carr about eleven
o'clock, he would find that the steam launch was waiting for them in a litt=
le
bay where the cliff on which the house stood curved inwards. Then, a merry
party of young English folks all collected together by Mrs. Carr that morni=
ng
by the dint of superhuman efforts, they would scramble down the steps cut in
the rock and steam off to some neighbouring islet to eat luncheon and wander
about collecting shells and flowers and beetles till sunset, and then steam=
back
again through the spicy evening air, laughing and flirting and making the n=
ight
melodious with their songs. Or else the horses would be ordered out and they
would wander over the lonely mountains in the interior of the island, talki=
ng
of mummies and all things human, of Angela and all things divine. And
sometimes, in the course of these conversations, Arthur would in a brotherly
way call Mrs. Carr "Mildred," while occasionally, in the tone of a
spinster aunt, she would address him as "Arthur," a practice that,
once acquired, she soon found was, like all other bad habits, not easy to g=
et
rid of. For somehow in all these expeditions she was continually at his sid=
e, striving,
and not without success, to weave herself into the substance of his life, a=
nd
to make herself indispensable to him, till at last he grew to look upon her
almost as a sister.
But beyond this he never went, and to her adva=
nces
he was as cold as ice, simply because he never noticed them, and she was af=
raid
of making them more obvious for fear that she would frighten him away. He t=
hought
it the most natural thing in the world that he and Mildred should live toge=
ther
like brother and sister, and be very fond of each other as "sich,"
whilst she thought him--just what he was--the blindest of fools, and then l=
oved
him the more for his folly. The sisterly relationship did not possess the s=
ame
charms for Mildred that it did for Arthur; they looked at matters from
different points of view.
One morning, peeping through a big telescope t=
hat
was fixed in the window of the little boudoir which formed an entrance lobb=
y to
the museum, Mrs. Carr saw a cloud of smoke upon the horizon. Presently the =
point
of a mast poked up through the vapour as though the vessel were rising out =
of
the ocean, then two more mastheads and a red and black funnel, and last of =
all
a great grey hull.
"Hurrah!" called out Mrs. Carr, with=
one
eye still fixed to the telescope and the remainder of her little face all
screwed up in her efforts to keep the other closed, "it's the mail; I =
can
see the Donald Currie flag, a white C on a blue ground."
"Well, I am sure, Mildred, there's no need
for you to make your face look like a monkey, if it is; you look just as th=
ough
the corner of your mouth were changing places with your eyebrow."
"Agatha, you are dreadfully rude; when the
fairies took your endowments in hand, they certainly did not forget the gif=
t of
plain speech. I shall appeal to Mr. Heigham; do I look like a monkey, Mr. H=
eigham?
No, on second thoughts, I won't wait for the inevitable compliment. Arthur,
hold your tongue and I will tell you something. That must be the new boat, =
the Garth Castle , and I want to see over he=
r.
Captain Smithson, who is bringing her out, has got a box of things for me. =
What
do you say if we kill two birds with one stone, go and see the vessel and g=
et
our luncheon on board."
"I am at your ladyship's service,"
answered Arthur, lazily, "but would you like to have the compliment
apropos of the monkey? I have thought of something extremely neat now."=
;
"Not on any account; I hate compliments t=
hat
are not meant," and her eyes gave a little flash which put a point to =
her
words. "Agatha, I suppose that you will come?"
"Well, yes, dear, the bay looks pretty
smooth."
"Smooth, yes, you might sail across it in=
a
paper ship," yawned Arthur.
"For goodness' sake don't look so lazy, M=
r.
Heigham, but ring the bell --not that one, the electric one--and let us ord=
er
the launch at once. The mail will be at anchor in about an hour."
Arthur did as he was bid, and within that time
they were steaming through the throng of boats already surrounding the stea=
mer.
"My gracious, Mildred," suddenly
exclaimed Agatha, "do you see who that is there leaning over the bulwa=
rks?
oh, he's gone, but so sure as I am a living woman, it was Lord Minster and =
Lady
Florence Thingumebob, his sister, you know, the pretty one."
Mildred looked vexed, and glanced involuntaril=
y at
Arthur who was steering the launch. For a moment she hesitated about going =
on,
and glanced again at Arthur. The look seemed to inspire her, for she said n=
othing,
and presently he brought the boat deftly alongside the gangway ladder.
The captain of the ship had already come to the
side to meet her, having recognized her from the bridge; indeed there was
scarcely a man in Donald Currie's service who did not know Mrs. Carr, at any
rate, by sight.
"How do you do, Mrs. Carr; are you coming=
on
to South Africa with us?"
"No, Captain Smithson; I, or rather we, a=
re
coming to lunch, and to see your new boat, and last, but not least, to clai=
m my
box."
"Mrs. Carr, will you ever forgive me? I h=
ave
lost it!"
"Produce my box, Captain Smithson, or I w=
ill
never speak to you again. I'll do more. I'll go over to the Union line.&quo=
t;
"In which case, I am afraid Donald Currie
would never speak to me again. I must certainly try to find that box,"=
and
he whispered an order to a quartermaster. "Well, it is very kind of yo=
u to
come and lunch, and I hope that you and your friends will do so with me. Ti=
ll then,
good-by, I must be off."
As soon as they got on the quarter-deck, Arthur
perceived a tall, well-preserved man with an eyeglass, whom he seemed to kn=
ow,
bearing down upon them, followed by a charming-looking girl, about three-an=
d- twenty
years of age, remarkable for her pleasant eyes and the humorous expression =
of
her mouth.
"How do you do, Mrs. Carr?" said the
tall man. "I suppose that you heard that we were coming; it is very go=
od
of you to come and meet us."
"I had not the slightest idea that you we=
re
coming, and I did not come to meet you, Lord Minster; I came to lunch,"
answered Mrs. Carr, rather coldly.
"Nasty one for James that, very,"
murmured Lady Florence; "hope it will do him good."
"I was determined to come and look you up=
as
soon as I got time, but the House sat very late. However, I have got a
fortnight here now, and shall see plenty of you."
"A good deal too much I daresay, Lord
Minster; but let me introduce you to Mr. Heigham."
Lord Minster glanced casually at Arthur, and, lifting his hat about an eighth of an inch, was about to resume his conversation, when Arthur, who was rather nettled by this treatment, said,<= o:p>
"I think I have had the pleasure of meeti=
ng
you before, Lord Minster; we were stopping together at the Stanley Foxes la=
st
autumn."
"Stanley Foxes, ah, quite so, forgive my
forgetfulness, but one meets so many people, you see," and he turned r=
ound
to where Mrs. Carr had been, but that lady had taken the opportunity to
retreat. Lord Minster at once followed her.
"Well, if my brother has forgotten you, M=
r.
Heigham, I have not," said Lady Florence, now coming forward for the f=
irst
time. "Don't you remember when we went nutting together and I tumbled =
into
the pond?"
"Indeed I do, Lady Florence, and I can't =
tell
you how pleased I am to see you again. Are you here for long?"
"An indefinite time: an old aunt of mine,
Mrs. Velley, is coming out by next mail, and I am going to stop with her wh=
en
my brother goes back. Are you staying with Mrs. Carr?"
"Oh no, only I know her very well."<= o:p>
"Do you admire her?"
"Immensely."
"Then you won't like James--I mean my
brother."
"Why not?"
"Because he also admires her immensely.&q=
uot;
"We both admire the view from here very m=
uch
indeed, but that is no reason why you and I should not like each other.&quo=
t;
"No, but then you see there is a differen=
ce
between lovely scenery and lovely widows."
"Perhaps there is," said Arthur.
At this moment Lord Minster returned with Mrs.
Carr.
"How do you do, Lady Florence?" said=
the
latter; "let me introduce you to Mr. Heigham. What, do you already know
each other?"
"Oh, yes, Mrs. Carr, we are old
friends."
"Oh, indeed, that is very charming for yo=
u."
"Yes, it is," said Lady Florence,
frankly.
"Well, we must be off now, Florence."=
;
"All right, James, I'm ready."
"Will you both come and dine with me to-n=
ight
sans facon, there will be nobody else except Agatha and Mr. Heigham?"
asked Mrs. Carr.
"We shall be delighted," said Lord
Minster.
" Au revoir , then," nodded Lady
Florence to Arthur, and they separated.
When, after lunching and seeing round the ship,
Miss Terry and Arthur found themselves in the steam launch waiting for Mrs.
Carr, who was saying good-by to the captain and looking after her precious =
box,
Arthur took the opportunity to ask his companion what she knew of Lord Mins=
ter.
"Oh, not much, that is, nothing in
particular, except that he is the son of a sugar-broker or something, who w=
as
made a peer for some reason or other, and I suppose that is why he is so st=
uck
up, because all the other peers I ever met are just like other people. He is
very clever, too, is in the government now, and always hanging about after =
Mildred.
He wants to marry her, you know, and I expect that he will at last, but I h=
ope
he won't. I don't like him; he always looks at one as though one were
dirt."
"The deuce he does!" ejaculated Arth=
ur,
his heart filling on the instant with envy, hatred, malice, and all unchari=
tableness
towards Lord Minster. He had not the slightest wish to marry Mildred himsel=
f, but
he boiled at the mere thought of anybody else doing so. Lady Florence was
right, there is a difference between ladies and landscapes.
At that moment Mildred herself arrived, but so
disgusted was he that he would scarcely speak to her, and on arriving at the
landing stage he at once departed to the hotel, and even tried to get out of
coming to dinner that night, but this was overruled.
"Good," said Mildred to herself, wit=
h a
smile; "I have found out how to vex him."
At dinner that evening Lord Minster, who had of
course taken his hostess in, opened the conversation by asking her how she =
had
been employing herself at Madeira.
"Better than you have at St. Stephen's, L=
ord
Minster; at any rate, I have not been forwarding schemes for highway robbery
and the national disgrace," she answered, laughing.
"I suppose that you mean the Irish Land A=
ct
and the Transvaal Convention. I have heard several ladies speak of them like
that, and I am really coming to the conclusion that your sex is entirely de=
void
of political instinct."
"What do you mean by political instinct, =
Lord
Minster?" asked Arthur.
"By political instinct," he replied,
"I understand a proper appreciation of the science and object of
government."
"Goodness me, what are they?" asked =
Mrs.
Carr.
"Well, the science of government consists,
roughly speaking, in knowing how to get into office, and remain there when =
once
in; its objects are to guess and give expression to the prevailing popular =
feeling
or whim with the loss of as few votes as possible."
"According to that definition," said
Arthur, "all national questions are, or should be, treated by those who
understand the 'science and objects of government' on a semi-financial basi=
s. I
mean, they should be dealt with as an investor deals with his funds, in ord=
er
to make as much out of them as possible, not to bring real benefit to the c=
ountry."
"You put the matter rather awkwardly, but=
I
think I follow you. I will try to explain. In the first place, all the
old-fashioned Jingo nonsense about patriotism and the 'honour of the countr=
y'
has, if people only knew it, quite exploded; it only lingers in a certain s=
ection
of the landed gentry and a proportion of the upper middle class, and has no
serious weight with leading politicians."
"How about Lord Beaconsfield?"
"Well, he was perhaps an exception; but t=
hen
he was a man with so large a mind--I say it, though I detested him--that he
could actually, by a sort of political prescience, see into the far future,=
and
shape his course accordingly. But even in his case I do not believe that he=
was
actuated by patriotism, but rather by a keener insight into human affairs t=
han
most men possess."
"And yet he came terribly to grief."=
"Because he outflew his age. The will of =
the
country--which means the will of between five hundred thousand and a million
hungry fluctuating electors--could not wait for the development of his impe=
rial
schemes. They wanted plunder in the present, not honour and prosperity for =
the Empire
in the future. The instinct of robbery is perhaps the strongest in human
nature, and those who would rule humanity on its present basis must pander =
to
it or fail. The party of progress means the party that can give most spoil,
taken from those that have, to those that have not. That is why Mr. Gladsto=
ne
is such a truly great man; he understands better than any one of his age ho=
w to
excite the greed of hungry voters and to guide it for his own ends. What was
the Midlothian campaign but a crusade of plunder? First he excited the desi=
re,
then he promised to satisfy it. Of course that is impossible, but at the ti=
me
he was believed, and his promises floated us triumphantly into power. The s=
ame
arguments apply to that body of electors whose motive power is sentiment--t=
heir
folly must be pandered to. For instance, the Transvaal Convention that Mrs.
Carr mentioned is an admirable example of how such pandering is done. No ma=
n of
experience can have believed that such an agreement could be wise, or that =
it
can result in anything but trouble and humiliation; but the trouble and
humiliation will not come just yet, and in the meanwhile a sop is thrown to
Cerberus. Political memories are short, and when exposure comes it will be =
easy
to fix the blame upon the other side. It is because we appreciate these fac=
ts
that in the end we must prevail. The Liberal party, or rather the Radical
section, which is to the great Liberal party what the helm is to the ship,
appeals to the baser instincts and more pressing appetites of the people; t=
he Conservative
only to their traditions and higher aspirations, in the same way that relig=
ion
appeals to the spirit, and the worship of Mammon to the senses. The shibbol=
eth
of the one is 'self-interest;' of the other, 'national honour.' The first
appeals to the many, the second to the finer few, and I must leave you to j=
udge
which will carry the day."
"And if ever you become Prime Minister, s=
hall
you rule England upon these principles?" asked Mrs. Carr.
"Certainly; it is because I have mastered
them that I am what I am. I owe everything to them, consequently in my view
they are the finest of all principles."
"Then Heaven help England!" soliloqu=
ized
Arthur, rudely.
"And so say we all," added Lady
Florence, who was a strong Conservative.
"My dear young people," answered Lord
Minster, with a superior smile, "England is quite capable of looking a=
fter
herself. I have to look after myself. She will, at any rate, last my time, =
and
my motto is that one should get something out of one's country, not attempt=
to
do her services that would in all probability never be recognized, or, if r=
ecognized,
left unrewarded."
Arthur was about to answer, with more sharpness
than discretion, but Mrs. Carr interposed.
"Well, Lord Minster, we have to thank you=
for
a very cynical and lucid explanation of the objects of your party, if they
really are its objects. Will you give me some wine?"
After dinner Mrs. Carr devoted herself almost
exclusively to Lord Minster, leaving Arthur to talk to Lady Florence. Lord
Minster was not slow to avail himself of the opportunity.
"I have been thinking of your remark to m=
e in
London about the crossing-sweeper," he began.
"Oh, for Heaven's sake don't drag that
wretched man out of his grave, Lord Minster. I really have forgotten what I
said about him."
"I hope, Mrs. Carr, that you have forgott= en a good deal you said that day. I may as well take this opportunity----"<= o:p>
"No, please don't, Lord Minster," she
answered, knowing very well what was coming; "I am so tired
to-night."
"Oh, in that case I can easily postpone my
statement. I have a whole fortnight before me."
Mrs. Carr secretly determined that it should
remain as much as possible at his own exclusive disposal, but she did not s=
ay
so.
Shortly after this, Arthur took his leave, aft=
er
shaking hands very coldly with her. Nor did he come to the Quinta next day,=
as
he had conceived too great a detestation of Lord Minster to risk meeting hi=
m, a
detestation which he attributed solely to that rising member of the Governm=
ent's
political principles, which jarred very much with his own.
"Better and better," said Mrs. Carr =
to
herself, as she took off her dress, "but Lord Minster is really odious=
, I
cannot stand him for long."
"Why, Arthur, I had almost forgotten what=
you
are like," said Mildred, when that young gentleman at last put in an
appearance at the Quinta. "Where have you been to all this time?"=
"I--oh, I have been writing letters,"
said Arthur.
"Then they must have been very long ones.=
Don't
tell fibs, Arthur; you have not stopped away from here for a day and a half=
in
order to write letters. What is the matter with you?"
"Well, if you must know, Mildred, I detest
your friend Lord Minster, the mere sight of him sets my teeth on edge, and I
did not want to meet him. I only came here to-day because Lady Florence tol=
d me
that they were going up to the Convent this afternoon."
"So you have been to see Lady Florence?&q=
uot;
"No, I met her buying fruit yesterday, and
went for a walk with her."
"In the intervals of the
letter-writing?"
"Yes."
"Well, do you know I detest Lady
Florence?"
"That is very unkind of you. She is
charming."
"From your point of view, perhaps, as her
brother is from mine."
"Do you mean to tell me that you think th=
at
horrid fellow charming?" asked Arthur in disgust.
"Why should I not?"
"Oh, for the matter of that there is no
reason why you should not, but I can't congratulate you either on your frie=
nd
or your taste."
"Leaving my taste out of the question, wh=
y do
you call Lord Minster my friend?"
"Because Miss Terry told me that he was; =
she
said that he was always proposing to you, and that you would probably marry=
him
in the end."
Mildred blushed faintly.
"She has no business to tell you; but, for
the matter of that, so have many other men. It does not follow that, because
they choose to propose to me, they are my friends."
"No, but then they have not married
you."
"No more has he; but, while we are talkin=
g of
it, why should I not marry Lord Minster? He can give me position, influence,
everything that is dear to a woman, except the rarest of all gifts--love.&q=
uot;
"But is love so rare, Mildred?"
"Yes, the love that it can satisfy a woman
either to receive or to give, especially the latter, for in this we are more
blessed in giving than in receiving. It is but very rarely that the most
fortunate of us get a chance of accepting such love as I mean, and we can o=
nly
give it once in our lives. But you have not told me your reasons against my=
marrying
Lord Minster."
"Because he is a mean-spirited, selfish m=
an.
If he were not, he could not have talked as he did last night. Because you =
do
not love him, Mildred, you cannot love such a man as that, if he were fifty
times a member of the Government."
"What does it matter to you, Arthur,"
she said, in a voice of indescribable softness, bending her sunny head low =
over
her work, "whether I love him or not; my doing so would not make your
heart beat the faster."
"I don't wish you to marry him," he
said, confusedly.
She raised her head and looked full at him with
eyes which shone like stars through a summer mist.
"That is enough, Arthur," she answer=
ed,
in a tone of gentle submission, "if you do not wish it, I will not,&qu=
ot;
and, rising, she left the room.
Arthur blushed furiously at her words, and a n=
ew
sensation crept over him.
"Surely," he said to himself, "=
she
cannot---- No, of course she only means that she will take my advice."=
But, though he dismissed the suspicion thus
readily, it left something that he could not quite define behind it. He had,
after the manner of young men were women are concerned, thought that he
understood Mildred thoroughly; now he came to the modest conclusion that he
knew very little about her.
On the following afternoon, when he was at the
Quinta talking as usual to Mrs. Carr, he saw Lord Minster coming up the ste=
ps
of the portico, dressed in much the same way and with exactly the same air =
as
he was accustomed to assume when he mounted those of the "Reform,"=
; or
occasionally, if he thought that the "hungry electors" wanted &qu=
ot;pandering"
to, those of the new "National Club."
"Hullo," said Arthur, "here com=
es
Lord Minster in his war paint, frock coat, tall hat, eye-glass and all.
Good-bye."
"Why do you go away, Arthur? Stop and pro=
tect
me," said Mildred, laughing.
"Oh, no, indeed, I don't want to spoil sp=
ort.
I would not interfere with your amusement on any account."
Mildred looked a little vexed.
"Well, you will come back to dinner?"=
;
"That depends upon what happens."
"I told you what would happen, Arthur. Go=
od-bye."
"Perhaps it is as well to get it over at
once," thought Mildred.
In the hall Arthur met Lord Minster, and they
passed with a gesture of recognition so infinitesimally small that it almost
faded into the nothingness of a "cut." So far as he could condesc=
end
to notice so low a thing at all, his lordship had conceived a great dislike=
for
Arthur.
"How do you do, Lord Minster?" said
Mildred, cordially. "I hear that you went to the Convent yesterday; wh=
at
did you think of the view?"
"The view, Mrs. Carr--was there a view? I=
did
not notice it; indeed, I only went up there at all to please Florence. I do=
n't
like that sort of thing."
"If you don't like roughing it, I am afra=
id
that you did not enjoy your voyage out."
"Well, no, I don't think I did, and there=
was
a low fellow on board who had been ruined by the retrocession of the Transv=
aal,
and who, hearing that I was in the Government, took every possible opportun=
ity to
tell me publicly that his wife and children were almost in a state of
starvation, as though I cared about his confounded wife and children. He was
positively brutal. No, certainly I did not enjoy it. However, I am rewarded=
by
finding you here."
"I am very much flattered."
Lord Minster fixed his eye-glass firmly in his
eye, planted his hands at the bottom of his trousers pockets, and, clearing=
his
throat, placed himself in the attitude that was so familiar to the House, a=
nd began.
"Mrs. Carr, I told you, when last I had t=
he
pleasure of seeing you, that I should take the first opportunity of renewin=
g a
conversation that I was forced to suspend in order to attend, if my memory
serves me, a very important committee meeting. I was therefore surprised, i=
ndeed
I may almost say hurt, when I found that you had suddenly flitted from
London."
"Indeed, Lord Minster?"
"I will not, however, take up the time of
this--I mean your time, by recapitulating all that I told you on that occas=
ion;
the facts are, so to speak, all upon the table, and I will merely touch upon
the main heads of my case. My prospects are these: I am now a member of the=
Cabinet,
and enjoy, owing to the unusual but calculated recklessness of my non-offic=
ial
public utterances, an extraordinary popularity with a large section of the
country, the hungry section to which I alluded last night. It is probable t=
hat
the course of the present Government is pretty nearly run, the country is s=
ick
of it, and those who put it into power have not got enough out of it. A
dissolution is therefore an event of the near future; the Conservatives wil=
l come
in, but they have no power of organization, and very little political talen=
t at
their backs, above all, they are deficient in energy, probably because ther=
e is
nothing that they can destroy and therefore no pickings to struggle for. In
short, they are not 'capaces imperii.' The want of these qualities and of
leaders will very soon undermine their hold upon the country, always a slig=
ht
one, and, assisted by a few other pushing men, I anticipate, by carefully
playing into the hands of the Irish party which will really rule England in=
the
future, being able, as one of the leaders of the Opposition, to consummate
their downfall. Then will come my opportunity, and, if luck goes with me, I
shall be first Lord of the Treasury within half a dozen years. But now come=
s the
difficulty. Though I am so popular with the country, I am, for some reason
quite inexplicable to myself, rather at a--hum--a discount amongst my
colleagues and that influential section of society to which they belong. No=
w,
in order to succeed to the full extent that I have planned, it is absolutely
essential that I should win the countenance of this class, and the only way
that I can see of doing it is by marrying some woman charming enough to dis=
arm
dislike, beautiful enough to command admiration, rich enough to entertain
profusely, and clever enough to rule England. Those desiderata are all to a
striking degree united in your person, Mrs. Carr, and I have therefore much=
pleasure
in asking you to become my wife."
"You have, as I understand you, Lord Mins=
ter,
made a very admirable statement of how desirable it is for yourself that you
should marry me, but it is not so clear what advantage I should reap by
marrying you."
"Why, the advantages are obvious: if by y=
our
help I can become Prime Minister, you would become the wife of the Prime
Minister."
"The prospect fails to dazzle me. I have
everything that I want; why should I strive to reach a grandeur to which I =
was
not born, and which, to speak the truth, I regard with a very complete
indifference? But there is another point. In all your speech you have said
nothing of any affection that you have to offer, not a single word of love-=
- you
have been content to expatiate on the profits that a matrimonial investment
would bring to yourself, and by reflection, to the other contracting
party."
"Love," asked Lord Minster, with an
expression of genuine surprise; "why, you talk like a character in a
novel; now tell me, Mrs. Carr, wha=
t is love?"
"It is difficult to define, Lord Minster;=
but
as you ask me to do so, I will try. Love to a woman is what the sun is to t=
he
world, it is her life, her animating principle, without which she must droo=
p,
and, if the plant be very tender, die. Except under its influence, a woman =
can never
attain her full growth, never touch the height of her possibilities, or blo=
om
into the plenitude of her moral beauty. A loveless marriage dwarfs our natu=
res,
a marriage where love is develops them to their utmost."
"And what is love to a man?"
"Well, I should say that nine of a man's
passions are merely episodes in his career, the mile-stones that mark his p=
ath;
the tenth, or the first, is his philosopher's stone that turns all things to
gold, or, if the charm does not work, leaves his heart, broken and bankrupt=
, a cold
monument of failure."
"I don't quite follow you, and I must say
that, speaking for myself, I never felt anything of all this," said Lo=
rd
Minster, blankly.
"I know you do not, Lord Minster; your on=
ly
passions tend towards political triumphs and personal aggrandisement; we ar=
e at
the two poles, you see, and I fear that we can never, never meet upon a com=
mon matrimonial
line. But don't be down-hearted about it, you will find plenty more women w=
ho
fulfil all your requirements and will be very happy to take you at your own
valuation. If only a woman is necessary to success, you need not look far, =
and
forgive me if I say that I believe it will not make much difference to you =
who
she is. But all the same, Lord Minster, I will venture to give you a piece =
of
advice: next time you propose, address yourself a little more to the lady's=
affections
and a little less to her interests," and Mrs. Carr rose as though to s=
how
that the interview was at an end.
"Am I then to understand that my offer is
definitely refused?" asked Lord Minster, stiffly.
"I am afraid so, and I am sure that you w=
ill,
on reflection, see how utterly unsuited we are to each other."
"Possibly, Mrs. Carr, possibly; at present
all that I see is that you have had a great opportunity, and have failed to
avail yourself of it. My only consolation is that the loss will be yours, a=
nd
my only regret is that I have had the trouble of coming to this place for
nothing. However, there is a ship due to-morrow, and I shall sail in her.&q=
uot;
"I am sorry to have been the cause of bri=
nging
you here, Lord Minster, and still more sorry that you should feel obliged to
cut short your stay. Good-bye, Lord Minster; we part friends, I hope?"=
"Oh, certainly, Mrs. Carr. I wish you a v=
ery
good morning, Mrs. Carr," and his lordship marched out of Mildred's li=
fe.
"There goes my chance of becoming the wif=
e of
a prime minister, and making a figure in history," said that lady, as =
she
watched his tall figure stalking stiffly down the avenue. "Well, I am =
glad
of it. I would just as soon have married a speech-making figure-head stuffe=
d full
of the purest Radical principles."
On the following day Arthur met Lady Florence
again in the town.
"Where have you been to, Lady Florence?&q=
uot;
he said.
"To see my brother off," she answere=
d,
without any signs of deep grief.
"What, has he gone already?"
"Yes; your friend Mrs. Carr has been too =
many
for poor James."
"What! do you mean that he has been
proposing?"
"Yes, and got more than he bargained
for."
"Is he cut up?"
"He, no, but his vanity is. You see, Mr. =
Heigham,
it is this way. My brother may be a very great man and a pillar of the Stat=
e,
and all that sort of thing. I don't say he isn't; but from personal experie=
nce I
know that he is an awful prig, and thinks tha=
t all
women are machines constructed to advance the comfort of your noble sex. We=
ll, he
has come down a peg or two, that's all, and he don't like it. Good- bye; I'=
m in
a hurry."
Lady Florence was nothing if not outspoken.
A week or so after the departure of Lord Minst=
er,
Mildred suggested that they should, on the following day, vary their amusem=
ents
by going up to the Convent, a building perched on the hills some thousand f=
eet above
the town of Funchal, in palanquins, or rather hammocks swung upon long pole=
s.
Arthur, who had never yet travelled in these luxurious conveyances, jumped =
at
the idea, and even Miss Terry, when she discovered that she was to be carri=
ed,
made no objection. The party was completed by the addition of a newly-marri=
ed
couple of whom Mrs. Carr had known something at home, and who had come to
Madeira to spend the honeymoon. Lady Florence also had been asked, but, rat=
her
to Arthur's disappointment, she could not come.
When the long line of swinging hammocks, each =
with
its two sturdy bearers, were marshalled, and the adventurous voyagers had
settled themselves in them, they really formed quite an imposing procession=
, headed
as it was by the extra-sized one that carried Miss Terry, who complained
bitterly that "the thing wobbled and made her feel sick."
But to Arthur's mind there was something
effeminate in allowing himself, a strong, active man, to be carted up hills=
as
steep as the
side of a house by two perspiring wretches; so,
hot as it was, he, to the intense amusement of his bearers, elected to get =
out
and walk. The newly-married man followed his example, and for a while they =
went
on together, till presently the latter gravitated towards his wife's palanq=
uin,
and, overcome at so long a separation, squeezed her hand between the curtai=
ns.
Not wishing to intrude himself on their conjugal felicity, Arthur in his tu=
rn
gravitated to the side of Mrs. Carr, who was being lightly swung along in t=
he
second palanquin some twenty yards behind Miss Terry's. Shortly afterwards =
they
observed a signal of distress being flown by that lady, whose arm was to be
seen violently agitating her green veil from between the curtains of her ha=
mmock,
which immediately came to a dead stop.
"What is it?" cried Arthur and Mildr=
ed,
in a breath, as they arrived on the scene of the supposed disaster.
"My dear Mildred, will you be so kind as =
to
tell that man" (pointing to her front bearer, a stout, flabby individu=
al)
"that he must not go on carrying me. I must have a cooler man. It make=
s me
positively ill to see him puffing and blowing and dripping under my nose li=
ke a
fresh basted joint."
Miss Terry's realistic description of her bear=
er's
appearance, which was, to say the least of it, limp and moist, was no
exaggeration. But then she herself, as Arthur well remembered, was no
feather-weight, especially when, as in the present case, she had to be cart=
ed
up the side of a nearly perpendicular hill some miles long, a fact very wel=
l exemplified
by the condition of the bearer.
"My dear Agatha," replied Mildred,
laughing, "what is to be done? Of course the man is hot, you are not a
feather-weight; but what is to be done?"
"I don't know, but I won't go on with him, it's simply disgusting; he might let himself out as a watering-cart."<= o:p>
"But we can't get another here."
"Then he must cool himself, the others mi=
ght
come and fan him. I won't go on till he is cool, and that's flat."
"He will take hours to cool, and meanwhil=
e we
are broiling on this hot road. You really must come on, Agatha."
"I have it," said Arthur. "Miss
Terry must turn herself round with her head towards the back of the hammock,
and then she won't see him."
To this arrangement the aggrieved lady was aft=
er
some difficulty persuaded to accede, and the procession started again.
Their destination reached, they picnicked as t=
hey
had arranged, and then separated, the bride and bridegroom strolling off in=
one
direction, and Mildred and Arthur in another, whilst Miss Terry mounted gua=
rd
over the plates and dishes.
Presently Arthur and Mildred came to a little
English-looking grove of pine and oak, that extended down a gentle slope and
was bordered by a steep bank, at the foot of which great ferns and beautiful
Madeira flowers twined themselves into a shelter from the heat. Here they s=
at down
and gazed at the splendid and many-tinted view set in its background of eme=
rald
ocean.
"What a view it is," said Arthur.
"Look, Mildred, how dark the clumps of sugar-cane look against the gre=
en
of the vines, and how pretty the red roofs of the town are peeping out of t=
he
groves of fruit-trees. Do you see the great shadow thrown upon the sea by t=
hat
cliff? how deep and cool the water looks within it, and how it sparkles whe=
re
the sun strikes."
"Yes, it is beautiful, and the pines smell
sweet."
"I wish Angela could see it," he sai=
d,
half to himself. Mildred, who was lying back lazily among the ferns, her hat
off, her eyes closed, so that the long dark lashes lay upon her cheek, and =
her
head resting on her arm, suddenly started up.
"What is the matter?"
"Nothing, you woke me from a sort of drea=
m,
that's all."
"This spring I remember going with her to
look at a view near the Abbey House, and saying--what I often think when I =
look
at anything beautiful and full of life--that it depressed one to know that =
all this
was so much food for death, and its beauty a thing that to-day is and to-mo=
rrow
is not."
"And what did she say?"
"She said that to her it spoke of
immortality, and that in everything around her she saw evidence of eternal
life."
"She must be very fortunate. Shall I tell=
you
of what it reminds me?"
"What?"
"Of neither death nor immortality, but of=
the
full, happy, pulsing existence of the hour, and of the beautiful world that
pessimists like yourself and mystics like your Angela think so poorly of, b=
ut
which is really so glorious and so rich in joy. Why, this sunlight and thos=
e flowers,
and the wide sparkle of that sea, are each and all a happiness, and the hea=
lth
in our veins and the beauty in our eyes, deep pleasures that we never reali=
ze
till we lose them. Death, indeed, comes to us all, but why add to its terro=
rs
by thinking of them whilst it is far off? And, as for life after death, it =
is a
faint, vague thing, more likely to be horrible than happy. This world is our
only reality, the only thing that we can grasp; here alone we know that we can enjoy, and yet how we waste =
our
short opportunities for enjoyment! Soon youth will have slipped away, and we
shall be too old for love. Roses fade fastest, Arthur, when the sun is brig=
ht;
in the evening when they have fallen, and the ground is red with withering =
petals,
do you not think we shall wish that we had gathered more?"
"Yours is a pleasant philosophy,
Mildred," he said, struggling faintly in his own mind against her
conclusions.
But at this moment, somehow, his fingers touch=
ed
her own and were presently locked fast within her little palm, and for the
first time in his life they sat hand in hand. But, happily for him, he did =
not venture
to look into her eyes, and, before many minutes had passed, Miss Terry's vo=
ice
was heard calling him loudly.
"I suppose that you must go," said
Mildred, with a shade of vexation in her voice and a good many shades upon =
her
face, "or she will be blundering down here. I will come, too; it is ti=
me
for tea."
On arriving at the spot whence the sounds
proceeded, they found Miss Terry surrounded by a crowd of laughing and exci=
ted
bearers, and pouring out a flood of the most vigorous English upon an
unfortunate islander, who stood, a silver mug in each hand, bowing and
shrugging his shoulders, and enunciating with every variety of movement ind=
icative
of humiliation, these mystic words:
"Mee washeeuppee, signora,
washeeuppee--e."
"What <=
/span>is
the matter now, Agatha?"
"Matter, why I woke up and found this man
stealing the cups; I charged him at once with my umbrella, but he dodged an=
d I
fell down, and the umbrella has gone over the rock there. Take him up at on=
ce,
Arthur-- there's the stolen property on his person. Hand him over to
justice."
"Good gracious, Agatha, what are you thin=
king
about? The poor man only wants to wash the things out."
"Then I should like to know why he could =
not
tell me so in plain English," said Miss Terry, retiring discomfited am=
idst
shouts of laughter from the whole party, including the supposed thief.
After tea they all set out on a grand beetle-h=
unting
expedition, and so intent were they upon this fascinating pursuit that they=
did
not note the flight of time, till suddenly Mildred, pulling out her watch, =
gave
a pretty cry of alarm.
"Do you know what time it is, good people?
Half-past six, and the Custances are to dine with us at a quarter-past-seve=
n.
It will take us a good hour to get down; what shall we do?"
"I know," said Arthur, "there a=
re
two sledges just below; I saw them as we came up. They will take us down to
Funchal in a quarter of an hour, and we can get to the Quinta by about
seven."
"Arthur, you are invaluable; the very thi=
ng.
Come on, all of you, quick."
Now these sledges are peculiar to Madeira, bei=
ng
made on the principle of the bullock car, with the difference that they tra=
vel down
the smooth, stone-paved roadways by their own momentum, guided by two skill=
ed
conductors, each with one foot naked to prevent his slipping, who hold the
ropes, and when the sledge begins to travel more swiftly than they can foll=
ow,
mount upon the projecting ends of the runners and are carried with it. By m=
eans
of the swift and exhilarating rush of these sledges, the traveller traverses
the distance, that it takes some hours to climb, in a very few minutes. Ind=
eed,
his journey up and down may be very well compared with that of the well-kno=
wn
British sailor who took five hours to get up Majuba mountain, but, accordin=
g to
his own forcibly told story, came down again with an almost incredible
rapidity. It may therefore be imagined that sledge- travelling in Madeira is
not very well suited to nervous voyagers.
Miss Terry had at times seen these wheelless vehicles shoot from the top of a mountain to the bottom like a balloon with= the gas out, and had also heard of occasional accidents in connection with them= . Stoutly she vowed that nothing should induce her to trust her neck to one of them.<= o:p>
"But you must, Agatha, or else be left
behind. They are as safe as a church, and I can't leave the Custances to wa=
it
till half-past eight for dinner. Come, get in. Arthur can go in front and h=
old
you; I will sit behind."
Thus admonished--Miss Terry entered groaning,
Arthur taking his seat beside her, and Mrs. Carr hers in a sort of dickey
behind. The newly- married pair, who did not half like it, possessed themse=
lves
of the smaller sledge, determined to brave extinction in each other's arms.=
Then
the conductors seized the ropes, and, planting their one naked foot firmly
before them, awaited the signal to depart.
"Stop," said Miss Terry, lifting the
recovered umbrella, "that man has forgotten to put on his shoe and
stocking on his right leg. He will cut his foot, and, besides, it doesn't l=
ook
respectable to be seen flying through a place with a one-legged
ragamuffin----"
"Let her go," shouted Arthur, and th=
ey
did, to some purpose, for in a minute they were passing down that hill like=
a
flash of light. Woods and houses appeared and vanished like the visions of a
dream, and the soft air went singing away on either side of them as they cl=
ove
it, flying downwards at an angle of thirty degrees, and leaving nothing beh=
ind
them but the sound of Miss Terry's lamentations. Soon they neared the botto=
m,
but there was yet a dip--the deepest of them all, with a sharp turn at the =
end
of it--to be traversed.
Away went the little connubial sled in front l=
ike
a pigeon down the wind; away they sped after it like an eagle in pursuit; <=
span
style=3D'mso-spacerun:yes'> crack went the little sledge into the corner, =
and
out shot the happy pair; crash
Had it been the Prince and Princess of Evil--i=
f,
as is probable, there is a Princess--Arthur could scarcely have been more
astounded. Somehow he had always in his thoughts regarded Sir John and Lady
Bellamy, when he thought about them at all, as possessing indeed individual=
characters
and tendencies, but as completely "adscripti glebae" of the neigh=
bourhood
of the Abbey House as that house itself. He would as soon have expected to =
see
Caresfoot's Staff re-rooted in the soil of Madeira, as to find them strolli=
ng
about Funchal. He rubbed his eyes; perhaps, he thought, he had been knocked
silly and was labouring under a hallucination. No, there was no doubt about=
it;
there they were, just the same as he had seen them at Isleworth, except tha=
t if
possible Sir John looked even more like a ripe apple than usual, while the =
sun
had browned his wife's Egyptian face and given her a last finish as a perfe=
ct
type of Cleopatra. Nor was the recognition on his side only, for next second
his hand was grasped first by Sir John and then by Lady Bellamy.
"When we last met, Mr. Heigham," said
the gentleman, with a benevolent beam, "I think I expressed a wish tha=
t we
might soon renew our acquaintance, but I little thought under what
circumstances our next meeting would take place," and he pointed to the
overturned sledges and the prostrate sledgers.
"You have had a very merciful escape,&quo=
t;
chimed in Lady Bellamy, cordially; "with so many hard stones about,
affairs might have ended differently."
"Now then, Mr. Heigham, we had better set=
to
and run, that is, if Agatha has got a run left in her, or we shall be late
after all. Thank goodness nobody is hurt; but we must find a hammock for
Agatha, for to judge from her groans she thinks she is. Is my nose---- Oh, I
beg your pardon," and Mrs. Carr stopped short, observing for the first
time that he was talking to strangers.
"Do not let me detain you, if you are in a
hurry. I am so thankful that nobody is hurt," said Lady Bellamy. "=
;I
believe that we are stopping at the same hotel, Mr. Heigham, I saw your nam=
e in
the book, so we shall have plenty of opportunities of meeting."
But Arthur felt that there was one question wh=
ich
he must ask before he went on, whether or no it exceeded the strict letter =
of
his agreement with Philip; so, calling to Mrs. Carr that he was coming, he =
said,
with a blush,
"How was Miss Caresfoot when--when you la=
st
saw her, Lady Bellamy?"
"Perfectly well," she answered, smil=
ing.
"And more lovely than ever," added h=
er
husband.
"Thank you for that news, it is the best I
have heard for some time. Good-bye for the present, we shall meet to-morrow=
at
breakfast," and he ran on after the others, happier than he had been f=
or
months, feeling that he had come again within call of Angela, and as though=
he had
never sat hand in hand with Mildred Carr.
At breakfast on the following morning Arthur, =
as
he had anticipated, met the Bellamys. Sir John came down first, arrayed in =
true
English fashion, in a tourist suit of grey, and presently Lady Bellamy foll=
owed.
As she entered, dressed in trailing white, and walked slowly up the long ta=
ble,
every eye was turned upon her, for she was one of those women who attract
attention as surely and unconsciously as a magnet attracts iron. Arthur,
looking with the rest, thought that he had never seen a stranger, or at the
same time a more imposing- looking, woman. Time had not yet touched her bea=
uty
or impaired her vigorous constitution, and at forty she was still at the ze=
nith
of her charms. The dark hair, that threw out glinting lights of copper when=
the
sun struck it, still curled in its clustering ringlets and showed no line of
grey, while the mysterious, heavy-lidded eyes and the coral lips were as fu=
ll
of rich life and beauty as they had been when she and Hilda von Holtzhausen
first met at Rewtham House.
On her face, too, was the same expression of q=
uiet
power, of conscious superiority and calm command, that had always distingui=
shed
it. Arthur tried to think what it reminded him of, and remembered that the =
same
look was to be seen upon the stone features of some of the Egyptian statues=
in
Mildred's museum.
"How splendid Lady Bellamy looks!" h=
e said,
almost unconsciously, to his neighbour.
Sir John did not answer; and Arthur, glancing =
up
to learn the reason, saw that he also was watching the approach of his wife,
and that his face was contorted with a sudden spasm of intense malice and
hatred, whilst his little, pig-like eyes glittered threateningly. He had no=
t even
heard the remark. Arthur would have liked to whistle; he had surprised a
secret.
"How do you do, Mr. Heigham? I hope that =
you
are not bruised after your tumble yesterday. Good morning, John."
Arthur rose and shook hands.
"I never was more surprised in my life,&q=
uot;
he said, "than when I saw you and Sir John at the top of the street th=
ere.
May I ask what brought you to Madeira?"
"Health, sir, health," answered the
little man. "Cough, catarrh, influenza, and all that's damn----ah!
infernal!"
"My husband, Mr. Heigham," struck in
Lady Bellamy, in her full, rich tones, "had a severe threatening of ch=
est
disease, and the doctor recommended a trip to some warmer climate.
Unfortunately, however, his business arrangements will not permit of a long
stay. We only stop here three weeks at most."
"I am sorry to hear that you are not well,
Sir John."
"Oh! it is nothing very much," answe=
red
Lady Bellamy for him; "only he requires care. What a lovely garden this
is--is it not? By the way, I forgot to inquire after the ladies who shared =
your
tumble. I hope that they were none the worse. I was much struck with one of
them, the very pretty person with the brown hair, whom you pulled out of the
gutter."
"Oh, Mrs. Carr. Yes, she is pretty."=
After breakfast, Arthur volunteered to take La=
dy
Bellamy round the garden, with the ulterior object of extracting some more
information about Angela. It must be remembered that he had no cause to
mistrust that lady, nor had he any knowledge of the events which had recent=
ly happened
in the neighbourhood of the Abbey House. He was therefore perfectly frank w=
ith
her.
"I suppose that you have heard of my
engagement, Lady Bellamy?"
"Oh, yes, Mr. Heigham; it is quite a subj=
ect
of conversation in the Roxham neighbourhood. Angela Caresfoot is a sweet and
very beautiful girl, and I congratulate you much."
"You know, then, of its conditions?"=
"Yes, I heard of them, and thought them
ridiculous. Indeed I tried, at Angela's suggestion, to do you a good turn w=
ith
Philip Caresfoot, and get him to modify them; but he would not. He is a cur=
ious
man, Philip, and, when he once gets a thing into his head, it is beyond the
power of most people to drive it out again. I suppose that you are spending=
your
year of probation here?"
"Well, yes--I am trying to get through the
time in that way; but it is slow work."
"I thought you seemed pretty happy
yesterday," she answered, smiling.
Arthur blushed.
"Oh! yes, I may appear to be. But tell me=
all
about Angela."
"I have really very little to tell. She s=
eems
to be living as usual, and looks well. Her friend Mr. Fraser has come back.=
But
I must be going in; I have promised to go out walking with Sir John. Au revoir , Mr. Heigham."
Left to himself, Arthur remembered that he also
had an appointment to keep--namely, to meet Mildred by the Cathedral steps,=
and
go with her to choose some Madeira jewellery, an undertaking which she did =
not feel
competent to carry out without his assistance.
When he reached the Cathedral, he found her ra=
ther
cross at having been kept waiting for ten minutes.
"It is very rude of you," she said;
"but I suppose that you were so taken up with the conversation of your
friends that you forgot the time. By the way, who are they? anybody you have
told me about?"
In the pauses of selecting the jewellery, Arth=
ur
told her all he knew about the Bellamys, and of their connection with the
neighbourhood of the Abbey House. The story caused Mildred to open her brown
eyes and look thoughtful. Just as they came out of the shop, who should the=
y run
into but the Bellamys themselves, chaffering for Madeira work with a woman =
in
the street. Arthur stopped and spoke to them, and then introduced Mrs. Carr,
who, after a little conversation, asked them up to lunch.
After this Mildred and Lady Bellamy met a good
deal. The two women interested each other.
One night, when the Bellamys had been about ten
days in Madeira, the conversation took a personal turn. Sir John and Arthur
were sitting over their wine (they were dining with Mrs. Carr), Agatha Terry
was fast asleep on a sofa, so that Lady Bellamy and Mildred, seated upon lo=
unging-chairs,
by a table with a light on it, placed by an open window, were practically
alone.
"Oh, by the way, Lady Bellamy," said
Mildred, after a pause, "I believe that you are acquainted with the yo=
ung
lady to whom Mr. Heigham is engaged?" She had meant to say, "to be
married," but the words stuck in her throat.
"Oh, yes, I know her well."
"I am so glad. I am quite curious to hear
what she is like; one can never put much faith in lovers' raptures, you
know."
"Do you mean in person or in character?&q=
uot;
"Both."
"Well, Angela Caresfoot is as lovely a wo=
man
as ever I saw, with a noble figure, well-set head, and magnificent eyes and
hair."
Mildred turned a little pale and bit her lips.=
"As to her character, I can hardly descri=
be
it. She lives in an atmosphere of her own, an atmosphere that I cannot reac=
h,
or, at any rate, cannot breathe. But if you can imagine a woman whose mind =
is enriched
with learning as profound as that of the first classical scholars of the da=
y,
and tinged with an originality all her own; a woman whose faith is as stead=
y as
that star, and whose love is deep as the sea and as definite as its tides; =
who
lives to higher ends than those we strive for; whose whole life, indeed, gi=
ves
one the idea that it is the shadow--imperfect, perhaps, but still the
shadow--of an immortal light: then you will get some idea of Angela Caresfo=
ot.
She is a woman intellectually, physically, and spiritually immeasurably abo=
ve
the man on whom she has set her affections."
"That cannot be," said Mildred, soft=
ly,
"like draws to like; she must have found something in him, some better
part, some affinity of which you know nothing."
After this she fell into silence. Presently La=
dy
Bellamy raised her eyes, just now filled up with the great pupils, and fixed
them on Mildred.
"You are thinking," she said, slowly,
"that Angela Caresfoot is a formidable rival."
Mildred started.
"How can you pretend to read my
thoughts?"
She laughed a little.
"I am an adept at the art. Don't be
down-hearted. I should not be surprised if, after all, the engagement betwe=
en
Mr. Heigham and Angela Caresfoot should come to nothing. Of course, I speak=
in
perfect confidence."
"Of course."
"Well, the marriage is not altogether
agreeable to the father, who would prefer another and more suitable match. =
But,
unfortunately, there is no way of shaking the young lady's determination.&q=
uot;
"Indeed."
"But I think that, with assistance, a way
might be found."
Their eyes met, and this time Mildred took up =
the
parable.
"Should I be wrong, Lady Bellamy, if I
supposed that you have not come to Madeira solely for pleasure?"
"A wise person always tries to combine
business and pleasure."
"And in this case the business combined i=
s in
connection with Mr. Heigham's engagement?"
"Exactly."
"And supposing that I were to tell him
this?"
"Had I not known that you would on no acc=
ount
tell Mr. Heigham, I should not have told you."
"And how do you know that?"
"I will answer your question by another. =
Did
you ever yet know a woman, who loved a man, willingly help him to the arms =
of a
rival, unless indeed she was forced to it?" she added, with something =
like
a sigh.
Mildred Carr's snowy bosom heaved tumultuously,
and the rose-leaf hue faded from her cheeks.
"You mean that I am in love with Arthur
Heigham. On what do you base that belief?"
"On a base as broad as the pyramids of wh=
ich
you were talking at dinner. Public report, not nearly so misleading a guide=
as
people think, your face, your voice, your eyes, all betray you. Why do you =
always
try to get near him to touch him?--answer me that. I have seen you do it th=
ree
times this evening. Once you handed him a book in order to touch his hand
beneath it; but there is no need to enumerate what you doubtless very well
remember. No nice woman, Mrs. Carr, ever likes to continually touch a man
unless she loves him. You are always listening for his voice and step, you =
are
listening for them now. Your eyes follow his face as a dog does his
master's--when you speak to him, your voice is a caress in itself. Shall I =
go
on?"
"I think that it is unnecessary. Whether =
you
be right or not, I will give you the credit of being a close observer."=
;
"To observe with me is at once a task and=
an
amusement, and the habit is one that leads me to accurate conclusions, as I
think you will admit. The conclusion I have come to in your case is that yo=
u do
not wish to see Arthur Heigham married to another woman. I spoke just now of
assistance----"
"I have none to give, I will give none. H=
ow
could I look him in the face?"
"You are strangely scrupulous for a woman=
in
your position."
"I have always tried to behave like an
honourable woman, Lady Bellamy, and I do not feel inclined to do otherwise
now."
"Perhaps you will think differently when =
it
comes to the point. But in the meanwhile remember, that people who will not
help themselves, cannot expect to be helped."
"Once and for all, Lady Bellamy, understa=
nd
me. I fight for my own hand with the weapons which Nature and fortune have
given me, and by myself I will stand or fall. I will join in no schemes to
separate Arthur from this woman. If I cannot win him for myself by myself, =
I will
at any rate lose him fairly. I will respect what you have told me, but I wi=
ll
do no more."
Lady Bellamy smiled as she answered--
"I really admire your courage. It is quite
quixotic. Hush, here come the gentlemen."
A few days after the dinner at the Quinta Carr,
the Bellamys' visit to Madeira drew to a close. On the evening before their
departure, Arthur volunteered to take Lady Bellamy down to the parade to he=
ar
the band play. After they had walked about a while under the shade of the m=
agnolia-trees,
which were starred all over with creamy cups of bloom, and sufficiently
inspected the gay throng of Portuguese inhabitants and English visitors, ma=
de
gayer still by the amazingly gorgeous uniforms of the officials, Arthur spi=
ed
two chairs in a comparatively quiet corner, and suggested that they should =
sit
down.
"Lady Bellamy," he said, after
hesitating a while, "you are a woman of the world, and I believe a fri=
end
of my own. I want to ask your advice about something."
"It is entirely at your service, Mr.
Heigham."
"Well, really it is very awkward----"=
;
"Shall I turn my head so as not to see yo=
ur
blushes?"
"Don't laugh at me, Lady Bellamy. Of cour=
se
you will say nothing of this."
"If you doubt my discretion, Mr. Heigham,=
do
not choose me as a confidante. You are going, unless I am mistaken, to spea=
k to
me about Mrs. Carr."
"Yes, it is about her. But how did you kn=
ow
that? You always seem to be able to read one's thoughts before one speaks. =
Do
you know, sometimes I think that she has taken a fancy to me, do you see, a=
nd I
wanted to ask you what you thought about it."
"Well, supposing that she had, most young
men, Mr. Heigham, would not talk of such a thing in a tone befitting a great
catastrophe. But, if I am not entering too deeply into particulars, what ma=
kes
you think so?"
"Well, really, I don't exactly know. She
sometimes gives me a general idea."
"Oh, then, there has been nothing
tangible."
"Well, yes, once she took my hand, or I t=
ook
hers, I don't know which; but I don't think much of that, because it's the =
sort
of thing that's always happening, don't you know, and nine times out of ten
means nothing at all. But why I ask you about it is that, if there is anyth=
ing
of the sort, I had better cut and run out of this, because it would not be =
fair
to stop, either to her, or to Angela, or myself. It would be dangerous, you
see, playing with such a woman as Mildred."
"So you would go away if you thought that=
she
took any warmer interest in you than ladies generally do in men engaged to =
be
married."
"Certainly I should."
"Well, then, I think that I can set your =
mind
at ease. I have observed Mrs. Carr pretty closely, and in the way you suppo=
se
she cares for you no more than she does for your coat. She is, no doubt, a =
bit
of a flirt, and very likely wishes to get you to fall in love with her--a n=
atural
ambition on the part of a woman; but, as for being in love with you herself,
the idea is absurd. Women of the world do not fall in love so readily; they=
are
too much taken up with thinking about themselves to have time to think about
anybody else. With them it is all self, self, self, from morning till night.
Besides, look at the common-sense side of the thing. Do you suppose it like=
ly
that a person of Mrs. Carr's wealth and beauty, who has only to lift her ha=
nd
to have all London at her feet, is likely to fix her affections upon a young
man whom she knows is already engaged to be married, and who-- forgive me i=
f I
say so--has not got the same recommendations to her favour that many of her
suitors have? It is, of course, quite possible that Mrs. Carr's society may=
be
dangerous to you, in which case it might be wise for you to go; but I reall=
y do
not think that you need feel any anxiety on her account. She finds you a
charming companion, and in some ways a useful one, and that is all. When you
go, somebody else will soon fill the vacant space."
"Then that's all right," said Arthur,
though somehow he did not feel as wildly delighted as he should have done at
hearing it so clearly demonstrated that Mildred did not care a brass button
about him; but then that is human nature. Between eighteen and thirty-five,
ninety per cent. of the men in the world would like to centre in themselves=
the
affections of every young and pretty woman they know, even if there was not=
the
ghost of a chance of their marrying one of them. The same tendency is to be
observed conversely in the other sex, only in their case with a still small=
er
proportion of exceptions.
"By the way," asked Arthur, presentl=
y,
"how is my late guardian, Mr. George Caresfoot?"
"Not at all well, I am sorry to say. I am
very anxious about his health. He is in the south of England now for a
change."
"I am sorry he is ill. Do you know, I dar=
esay
you will think me absurd; but you have taken a weight off my mind. I always=
had
an idea that he wanted to marry Angela, and sometimes I am afraid that I ha=
ve suspected
that Philip Caresfoot carted me off in order to give him a chance. You see,
Philip is uncommonly fond of money, and George is rich."
"What an absurd idea, Mr. Heigham! Why,
George looks upon matrimony as an institution of the evil one. He admires
Angela, I know--he always does admire a pretty face; but as for dreaming of
marrying a girl half his age and his own cousin into the bargain, it is abo=
ut
the last thing that he would do."
"I am glad to hear it. I am sure I have b=
een
uncomfortable enough thinking about him sometimes. Lady Bellamy, will you do
something for me?"
"What is that, Mr. Heigham?"
"Tell Angela all about me."
"But would that be quite honourable, Mr.
Heigham--under the conditions of your engagement, I mean?"
"You never promised not to talk about me;=
I
only promised not to attempt verbal or written communication with Angela.&q=
uot;
"Well, I will tell her that I met you, and
that you are well, and, if Philip will allow me, I will tell her more; but =
of
course I don't know if he will or not. What ring is that you wear?"
"It is one that Angela gave me when we be=
came
engaged. It was her mother's."
"Will you let me look at it?"
Arthur held out his hand. The ring was an anti=
que,
a large emerald, cut like a seal and heavily set in a band of dull gold. On=
the
face of the stone were engraved some mysterious characters.
"What is that engraved on the stone?"=
;
"I am not sure; but Angela told me that M=
r.
Fraser had taken an impression of it, and forwarded it to a great Oriental
scholar. His friend said that the stone must be extremely ancient, as the
character is a form of Sanscrit, and that he believed the word to mean 'For=
ever'
or 'Eternity.' Angela said that it had been in her mother's family for
generations, and was supposed to have been brought from the East about the =
year
1700. That is all I know about it."
"The motto is better suited to a wedding-=
ring
than to an engagement stone," said Lady Bellamy, with one of her dark
smiles.
"Why?"
"Because engagements are like promises and
pie-crust, made to be broken."
"I hope that will not be the case with ou=
rs,
however," said Arthur, attempting a laugh.
"I hope not, I am sure; but never pin your
faith absolutely to any woman, or you will regret it. Always accept her oat=
hs
and protestations as you would a political statement, politely, and with an
appearance of perfect faith, but with a certain grain of mistrust. Woman's
fidelity is in the main a fiction. We are faithful just as men are, so long=
as
it suits us to be so; with this difference however, men play false from pas=
sion
or impulse, women from calculation."
"You do not draw a pleasing picture of yo=
ur
own sex."
"When is the truth pleasing? It is only w=
hen
we clothe its nakedness with the rags of imagination, or sweeten it with
fiction, that it can please. Of itself, it is so ugly a thing that society =
in
its refinement will not even hear it, but prefers to employ a corresponding
formula. Thus all passion, however vile, is called by the name of 'love,' a=
ll
superstitious terror and grovelling attempts to conciliate the unseen are k=
nown
as 'religion,' while selfish greed and the hungry lust for power masquerade=
as
laudable 'ambition.' Men and women, especially women, hate the truth, becau=
se,
like the electric light, it shows them as they are, and that is vile. It ha=
s grown
so strange to them from disuse that, like Pilate, they do not even know wha=
t it
is! I was going to say, however, that if you care to trust me with it, I th=
ink
I see how I can take a message to Angela for you--without either causing yo=
u to
break your promise or doing anything dishonourable myself."
"How?"
"Well, if you like, I will take her that
ring. I think that is a very generous offer on my part, for I do not like t=
he
responsibility."
"But what is the use of taking her the
ring?"
"It is something that there can be no mis=
take
about, that is all, a speaking message from yourself. But don't give it me =
if
you do not like; perhaps you had rather not!"
"I don't like parting with it at all, I
confess, but I should dearly like to send her something. I suppose that you
would not take a letter?"
"You would not write one, Mr. Heigham!&qu=
ot;
"No, of course, I forget that accursed
promise. Here, take the ring, and say all you can to Angela with it. You
promise that you will?"
"Certainly, I promise that I will say all=
I
can."
"You are very good and kind. I wish to He=
aven
that I were going to Marlshire with you. If you only knew how I long to see=
her
again. I think that it would break my heart if anything happened to separat=
e us,"
and his lips quivered at the thought.
Lady Bellamy turned her sombre face upon
him--there was compassion in her eyes.
"If you bear Angela Caresfoot so great a
love, be guided by me and shake it off, strangle it--be rid of it anyhow; f=
or
fulfilled affection of that nature would carry a larger happiness with it t=
han is
allowed in a world planned expressly to secure the greatest misery of the
greatest number. There is a fate which fights against it; its ministers are
human folly and passion. You have seen many marriages, tell me, how many ha=
ve
you known, out of a novel, where the people married their true loves? In no=
vels
they always do, it is another of society's pleasant fictions, but real life=
is
like a novel without the third volume. I do not want to alarm you, Mr. Heig=
ham;
but, because I like you, I ask you to steel your mind to disappointment, so
that, if a blow comes, it may not crush you."
"What do you mean, Lady Bellamy, do you k=
now
of any impending trouble?"
"I? Certainly not. I only talk on general
principles. Do not be over- confident, and never trust a woman. Come, let us get home.&qu=
ot;
Next morning, when Arthur came down to breakfa=
st,
the Bellamys had sailed. The mail had come in from the Cape at midnight, and
left again at dawn, taking them with it.
CHAPTER XLVI
The departure of the Bellamys left Arthur in v=
ery
low spirits. His sensations were similar to those which one can well imagin=
e an
ancient Greek might have experienced who, having sent to consult the Delphi=
c oracle,
had got for his pains a very unsatisfactory reply, foreshadowing evils but =
not
actually defining them. Lady Bellamy was in some way connected with the ide=
a of
an oracle in his mind. She looked oracular. Her dark face and inscrutable e=
yes,
the stamp of power upon her brow, all suggested that she was a mistress of =
the black
arts. Her words, too, were mysterious, and fraught with bitter wisdom and a
deep knowledge distilled from the poisonous weeds of life.
Arthur felt with something like a shudder that=
, if
Lady Bellamy prophesied evil, evil was following hard upon her words. And i=
n warning
him not to place his whole heart's happiness upon one venture, lest it shou=
ld
meet with shipwreck, he was sure that she was prophesying with a knowledge =
of
the future denied to ordinary mortals. How earnestly, too, she had cautioned
him against putting absolute faith in Angela--so earnestly, indeed, that her
talk had left a flavour of distrust in his mind. Yet how could he mistrust
Angela?
Nor was he comforted by a remark that fell from
Mildred Carr the afternoon following the departure of the mail. Raising her
eyes, she glanced at his hand.
"What are you looking at?" he said.<= o:p>
"Was not that queer emerald you wore your
engagement ring?"
"Yes."
"What have you done with it?"
"I gave it to Lady Bellamy to give to
Angela."
"What for?"
"To show her that I am alive and well. I =
may
not write, you know."
"You are very confiding."
"What do you mean?"
"Nothing. At least, I mean that I don't t=
hink
that I should care to hand over my engagement ring so easily. It might be
misapplied, you know."
This view of the matter helped to fill up the =
cup
of Arthur's nervous anxiety, and he vainly plied Mildred with questions to =
get
her to elucidate her meaning, and state her causes of suspicion, if she had=
any;
but she would say nothing more on the subject, which then dropped, and was =
not
alluded to again between them.
After the Bellamys' departure, the time wore o=
n at
Madeira without bringing about any appreciable change in the situation. But
Mildred saw that their visit had robbed her of any advantages she had gaine=
d over
Arthur, for they had, as it were, brought Angela's atmosphere with them, an=
d,
faint though it was, it sufficed to overpower her influence. He made no move
forward, and seemed to have entirely forgotten the episode on the hills whe=
n he
had gone so very near disaster. On the contrary, he appeared to her to grow
increasingly preoccupied as time went on, and to look upon her more and mor=
e in
the light of a sister, till at length her patience wore thin.
As for her passion, it grew almost unrestraina=
ble
in its confinement. Now she drifted like a rudderless vessel on a sea which
raged continuously and knew no space of calm. And so little oil was poured =
upon
the troubled waters, there were so few breaks in the storm-walls that rose
black between her and the desired haven of her rest. Indeed, she began to d=
oubt
if even her poor power of charming him, as at first she had been able to do,
with the sparkle of her wit and the half- unconscious display of her natural
grace, was not on the wane, and if she was not near to losing her precarious
foothold in his esteem and affection. The thought that he might be tiring of
her struck her like a freezing wind, and for a moment turned her heart to i=
ce.
Poor Mildred! higher than ever above her head
bloomed that "blue rose" she longed to pluck. Would she ever reac=
h it
after all her striving, even to gather one poor leaf, one withered petal? T=
he
path which led to it was very hard to climb, and below the breakers boiled.
Would it, after all, be her fate to fall, down into that gulf of which the =
sorrowful
waters could bring neither death nor forgetfulness?
And so Christmas came and went.
One day, when they were all sitting in the
drawing-room, some eight weeks after the Bellamys had left, and Mildred was
letting her mind run on such thoughts as these, Arthur, who had been readin=
g a
novel, got up and opened the folding-doors at the end of the room which sep=
arated
it from the second drawing-room, and also the further doors between that ro=
om
and the dining-room. Then he returned, and, standing at the top of the big
drawing-room, took a bird's-eye view of the whole suite.
"What <=
/span>are
you doing, Arthur?"
"I am reflecting, Mildred, that, with suc=
h a
suite of apartments at your command, it is a sin and a shame not to give a
ball."
"I will give a ball, if you like, Arthur.
Will you dance with me if I do?"
"How many times?" he said, laughing.=
"Well, I will be moderate--three times. L=
et
me see--the first waltz, the waltz before supper, and the last galop."=
"You will dance me off my head. It is
dangerous to waltz with any one so pretty," he said, in that bantering
tone he often took with her, and which aggravated her intensely.
"It is more likely that my own head will
suffer, as I dance so rarely. Then, that is a bargain?"
"Certainly."
"Dear me, Mildred, how silly you are; you=
are
like a schoolgirl!" said Miss Terry.
"Agatha is put out because you do not off=
er
to dance three times with her."
"Oh! but I will, though, if she likes; th=
ree
quadrilles."
And so the matter passed off in mutual badinag=
e;
but Mildred did not forget her intention. On the contrary, "society&qu=
ot;
at Madeira was soon profoundly agitated by the intelligence that the lady
Croesus, Mrs. Carr, was about to give a magnificent ball, and so
ill-natured--or, rather, so given to jumping to conclusions--is society, th=
at
it was freely said it was in order to celebrate her engagement to Arthur He=
igham.
Arthur heard nothing of this; one is always the last to hear things about
oneself. Mildred knew of it, however, but, whether from indifference or from
some hidden motive, she neither took any steps to contradict it herself, nor
would she allow Miss Terry to do so.
"Nonsense," she said; "let them
talk. To contradict such things only makes people believe them the more. Mi=
nd
now, Agatha, not a word of this to Mr. Heigham; it would put him out."=
"Well, Mildred, I should have thought that
you would be put out too."
"I!--oh, no! Worse things might happen,&q=
uot;
and she shrugged her shoulders.
At length the much-expected evening came, and =
the
arriving guests found that the ball had been planned on a scale such as Mad=
eira
had never before beheld. The night was lovely and sufficiently still to adm=
it
of the illumination of the gardens by means of Chinese lanterns that glowed=
all
around in hundreds, and were even hung like golden fruit amongst the topmost
leaves of the lofty cabbage palms, and from the tallest sprays of the bambo=
os.
Within, the scene was equally beautiful. The suite of three reception-rooms=
had
been thrown into one, two for dancing, and one for use as a sitting-room. T=
hey
were quite full, for the Madeira season was at its height, and all the Engl=
ish
visitors who were "anybody" were there. There happened, too, to b=
e a
man-of-war in the harbour, every man-jack, or, rather, every officer-jack of
which, with the exception of those on watch--and they were to be relieved l=
ater
on--was there, and prepared to enjoy himself with a gusto characteristic of=
the
British sailor-man.
The rooms, too, were by no means devoid of bea=
uty,
but by far the loveliest woman in them was Mrs. Carr herself. She was simply
dressed in a perfectly-fitting black satin gown, looped up with diamond sta=
rs that
showed off the exquisite fairness of her skin to great perfection. Her
ornaments were also diamonds, but such diamonds--not little flowers and bir=
ds
constructed of tiny stones, but large single gems, each the size of a
hazel-nut. On her head she wore a tiara of these, eleven stones in all, fiv=
e on
each side, and surmounted over the centre of the forehead by an enormous ge=
m as
large as a small walnut, which, standing by itself above the level of the
others, flashed and blazed like a fairy star. Around her neck, wrists, and =
waist
were similar points of concentrated light, that, shining against the black
satin as she moved, gave her a truly magnificent appearance. Never before h=
ad
Mildred Carr looked so perfectly lovely, for her face and form were well wo=
rthy
of the gems and dress; indeed, most of the men there that night thought her
eyes as beautiful as her diamonds.
The ball opened with a quadrille, but in this =
Mrs.
Carr did not dance, being employed in the reception of her guests. Then
followed a waltz, and, as its first strains struck up, several applicants c=
ame
to compete for the honour of her hand; but she declined them all, saying th=
at
she was already engaged; and presently Arthur, looking very tall and quite =
the
typical young Englishman in his dress-clothes, came hurrying up.
"You are late, Mr. Heigham," she sai=
d;
"the music has begun."
"Yes; I am awfully sorry. I was dancing w=
ith
Lady Florence, and could not find her old aunt."
"Indeed, to me Mrs. Velley is pretty
conspicuous, with that green thing on her head; but come along, we are wast=
ing
time."
Putting his arm round her waist, they sailed a=
way
together amidst of the murmurs of the disappointed applicants.
"Lucky dog," said one.
"Infernal puppy," muttered another.<= o:p>
Arthur enjoyed his waltz very much, for the ro=
oms,
though full, were not crowded, and Mildred waltzed well. Still he was a lit=
tle
uneasy, for he felt that, in being chosen to dance the first waltz with the=
giver
of this splendid entertainment over the heads of so many of his superiors in
rank and position, he was being put rather out of his place. He did not as a
rule take any great degree of notice of Mildred's appearance, but to-night =
it
struck him as unusually charming.
"You look very beautiful to-night,
Mildred," he said, when they halted for breath; "and what splendid
diamonds you have on!"
She flushed with pleasure at his compliment.
"You must not laugh at my diamonds. I know
that I am too insignificant to wear such jewels. I had two minds about putt=
ing
them on."
"Laugh at them, indeed. I should as soon
think of laughing at the Bank of England. They are splendid."
"Yes," she said, bitterly; "they
would be splendid on your Angela. They want a splendid woman to carry them
off."
Oddly enough, he was thinking the same thing: =
so,
having nothing to say, he went on dancing. Presently the waltz came to an e=
nd,
and Mildred was obliged to hurry off to receive the Portuguese Governor, who
had just put in an appearance. Arthur looked at his card, and found that he=
was
down for the next galop with Lady Florence Claverley.
"Our dance again, Lady Florence."
"Really, Mr. Heigham, this is quite shock=
ing.
If everybody did not know that you belonged body and soul to the lovely wid=
ow,
I should be accused of flirting with you."
"Who was it made me promise to dance five
times?"
"I did. I want to make Mrs. Carr angry.&q=
uot;
"Why should my dancing five or fifty danc=
es
with you make Mrs. Carr angry?"
Lady Florence shrugged her pretty shoulders.
"Are you blind?" she said.
Arthur felt uncomfortable.
In due course, however, the last waltz before
supper came round, and he, as agreed upon, danced it with his hostess. As t=
he
strains of the music died away, the doors of the supper-room and tent were
thrown open.
"Now, Arthur," said Mildred, "t=
ake
me in to supper."
He hesitated.
"The Portuguese Governor----" he beg=
an.
She stamped her little foot, and her eyes gave=
an
ominous flash.
"Must I ask you twice?" she said.
Then he yielded, though the fact of being for =
the
second time that night placed in an unnecessarily prominent position made h=
im
feel more uncomfortable than ever, for they were seated at the head of the =
top table.
Mildred Carr was in the exact centre, with himself on her right and the
Portuguese Governor on the left. To Arthur's left was Lady Florence, who to=
ok
an opportunity to assure him solemnly that he really "bore his blushing
honours, very nicely," and to ask him "how he liked the high plac=
es
at feasts?"
The supper passed off as brilliantly as most
successful suppers do. Mrs. Carr looked charming, and her conversation spar=
kled
like her own champagne; but it seemed to him that, as in the case of the wi=
ne, there
was too much sting in it. The wine was a little too dry, and her talk a lit=
tle
too full of suppressed sarcasm, though he could not quite tell what it was
aimed at, any more than he could trace the source of the champagne bubbles.=
Supper done, he led her back to the ball-room.=
The
second extra was just beginning, and she stood as though she were expecting=
him
to ask her to dance it.
"I am sorry, Mildred, but I must go now. =
I am
engaged this dance."
"Indeed--who to?" This was very cold=
ly
said.
"Lady Florence," he answered,
confusedly, though there really was no reason why he should be ashamed.
She looked at him steadily.
"Oh! I forgot, for to-night you are her
monopoly. Good-bye."
A little while after this, Arthur thought that=
he
had had about enough dancing for awhile, and went and sat by himself in a
secluded spot under the shadow of a tree-fern in a temporary conservatory p=
ut
up outside a bow-window. The Chinese lantern that hung upon the fern had go=
ne
out, leaving his chair in total darkness. Presently a couple, whom he did n=
ot
recognize, for he only saw their backs, strayed in, and placed themselves o=
n a
bench before him in such a way as to entirely cut off his retreat. He was
making up his mind to disturb them, when they began a conversation, in which
the squeezing of hands and mild terms of endearment played a part. Fearing =
to
interrupt, lest he should disturb their equanimity, he judged it best to st=
op
where he was. Presently, however, their talk took a turn that proved intens=
ely interesting
to him. It was something as follows:--
She .
"Have you seen the hero of the evening?"
He .
"Who? Do you mean the Portuguese Governor in his war-paint?"
She .
"No, of course not. You don't call him a hero, do you? I mean our
hostess's fiance , the nice-looking
young fellow who took her in to supper."
He .
"Oh, yes. I did not think much of him. Lucky dog! but he must be rather
mean. They say that he is engaged to a girl in England, and has thrown her =
over
for the widow."
She .
"Ah, you're jealous! I know that you would like to be in his shoes. Co=
me,
confess."
He .
"You are very unkind. Why should I be jealous when----"
She .
"Well, you need not hurt my hand, and will you never remember that black shows against white!=
"
He .
"It's awfully hot here; let's go into the garden." [ Exuent .]
Arthur emerged from his hiding-place,
horror-struck at hearing what was being said about him, and wondering, so f=
ar
as he was at the moment capable of accurate thought, how long this report h=
ad
been going about, and whether by any chance it had reached the ears of the =
Bellamys.
If it had, the mischief might be very serious. In the confusion of his mind,
only two things were clear to him--one was, that both for Mildred's and his=
own
sake, he must leave Madeira at once; and, secondly, that he would dance no =
more
with her that night.
Meanwhile the ball was drawing to a close, and=
presently
he heard the strains of the last galop strike up. After the band had been
playing for a minute or two, a natural curiosity drew him to the door of th=
e ball-room,
to see if Mildred was dancing with anybody else. Here he found Lady Florenc=
e,
looking rather disconsolate.
"How is it that you are not dancing?"
she asked.
He murmured something inaudible about
"partner."
"Well, we are in the same box. What do you
think? I promised this galop to Captain Clemence, and now there he is, vain=
ly
trying to persuade Mrs. Carr, who won't look at him, and appears to be wait=
ing for
somebody else--you, I should think--to give him the dance. I will be even w=
ith
him, though."
Just then the music reached a peculiarly seduc=
tive
passage.
"Oh, come along!" said Lady Florence,
quite regardless of the proprieties; and, before Arthur well knew where he =
was,
he was whirling round the room.
Mrs. Carr was standing at the top corner, where
the crush obliged him to slacken his pace, and, as he did so, he caught her
eye. She was talking to Lady Florence's faithless partner, with a smile upon
her lips; but one glance at her face sufficed to tell him that she was in a
royal rage, and, what was more, with himself. His partner noticed it, too, =
and
was amused.
"Unless I am mistaken, Mr. Heigham, you h=
ave
come into trouble. Look at Mrs. Carr." And she laughed.
But that was not all. Either from sheer mischi=
ef,
or from curiosity to see what would happen, she insisted upon stopping, as =
the
dance drew to a close, by Mildred's corner. That lady, however, proved hers=
elf equal
to the occasion.
"Mr. Heigham," she said sweetly,
"do you know that that was our dance?"
"Oh, was it?" he replied, feeling ve=
ry
much a fool.
"Yes, certainly it was; but with such a
temptation to error"--and she smiled towards Lady Florence--"it is
not wonderful that you made a mistake, and, as you look so contrite, you sh=
all
be forgiven. Agatha, there's a dear, just ask that man to go up to the band,
and tell them to play another waltz, 'La Berceuse,' before 'God save the
Queen.'"
Arthur felt all the while, though she was talk=
ing
so suavely, that she was in a state of suppressed rage; once he glanced at =
her,
and saw that her eyes seemed to flash. But her anger only made her look mor=
e lovely,
supplying as it did an added dignity and charm to her sweet features. Nor d=
id
she allow it to have full play.
Mildred felt that the crisis in her fortunes w=
as
far too serious to admit of being trifled with. She knew how unlikely it was
that she would ever have a better chance with Arthur than she had now, for =
the mirrors
told her that she was looking her loveliest, which was very lovely indeed. =
In
addition, she was surrounded by every seductive circumstance that could ass=
ist
to compel a young man, however much engaged, to commit himself by some act =
or
words of folly. The sound and sights of beauty, the rich odour of flowers, =
the
music's voluptuous swell, and last, but not least, the pressure of her
gracious form and the glances from her eyes, w=
hich
alone were enough to make fools of ninety-nine out of every hundred young m=
en
in Europe --all these things combined to help her. And to them must be added
her determination, that concentrated strength of will employed to a single =
end,
which, if there be any truth in the theories of the action of mind on mind,
cannot fail to influence the individual on whom it is directed.
"Now, Arthur."
The room was very nearly clear, for it was dra=
wing
towards daylight when they floated away together. Oh! what a waltz that was!
The incarnate spirit of the dance took possession of them. She waltzed divi=
nely,
and there was scarcely anything to check their progress. On, on they sped w=
ith
flying feet as the music rose and fell above them. And soon things began to
change for Arthur. All sense of embarrassment and regret vanished from his
mind, which now appeared to be capable of holding but one idea of the simpl=
est
and yet the most soaring nature. He thought that he was in heaven with Mild=
red
Carr. On, still on; now he saw nothing but her shell-like face and the large
flash of the circling diamonds, felt nothing but the pressure of her form a=
nd
her odorous breath upon his cheek, heard nothing but the soft sound of her =
breathing.
Closer he clasped her; there was no sense of weariness in his feet or
oppression in his lungs; he could have danced for ever. But all too soon the
music ceased with a crash, and they were standing with quick breath and
sparkling eyes by the spot that they had started from. Close by Miss Terry =
was
sitting yawning.
"Agatha, say good-bye to those people for=
me.
I must get a breath of fresh air. Give me a glass of water, please,
Arthur."
He did so, and, by way of composing his own
nerves, took a tumbler of champagne. He had no longer any thought of anxiet=
y or
danger, and he, too, longed for air. They passed out into the garden, and, =
by a
common consent, made their way to the museum verandah, which was, as it pro=
ved,
quite deserted.
The night, which was drawing to its close, was
perfect. Far over the west the setting moon was sinking into the silver oce=
an,
whilst the first primrose hue of dawn was creeping up the eastern sky. It w=
as essentially
a dangerous night, especially after dancing and champagne --a night to make
people do and say regrettable things; for, as one of the poets--is it not B=
yron?--has
profoundly remarked, there is the very devil in the moon at times.
They stood and gazed awhile at the softness of=
its
setting splendours, and listened to the sounds of the last departing guests
fading into silence, and to the murmurs of the quiet sea. At last she spoke,
very low and musically.
"I was angry with you. I brought you here=
to
scold you; but on such a night I cannot find the heart."
"What did you want to scold me about?&quo=
t;
"Never mind; it is all forgotten. Look at
that setting moon and the silver clouds above her," and she dropped her
hand, from which she had slipped the glove, upon his own.
"And now look at me and tell me how I loo=
k,
and how you liked the ball. I gave it to please you."
"You look very lovely, dangerously lovely=
, and
the ball was splendid. Let us go."
"Do you think me lovely, Arthur?"
"Yes; who could help it? But let us go
in."
"Stay awhile, Arthur; do not leave me yet.
Tell me, is not this necklace undone? Fasten it for me, Arthur."
He turned to obey, but his hand shook too much=
to
allow him to do so. Her eyes shone into his own, her fragrant breath played
upon his brow, and her bosom heaved beneath his shaking hand. She too was
moved; light tremors ran along her limbs, the colour came and went upon her=
neck
and brow, and a dreamy look had gathered in her tender eyes. Beneath them t=
he
sea made its gentle music, and above the wind was whispering to the trees.
Presently his hand dropped, and he stood fascinated.
"I cannot. What makes you look like that?=
You
are bewitching me."
Next moment he heard a sigh, the next Mildred's
sweet lips were upon his own, and she was in his arms. She lay there still,
quite still, but even as she lay there rose, as it were, in the midst of th=
e glamour
and confusion of his mind, that made him see all things distraught, and see=
med
to blot out every principle of right and honour, another and far different
scene. For, as in a vision, he saw a dim English landscape and a grey ruin,=
and
himself within its shadows with a nobler woman in his arms, "Dethrone
me," said a remembered voice, "desert me, and I will still thank =
you
for this hour of imperial happiness." The glamour was gone, the confus=
ion
made straight, and clear above him shone the light of duty.
"Mildred, dear Mildred, this cannot be. S=
it
down. I want to speak to you."
She turned quite white, and sank from his arms
without a word.
"Mildred, you know that I am engaged.&quo=
t;
The lips moved, but no sound issued from them.
Again she tried.
"I know."
"Then why do you tempt me? I am only a ma=
n,
and weak as water in your presence. Do not make me dishonourable to myself =
and
her."
"I love you as well as she. There--take t=
he
shameful truth."
"Yes, but--forgive me if I pain you, for I
must, I must. I love her ."
The beautiful face hid itself in the ungloved
hands. No answer came, only the great diamond sparkled and blazed in the so=
ft
light like a hard and cruel eye.
"Do not, Mildred, for pity's sake, involv= e us all in shame and ruin, but let us part now. If I could have foreseen how th= is would end! But I have been a blind and selfish fool. I have been to blame."<= o:p>
She was quite calm now, and spoke in her usual
singularly clear voice.
"Arthur dear, I do not blame you. Loving =
her , how was it likely that you should =
think
of love from me ? I only blame mys=
elf. I
have loved you, God help me, ever since we met--loved you with a despairing=
, desperate
love such as I hope that you may never know. Was I to allow your phantom An=
gela
to snatch the cup from my lips without a struggle, the only happy cup I ever
knew? For, Arthur, at the best of times, I have not been a happy woman; I h=
ave
always wanted love, and it has not come to me. Perhaps I should be, but I am
not--a high ideal being. I am as Nature made me, Arthur, a poor creature,
unable to stand alone against such a current as has lately swept me with it.
But you are quite right, you must leave me, we must separate, you must go; but oh God! when I think of the futu=
re,
the hard, loveless future----"
She paused awhile, and then went on--
"I did not think to harm you or involve y=
ou
in trouble, though I hoped to win some small portion of your love, and I had
something to give you in exchange, if beauty and great wealth are really wo=
rth
anything. But you must go, dear, now, whilst I am brave. I hope that you wi=
ll
be happy with your Angela. When I see your marriage in the paper, I shall s=
end
her this tiara as a wedding present. I shall never wear it again. Go, dear;=
go
quick."
He turned to leave, not trusting himself to sp=
eak,
for the big tears stood in his eyes, and his throat was choked. When he had
reached the steps, she called him back.
"Kiss me once before you go, and I see yo=
ur
dear face no more. I used to be a proud woman, and to think that I can stoo=
p to
rob a kiss from Angela. Thank you; you are very kind. And now one word; you
know a woman always loves a last word. Sometimes it happens that we put up =
idols,
and a stronger hand than ours shatters them to dust before our eyes. I trust
this may not be your lot. I love you so well that I can say that honestly; =
but,
Arthur, if it should be, remember that in all the changes of this cold world
there is one heart which will never forget you, and never set up a rival to
your memory, one place where you will always find a home. If anything should
ever happen to break your life, come back to me for comfort, Arthur. I can =
talk
no more; I have played for high stakes--and lost. Good-bye."
He went without a word.
Reader, have you ever, in the winter or early
spring, come from a hot- house where you have admired some rich tropical bl=
oom,
and then, in walking by the hedgerows, suddenly seen a pure primrose opening
its sweet eye, and looking bravely into bitter weather's face? If so, you w=
ill,
if it is your habit to notice flowers, have experienced some such sensation=
as
takes possession of my mind when I pass from the story of Mildred as she was
then, storm-tossed and loving, to Angela, as loving indeed, and yet more
anxious, but simple-minded as a child, and not doubtful for the end. They w=
ere
both flowers indeed, and both beautiful, but between them there was a wide
difference. The one, in the richness of her splendour, gazed upon the close
place where she queened it, and was satisfied with the beauty round her, or=
, if
not satisfied, she could imagine none different. The limits of that little =
spot
formed the horizon of her mind--she knew no world beyond. The other, full of
possibilities, shed sweetness even on the blast which cut her, and looked up
for shelter towards the blue sky she knew endured eternally above the drivi=
ng
clouds.
Whilst Sir John Bellamy's health was being
recruited at Madeira, Angela's daily life pursued an even and, comparatively
speaking, a happy course. She missed Pigott much, but then she often went to
see her, and by way of compensation, if she had gone, so had George Caresfo=
ot
and Lady Bellamy. Mr. Fraser, too, had come back to fill a space in the voi=
d of
her loneliness, and for his presence she was very grateful. Indeed none but
herself could know the comfort and strength she gathered from his friendshi=
p,
none but himself could know what it cost him to comfort her. But he did not
shrink from the duty; indeed, it gave him a melancholy satisfaction. He lov=
ed
her quite as dearly, and with as deep a longing as Mildred Carr did Arthur;=
but
how different were his ends! Of ultimately supplanting his rival he never d=
reamt;
his aim was to assist him, to bring the full cup of joy, untainted, to his
lips. And so he read with her and talked with her, and was sick at heart; a=
nd
she thanked him, and consecrating all her most sacred thoughts to the memor=
y of
her absent lover, and all her quick energies to self-preparation for his
coming, possessed her soul in patience.
And thus her young life began to bloom again w=
ith
a fresh promise. The close of each departing day was the signal for the lif=
ting
of a portion of her load, for it brought her a day nearer to her lover's ar=
ms,
subtracting something from the long tale of barren hours; since to her all
hours seemed most barren that were not quickened by his presence. Indeed, no
Arctic winter could be colder and more devoid of light and life than this t=
ime
of absence was to her, and, had it not been for the warm splendour of her
hopes, shooting its beautiful promise in unreal gleams across the blackness=
of
her horizon, she felt as though she must have frozen and died. For hope,
elusive as she is, often bears a fairer outward mien than the realization to
which she points, and, like a fond deceiver, serves to keep the heart alive
till the first bitterness is overpast, and, schooled in trouble, it can know
her false, and yet remain unbroken.
But sometimes Angela's mood would change, and
then, to her strained and sensitive mind, this dead calm and cessation of
events would seem to resemble that ominous moment when, in tropic seas, the
fierce outrider of the tempest has passed howling away clothed in flying fo=
am.
Then comes a calm, and for a space there is blue sky, and the sails flap
drearily against the mast, and the vessel only rocks from the violence of h=
er
past plunging, while the scream of the sea-bird is heard with unnatural
clearness, for there is no sound nor motion in the air. Intenser still grows
the silence, and the waters almost cease from tossing; but the seaman knows
that presently, with a sudden roar, the armies of the winds and waves will =
leap
upon him, and that a struggle for life is at hand.
Such fears, however, did not often take her, f=
or,
unlike Arthur, she was naturally of a hopeful mind, and, when they did, Mr.
Fraser would find means to comfort her. But this was soon to change.
One afternoon--it was Christmas Eve--Angela we=
nt
down the village to see Pigott, now comfortably established in the house her
long departed husband had left her. It was a miserable December day, a damp=
, unpleasant
ghost of a day, and all the sky was packed with clouds, while the surface of
the earth was wrapped in mist. Rain and snow fell noiselessly by turns; ind=
eed,
the only sound in the air was the loud dripping of water from the trees on =
the
dead leaves beneath. The whole outlook was melancholy in the extreme. While
Angela was in her old nurse's cottage, the snow fell in earnest for an hour=
or
so, and then held up again, and when she came out the mist had recovered it=
s supremacy,
and now the snow was melting.
"Come, miss, you must be getting home, or=
it
will be dark. Shall I come with you a bit?"
"No, thank you, Pigott. I am not afraid of
the dark, and I ought to know my way about these parts. Good-night, dear.&q=
uot;
The prevailing dismalness of the scene oppress=
ed
her, and she made up her mind to go and see Mr. Fraser, instead of returnin=
g at
present to her lonely home. With this view, leaving the main road that ran =
through
Rewtham, Bratham, and Isleworth to Roxham, she turned up a little bye-lane =
which
led to the foot of the lake. Just as she did so, she heard the deadened
footfall of a fast-trotting horse, accompanied by the faint roll of
carriage-wheels over the snow. As she turned half involuntarily to see who =
it
was that travelled so fast, the creeping mist was driven aside by a puff of
wind, and she saw a splendid blood- horse drawing an open victoria trotting
past her at, at least, twelve miles an hour. But, quickly as it passed, it =
was
not too quick for her to recognize Lady Bellamy wrapped up in furs, her dar=
k,
stern face looking on straight before her, as though the mist had no power =
to
dim her sight. Next second the dark closed in, a=
nd the
carriage had vanished like a dream in the direction of Isleworth.
Angela shivered; the dark afternoon seemed to =
have
grown darker to her.
"So she is back," she said to herself. "I=
felt
that she was back. She makes me feel afraid."
Going on her way, she came to a spot where the
path forked, one track leading to a plank with a hand-rail spanning the str=
eam
that fed the lake, and the other to some stepping-stones, by crossing which=
and
following the path on the other side a short cut could be made to the recto=
ry.
The bridge and the stepping-stones were not more than twenty yards apart, b=
ut
so intent was Angela upon her own thoughts and upon placing her feet accura=
tely
on the stones that she did not notice a little man with a red comforter, who
was leaning on the hand-rail, engaged apparently in meditation. The little =
man,
however, noticed her, for he gave a violent start, and apparently was about=
to
call out to her, when he changed his mind. He was Sir John Bellamy.
"Better let her go perhaps, John," he
said, addressing his own effigy in the water. "After all, it will be b=
est
for you to let things to take their course, and not to burn your own finger=
s or
commit yourself in any way, John. You will trap them more securely so. If y=
ou
were to warn the girl now, you would only expose them; if you wait till he =
has married
her, you will altogether destroy them with the help of that young Heigham. =
And
perhaps by that time you will have touched those compromising letters, John,
and made a few other little arrangements, and then you will be able to enjoy
the sweets of revenge meted out with a quart measure, not in beggarly ones =
or
twos. But you are thinking of the girl--eh, John? Ah! you always were a pit=
iful
beggar; but tread down the inclination, decline to gratify it. If you do, y=
ou will
spoil your own hand. The girl must take her chance--oh! clearly the girl mu=
st
take her chance. But all the same, John, you are very sorry for her--very.
Come, come, you must be off, or her ladyship and the gentle George will be =
kept
waiting," and away he went at a brisk pace, cheerfully singing a verse=
of
a comic song. Sir John was a merry little man.
In due course Angela reached the rectory, and
found Mr. Fraser seated in his study reading.
"Well, my dear, what brings you here? Wha=
t a
dreary night!"
"Yes, it is dreadfully damp and lonesome;=
the
people look like ghosts in the mist, and their voices sound hollow. A proper
day for evil things to creep home," and she laughed drearily.
"What do you mean," he answered, wit=
h a
quick glance at her face, which wore an expression of nervous anxiety.
"I mean that Lady Bellamy has come home; =
is
she not an evil thing?"
"Hush, Angela; you should not talk so. You
are excited, dear. Why should you call her evil?"
"I don't know; but have you ever noticed =
her?
Have you never seen her creep, creep, like a tiger on its prey? Watch her d=
ark
face, and see the bad thoughts come and peep out of her eyes as the great b=
lack
pupils swell and then shrivel, till they are no larger than the head of this
black pin, and you will know that she is evil, and does evil work."
"My dear, my dear, you are upset to talk
so."
"Oh! no, I am not upset; but did you ever
have a presentiment?"
"Plenty; but never one that came true.&qu=
ot;
"Well, I have a presentiment now--yes, a
presentiment--it caught me in the mist."
"What is it? I am anxious to hear."<= o:p>
"I don't know--I cannot say; it is not cl=
ear
in my mind. I cannot see it, but it is evil, and it has to do with that evil
woman."
"Come, Angela, you must not give way to t=
his
sort of thing; you will make yourself ill. Sit down, there is a good girl, =
and
have some tea."
She was standing by the window staring out into
the mist, her fingers alternately intertwining and unlacing themselves, whi=
lst
an unusual-- almost an unearthly expression, played upon her face. Turning,=
she
obeyed him.
"You need not fear for me. I am tough, an=
d growing
used to troubles. What was it you said? Oh! tea. Thank you; that reminds me.
Will you come and have dinner with me to-morrow after church? It is Christm=
as Day,
you know. Pigott has given me a turkey she has been fatting, and I made the
mincemeat myself, so there will be plenty to eat if we can find the heart to
eat it."
"But your father, my dear?"
"Oh! you need not be afraid. I have got
permission to ask you. What do you think? I actually talked to my father for
ten whole minutes yesterday; he wanted to avoid me when he saw me, but I ca=
ught
him in a corner. He took advantage of the opportunity to try to prevent me =
from
going to see Pigott, but I would not listen to him, so he gave it up. What =
did
he mean by that? Why did he send her away? What does it all mean? Oh! Arthu=
r,
when will you come back, Arthur?" and, to Mr. Fraser's infinite distre=
ss,
she burst into tears.
Presentiments are no doubt foolish things, and
yet, at the time that Angela was speaking of hers to Mr. Fraser, a consulta=
tion
was going on in a back study at Isleworth that might almost have justified =
it.
The fire was the only light in the room, and gathered round it, talking very
low, their features thrown alternately into strong light and dark shadow, w=
ere
George Caresfoot and Sir John and Lady Bellamy. It was evident from the str=
ong
expression of interest, almost of excitement, on their faces that they were
talking of some matter of great importance.
Sir John was, as usual, perched on the edge of=
his
chair, rubbing his dry hands and eliciting occasional sparks in the shape of
remarks, but he was no longer merry; indeed, he looked ill at ease. George,=
his
red hair all rumpled up, and his long limbs thrust out towards the fire, sp=
oke
scarcely at all, but glued his little bloodshot eyes alternately on the fac=
es
of his companions, and only contributed an occasional chuckle. But the soul=
of
this witches' gathering was evidently Lady Bellamy. She was standing up, and
energetically detailing some scheme, the great pupils of her eyes expanding=
and
contracting as the unholy flame within them rose and fell.
"Then that is settled," she said, at
last.
George nodded, Bellamy said nothing.
"I suppose that silence gives consent. Ve=
ry
well, I will take the first step to-morrow. I do not like Angela Caresfoot,
but, upon my word, I shall be sorry for her before she is twenty-four hours
older. She is made of too fine a material to be sold into such hands as you=
rs,
George Caresfoot."
George looked up menacingly, but said nothing.=
"I have often urged you to give this up; =
now
I urge no more--the thing is done in spirit, it may as well be done in real=
ity.
I told you long ago that it was a most dreadfully wicked thing, and that
nothing but evil can come of it. Do not say that I have not warned you.&quo=
t;
"Come, stop that devil's talk," grow=
led
George.
"Devil's talk!--that is a good word, Geor=
ge,
for it is of the devil's wages that I am telling you. Now listen, I am goin=
g to
prophecy. A curse will fall upon this house and all within it. Would you li=
ke
to have a sign that I speak the truth? Then wait." She was standing up=
, her
hand stretched out, and in the dim light she looked like some heathen princ=
ess
urging a bloody sacrifice to her gods. Her forebodings terrified her hearer=
s,
and, by a common impulse, they rose and moved away from her.
At that moment a strange thing happened. A gus=
t of
wind, making its way from some entrance in the back of the house, burst open
the door of the room in which they were, and entered with a cold flap as of=
wings.
Next second a terrible crash resounded from the other end of the room. Geor=
ge
turned white as a sheet, and sank into a chair, cursing feebly. Bellamy gav=
e a
sort of howl of terror, and shrank up to his wife, almost falling into the =
fire
in his efforts to get behind her. Lady Bellamy alone, remaining erect and
undaunted, laughed aloud.
"Come, one of you brave conspirators agai=
nst
a defenceless girl, strike a light, for the place is as dark as a vault, and
let us see what has happened. I told you that you should have a sign."=
After several efforts, George succeeded in doi=
ng
as she bade him, and held a candle forward in his trembling hand.
"Come, don't be foolish," she said;
"a picture has fallen, that is all."
He advanced to look at it, and then benefited =
his
companions with a further assortment of curses. The picture, on examination,
proved to be a large one that he had, some years previously, had painted of=
Isleworth,
with the Bellamys and himself in the foreground. The frame was shattered, a=
nd
all the centre of the canvass torn out by the weight of its fall on to a
life-sized and beautiful statue of Andromeda chained to a rock, awaiting her
fate with a staring look of agonized terror in her eyes.
"An omen, a very palpable omen," said
Lady Bellamy, with one of her dark smiles. "Isleworth and ourselves
destroyed by being smashed against a marble girl, who rises uninjured from =
the
wreck. Eh, John?"
"Don't touch me, you sorceress," rep=
lied
Sir John, who was shaking with fear. "I believe that you are Satan in
person."
"You are strangely complimentary, even fo=
r a
husband."
"Perhaps I am, but I know your dark ways,=
and
your dealings with your master, and I tell you both what it is; I have done
with the job. I will have nothing more to do with it. I will know nothing m=
ore
about it."
"You hear what he says," said Lady
Bellamy to George. "John does not like omens. For the last time, will =
you
give it up, or will you go on?"
"I can't give her up--I can't indeed; it
would kill me," answered George, wringing his hands. "There is a
fiend driving me along this path."
"Not a doubt of it," said Sir John, =
who
was staring at the broken picture with chattering teeth, and his eyes almost
starting out of his head; "but if I were you, I should get him to driv=
e me
a little straighter, that's all."
"You are poor creatures, both of you,&quo=
t;
said Lady Bellamy; "but we will, then, decide to go on."
"Fiat 'injuria' ruat coelum," said S=
ir
John, who knew a little Latin; and, frightened as he was, could not resist =
the
temptation to air it.
And then they went and left George still
contemplating the horror- stricken face of the nude marble virgin whose eyes
appeared to gaze upon the ruins of his picture.
Next morning, being Christmas Day, Lady Bellamy
went to church, as behoves a good Christian, and listened to the Divine mes=
sage
of peace on earth and good-will towards men. So, for the matter of that, di=
d George,
and so did Angela. After church, Lady Bellamy went home to lunch, but she w=
as
in no mood for eating, so she left the table, and ordered the victoria to be
round in half an hour.
After church, too, Angela and Mr. Fraser ate t=
heir
Christmas dinner. Angela's melancholy had to some extent melted beneath the
genial influence of the Christmas-tide, and her mind had taken comfort from=
the
words of peace and everlasting love that she had heard that morning, and for
awhile, at any rate, she had forgotten her forebodings. The unaccustomed
splendour of the dinner, too, had diverted her attention, for she was easily
pleased with such things, and altogether she was in a more comfortable fram=
e of
mind than she had been on the previous evening, and was inclined to indulge=
in
a pleasant talk with Mr. Fraser upon various subjects, mostly classical and
Arthurian. She had already cracked some filberts for him, plucked by hersel=
f in
the autumn, and specially saved in a damp jar, and was about to settle hers=
elf
in a chair by the fire, when suddenly she turned white and stood quite stil=
l.
"Hark!" she said, "do you hear
it?"
"Hear what?"
"Lady Bellamy's horse--the big black horse
that trots so fast."
"I can hear nothing, Angela."
"But I can. She is on the high-road yet; =
she
will be here very soon; that horse trots fast."
"Nonsense, Angela; it is some other
horse."
But, as he spoke, the sound of a powerful anim=
al
trotting very rapidly became distinctly audible.
"It has come--the evil news--and she has
brought it."
"Rubbish, dear; somebody to see your fath=
er,
no doubt."
A minute elapsed, and then Mrs. Jakes, now the
only servant in the house, was heard shuffling along the passage, followed =
by a
firm, light step.
"Don't leave me," said Angela to Mr.
Fraser. "God give me strength to bear it," she went on, beneath h=
er
breath. She was still standing staring vacantly towards the door, pale, and=
her
bosom heaving. The intensity of her anxiety had to some extent communicated
itself to Mr. Fraser, for there are few things so catching as anxiety, exce=
pt enthusiasm;
he, too, had risen, and was standing in an attitude of expectancy.
"Lady Bellamy to see yer," said Mrs.
Jakes, pushing her head through the half-opened door.
Next second she had entered.
"I must apologize for disturbing you at dinner, Angela," she began hurriedly, and then stopped and also stood still. There was something very curious about her reception, she thought; b= oth Mr. Fraser and Angela might have been cut out of stone, for neither moved.<= o:p>
Standing thus in the silence of expectancy, the
three made a strange picture. On Lady Bellamy's face there was a look of st=
ern determination
and suppressed excitement such as became one about to commit a crime.
At last she broke the silence.
"I come to bring you bad news, Angela,&qu=
ot;
she said.
"What have you to say? tell me, quick! No,
stop, hear me before you speak. If you have come here with any evil in your
heart, or with the intention to deceive or betray, pause before you answer.=
I
am a lonely and almost friendless woman, and have no claim except upon your=
compassion;
but it is not always well to deal ill with such as I, since we have at last=
a
friend whose vengeance you too must fear. So, by the love of Christ and by =
the
presence of the God who made you, speak to me only such truth as you will u=
tter
at his judgment. Now, answer, I am ready."
At her words, spoken with an earnestness and i=
n a
voice which made them almost awful, a momentary expression of fear swept ac=
ross
Lady Bellamy's face, but it went as quickly as it came, and the hard, deter=
mined
look returned. The mysterious eyes grew cold and glittered, the head erected
itself. At that moment Lady Bellamy distinctly reminded Mr. Fraser of a hoo=
ded
cobra about to strike.
"Am I to speak before Mr. Fraser?"
"Speak!"
"What is the good of this high-flown talk,
Angela? You seem to know my news before I give it, and believe me it pains =
me
very much to have to give it. He is
dead, Angela. "
The cobra had struck, but as yet the poison had
scarcely begun to work. There was only numbness. Mr. Fraser gave a gasp and
half dropped, half fell, into his chair. The noise attracted Angela's atten=
tion,
and pressing her hand to her forehead she turned towards him with a ghost o=
f a
laugh.
"Did I not tell you that this evil woman
would bring evil news." Then addressing Lady Bellamy, "But stop, =
you
forget what I said to you, you do not speak the truth. Arthur dead! How can
Arthur be dead and I alive? How is it that I do not know he is dead? Oh, for
shame, it is not true, he is not dead."
"This seems to me to be a thankless as we=
ll
as a painful task," said Lady Bellamy, hoarsely, "but, if you will
not believe me, look here, you know this, I suppose? I took it, as he asked=
me
to do, from his dead hand that it might be given back to you."
"If Mr. Heigham is dead," said Mr.
Fraser, "how do you know it, where did he die, and what of?"
"I know it, Mr. Fraser, because it was my=
sad
duty to nurse him through his last illness at Madeira. He died of enteric
fever. I have got a copy of his burial certificate here which I had taken f=
rom
the Portuguese books. He seems to have had no relations living, poor young =
man,
but Sir John communicated with the family lawyer. Here is the certificate,&=
quot;
and she handed Mr. Fraser a paper written in Portuguese and officially stam=
ped.
"You say," broke in Angela, "th=
at
you took this ring from his dead hand, the hand on which I placed it. I do =
not
believe you. You beguiled it from his living hand. It cannot be that he is
dead; for, if he were, I should have felt it. Oh, Arthur!" and in her
misery she stretched out her arms and turned her agonized eyes upwards,
"if you are dead, come to me, and let me see your spirit face, and hear
the whisper of your wings. Have you no voice in the silence? You see he does
not come, he is not dead; if he were dead, Heaven could not hold him from my
side, or, if it could, it would have drawn me up to his."
"My love, my love," said Mr. Fraser,=
in
a scared voice, "it is not God's will that the dead should come back t=
o us
thus----"
"My poor Angela, why will you not believe=
me?
This is so very painful, do you suppose that I want to torture you by saying
what is not true about your love? The idea is absurd. I had meant to keep it
till you were calmer; but I have a letter for you. Read it and convince you=
rself."
Angela almost snatched the paper from her
outstretched hand. It ran thus, in characters almost illegible from weaknes=
s:--
"Dearest,--Good-bye. I am dying of =
fever.
Lady Bellamy will take back your =
ring
when it is over. Try to forget me, and be happy. Too weak to write more. Good-bye.
God----"
At th=
e foot
of this broken and almost illegible letter was scrawled the word,
"ARTHUR."
Angela read it slowly, and then at length the
poison did its work. She did not speak wildly any more, or call upon Arthur;
she was stung back to sense, but all the light went out of her eyes.
"It is his writing," she said, slowl=
y.
"I beg your pardon. It was good of you to nurse him."
Then, pressing the paper to her bosom with one
hand, with the other she groped her way towards the door.
"It is very dark," she said.
Lady Bellamy's eyes gave a flash of triumph, a=
nd
then she stood watching the pitiable exhibition of human misery as curiousl=
y as
ever a Roman matron did an expiring gladiator. When Angela was near the doo=
r,
the letter still pressed against her heart, she spoke again.
"The blow comes from God, Angela, and the
religion and spiritual theories which you believe in will bring you
consolation. Most likely it is a blessing in disguise--a thing that you wil=
l in
time even learn to be thankful for."
Lady Bellamy had overacted her part. The words=
did
not ring true, they jarred upon Mr. Fraser; much more did they jar upon
Angela's torn nerves. Her pale cheek flushed, and she turned and spoke, but
there was no anger in her face, nothing but sorrow that dignified, and unfa=
thomable
love lost in its own depths. Only the eyes seemed as sightless as those of =
one
walking in her sleep.
"When your hour of dreadful trouble comes=
, as
it will come, pray God that there may be none to mock you as you mock me.&q=
uot;
And she turned like a stricken thing, and went slowly out, blindly groping =
her
way along.
Her last words had hit the victor hard. Who can
say what hidden string they touched, or what prescience of evil they awaken=
ed?
But they went nigh to felling her. Clutching the mantel-piece, Lady Bellamy
gasped for air; then, recovering a little, she said:
"Thank God, that is over."
Mr. Fraser scarcely saw this last incident. So
overwhelmed was he at the sight of Angela's agony that he had covered his f=
ace
with his hand. When he lifted it again, Lady Bellamy was gone, and he was a=
lone.
Three months had passed since that awful Chris=
tmas
Day. Angela was heart-broken, and, after the first burst of her despair, tu=
rned
herself to the only consolation which was left her. It was not of this worl=
d.
She did not question the truth of the dreadful=
news
that Lady Bellamy had brought her, and, if ever a doubt did arise in her
breast, a glance at the ring and the letter effectually quelled it. Nor did=
she
get brain-fever or any other illness; her young and healthy frame was too
strong a citadel to be taken out of hand by sorrow. And this to her was one=
of
the most wonderful things in her affliction. It had come and crushed her, a=
nd
life still went on much as before. The sun of her system had fallen, and yet
the system was not appreciably deranged. It was dreadful to her to think th=
at
Arthur was dead, but an added sting lay in the fact that she was not dead t=
oo.
Oh! how glad she would have been to die, since death had become the gate
through which she needs must pass to reach her lover's side.
For it had been given to Angela, living so much
alone, and thinking so long and deeply upon these great mysteries of our be=
ing,
to soar to the heights of a noble faith. To the intense purity of her mind,=
a living
heaven presented itself, a comfortable place, very different from the vague=
and
formularised abstractions with which we are for the most part satisfied; wh=
ere
Arthur and her mother were waiting to greet her, and where the great light =
of
the Godhead would shine around them all. She grew to hate her life, the dull
barrier of the flesh that stood between her and her ends. Still she ate and
drank enough to support it, still dressed with the same perfect neatness as
before, still lived, in short, as though Arthur had not died, and the light=
and
colour had not gone out of her world.
One day--it was in March--she was sitting in M=
r.
Fraser's study reading the "Shakespeare" which Arthur had given to
her, and in the woes of others striving to forget her own. But the attempt
proved a failure; she could not concentrate her thoughts, they would contin=
ually
wander away into space in search of Arthur.
She was dressed in black; from the day that she
heard her lover was dead, she would wear no other colour, and as she gazed,
with her hands idly clasped before her, out at the driving sleet and snow, =
Mr.
Fraser thought that he had never seen statue, picture, or woman of such swe=
et,
yet majestic beauty. But it had been filched from the features of an immort=
al.
The spirit-look which at times had visited her from a child now continually
shone upon her face, and to the sight of sinful men her eyes seemed almost
awful in their solemn calm and purity. She smiled but seldom now, and, when=
she
did, it was in those grey eyes that the radiance began: her features scarce=
ly
seemed to move.
"What are you thinking of, Angela?"<= o:p>
"I am thinking, Mr. Fraser, that it is on=
ly
fourteen weeks to-day since Arthur died, and that it is very likely that I
shall live another forty or fifty years before I see him. I am only twenty-=
one,
and I am so strong. Even this shock has not hurt me."
"Why should you want to die?"
"Because all the beauty and light has gone
out of my life; because I prefer to trust myself into the hands of God rath=
er
than to the tender mercies of the world; because he is there, and I am here,
and I am tired of waiting."
"Have you no fear of death?"
"I have never feared death, and least of =
all
do I fear it now. Why, the veriest coward would not shrink back when the man
she loved was waiting for her. And I am not a coward, and if I were told th=
at I
must die within an hour, I could say, 'How beautiful upon the mountains are=
the
feet of Him that bringeth good tidings, that publisheth peace!' Cannot you
understand me? If all your life and soul were wrapped up in one person, and=
she
died, would you not long to go to her?"
Mr. Fraser made no reply for a while, but in h=
is
turn gazed out at the drifting snow, surely not more immaculately pure than
this woman who could love with so divine a love. At length he spoke.
"Angela, do you know that it is wrong to =
talk
so? You have no right to set yourself up against the decrees of the Almight=
y.
In His wisdom He is working out ends of which you are one of the instrument=
s.
Who are you that you should rebel?"
"No one--a grain, an atom, a wind-tossed =
feather;
but what am I to do with my life, how am I to occupy all the coming
years?"
"With your abilities, that is a question =
easy
to answer. Work, write, take the place in scholastic or social literature w=
hich
I have trained you to fill. For you, fame and fortune lie in an inkstand; y=
our
mind is a golden key that will open to your sight all that is worth seeing =
in
the world, and pass you into its most pleasant places. You can become a fam=
ous
woman, Angela."
She turned upon him sadly.
"I had such ideas; for Arthur's sake I wi=
shed
to do something great; indeed I had already formed a plan. But, Mr. Fraser,
like many another, when I lost my love I lost my ambition too; both lie bur=
ied in
his grave. I have nothing left to work for; I do not care for fame or money=
for
myself, they would only have been valuable to give to him. At twenty-one I =
seem
to have done with the world's rewards and punishments, its blanks and prize=
s,
its satisfactions and desires, even before I have learnt what they are. My
hopes are as dull and leaden as that sky, and yet the sun is behind it. Yes,
that is my only hope, the sun is behind it though we cannot see it. Do not =
talk
to me of ambition, Mr. Fraser. I am broken-spirited, and my only ambition i=
s for
rest, the rest He gives to His beloved----"
"Rest, Angela! that is the cry of us all,=
we
strive for rest, and here we never find it. You suffer, but do not think th=
at
you are alone, everybody suffers in their degree, though perhaps such as yo=
u,
with the nerves of your mind bared to the roughness of the world's weather,=
feel
mental pain the more acutely. But, my dear, there are few really refined men
and women of sensitive organization, who have not at times sent up that pra=
yer
for rest, any rest, even eternal sleep. It is the price they pay for their
refinement. But they are not alone. If the heart's cry of every being who
endures in this great universe could be collected into a single prayer, that
prayer would be, 'Thou who made us, in pity give us rest.'"
"Yes, we suffer, no doubt, all of us, and
implore a peace that does not come. We must learn
"'How black is night when golden day is done, How drear the blindness that h=
ath
seen the sun!'
"You can tell me that; but tell me, you w=
ho
are a clergyman, and stronger to stand against sorrow than I, how can we win
even a partial peace and draw the sting from suffering? If you know a way,
however hard, tell it me, for do you know," and she put her hand to her
head and a vacant look came into her eyes, "I think that if I have to =
endure
much more of the anguish which I sometimes suffer, or get any more shocks, I
shall go mad? I try to look to the future only and to rise superior to my
sorrows, and to a certain extent I succeed, but my mind will not always car=
ry
the strain put upon it, but falls heavily to earth like a winged bird. Then=
it
is that, deprived of its higher food, and left to feed upon its own sadness=
and
to brood upon the bare fact of the death of the man I loved--I sometimes th=
ink,
as men are not often loved--that my spirit almost breaks down. If you can t=
ell
me any cure, anything which will bring me comfort, I shall indeed be gratef=
ul
to you."
"I think I can, Angela. If you will no lo=
nger
devote yourself to study, you have only to look round to find another answe=
r to
your question as to what you are to do? Are there no poor in these parts for
you to visit? Cannot your hands make clothes to cover those who have none? =
Is
there no sickness that you can nurse, no sorrow that you can comfort? I know
that even in this parish there are many homes where your presence would be =
as
welcome as a sunbeam in winter. Remember, Angela, that grief can be selfish=
as
well as pleasure."
"You are right, Mr. Fraser, you always are
right; I think I am selfish in my trouble, but it is a fault that I will tr=
y to
mend. Indeed, to look at it in that light only, my time is of no benefit to
myself, I may as well devote it to others."
"If you do, your labour will bring its own
reward, for in helping others to bear their load you will wonderfully light=
en
your own. Nor need you go far to begin. Why do you not see more of your own
father? You are naturally bound to love him. Yet it is but rarely that you =
speak
to him."
"My father! you know he does not like me,=
my
presence is always a source of irritation to him, he cannot even bear me to
look at him."
"Oh, surely that must be your fancy; prob=
ably
he thinks you do not care about him. He has always been a strange and waywa=
rd
man, I know, but you should remember that he has had bitter disappointments=
in life,
and try to soften him and win him to other thoughts. Do this and you will s=
oon
find that he will be glad enough of your company."
"I will try to do as you say, Mr. Fraser,=
but
I confess I have only small hopes of any success in that direction. Have you
any parish work I can do?"
Nor did the matter end there, as is so often t=
he
case where parish work and young ladies are concerned. Angela set to her
charitable duties with a steady determination that made her services very v=
aluable.
She undertook the sole management of a clothing club, in itself a maddening
thing to ordinary mortals, and had an eye to the distribution of the parish
coals. Of mothers' meetings and other cheerful parochial entertainments, she
became the life and soul. Giving up her mathematics and classical reading, =
she
took to knitting babies' vests and socks instead; indeed, the number of
articles which her nimble fingers turned out in a fortnight was a pleasant
surprise for the cold toes of the babies. And, as Mr. Fraser had prophesied=
, she
found that her labour was of a sort which brought a certain reward.
On one point, however, Angela's efforts failed
completely; she could make no headway with her father. He shrank more than =
ever
from her society, and at last asked her to oblige him by allowing him to fo=
llow
his own path in peace. Of Arthur's death he had never spoken to her, or she=
to
him, but she knew that he had heard of it.
Philip had heard of it thus. On that Christmas
afternoon he had been taking his daily exercise when he met Lady Bellamy
returning from the Abbey House. The carriage stopped, and she got out to sp=
eak
to him.
"Have you been to the Abbey House to pay a
Christmas visit?" he asked. "It is very kind of you to come and s=
ee
us so soon after your return."
"I am the bearer of bad news, so I did not
loiter."
"Bad news! what was it?"
"Mr. Heigham is dead," she answered,
watching his face narrowly.
"Dead, impossible!"
"He died of enteric fever at Madeira. I h=
ave
just been to break the news to Angela."
"Oh, indeed, she will be pained; she was =
very
fond of him, you know."
Lady Bellamy smiled contemptuously.
"Did you ever see any one put to the
extremest torture? If you have, you can guess how your daughter was
'pained.'"
Philip winced.
"Well, I can't help it, it is no affair of
mine. Good-bye," and then, as soon as she was out of hearing; "I
wonder if she lies, or if she has murdered him. George must have been putti=
ng
on the screw."
Into the particulars of Arthur Heigham's death=
, or
supposed death, he never inquired. Why should he? It was no affair of his; =
he
had long ago washed his hands of the whole matter, and left things to take =
their
chance. If he was dead, well and good, he was very sorry for him; if he was
alive, well and good also. In that case, he would no doubt arrive on the
appointed date to marry Angela.
But, notwithstanding all this unanswerable
reasoning, he still found it quite impossible to look his daughter in the f=
ace.
Her eyes still burnt him, ay, even more than ever did they burn, for her
widowed dress and brow were agony to him, and rent his heart, not with remo=
rse but
fear. But still his greed kept the upper hand, though death by mental tortu=
re
must result, yet he would glut himself with his desire. More than ever he
hungered for those wide lands which, if only things fell out right, would
become his at so ridiculous a price. Decidedly Arthur Heigham's death was
"no affair of his."
About six weeks before Angela's conversation w=
ith
Mr. Fraser which ended in her undertaking parish work, a rumour had got abo=
ut
that George Caresfoot had been taken ill, very seriously ill. It was said t=
hat
a chill had settled on his lungs, which had never been very strong since his
fever, and that he had, in short, gone into a consumption.
Of George, Angela had neither seen nor heard
anything for some time-- not since she received the welcome letter in which=
he
relinquished his suit. She had, indeed, with that natural readiness of the
human mind to forget unpleasant occurrences, thought but little about him o=
f late,
since her mind had been more fully occupied with other and more pressing
things. Still she vaguely wondered at times if he was really so ill as her
father thought.
One day she was walking home by the path round=
the
lake, after paying a visit to a sick child in the village, when she suddenly
came face to face with her father. She expected that he would as usual pass=
on without
addressing her, and drew to one side of the path to allow him to do so, but=
to
her surprise he stopped.
"Where have you been, Angela?"
"To see Ellen Mim; she is very ill, poor
child."
"You had better be careful; you will be
catching scarlet fever or something--there is a great deal about."
"I am not at all afraid."
"Yes; but you never think that you may br=
ing
it home to me."
"I never thought that there was any
likelihood of my bringing anything to you. We see so little of each
other."
"Well, well, I have been to Isleworth to =
see
your cousin George; he is very ill."
"You told me that he was ill some time ba=
ck.
What is it that is really the matter with him?"
"Galloping consumption. He cannot last
long."
"Poor man, why does he not go to a warmer
climate?"
"I don't know--that is his affair. But it=
is
a serious matter for me. If he dies under present circumstances, all the
Isleworth estates, which are mine by right, must pass away from the family
forever."
"Why must they pass away?"
"Because your grandfather, with a refined
ingenuity, made a provision in his will that George was not to leave them b=
ack
to me, as he was telling me this afternoon he is anxious to do. If he were =
to
die now with a will in my favour, or without any will at all, they would al=
l go
to some far away cousins in Scotland."
"He died of heart-disease, did he not?--my
grandfather, I mean?"
Philip's face grew black as night, and he shot=
a
quick glance of suspicion at his daughter.
"I was saying," he went on, without
answering her question, "that George may sell the land or settle it, b=
ut
must not leave it to me or you, nor can I take under an intestacy."
Angela did not understand these legal intricac=
ies,
and knew about as much about the law of intestacy as she did of Egyptian
inscriptions.
"Well," she said, consolingly, "=
;I
am very sorry, but it can't be helped, can it?"
"The girl is a born fool," muttered
Philip beneath his breath, and passed on.
A week or so afterwards, just when the primros=
es
and Lent-lilies were at the meridian of their beauty and all the air was fu=
ll
of song, Angela heard more about her cousin George. Mr. Fraser was one day =
sent
for to Isleworth; Lady Bellamy brought him the message, saying that George =
was
in such a state of health that he wished to see a clergyman.
"I never saw a worse case," he said =
to
Angela on his return. "He does not leave the house, but lies in a dark=
ened
room coughing and spitting blood. He is, I should say, going off fast; but =
he
refuses to see a doctor. His frame of mind, however, is most Christian, and=
he
seems to have reconciled himself to the prospect of a speedy release."=
"Poor man!" said Angela sympathetica=
lly;
"he sent and asked to see you, did he not?"
"Well--yes; but when I got there he talked
more about the things of this world than of the next. He is greatly distres=
sed
about your father. I daresay you have heard how your cousin George supplant=
ed your
father in the succession to the Isleworth estates. Your grandfather
disinherited him, you know, because of his marriage with your mother. Now t=
hat
he is dying, he sees the injustice of this, but is prevented by the terms of
your grandfather's will from restoring the land to your branch of the famil=
y,
so it must pass to some distant cousins--at least, so I understand the
matter."
"You always told me that it is easy to dr=
ive
a coach and four through wills and settlements and legal things. If he is so
anxious to do so, can he not find a way out of the difficulty--I mean, some
honourable way?"
"No, I believe not, except an impossible
one," and Mr. Fraser smiled a rather forced smile.
"What is that?" asked Angela careles=
sly.
"Well, that he should--should marry you before he dies. At least, you know, he s=
ays
that that is the only way in which he could legally transfer the estates.&q=
uot;
Angela started and turned pale.
"Then I am afraid the estates will never =
be
transferred. How would that help him?"
"Well, he says he could then enter into a
nominal sale of the estates to your father and settle the money on you.&quo=
t;
"And why could he not do this without
marrying me?"
"I don't know, I don't understand much ab=
out
these things, I am not a business man; but it is impossible for some reason=
or
another. But of course it is absurd. Good night, my dear. Don't overdo it in
the parish."
Another week passed without any particular new=
s of
George's illness, except that he was getting weaker, when one day Lady Bell=
amy
appeared at the Abbey House, where she had not been since that dreadful Chr=
istmas
Day. Angela felt quite cold when she saw her enter, and her greeting was as
cold as herself.
"I hope that you bring me no more bad
news," she said.
"No, Angela, except that your cousin Geor=
ge
is dying, but that is scarcely likely to distress you."
"I am sorry."
"Are you? There is no particular reason w=
hy
you should be. You do not like him."
"No, I do not like him."
"It is a pity though, because I have come=
to
ask you to marry him."
"Upon my word, Lady Bellamy, you seem to =
be
the chosen messenger of everything that is wretched. Last time you came to =
this
house it was to tell me of dear Arthur's death, and now it is to ask me to
marry a man whom I detest. I thought that I had told both you and him that =
I will
not marry him. I have gone as near marrying as I ever mean to in this
world."
"Really, Angela, you are most unjust to m=
e.
Do you suppose that it was any pleasure to me to have such a sad duty to
perform? However, it is refreshing to hear you talk so vigorously. Clearly =
the
loss of your lover has not affected your spirits."
Angela winced beneath the taunt, but made no
reply.
"But, if you will condescend to look at t=
he
matter with a single grain of common-sense, you will see that circumstances
have utterly changed since you refused to marry George. Then, Mr. Heigham w=
as
alive, poor fellow, and then, too, George wanted to marry you as a wife, no=
w he
is merely anxious to marry you that he may be enabled to make reparation to
your father. He is a fast-dying man. You would never be his wife except in
name. The grave would be his only marriage-bed. Do you not understand the
difference?"
"Perfectly, but do you =
span>not
understand that whether in deed or in name I cannot outrage my dead Arthur's
memory by being for an hour the wife of that man? Do you =
span>not
know that the marriage service requires a woman to swear to 'Love, honour, =
and
obey,' till death parts, whether it be a day or a lifetime away? Can I, eve=
n as
a mere form, swear to love when I loathe, honour when I despise, obey when =
my
whole life would rise in rebellion against obedience! What are these estate=
s to
me that I should do such violence to my conscience and my memories? Estates=
, of
what use are they to one whose future lies in the wards of a hospital or a
sisterhood? I will have nothing to do with this marriage, Lady Bellamy.&quo=
t;
"Well, I must say, Angela, you do not make
much ado about ruining your father to gratify your own sentimental whims. It
must be a comfortable thing to have children to help one in one's old
age."
Angela reflected on Mr. Fraser's words about h=
er
duty to her father, and for the second time that day she winced beneath Lady
Bellamy's taunt; but, as she returned no answer, her visitor had no alterna=
tive
but to drop the subject and depart.
Before she went, however, she had a few words =
with
Philip, urging the serious state of George's health and the terms of his
grandfather's will, which prevented him from leaving the estates to himself=
, as
a reason why he should put pressure on Angela. Somewhat, but not altogether=
to
her surprise, he refused in these terms:
"I don't know to what depths you have gon=
e in
this business, and it is no affair of mine to inquire, but I have kept to my
share of the bargain and I expect you to keep to yours. If you can bring ab=
out
the marriage with George, well or ill, on the terms I have agreed upon with
him, I shall throw no obstacle in the way; but as for my trying to force An=
gela
into it, I should never take the responsibility of doing so, nor would she
listen to me. If she speaks to me on the subject I shall point out how the
family will be advantaged, and leave the matter to her. Further I will not
go."
Three days after her conversation with Lady
Bellamy, Angela received the following letter:--
"Isleworth Hall, Roxham, May 2.
"=
;Dear
Cousin Angela,
"=
;My
kind and devoted friend, Lady Bellamy, has told me that she has spoken to you on a subject which is ver=
y near
to my heart, and that you have
distinctly declined to have anything to do with it. Of course I know that the matter lies
entirely within your own discreti=
on,
but I still venture to lay the following points before you. There have, I am aware, been some =
painful
passages between us --passages wh=
ich,
under present circumstances, had much better be forgotten. So, first, I ask you to put =
them
quite out of your mind, and to ju=
dge of
what I have to propose from a very different point of view.
"=
;I
write, Angela, to ask you to marry me it is true (since, unfortunately, my health will not allow=
me to
ask you in person), but it is a v=
ery
different offer from that which I made you in the lane when you so bitterly refused me. N=
ow I
am solely anxious that the marria=
ge
should take place in order that I may be enabled to avoid the stringent provisions of your
grandfather's will, which, whilst
forbidding me to leave these estates back to your father or his issue, fortunately does not forbid a
fictitious sale and the settlemen=
t of
the sum, or otherwise. But I will not trouble you with these legal details.
"=
;In
short, I supplanted your father in youth, and I am now anxious to make every reparation in my power, a=
nd at
present I am quite unable to make=
any.
Independently of this, it pains me to think of the estate passing away from the old st=
ock,
and I should like to know that yo=
u, who
have been the only woman whom I have felt true affection for, will one day come into
possession of it. Of course, as y=
ou
understand, the marriage would be =
nothing
but a form , and if, as I am told=
, you
object to its being gone through with the ceremonies of the Church, it could be m=
ade
equally legal at a registry offic=
e.
"=
;But
please understand, Angela, that I do not wish to press you: it is for you to judge. Only you must judge
quickly, for I am a fast- dying m=
an,
and am anxious to get this matter off my mind one way or other, in order that I may be able t=
o give
it fully to the consideration of =
subjects
of more vital importance to one in my condition, than marrying and giving in
marriage.
"Ever, dear cou=
sin
Angela, "Af=
fectionately
yours, =
span>"George
Caresfoot."
"P.S.--Remember you have your fathe=
r to
consider in this matter as well as
yourself."
The r=
eceipt
of this letter plunged Angela into the greatest distress of mind. It was
couched in a tone so courteous and so moderate that it carried with it
conviction of its sincerity and truth. If she only had been concerned, she
would not long have hesitated, but the idea of her duty to her father rose =
up
before her like a cloud. What was her true duty under the circumstances? th=
ere
was the rub!
She took the letter to Mr. Fraser and asked his
advice. He read it carefully, and thought a long while before he answered. =
The
idea of Angela being united to anybody in marriage, even as a matter of for=
m, was
naturally abominable to him, but he was far too honourable and conscientiou=
s a
man to allow his personal likes or dislikes to interfere with whatever he
considered to be his duty. But in the end he found it impossible to give any
fixed opinion.
"My dear," he said, "all that I=
can
suggest is that you should take it to your father and hear what he has got =
to
say. After all, it is he who must have your true welfare most at heart. It =
was
into his hands that I heard your mother, in peculiarly solemn words, consign
you and your interests. Take it to your father, dear, there is no counsel l=
ike that
of a father."
Had Mr. Fraser been the father, this would,
doubtless, have been true enough. But though he had known him for so many
years, and was privy to much of his history, he did not yet understand Phil=
ip
Caresfoot. His own open and guileless nature did not easily suspect evil in=
another,
more especially when that other was the father of her whom he looked upon as
the earthly incarnation of all that was holy and pure.
Angela sighed and obeyed--sighed from doubt,
obeyed from duty. She handed the letter to Philip without a word--without a
word he read it.
"I want your opinion, father," she s=
aid.
"I wish to do what is right. You know how painful what has happened has
been for me. You know--or, if you do not know, you must have guessed--how
completely shattered my life is. As for this marriage, the whole thing is
repugnant to me; personally, I had rather sacrifice fifty properties than go
through it, but I know that I ought to think of others. Mr. Fraser tells me=
that
it is my duty to consult you, that you will naturally have my interest most=
at
heart, that it was into your hands and to your care that my mother consigne=
d me
on her deathbed. Father"--and she clasped her hands and looked him ful=
l in
the face with her earnest eyes--"Mr. Fraser is right, it must be for y=
ou
to decide. I will trust you entirely, and leave the burden of decision to y=
our
honour and generosity; only I say, spare me if you can."
Philip rose and went to look out of the window,
that he might hide the evident agitation of his face and the tremor of his
limbs. He felt that the crucial moment had come. All his poor sophistry, all
his miserable shuffling and attempts to fix the responsibility of his acts =
on
others, had recoiled upon his own head. She had come to him and laid the bu=
rden
on his heart. What should he answer? For a moment the shades--for with him =
they
were only shades--of good angels gained the upper hand, and he was about to
turn and look her in the face--for then he felt he could have looked her in=
the
face--and bid her have nothing to do with George and his proposals. But, ev=
en
in the act of turning to obey the impulse, his eyes fell upon the roof of
Isleworth Hall, which, standing on an eminence, could easily be seen from t=
he Abbey
House, and his mind, quicker than the eye, flew to the outlook place upon t=
hat
roof where he had so often climbed as a boy, and surveyed the fair champaign
country beyond it; meadow and wood, fallow and cornland, all of which were =
for
him involved in that answer. He did not stop turning, but--so quick is the
working of the mind--he changed the nature of his answer. The real presence=
of
the demon of greed chased away the poor angelic shadows.
"It would not be much of a sacrifice for =
you,
Angela, to go through this form; he is a dying man, and you need not even
change your name. The lands are mine by right, and will be yours. It will b=
reak
my heart to lose them, after all these years of toiling to save enough to b=
uy them.
But I do not wish to force you. In short, I leave the matter to your
generosity, as you would have left it to mine."
"And suppose that I were to marry my cous=
in
George, and he were not to die after all, what would be my position then? Y=
ou
must clearly understand that, to save us all from starvation, I would never=
be
his wife."
"You need not trouble yourself with the
question. He is a dead man; in two months' time he will be in the family
vault."
She bowed her head and left him--left him with=
his
hot and glowing greed, behind which crept a terror.
Next morning, George Caresfoot received the
following letter:
"Bratham Abbey, May 5.
"=
;Dear
Cousin George,
"=
;In
reply to your letter, I must tell you that I am willing to go through the form of marriage with you--=
at a
registry-office, not in church--in
order to enable you to carry out the property arrangements you wish to make. You must,
however, clearly understand that =
I do
not do this on my own account, but simply and solely to benefit my father, who ha=
s left
the matter to my 'generosity.' I =
must
ask you as a preliminary step to make a copy of and sign the enclosed letter address=
ed to
me. Our lives are in the hand of =
God,
and it is possible that you might be restored to health. In such an event, however impro=
bable
it may seem, it cannot be made too
plain that I am not, and have never in any sense undertaken to be, your wife.
"Truly yours, =
span>"Angela
Caresfoot."
The
enclosure ran as follows:
"I, George Caresfoot, hereby solemn=
ly
promise before God that under no
possible circumstance will I attempt to avail myself of any rights over my cousin, Angela Caresfoot=
, and
that I will leave her as soon as =
the formal
ceremony is concluded, and never again attempt to see her except by her own wi=
sh;
the so-called marriage being only
contemplated in order to enable me to carry out certain business arrangements which, in view of=
the
failing state of my health, I am
anxious to enter into."
This =
letter
and its curious enclosure, surely the oddest marriage contract which was ev=
er
penned, George, trembling with excitement, thrust into the hands of Lady
Bellamy. She read them with a dark smile.
"The bird is springed," she said,
quietly. "It has been a close thing, but I told you that I should not
fail, as I have warned you of what will follow your success. Sign this
paper--this waste-paper--and return it."
By return of post Angela received her strange
agreement, duly copied and signed, and after this the preparations for the
marriage went on rapidly. But where such a large transaction is concerned as
the sale of between three and four thousand acres of land, copyhold and fre=
ehold,
together with sundry rent-charges and the lordship of six manors, things ca=
nnot
be done in a minute.
Both George and Philip and their respective
lawyers--Sir John would have nothing to do with the matter--did their best =
to
expedite matters, but unfortunately some legal difficulty arose in connecti=
on with
the transfer, and who can hurry the ponderous and capricious machinery of t=
he
law?
At length it became clear to all concerned, ex=
cept
Angela, that it would be impossible for the marriage to take place before t=
he
eighth of June, and it also became clear that that was the last possible da=
y on
which it could take place. George begged Philip (by letter, being too ill to
come and see him) to allow the marriage to be gone through with at once, and
have the business transactions finished afterwards. But to this Philip would
not consent; the title-deeds, he said, must be in his possession before it =
took
place, otherwise he would have no marriage. George had therefore no option =
but
to accept his terms.
When Angela was told of the date fixed for the
ceremony--she would not allow the word marriage to be mentioned in connecti=
on
with it--she at first created considerable consternation by quietly announc=
ing
that she would not have it performed until the tenth of June. At last, howe=
ver,
when matters were growing serious, and when she had treated all the pressure
that it was possible to put upon her with quiet indifference--for, as usual,
her father declined to interfere, but contented himself with playing a stri=
ctly
passive part--she suddenly of her own mere motion, abolished the difficulty=
by
consenting to appear before the registrar on the eighth of June, as George
wished.
Her reasons for having objected to this date in
the first instance will be easily guessed. It was the day before the
anniversary of Arthur's departure, an anniversary which it was her fancy to
dedicate solely to his memory. But as the delay appeared--though she could =
not altogether
understand why--to put others to great inconvenience, and as George's state=
of
health had become such as to render postponement, even for a couple of days=
of
doubtful expediency, and as, moreover, she decided on reflection that she c=
ould
better give her thoughts to her dead lover when she had gone through with t=
he
grim farce that hung over her, she suddenly changed her mind.
Occasionally they brought her documents to sig=
n,
and she signed them without a question, but on the whole she treated the af=
fair
with considerable apathy, the truth being that it was repugnant to her mind,
which she preferred to occupy with other and very different thoughts. So she
let it go. She knew that she was going to do a thing which was dreadful to =
her,
because she believed it to be her duty, but she comforted herself with the
reflection that she was amply secured against all possible contingencies by=
her
previous agreement with George. Angela's knowledge of the marriage-law of h=
er
country and of what constituted a legal document was not extensive.
For this same reason, because it was distastef=
ul,
she had never said anything of her contemplated marriage to Pigott, and it =
was
quite unknown in the neighbourhood. Since the Miss Lee scandal and his cons=
equent
disinheritance, nobody had visited Philip Caresfoot, and those who took
interest in him or his affairs were few. Indeed the matter had been kept a =
dead
secret. But on the seventh of June, being the day previous to the ceremony,
Angela went down to her nurse's cottage and told her what was about to be d=
one,
suppressing, however, from various motives, all mention of her agreement wi=
th
George. It added to her depression to find that Pigott was unaccountably di=
sturbed
at the news.
"Well, miss," she said,--"Lord,=
to
think that I sha'n't be able to call you that no longer--I haven't got noth=
ing
in particular to say agin it, seeing that sure enough the man's a-dying, as=
I
has on good authority from my own aunt's cousin, her that does the servants=
' washing
up at the Hall, and mighty bad she does it, begging of her pardon for the
disparagement, and so he won't trouble you for long, and somehow it do seem=
as
though you hadn't got no choice left in the matter, just as though everybody
and everything was a-quietly pushing you into it. But, miss, somehow I don't
like it, to be plain; a marriage as ain't no marriage ain't altogether natu=
ral
like, and in an office, too, along with a man as you would not touch with a
pair of tongs, and that man on his last leg. I'm right down sorry if I make=
s you
feel uncomfortable, dearie; but, bless me, I don't know how it is, but, whe=
n a
thing sticks in my mind, I'm as bound to hawk it up as though it were a bon=
e in
my throat."
"I don't like it any more than you do, nu=
rse,
but perhaps you don't understand all about the property being concerned, and
about its having to pass away from my father, if I don't do this. I care
nothing about the property, but he left it to 'my generosity!' Arthur is de=
ad; and
he left it to 'my generosity,' nurse. What could I do?"
"Well, miss, you're acting according to w=
hat
you thinks right and due to your father, which is more nor I does; and poor,
dead Mr. Arthur up in Heaven there will make a note of that, there ain't no
manner of doubt. And somehow it do seem that things can't be allowed to go
wrong with you, my dear, seeing how you're a-sacrificing of yourself and of=
your
wishes to benefit others."
This conversation did not tend to put Angela i=
nto
better spirits, but she felt that it was now too late to recede.
Whilst Angela was talking to Pigott, Sir John =
and
Lady Bellamy were paying a call at Isleworth. They found George lying on the
sofa in the dining-room, in which, though it was the first week in June, a =
fire
was burning on the hearth. He bore all the signs of a man in the last stage=
of
consumption. The hollow cough, the emaciation, and the hectic hue upon his =
face,
all spoke with no uncertain voice.
"Well, Caresfoot, you scarcely look like a
bridegroom, I must say," said little Sir John, looking as pleased as
though he had made an eminently cheerful remark.
"No, but I am stronger than I look; marri=
age
will cure me."
"Humph! will it? Then you will be signally
fortunate."
"Don't croak, Bellamy. I am happy
to-day--there is fire dancing along my veins. Just think, this time to-morr=
ow
Angela will be my legal wife!"
"Well, you appear to have given a good pr=
ice
for the privilege, if what Anne tells me is correct. To sell the Isleworth
estates for fifty thousand, is to sell them for a hundred and fifty thousand
less than they are worth. Consequently, the girl costs you a hundred and fi=
fty thousand
pounds--a long figure that for one girl."
"Bah! you are a cold-blooded fellow, Bell=
amy.
Can't you understand that there is a positive delight in ruining oneself for
the woman one loves? And then, think how she will love me, when she comes t=
o understand
what she has cost me. I can see her now. She will come and kiss me--mind yo=
u,
kiss me of her own free will--and say, 'George, you are a noble fellow; Geo=
rge,
you are a lover that any woman may be proud of; no price was too heavy for
you.' Yes, that is what she will say, that sort of thing, you know."
Sir John's merry little eye twinkled with
inexpressible amusement, and his wife's full lips curled with unutterable
contempt.
"You are counting your kisses before they=
are
paid for," she said. "Does Philip come here this afternoon to sign
the deeds?"
"Yes; they are in the next room. Will you
come and see them?"
"Yes, I will. Will you come, John?"<= o:p>
"No, thank you. I don't wish to be treate=
d to
any more of your ladyship's omens. I have long ago washed my hands of the w=
hole
business. I will stop here and read the <=
/span>Times
."
They went out, George leaning on Lady Bellamy's
arm.
No sooner had they gone than Sir John put down=
the
Times , and listened intently. The=
n he
rose, and slipped the bolt of that door which opened into the hall, thereby
halving his chances of interruption. Next, listening at every step, his rou=
nd
face, which was solemn enough now, stretched forward, and looking for all t=
he
world like that of some whiskered puss advancing on a cream-jug, he crept o=
n tiptoe
to the iron safe in the corner of the room. Arrived there, he listened agai=
n,
and then drew a little key from his pocket, and inserted it in the lock; it
turned without difficulty.
"Beau-ti-ful," murmured Sir John;
"but now comes the rub." Taking another key, he inserted it in the
lock of the subdivision. It would not turn. "One more chance," he
said, as he tried a second. "Ah!" and open came the lid. Rapidly =
he
extracted two thick bundles of letters. They were in Lady Bellamy's
handwriting. Then he relocked the subdivision, and the safe itself, and put=
the
keys away in his trousers and the packets in his coat-tail pockets, one in
each, that they might not bulge suspiciously. Next he unbolted the door, an=
d, returning,
gave way to paroxysms of exultation too deep for words.
"At last," he said, stretching his f=
at
little fist towards the room where George was with Lady Bellamy, "at l=
ast,
after twenty years of waiting, you are in my power, my lady. Time has brought its revenge, and if before you a=
re
forty-eight hours older you do not make acquaintance with a bitterness worse
than death, then my name is not John Bellamy. I will repay you every jot, a=
nd
with interest, too, my lady!"
Then he calmed himself, and, ringing a bell, t=
old
the servant to tell Lady Bellamy that he had walked on home. When, an hour =
and
a half later, she reached Rewtham House, she found that her husband had bee=
n suddenly
summoned to London on a matter of business.
That night in her desolation Angela cast herse=
lf
upon the floor with outstretched arms and wept for her dead lover, and for =
the
shame which overshadowed her. And the moon travelling up the sky, struck he=
r, shining
coldly on her snowy robe and rounded form--glinting on the stormy gold of h=
er
loosed hair--flooding all the room with light: till the white floor gleamed
like a silver shrine, and she lay there a weeping saint. Then she rose and
crept to such rest as utter weariness of body and mind can give.
All that night, too, George Caresfoot paced,
hungry-eyed, up and down, up and down the length of his great room, his gaze
fixed on the windows which commanded Bratham, like that of some caged tiger=
on
a desired prey.
"To-morrow," he kept muttering; till=
the
first ray of the rising sun fell blood-red upon his wasted form, and then,
bathing his thin hands in its beams, he sank down exhausted, crying exultin=
gly,
"not to-morrow, but to-day .&=
quot;
That night Lady Bellamy sat at an open window,
rising continually to turn her dark eyes upon the starry heavens above her.=
"It is of no use," she said at last,
"my knowledge fails me, my calculations are baffled by a quantity I ca=
nnot
trace. I am face to face with a combination that I cannot solve. Let me try
once more! Ah, supposing that the unknown quantity is a directing will whic=
h at
the crisis shatters laws, and overrides even the immutability of the unchan=
ging
stars! I have heard of such a thing. Let me change the positions of our
opposing planets, and then, see, it would all be clear as day. George vanis=
hes,
that I knew before. She sails triumphant through overshadowing influences
towards a silver sky. And I, is it death that awaits me? No, but some great
change; there the pale light of my fading star would fall into her bright
track. Bah, my science fails, I can no longer prophesy. My knowledge only t=
ells
me of great events, of what use is such knowledge as that? Well, come what =
may,
fate will find one spirit that does not fear him. As for this," and she
pointed towards the symbols and calculations, "I have done with it.
Henceforth I will devote myself to the only real powers which can enlighten=
us.
Yet there is humiliation in failure after so many years of study. It is fol=
ly
to follow a partial truth of which we miss the keynote, though we sometimes
blunder on its harmonies."
The arrangement for the morrow was that Angela=
and
her father were to take a fly to Roxham, where the registry office was, and
whither George was also to be conveyed in a close carriage; that the ceremo=
ny was
then to be gone through, after which the parties were to separate and retur=
n to
their respective homes. Mr. Fraser had been asked to attend, but had excused
himself from doing so.
In pursuance of this programme, Angela and her
father left the Abbey House about ten o'clock and drove in silence to the t=
own.
Strange as it may seem, Angela had never been in a town before, and, in the=
curious
condition of her mind, the new sight of busy streets interested her greatly,
and served to divert her attention till they reached the door of the office.
She alighted and was shown with Philip into a waiting-room. And here, for s=
ome
unexplained reason, a great fear took hold of her, a terror of this ceremony
which now loomed large and life-like before her.
"Father," she said, suddenly, after a
moment of irresolution, "I am going home. I will not go on with this
business."
"What can you mean, Angela?"
"I mean what I say. I never realized how
dreadful it all was till now; it has come upon me like a revelation. Come, =
I am
going."
"Angela, don't be a fool. You forget that
George will be here in a minute, and that the settlements are all signed.&q=
uot;
"Then he can go back again and the
settlements can be torn up. I will not go on with it."
Philip was by this time almost beside himself =
with
anxiety. After having thus with thought and toil, and by the aid of a bless=
ed
chance, lifted this delicious cup to his lips, was it to be dashed from him=
? Were
the sweet dreams so near approaching to realization, in which he had been
wrapped for so many days, all to be dissipated into thin air? Was he to lose
the land after all, after he had fingered--oh! how lovingly--the yellow
title-deeds? For, alas! the sale depended on the marriage. It could not be,
neither fate nor Angela could be so cruel. He turned upon her with the bold=
ness
of despair.
"Angela, you must not go on like this, af=
ter
having agreed to the thing of your own free will. Think of what it involves=
for
me. If you refuse to marry him now at the last moment, I shall lose the
Isleworth estates. Heavens, to think that so much property should be depend=
ent upon
the mere whim of a girl! Cannot you have a little consideration for others
beside yourself? Do you really mean to sacrifice the hopes of my whole life=
, to
throw away the only opportunity I can ever have of righting my wrongs, in o=
rder
to gratify a sentimental whim? For God's sake, think a little first before =
you
sacrifice me. You promised to do it."
Never before had Angela seen her father so
strongly excited; he was positively shaking with agitation. She looked at h=
im
steadily, and with such contempt that, even in his excitement, he quailed
before her.
"Very well, then, I will carry out my
promise, dreadful as it is to me; but remember that it is only because you =
beg
it, and that the responsibility of its consequences must always remain with
you. Now, are you satisfied?--you will get your land."
Philip's dark face assumed a look of fervent
gratitude, but before he had time to reply, a messenger came to say that
"the gentleman" was waiting.
Her resolve once taken, Angela followed him wi=
th
an untroubled face into the room where the registrar, a gentleman neatly
dressed in black, was sitting at a sort of desk. Here the first thing her
glance fell upon was the person of George Caresfoot. Although it was now th=
e second
week in June, he wore a respirator over his mouth and a scarf round his nec=
k,
and coughed very much. These were the first things she noticed. The next was
that he was much thinner, so thin that the cheek-bones stood out from the l=
evel
of his face, whilst the little blood-shot eyes seemed to protrude, giving to
his general appearance, even with the mouth (his worst feature) hidden by t=
he
respirator, an unusually repulsive look. He was leaning on the arm of Lady
Bellamy, who greeted Angela with a smile which the latter fancied had somet=
hing
of triumph in it.
With the exception of the messenger, who played
the part of clerk in this civil ceremony, there was nobody else in the room=
. No
greetings were interchanged, and in another moment Angela was standing, dre=
ssed
in her funeral black, by George's side before the registrar, and the ceremo=
ny
had begun.
But from that moment, although her beautiful f=
ace
preserved its composure, she scarcely saw or heard anything of what was goi=
ng
on. It was as though all the streams of thought in her brain had burst thei=
r banks
and mingled in a great and turbulent current. She was filled with thought, =
but
could seize upon no one idea, whilst within her mind she heard a sound as of
the continuous whirring of broken machinery.
Objects and individuals, real and imagined,
presented themselves before her mental vision, expanded till they filled the
heavens with their bulk, and then shrank and shrank, and vanished into noth=
ing.
The word "wife" struck upon her ears, and seemed to go wailing aw=
ay, "wife,
wife, wife," through all the illimitable halls of sound, till they were
filled with echoes, and sound itself fell dead against the silence of the
stars.
It was done. She awoke to find herself a marri=
ed
woman. Lady Bellamy stepped forward with the same half-triumphant smile with
which she had greeted Angela hovering about her lips.
"Let me congratulate you, Mrs. Caresfoot," she said; "indeed,=
I think
I am privileged to do so, for, if I remember right, I was the first to prop=
hesy
this happy event;" and then, dropping her voice so that Angela alone c=
ould
hear her, "Do you not remember that I told you that you would as certa=
inly
come to the altar rails within nine months with George Caresfoot as you wou=
ld
to your death-bed? I said that nine months ago to-day."
Angela started as though she had been stung.
"Events have been too strong for me,"
she murmured; "but all this is nothing but a form, a form that can now=
be
forgotten."
Again Lady Bellamy smiled as she answered,
"Oh, of course, Mrs. Caresfoot, nothing b=
ut a
form."
Angela's eye fell upon the ring on her finger.=
She
tore it off.
"Take this back," she said, "I =
have
done with it."
"A married woman must wear a ring, Mrs.
Caresfoot."
She hurled it upon the floor.
Just then George and Philip returned from a li=
ttle
back-room where they had been with the registrar, who still remained behind=
, to
sign the certificate. George advanced upon his wife with a dreadful smile on
his features, removing the respirator as he came. His object was to kiss he=
r,
but she divined it and caught her father by the arm.
"Father," she said, "protect me
from this man."
"Protect you, Angela; why, he is your
husband!"
"My husband! Have you all agreed to drive=
me
mad?"
Lady Bellamy saw that if something were not do=
ne
quickly, there would be a shocking scene, which was the last thing she want=
ed,
so she seized George and whispered in his ear, after which he followed her =
sulkily,
turning round from time to time to look at Angela.
On her way from Roxham, Lady Bellamy stopped h=
er
carriage at the telegraph office and went in and wrote a telegram.
"I respect that woman, and she shall have=
her
chance," she said, as she re-read it previous to handing it to the cle=
rk.
Three hours later Mildred Carr received the
following message at Madeira:
"From A. B. to Mrs. Carr, Quinta Ca=
rr,
Madeira:
"Angela C. married her cousin G. C.=
this
morning."
That =
night
Lady Bellamy dined at Isleworth with George Caresfoot. The dinner passed ov=
er
in almost complete silence; George was evidently plunged in thought, and co=
uld
not eat, though he drank a good deal. Lady Bellamy ate and thought too. Aft=
er
the servants had gone, she began to speak.
"I want my price, George," she said.=
"What do you mean?"
"I mean what I say. You are now Angela
Caresfoot's husband; give me back those letters as you promised, I am impat=
ient
to break my chains." He hesitated. "George," she said, in a
warning voice, "do not dare to play with me; I warn you that your power
over me is not what it used to be. Give me back those letters. I have done =
your
wicked work for you and will have my pay."
"All right, Anne, and so you shall; when =
will
you have them?"
"Now, this instant."
"But I have not got my keys."
"You forget your keys are on your
watch-chain."
"Ah, to be sure, so they are. You won't t=
urn
round on me when you get them, will you, Anne?"
"Why should I turn on you? I wish to get =
the
letters, and, if I can, to have done with you."
He went with a somewhat hesitating step to the
iron safe in the corner of the room and opened it. The he opened the
subdivision and rummaged about there for a while. At last he looked up.
"It is very curious, Anne," he said,=
in
a half-frightened voice, "but I can't find them."
"George, give me those letters."
"I can't find them, Anne, I can't find th=
em.
If you don't believe me, come and look for yourself. Somebody must have tak=
en
them."
She advanced and did as he said. It was evident
that the letters were not there.
"Once before when you were ill you hid th=
em.
Where have you hidden them now?"
"I haven't hidden them, Anne; I haven't,
indeed."
She turned slowly and looked him full in the e= yes. Her own face was ashy pale with fury, but she said never a word. Her silence was more terrible than words. Then she raised her hands and covered her eye= s for a while. Presently she dropped them, and said, in a singularly soft voice,<= o:p>
"It is over now."
"What do you mean?" he asked, fearfu=
lly,
for she terrified him.
"I mean a great deal, George Caresfoot. I
mean that something has snapped the bond which bound me to you. I mean that=
I
no longer fear you, that I have done with you. Use your letters, if you wil=
l,
you can harm me no more; I have passed out of the region of your influence,=
out
of the reach of your revenge. I look on you now and wonder what the link was
between us, for there was a mysterious link. That I cannot tell. But this I=
can
tell you. I have let go your hand, and you are going to fall down a great
precipice, George, a precipice of which I cannot see the foot. Yes, it is r=
ight
that you should cower before me now; I have cowered before you for more than
twenty years. You made me what I am. I am going into the next room now till=
my
carriage comes, I did not order it till half-past ten. Do not follow me. Bu=
t before
I go I will tell you something, and you know I do not make mistakes. You wi=
ll
never sleep under this roof again, George Caresfoot, and we shall not meet
again alive. You have had a long day, but your hour has struck."
"Who told you that, woman?" he asked,
furiously.
"Last night I read it in the stars, to-ni=
ght
I read it in your face."
And again she looked at him, long and steadily=
, as
he crouched in the chair before her, and then slowly left the room.
After awhile he roused himself, and began to d=
rink
wine furiously.
"Curse her," he said, as the fumes
mounted into his brain, "curse her, she is trying to frighten me with =
her
infernal magic, but she sha'n't. I know what she is at; but I will be
beforehand with her." And, staggering under the mingled influence of d=
rink
and excitement, he rose and left the house.
Lady Bellamy sat in the drawing-room, and wait=
ed
for her carriage; at last she heard the wheels upon the gravel. Then she ro=
se,
and rapidly did something to the great lamp upon the paper-strewn table. As=
she
shut the door she turned.
"That will do," she said.
In the hall she met the servant coming to anno=
unce
the carriage.
"Is your master still in the
dining-room?" she asked.
"No, my lady."
She laughed a little, and civilly bade the man
good-night.
Outside the door of the registry-office, Angela
and her father had to make their way through a crowd of small boys, who had=
by
some means or other found out that a wedding was going on inside, and stood
waiting there, animated by the intention of cheering the bride and the cert=
ain hope
of sixpences. But when they saw Angela, her stately form robed in black, and
her sweet face betraying the anguish of her mind, the sight shocked their s=
ense
of the fitness of things, and they slipped off without a word. Indeed, a
butcher's boy, with a turn for expressive language, remarked in indignation=
to
another of his craft so soon as they had recovered their spirits.
"Call that a weddin', Bill; why, it's more
like a--funeral with the plumes off; and as for the gal, though she's a
'clipper,' her face was as pale as a 'long 'un's.'"
Angela never quite knew how she got back to the
Abbey House. She only remembered that she was by herself in the fly, her fa=
ther
preferring to travel on the box alone with the coachman. Nor could she ever
quite remember how she got through the remainder of that day. She was quite=
mazed.
But at length it passed, and the night came, and she was thankful for the
night.
About nine o'clock she went up to her bedroom =
at
the top of the house. It had served as a nursery for many generations of
Caresfoots; indeed, during the last three centuries, hundreds of little feet
had pattered over the old worm-eaten boards. But the little feet had long s=
ince
gone to dust, and the only signs of children's play and merriment left about
the place were the numberless scratches, nicks, and letters cut in the old
panelling, and even on the beams which supported the low ceiling.
It was a lonesome room for a young girl, or,
indeed, for anybody whose nerves were not of the strongest. Nobody slept up=
on
that floor or in the rooms beneath it, Philip occupying a little closet whi=
ch
joined his study on the ground floor. All the other rooms were closed, and =
tenanted
only by rats that made unearthly noises in their emptiness. As for Jakes and
his wife, the only servants on the place, they occupied a room over the
washhouse, which was separate from the main building. Angela was therefore
practically alone in a great house, and might have been murdered a dozen ti=
mes
over without the fact being discovered for hours. This did not, however,
trouble her much, simply because she paid no heed to the noises in the hous=
e,
and was singularly free from fear of any kind.
On reaching her room, she sat down and began to
think of Arthur, and, as she thought, her mind grew clearer and more at pea=
ce.
Indeed, it seemed to her that her dead lover was near, and as though she co=
uld distinguish
pulsations of thought which came from him, impinging on her system, and
bringing his presence with them. It is a common sensation, and occurs to ma=
ny
people of sensitive organization when asleep or thinking on some one with w=
hom
they are in a high state of sympathy, and doubtless indicates some occult
communication. But, as it chanced, it had never before visited Angela in th=
is
form, and she abandoned herself to its influence with delight. It thrilled =
her through
and through.
How long she sat thus she could not tell, but
presently the communication, whatever it was, stopped as suddenly as though=
the
connecting link had been severed. The currents directed by her will would no
longer do her bidding; they could not find their object, or, frighted by so=
me
adverse influence, recoiled in confusion on her brain. Several times she tr=
ied
to renew this subtle intercourse that was so palpable and real, and yet so
different from anything else in the world, but failed. Then she rose, feeli=
ng
very tired, for those who thus draw upon the vital energies must pay the
penalty of exhaustion. She took her Bible and read her nightly chapter, and
then undressed and said her prayers, praying with unusual earnestness that =
it
might please the Almighty in His wisdom to take her to where her lover was.=
Her
prayers done, she rose, put on a white dressing wrapper, and, seating herse=
lf
before the glass, unloosed her hair. Then she began to brush it, pausing
presently to think how Arthur had admired its colour and the ripples on it.=
She
had been much more careful of her hair since then, and smiled sadly to hers=
elf
at her folly for being so.
Thinking thus, she fell into a reverie, and sa=
t so
still that a great grey rat came noiselessly out of his hole in a corner of=
the
room, and, advancing into the circle of light round the dressing-table, sat=
up
on his hind legs to see if he was alone. Suddenly he turned and scuttled ba=
ck
to his hole in evident alarm, and at the same second Angela thought that she
heard a sound of a different character from those she was accustomed to in =
the
old house--a sound like the creaking of a boot. It passed, however, but lef=
t an
indefinable dread creeping over her, and chilling the blood in her veins. S=
he
began to expect something, she knew not what, and was fascinated by the exp=
ectation.
She would have risen to lock the door, but all strength seemed to have left
her; she was paralysed by the near sense of evil. Then came a silence as
intense as it was lonely.
It was a ghastly moment.
Her back was towards the doorway, for her
dressing-table was immediately opposite the door, which was raised some four
feet above the level of the landing, and approached by as many steps.
Gradually her eyes became riveted on the glass
before her, for in it she thought that she saw the door move. Next second, =
she
was sure that it was moving, very slowly; the hinges took an =
age to
turn. What could be behind it? At last it was open, and in the glass Angela=
saw
framed in darkness the head and
shoulders of George Caresfoot . At first she believed that her mind deceived
her, that it was an apparition. No, there was no mistake. But the respirato=
r,
the hollow cough and decrepitude of the morning--where were they?
With horror in her heart, she turned and faced
him. Seeing that he was observed, he staggered into the room with a step wh=
ich
was half drunken and half jaunty, but which belied the conflict of passions=
written
on his brow. He spoke--his voice sounded hoarse and hollow, and was ill-tun=
ed
to his words.
"You did not expect me perhaps--wonder ho=
w I
got here! Jakes let me in; he has got a proper respect for marital rights, =
has
Jakes. You looked so pretty, I could not make up my mind to disturb you. Qu=
ite
a romantic meeting, is it not?"
"You are a dying man. How did you come
here?"
"Dying! my dear wife; not a bit of it. I =
am
no more dying than you are. I have been ill, it is true, but that is only
because you have fretted me so. The dying was only a little ruse to get your
consent. All is fair in love and war, you know; and of course you never rea=
lly believed
in that precious agreement. That was nothing but a bit of maidenly shyness,
eh?"
Angela stood still as a stone, a look of horro=
r on
her face.
"Then you don't know what you have cost m=
e.
Your father's price was a hundred and fifty thousand, at least that is what=
it
came to, the old shark! It isn't every man who would come down like for a g=
irl,
now is it? It shows a generous mind, doesn't it?"
Still she uttered not a syllable.
"Angela," he said, changing his tone=
to
one of hoarse earnestness, "don't look at me like that, because, even =
if
you are a bit put out at the trick I have played you, just think it was bec=
ause
I loved you so much, Angela. I couldn't help it, I couldn't really. It is n=
ot
every man who would go through all that I have gone through for you; it is =
no
joke to sham consumption for three months, I can tell you; but we will have
many a laugh over that. Why don't you answer me, instead of standing there =
just
like the Andromeda in my study?"
The simile was an apt one, the statue of the g=
irl
awaiting her awful fate wore the same hopeless, helpless look of vacant ter=
ror
which was upon Angela's face now. But its mention recalled Lady Bellamy and=
the
ominous incident in which that statue had figured, and he hastened to drown
recollection in action.
"Come," he said, "you will forg=
ive
me, won't you? It was all done for love of you." And he moved towards =
her.
As he came she seemed to collect her energies;=
the
fear left her face, and in its stead there shone a great and awful blaze of
indignation.
Her brush was still in her hand, and as he drew
near she dashed it full into his face. It was but a light thing, and only
staggered him, but it gave her time to pass him, and reach the still open d=
oor.
Bare- footed, she fled like the wind down the passages, and down the stairs=
. Uttering
an oath, he followed her. But, as she went, she remembered that she could n=
ot run
upon the gravel with her naked feet, and, with this in her mind, she turned=
to
bay by a large window that gave light to the first-floor landing, immediate=
ly
opposite which was the portrait of "Devil" Caresfoot. It was
unbolted, and with a single movement of the hand she flung it open, and sto=
od
panting by it in the full light of the moon. In another moment he was upon =
her,
furious at the blow, and his face contorted with passion.
"Stop," she cried, "and listen =
to
me. Before I will allow you to touch me with a single finger, I will spring
from here. I would rather thrust myself into the hands of Providence than i=
nto
yours, monster and perjured liar that you are!"
He stopped as she bade him, and commenced to p=
ace
round and round her in a semicircle, glaring at her with wild eyes.
"If you jump from there," he said,
"you will only break your limbs; it is not high enough to kill you. You
are my wife, don't you understand? You are my legal wife, the law is on my
side. No one can help you, no one; you are mine in the sight of the whole
world."
"But not yours in the sight of God. It is=
to
Him that I now appeal. Get back!"
She stretched out her arm, and with her golden
hair glimmering in the moonlight, her white robes, and the anger on her fac=
e,
looked like some avenging angel driving a fiend to hell. He shrank away from
her, and there came a pause, and, save for their heavy breathing, stillness=
again
fell upon the house, whilst the picture that hung above them seemed, in the
half light, to follow them with its fierce eyes, as though it were a living
thing.
The landing where they stood looked upon the h=
all
below, at the end of which was Philip's study. Suddenly its door burst open,
and Philip himself passed through it, grasping a candlestick in one hand and
some parchments in the other. His features were dreadful to see, resembling=
those
of a dumb thing in torture; his eyes protruded, his livid lips moved, but no
sound came from them. He staggered across the hall with terror staring from=
his
face.
"Father, father," called Angela; but=
he
took no notice--he did not even seem to hear.
Presently they heard the candlestick thrown wi=
th a
clash upon the hall pavement, then the front door slammed, and he was gone,=
and
at that moment a great ruddy glow shot up the western sky, then a tongue of=
flame,
then another and another.
"See," said Angela, with a solemn la=
ugh,
"I did not appeal for help in vain."
Isleworth Hall was in flames.
Arthur did not delay his departure from Madeir=
a.
The morning following Mildred's ball he embarked on board a Portuguese boat=
, a
very dirty craft which smelt of garlic and rancid oil, and sailed for Lisbo=
n.
He arrived there safely, and mooned about that city for a while, himself a
monument of serious reflections, and then struck across into Spain, where he
spent a month or so inspecting the historical beauties of that fallen count=
ry.
Thence he penetrated across the Pyrenees into Southern France, which was
pleasant in the spring months. Here he remained another month, meeting with=
no
adventures worthy of any note, and improving his knowledge of the French
language. Tiring at last of this, he travelled to Paris, and went to the
theatres, but found his own thoughts too absorbing to allow of his taking a=
ny
keen interest in their sensationalisms; so, after a brief stay, he made his=
way
up to Brittany and Normandy, and went in for inspecting old castles and cat=
hedrals,
and finally ended up his continental travels by spending a week on the isla=
nd
rock of Saint Michel.
This place pleased him more than any he had
visited. He liked to wander about among the massive granite pillars of that
noble ecclesiastical fortress, and at night to watch the phosphoric tide co=
me
rushing in with all the speed of a race-horse, over the wide sands, which s=
eparate
it from the mainland. There the thirty-first day of May found him, and he
bethought him that it was time to return to London and see about getting the
settlements drawn and ordering the wedding bouquet. To speak the truth, he
thought more about the bouquet than the settlements.
He arrived in London on the first of June, and
went to see his family lawyer, a certain Mr. Borley, who had been solicitor=
to
the trust during his minority.
"Bless me, Heigham, how like your father =
you
have grown!" said that legal gentleman, as soon as Arthur was ensconce=
d in
the client's chair --a chair that, had it been endowed with the gift of spe=
ech,
could have told some surprising stories. "It seems only the other day =
that
he was sitting there dictating the terms of his will, and yet that was befo=
re
the Crimean war, more than twenty years ago. Well, my boy, what is it?"=
;
Arthur, thus encouraged, entered into a rather
blundering recital of the circumstances of his engagement.
Mr. Borley did not say much, but, from his man=
ner
and occasional comments, it was evident that he considered the whole story =
very
odd-- regarding it, indeed, with some suspicion.
"I must tell you frankly, Mr. Heigham,&qu=
ot;
he said, at last, "I don't quite understand this business. The young l=
ady,
no doubt, is charming --young ladies, looking at them from my clients' poin=
t of
view, always are--but I can't say I like your story about her father. Why d=
id
you not tell me all this before? I might then have been able to give you so=
me
advice worth having, or, at any rate, to make a few confidential" --he
laid great emphasis on the word
"confidential"--"inquiries."
Arthur replied that it had not occurred to him=
to
do so.
"Umph, pity--great pity; but there is no =
time
for that sort of thing now, if you think you are going to get married on the
tenth; so I suppose the only thing to do is to go through with it and await=
the
upshot. What do you wish done?"
Arthur explained his views, which apparently
included settling all his property on his bride in the most absolute fashion
possible. To this Mr. Borley forcibly objected, and in the end Arthur had to
give way and make such arrangements as the old gentleman thought proper-- a=
rrangements
differing considerably from those proposed by himself.
This interview over, he had other and pleasant=
er
duties to perform, such as ordering his wedding clothes, making arrangements
with a florist for the bridal bouquet, and last, but not least, having his =
mother's
diamonds re-set as a present for his bride.
But still the days went very slowly, there see=
med
to be no end to them. He had no relations to go and see, and in his present
anxious excited state he preferred to avoid his friends and club acquaintan=
ces.
Fifth, sixth, seventh; never did a schoolboy await the coming of the day th=
at marked
the advent of his holidays with such intense anxiety.
At length the eighth of June arrived. Months
before, he had settled what his programme should be on that day. His promis=
e,
as the reader may remember, forbade him to see Angela till the ninth, that =
is,
at any hour after twelve on the night of the eighth, or, practically, as ea=
rly
as possible on the following morning. Now the earliest train would not get =
him
down to Roxham till eleven o'clock, which would involve a wicked waste of f=
our
or five hours of daylight that might be spent with Angela, so he wisely
resolved to start on the evening of the eighth, by a train leaving Paddingt=
on
at six o'clock, and reaching Roxham at nine.
The day he spent in signing the settlements,
finally interviewing the florist, and giving him directions as to forwarding
the wedding- bouquet, which was to be composed of orange-blossoms, lilies of
the valley, and stephanois, and in getting the marriage-license. But, notwi=
thstanding
these manifold employments, he managed to be three- quarters of an hour bef=
ore
his train, the longest forty-five minutes he ever spent.
He had written to the proprietor of the inn at
Rewtham, where he had slept a year ago the night after he had left Islewort=
h,
to send a gig to meet him at the station, and, on arriving at Roxham, a por=
ter
told him that a trap was waiting for him. On emerging from the station, eve=
n in
the darkness, he was able to recognize the outlines of the identical vehicle
which had conveyed him to the Abbey House some thirteen months ago, whilst =
the
sound of an ancient, quavering voice informed him that the Jehu was likewise
the same. His luggage was soon bundled up behind, and the steady-going old =
nag
departed into the darkness.
"Well, Sam, do you remember me?"
"Well, no, sir, I can't rightly say how I=
do:
wait a bit; bean't you the gemman as travels in the dry line, and as I seed
a-kissing the chambermaid?"
"No, I don't travel at present, and I have
not kissed a chambermaid for some time. Do you remember driving a gentleman=
over
to the Abbey House a year or so ago?"
"Why, yes, in course I does. Lord, now, a=
nd
be you he? and we seed old Devil's Caresfoot's granddaughter. Ah! many's the
time that he has damned me, and all so soft and pleasant like; but it was h=
is
eyes that did the trick. They was awful, just awful; and you gave me half-a=
- crown,
you did. But somehow I thought I heard summat about you, sir, but I can't
rightly remember what it be, my head not being so good as it used to."=
"Perhaps you heard what I was going to be
married?"
"No. I don't think how as it was that
neither."
"Well, never mind me; have you seen Miss
Caresfoot--the young lady you saw the day you drove me to the Abbey
House--anywhere about lately?"
Arthur waited for the old man's lingering answ=
er
with all his heart upon his lips.
"Lor', yes, sir, that I have; I saw her t=
his
morning driving through the Roxham market-place."
"And how did she look?"
"A bit pale, I thought, sir; but well eno=
ugh,
and wonnerful handsome."
Arthur gave a sigh of relief. He felt like a m=
an
who has just come scatheless through some horrible crisis, and once more kn=
ows
the sweet sensation of safety. What a load the old man's words had lifted f=
rom his
mind? In his active imagination he had pictured all sorts of evils which mi=
ght
have happened to Angela during his year of absence. Lovers are always prone=
to
such imaginings, and not altogether without reason, for there would seem to=
be
a special power of evil that devotes itself to the derangement of their
affairs, and the ingenious disappointment of their hopes. But now the vague
dread was gone, Angela was not spirited away or dead, and to know her alive=
was
to know her faithful.
As they drove along, the old ostler continued =
to
volunteer various scraps of information which fell upon his ears unheeded, =
till
presently his attention was caught by the name Caresfoot.
"What about him?" he asked, quickly.=
"He be a-dying, they do say."
"Which of them?"
"Why, the red-haired one, him as lives up=
at
the Hall yonder."
"Poor fellow," said Arthur, feeling
quite fond of George in his happiness.
They had by this time reached the inn, where he
had some supper, for old Sam's good news had brought back his appetite, whi=
ch
of late had not been quite up to par, and then went straight to his room th=
at faced
towards the Abbey House. It was, he noticed, the same in which he had slept=
the
year before, and looking at the bed he remembered his dream, and smiled as =
he
thought that the wood was passed, and before him lay nothing but the flowery
meadows. Mildred Carr, too, crossed his mind, but of her he did not think m=
uch,
not that he was by any means heartless--indeed, what had happened had pained
him acutely, the more so because his own conscience told him he had been a
fool. He was very sorry, but, love being here below one of the most selfish=
of
the passions, he had not time to be sorry just then.
For just on the horizon he could distinguish a
dense mass which was the trees surrounding the Abbey House, and between the
trees there glimmered a faint light which might proceed from some rising st=
ar,
or from Angela's window. He preferred to believe it was the latter. The pro=
pinquity
made him very happy. What was she doing? he wondered-- sitting by her window
and thinking of him! He would ask her on the morrow. It was worth while goi=
ng
through that year of separation in order to taste the joy of meeting. It se=
emed
like a dream to think that within six-and-thirty hours he would probably be
Angela's husband, and how nobody in the world would be able to take her awa=
y from
him. He stretched out his arms towards her.
"My darling, my darling," he cried a=
loud
into the still night. "My darling, my darling," the echo answered
sadly.
That night Arthur dreamed no evil dreams, but =
he
thought he heard a sound outside his door, and some one speak of fire. Hear=
ing
nothing more, he turned and went to sleep again. Waking in the early dawn h=
e felt,
ere yet his senses fully came, a happy sense of something, he knew not what=
, a
rosy shadow of coming joy, such as will, only with more intensity, fall upon
our quickened faculties when, death ended, our souls begin to stir as we aw=
aken
to Eternity.
He sprang from his bed, and his eye fell on a
morocco case upon the dressing-table. It contained the diamonds which he had
had re-set as a wedding present to Angela. They were nothing compared with
Mildred Carr's, but still extremely handsome, their beauty being enhanced b=
y the
elegance of the setting, which was in the shape of a snake with emerald head
and ruby eyes, so constructed as to clasp tightly round Angela's shapely
throat.
The sight of the jewellery at once recalled his
present circumstances, and he knew that the long hour of trial was passed--=
he
was about to meet Angela. Having dressed himself as quickly as he could, he
took up the jewel-case, but, finding it too large to stow away, he opened i=
t, and,
taking out the necklace, crammed it into his pocket. Thus armed he slipped =
down
the stairs, past the open common room where the light shone through the cra=
cks
in the shutters on a dismal array of sticky beer-mugs and spirit glasses, d=
own
the sanded passage into the village street.
It was full daylight now, and the sun never lo=
oked
upon a lovelier morning. The air was warm, but there was that sharp freshne=
ss
in it which is needful to make summer weather perfect, and which we always =
miss
by breakfasting at nine o'clock. The sky was blue, just flecked with little
clouds; the dewdrops sparkled upon every leaf and blade of grass; touches of
mist clung about the hollows, and the sweet breath of the awakened earth was
full of the perfect scent of an English June, which is in its way even more
delicious than the spicy odours of the tropics. It was a morning to make si=
ck
men well, and men happy, and atheists believers in a creative hand. How much
more than did it fire Arthur's pulses, already bounding with youth and heal=
th,
with an untold joy.
He felt like a child again, so free from care,=
so
happy, except that his heart swelled with a love beyond the knowledge of
children. His quick temperament had rebounded from the depths of unequal
depression, into which it so often fell, to the heights of a happy assuranc=
e.
The Tantalus cup was at his lips at last, and he would drink his full, be s=
ure!
His eyes flashed and sparkled, his foot fell light and quick as an antelope=
's,
his brown cheek glowed--never had he looked so handsome. Angela would not
forget her promise; she would be waiting for him by the lake, he was sure of
that, and thither he made his way through the morning sunshine. They were h=
appy
moments.
Presently he passed into the parish of Bratham,
and his eye fell upon a neat red brick cottage, a garden planted with
sunflowers, and a bright gravel path running to the rustic gate. He thought=
the
garden charmingly old-fashioned, and had just entered a mental note to ask =
Angela
who lived there, when the door opened, and figure he knew emerged, bearing a
mat in one hand and a mopstick in the other. He was some way off, and at fi=
rst
could not quite distinguish who it was; but before she had come to the gate=
he
recognized Pigott. By this time she had stepped into the road, and was maki=
ng
elaborate preparations to dust her mat so that she did not see him, till he
spoke to her.
"How are you, Pigott? What may you be doi=
ng
down here? Why are you not up at the Abbey?"
She gave a cry, and the mat and mopstick fell =
from
her hands.
"Mr. Heigham!" she said, in an awed
voice that chilled his blood, "what has brought you back, and why do y=
ou
come to me? I never wronged you."
"What are you talking about? I have come =
to
marry Angela, of course. We are going to be married to-morrow."
"Oh, then it's really you , sir! And she married yesterday--oh, good God!=
"
"Don't laugh at me, nurse--please don't
laugh. It--it upsets me. Why do you shake so? What do you mean?"
"Mean!--I mean that my Angela married her cousin, George Caresfoot, at
Roxham, yesterday. Heaven forgive =
me for
having to tell it you!"
Reader, have you ever mortally wounded a head =
of
large game? You hear your bullet thud upon the living flesh, and see the
creature throw up its head and stagger for a moment, and then plunge forward
with desperate speed, crashing through bush and reeds as though they were m=
eadow-grass.
Follow him awhile, and you will find him standing quite still, breathing in
great sighs, his back humped and his eye dim, the gore trickling from his
nostrils. He is dying--but be careful, he means mischief before he dies.
Any great shock, mental or physical, is apt to
reduce man to the level of his brother beasts. Arthur, for instance, behaved
very much like a wounded buffalo as soon as the stun of the blow passed awa=
y,
and the rending pain began to make itself felt. For a few seconds he gazed =
before
him stupid and helpless, then his face turned quite grey, the eyes and nost=
rils
gaped wide, and a curious rigidity took possession of his muscles.
The road he was following led to a branching l=
ane,
the same that Angela was turning up that misty Christmas Eve when she saw L=
ady Bellamy
glide past in her carriage. This lane had in former ages, no doubt, to judge
from its numerous curves, been an ancient forest-path, and it ran to the li=
ttle
bridge over the stream that fed the lake--a point that, by travelling as the
crow flies from Pigott's cottage, might be reached in half the time. This f=
act
Arthur seemed at that dreadful moment to suddenly realize, more probably fr=
om
natural instinct than from any particular knowledge of the lay of the land.=
He did
not speak again to Pigott, and she was too frightened at his face to speak =
to
him. He only looked at her, but she never forgot that look so long as she
lived. Then he turned like a mad thing, and went crash through the thick fence that hedged the =
road,
and ran at full speed towards the lake, diverging neither to the right nor =
to the
left, but breaking his way without the slightest apparent difficulty through
everything that opposed him.
Very soon he came to the little bridge, and he=
re,
struck by some new instinct, he halted. He did not appear to be out of brea=
th,
but he leaned on the rail of the bridge and groaned like a dying man. His g=
hastly
face made a blot in the mimic scenery of the place, which was really very
pretty. The bridge commanded no view, for the little creek it spanned, and =
into
which the stream ran, gave a turn before it grew into the neck of the lake;=
but
it was hedged in by greenery, and the still pool beneath it was starred with
water-lilies, turning their innocent eyes up to the blue sky, and looking as
peaceful as though there were no stormy winds or waters in the world to toss
them. Amongst these water-lilies a moorhen had built her nest, and presentl=
y she
came clucking out right under Arthur's feet, followed by ten or a dozen lit=
tle
hurrying black balls, each tipped with sealing-wax red. She looked very hap=
py
with her brood--as happy as the lilies and the blue sky--and the sight made=
him
savage. He took up a large stone that lay by him and threw it at her. It hit
her on the back and killed her, and Arthur laughed loud as he watched her
struggle, and then lie still, while the motherless chicks hurried, frighten=
ed,
away. And yet since he was a boy he had never till now wantonly injured any
living creature.
Presently, the dead water-hen floated out of
sight, and he roused himself, straightened his clothes, which had been some=
what
torn and deranged, and, with a steady step and a fixed smile upon his lips,=
went
forward, no longer at a run, but walking quietly up the path that led to the
big oak and shaded glen. In five minutes he was there.
Again he paused and looked. There was somethin=
g to
see. On one of the stone seats, dressed in black, her face deathly pale, her
head resting on her hand, and trouble in her eyes, sat Angela. On the other=
was
her constant companion, the dog which he had given her. He remembered how, a
little more than a year before, she had surprised him in the same way, and =
he
had looked upon her and loved her. He could even smile at the strange irony=
of
fate that had, under such curiously reversed circumstances, brought him bac=
k to
surprise her, to look upon her, and hate her.
She moved uneasily, and glanced round, but he =
was
hidden by a bush. Then she half rose, paused irresolutely, and, as though
struggling against something foolish, sat determinedly down again. When Art=
hur had
done smiling, he came forward a few steps into the open, feeling that his f=
ace
was all drawn and changed, as indeed it was. It was the face of a man of fi=
fty.
His eyes were fire, and his heart was ice.
She turned her head, and looked up with a
shrinking in her eyes, as though she feared to see something hateful--a
shrinking which turned first to wonder, then to dread, then to a lively joy,
and then again to awe. She rose mechanically, with a great gasp; her lips
parted, as though to speak, but no words came. The dog, too, saw him, and g=
rowled,
then ran up and sniffed, and leaped upon him with a yelp of joy. He waved it
down, and there was something in the gesture that frightened the beast. It
shrank behind him. Then he spoke in a clear, hard tone--not his own voice, =
she
thought.
"Angela, is this true? Are you married? "
"Oh, no;" and her voice came stealin=
g to
his senses like half- forgotten music; "that is, yes, alas! But is it
really you? Oh, Arthur, my darling, have you come back to me?" and she
moved towards him with outstretched arms.
Already they were closing round him, and he co=
uld
feel her breath upon his cheek, when the charm broke, and he wrenched himse=
lf
free.
"Get back; do not dare to touch me. Do you
know what you are? The poor lost girl is not fallen so low as you. She must=
get
her bread; but, at any rate, I could have given you bread. What! fresh from
your husband's arms, and ready to throw yourself into mine! Shame upon you!=
Were
you not married yesterday?"
"Oh, Arthur, have pity! You do not
understand. Oh, merciful God----"
"Have pity! What need for pity? Were you =
not
married yesterday?" and he laughed bitterly. "I come--I come from=
far
to congratulate the new- made wife. It is a little odd, though, I thought to
marry you myself. See, here was my wedding present;" and he tore the
diamond necklace from his pocket. "A snake, you see; a good emblem! Aw=
ay
with it, its use is gone!"
The diamonds went flashing through the sunligh=
t,
and fell with a little splash into the lake.
"What! are you not sorry to see so much
valuable property wasted? You have a keen appreciation of property!"
Angela sank down on her knees before him, like=
a
broken lily. Her looks grew faint and despairing. The stately head bowed it=
self
to his feet, and all the golden weight of hair broke loose. But he did not =
pause
or spare her. He ground his teeth. No one could have recognized in this
maddened, passion-inspired man the pleasant, easy-tempered Arthur of an hour
before. His nature was stirred to its depths, and they were deep.
"You miserable woman! do not kneel to me.=
If
it were not unmanly, I could spurn you with my foot. Do you know, girl, you=
who
swore to love me till time had passed--yes, and for all eternity, you who do
love me at this moment--and therein lies your shame--that you have killed m=
e? You
have murdered my heart. I trusted you, Angela, I trusted you, I gave you al=
l my
life, all that was best in me; and now in reward-- degraded as you are--I m=
ust
always love you as much as I despise you. Even now I feel that I cannot hate you and forget you. I must love you, and I must despise you."
She gazed up at him like a dumb beast at its
butcher; she could not speak, her voice had gone.
"And yet, when I think of it, I have
something to thank you for. You have cleared my mind of illusions. You have
taught me what a woman's purity is worth. You did the thing well, too! You =
did
not crush me by inches with platitudes, bidding me forget you and not think=
of
you any more, as though forgetfulness were possible, and thought a tangible=
thing
that one could kill. You struck home in silence, once and for all. Thank you
for that , Angela. What, are you c=
rying?
Go back to the brute whom you have chosen, the brute whose passion or whose
money you could prefer to me, tell him that they are tears of happiness, an=
d let
him kiss them quite away."
"Oh, Arthur--cruel--Arthur!" and nat=
ure
gave way. She fell fainting on the grass.
Then, when he saw that she could not understan=
d or
feel any more, his rage died, and he too broke down and sobbed, great, gasp=
ing
sobs. And the frightened dog crept up and licked first her face and then hi=
s hand.
Kneeling down, Arthur raised her in his arms a=
nd
strained her to his heart, kissing her thrice upon the forehead--the lips he
could not touch. Then he placed her on the seat, leaning her weight against=
the
tree, and, motioning back the dog, he went his way.
Arthur took the same path by which he had
come--all paths were alike to him now--but before he had gone ten yards he =
saw
the figure of George Caresfoot, who appeared to have been watching him. In
George's hand was a riding-whip, for he had ridden from the scene of the fi=
re, and
was all begrimed with smoke and dirt. But this Arthur did not notice.
"Hullo," he began; "what----&qu=
ot;
and then he hesitated; there was a look in Arthur's eyes which he did not l=
ike.
But, if George hesitated, Arthur did not. He
sprang at him like a wild cat, and in a second had him by the throat and
shoulder. For a moment he held him there, for in his state of compressed fu=
ry
George was like a child in his hands. And as he held him a fierce and almos=
t uncontrollable
desire took possession of him to kill this man, to throw him down and stamp=
the
life out of him. He conquered it, however, and loosed the grip on his throa=
t.
"Let me go," shrieked George, as soo=
n as
he could get breath.
Arthur cut short his clamours by again compres=
sing
his wind-pipe.
"Listen," he said; "a second ag=
o I
was very near killing you, but I remember now that, after all, it is she, n=
ot
you, who are chiefly to blame. You only followed your brutal nature, and
nothing else can be expected of a brute. Very likely you put pressure on he=
r,
like the cad that you are, but that does not excuse her, for, if she could =
not resist
pressure, she is a fool in addition to being what she is. I look at you and
think that soon she will come down to your level, the level of my successful rival.=
To be
mated to a man like you would drag an angel down. That will be punishment
enough. Now go, you cur!"
He swung him violently from him. His fall was
broken by a bramble- bush. It was not exactly a bed of roses, but George
thought it safer to lie there till his assailant's footsteps had grown
faint--he did not wish to bring him back again. Then he crept out of the bu=
sh smarting
all over. Indeed, his frame of mind was altogether not of the most amiable.=
To
begin with, he had just seen his house--which, as luck would have it, was t=
he
only thing he had not sold to Philip, and which was also at the moment
uninsured, owing to the confusion arising from the transfer of the
property--entirely burnt down. All its valuable contents too, including a f=
ine
collection of pictures and private papers he by no means wished to lose, we=
re
irretrievably destroyed.
Nor was his mood improved by the recollection =
of
the events of the previous night, or by the episode of the bramble-bush,
illuminated as it was by Arthur's vigorous language; or by what he had just=
witnessed,
for he had arrived in time to see, though from a distance, the last act of =
the interview
between Arthur and Angela.
He had seen him lift her in his arms, kiss her,
and place her on the stone seat, but he did not know that she had fainted. =
The
sight had roused his evil passions until they raged like the fire he had le=
ft. Then
Arthur came out upon him and he made acquaintance with the bramble-bush as
already described. But he was not going to be cheated out of his revenge; t=
he
woman was still left for him to wreak it on.
By the time he reached Angela, her faculties w=
ere
reawakening; but, though insensibility had yielded, sense had not returned.=
She
sat upon the stone seat, upright indeed, but rigid and grasping its angles =
with
her hands. The dog had gone. In the undecided way common to dogs, when two
people to whom they are equally attached separate, it had at that moment ta=
ken
it into its head to run a little way after Arthur.
George marched straight up to her, livid with
fury.
"So this is how you go on when your husba=
nd
is away, is it? I saw you kissing that young blackguard, though I am not go=
od
enough for you. What, won't you answer? Then it is time that I taught you
obedience."
"Swish!" went the heavy whip through=
the
air, and fell across her fair cheek.
"Will that wake you, eh, or must I repeat=
the
dose?"
The pain of the blow seemed to rouse her. She
rose, her loosed hair falling round her like a golden fleece, and a broad b=
lue
stripe across her ghastly face. She stretched out her hands; she opened her
great eyes, and in them blazed the awful light of madness.
He was standing, whip in hand, with his back to
the lake; she faced him, a breathing, beautiful vengeance, and in a whisper=
so
intense that the air was full of it, commenced a rambling prayer.
"Oh, God," she said, "bless my =
dear
Arthur! Oh, Almighty Father, avenge our wrongs!"
She paused and fixed her eyes upon him, and th=
ey
held him so that he could not stir. Then, in strange contrast to the hissing
whisper, there broke from her lips a ringing and unearthly laugh that chill=
ed him
to the marrow. So they stood for some seconds.
The sound of angry voices had brought the bull=
dog
back at full speed, and, at the sight of George's threatening attitude, it
halted. It had always hated him, and now it straightway grew more like a de=
vil
than a dog. The innate fierceness of the great brute awoke; it bristled wit=
h fury
till each separate hair stood out in knots against the skin, and saliva ran
from its twitching jaws.
George did not know that it was near him, but
Angela's wild eye fell upon it. Slowly raising her hand, she pointed at it.=
"Look behind you," she cried.
The sound of her voice broke the spell that was
upon him.
"Come, give me no more of your
nonsense," he said, and then, as much from vague fear and rampant
brutality as from any other reason, again struck her with the whip.
Next second he was aware of a tremendous shock.
The dog had seen the blow, and had instantly launched itself, with all the
blind courage of its race, straight at the striker's throat. It missed its =
aim,
however, only carrying away a portion of George's under-lip. He yelled with
pain, and struck at it with the whip, and then began a scene which, in its
grotesque horror, beggars all description. Again and again the dog flew at =
him,
its perfect silence contrasting strangely with George's shrieks of terror, =
and
the shrill peals of horrible laughter that came hurrying from Angela's lips=
as
she watched the struggle.
At last the dog gripped the man by the forearm,
and, sinking its great teeth into the flesh, hung its weight upon it. In va=
in
did George, maddened by the exquisite pain, dash himself and the dog against
the ground: in vain did he stagger round and round the glen, tearing at its
throat with his uninjured hand. The brute hung grimly on. Presently there c=
ame
an end. As he reeled along, howling for help and dragging his fierce burden
with him, George stumbled over a dead bough which lay upon the bank of the
lake, and fell backwards into the water, exactly at the spot where the
foundations of the old boat-house wall rose to within a few inches of the s=
urface.
His head struck heavily against the stonework, and he and the dog, who would
not loose his grip, lay on it for a moment, then they rolled off together i=
nto the
deep pool, the man dragging the dog with him. There were a few ripples, sta=
ined
with little red filaments, a few air-bubbles that marked the exhalation of =
his
last breath, and George's spirit had left its enclosing body, and
gone--whither? Ay, reader, whither had it gone?
The outcry brought Philip and old Jakes running
down to the lake. They found Angela standing alone on the brink and laughing
her wildest.
"See," she cried, as they came panti=
ng
up, "the bridegroom cometh from his chamber," and at that moment =
some
unreleased air within the body brought it up for an instant to the surface,=
so
that the torn and ghastly face and head emerged for a second as though to l=
ook
at them. Then it sank again.
"The brave dog holds him well--ha, ha, ha=
! He
cannot catch me now--ha, ha, ha! Nor you, Judas, who sold me. Judas! Judas!
Judas!" and, turning, she fled with the speed of the wind.
Mr. Fraser had but just come down, and was wal=
king
in his garden, when he saw this dreadful figure come flying towards him with
streaming hair.
" Betrayed ," she cried, in a voice which rang like the wail of a lost soul, and fell on her face at his feet.<= o:p>
When she came back to life they found that she=
was
mad.
The news of George Caresfoot's tragic death was
soon common property, and following as it did so hard upon his marriage, wh=
ich
now was becoming known, and within a few hours of the destruction of his ho=
use by
fire, it caused no little excitement. It cannot be said that the general
feeling was one of very great regret; it was not. George Caresfoot had
commanded deference as a rich man, but he certainly had not won affection.
Still his fate excited general interest and sympathy, though some people we=
re
louder in their regrets over the death of such a plucky dog as Aleck, than =
over
that of the man he killed, but then these had a personal dislike of George.
When, however, it came to be rumoured that the dog had attacked George beca=
use
George had struck the dog's mistress, general sympathy veered decidedly tow=
ards
the dog. By-and-by, as some of the true facts of the case came out, namely,
that Angela Caresfoot had gone mad, that her lover, who was supposed to be
dead, had been seen in Rewtham on the evening of the wedding, that the news=
of
Mr. Heigham's death had been concocted to bring about the marriage, and las=
t,
but not least, that the Isleworth estates had passed into the possession of
Philip Caresfoot, public opinion grew very excited, and the dog Aleck was w=
ell
spoken of.
When Sir John Bellamy stepped out on the platf=
orm
at Roxham on his return from London that day, his practised eye saw at once=
that
something unusual had occurred. A group of county magistrates returning from
quarter sessions were talking excitedly together whilst waiting for their
train. He knew them all well, but at first they seemed inclined to let him =
pass
without speaking to him. Presently, however, one of them turned, and spoke =
to
him.
"Have you heard about this, Bellamy?"=
;
"No; what?"
"George Caresfoot is dead; killed by a
bulldog, or something. They say he was thrashing the girl he married yester=
day,
his cousin's daughter, with a whip, and the dog made for him, and they both
fell into the water together and were drowned. The girl has gone mad."=
"Good heavens, you don't say so!"
"Yes, I do, though; and I'll tell you wha=
t it
is, Bellamy, they say that you and your wife went to Madeira and trumped up=
a
story about her lover's death in order to take the girl in. I tell you this=
as
an old friend."
"What? I certainly went to Madeira, and I=
saw
young Heigham there, but I never trumped up any story about his death. I ne=
ver
mentioned him to Angela Caresfoot for two reasons, first, because I have not
come across her, and secondly, because I understood that Philip Caresfoot d=
id
not wish it."
"Well, I am glad to hear it, for your sak=
e;
but I have just seen Fraser, and he tells me that Lady Bellamy told the gir=
l of
this young Heigham's death in his own presence, and, what is more, he showe=
d me
a letter they found in her dress purporting to have been written by him on =
his
death-bed which your wife gave her."
"Of what Lady Bellamy has or has not said=
or
done, I know nothing. I have no control over her actions."
"Well, I should advise you to look into t=
he
business, because it will all come out at the inquest," and they
separated.
Sir John drove homewards, thoughtful, but by no
means unhappy. The news of George's agonizing death was balm to him, he only
regretted that he had not been there--somewhere well out of the way of the =
dog,
up a tree, for instance--to see it.
As soon as he got home, he sent a message to L=
ady
Bellamy to say he wished to speak to her. Then he seated himself at his
writing-desk, and waited. Presently he heard his wife's firm step upon the
stairs. He rubbed his dry hands, and smiled a half frightened, wicked littl=
e smile.
"At last," he said. "And now for
revenge."
She entered the room, looking rather pale, but
calm and commanding as ever.
"So you have come back," she said.
"Yes. Have you heard the news? Your flame , George Caresfoot, is dead.&=
quot;
"I knew that he was dead. How did he
die?"
"Who told you he was dead?"
"No one, I knew it; I told him he would d=
ie
last night, and I felt him die this morning. Did she kill him or did Arthur
Heigham?"
"Neither, that bulldog flew at him and he
fell into the lake."
"Oh, I suppose Angela set it on. I told h=
im
that she would win. You remember the picture falling in the study at Islewo=
rth.
It has been a true omen, you see."
"Angela is mad. The story is all over the
country and travelling like wild-fire. The letter you forged has been found.
Heigham was down here this morning and has gone again, and you, Lady Bellam=
y,
are a disgraced and ruined woman."
She did not flinch a muscle.
"I know it, it is the result of pitting
myself against that girl; but pray, Sir John, what are you? Was it not you =
who
devised the scheme?"
"You are right, I did, to trap two fools.
Anne, I have waited twenty years, but you have met your master at last.&quo=
t;
Lady Bellamy made a slight exclamation and
relapsed into silence.
"My plot has worked well. Already one of =
you
is dead, and for you a fate is reserved that is worse than death. You are
henceforth a penniless outcast, left at forty-two to the tender mercies of =
the
wide world."
"Explain yourself a little."
"With pleasure. For years I have submitte=
d to
your contumely, longing to be revenged, waiting to be revenged. You thought=
me
a fool, I know, and compared with you I am; but you do not understand what =
an
amount of hatred even a fool is capable of. For twenty years, Lady Bellamy,=
I have
hated you, you will never know how much, though perhaps what I am going to =
say
may give you some idea. I very well knew what terms you were on with George
Caresfoot, you never took any pains to hide them from me, you only hid the
proofs. I soon discovered indeed that your marriage to me was nothing but a
blind, that I was being used as a screen forsooth. But your past I could ne=
ver
fathom. I don't look like a revengeful man, but for all that I have for yea=
rs
sought many ways to ruin you both, yet from one thing and another they all
failed, till a blessed chance made that brute's blind passion the instrumen=
t of
his own destruction, and put you into my hands. You little thought when you
told me all that story, and begged my advice, how I was revelling in the se=
nse
that, proud woman as you are, it must have been an agony of humiliation for=
you
to have to tell it. It was an instructive scene that, it assured me of what=
I
suspected before that George Caresfoot must have you bound to him by some
stronger ties than those of affection, that he must hold you in a grip of i=
ron.
It made me think, too, that if by any means I could acquire the same power,=
I
too should be able to torture you."
For the first time Lady Bellamy looked up.
"Am I tiring you," he said, politely,
"or shall I go on?"
"Go on."
"With your permission, I will ring for a
glass of sherry--no, claret, the day is too hot for sherry," and he ra=
ng.
The claret was brought and he drank a glass,
remarking with an affectation of coolness that it was a sound wine for a po=
und
a dozen; then he proceeded.
"The first thing I have to call your
attention to is this Arthur Heigham plot. At first it may appear that I am
involved with you; I am not. There is not, now that George Caresfoot is dea=
d,
one tittle of evidence against me except your own, and who will believe
"Is that all?"
"No, woman. I have your letters! "
She sprang up with a little scream and stood o=
ver
him with dilated eyes. Sir John leaned back in his chair, rubbed his hands,=
and
watched her tortured face with evident satisfaction.
"Yes, you may well scream," he said,
"for I not only possess them, but I have read and re-read them. I know=
all
your story, the name of the husband you deserted and of the child who died =
of
your neglect. I have even sent an agent to identify the localities. Yes, you
may well scream, for I have read them all, and really they are most instruc=
tive
documents, and romantic enough for a novel; such fire, such passionate inve=
ctive,
such wild despair. But, since I learnt how and why you married me, I will t=
ell
you what I have made up my mind to do. I am going after the inquest to turn=
you
out of this house, and give you a pittance to live on so long as you remain
here. I wish you to become a visible moral, a walking monument of disgrace =
in
the neighbourhood you ruled. Should you attempt to escape me, the payment w=
ill
be stopped; should you obtain employment, your character shall be exposed. =
At every
turn you shall be struck down till you learn to kiss the hand that strikes =
you
and beg for pity on your knees. My revenge, Anne, shall be to break your
spirit."
"And are you not perhaps afraid that I may
turn upon you? You know me to be a woman of strong will and many resources,
some of which you do not even understand."
"No, I am not afraid, because I still hav=
e a
reserve force; I still hold the letters that I stole two days ago; and, even
should you murder me, I have left directions that will ensure your
exposure."
A pause ensued.
"Have you nothing more to say?" he s=
aid,
at last.
"Nothing."
"Supposing, Anne, that I were to tell you
that I have been trying to frighten you, and that if you were to go down on
your knees before me now, and beg my forgiveness, I would forgive you--no, =
not
forgive you, but let you off with easier terms--would you do it?"
"No, John, I would not. Once I went on my
knees to a man, and I have not forgotten the lesson he taught me. Do your
worst."
"Then you understand my terms, and accept
them?"
"Understand them! yes. I understand that =
you
are a little-minded man, and, like all little-minded men, cruel, and desiro=
us
of exacting the uttermost farthing in the way of revenge, forgetting that y=
ou
owe everything to me. I do not wish to exculpate myself, mind you. Looking =
at
the case from your point of view, and in your own petty way, I can almost
sympathize with you. But as for accepting your terms--do you know me so lit=
tle
as to think that I could do so? Have you not learnt that I may break, but s=
hall
never bend? And, if I chose now to face the matter out, I should beat you, =
even
now when you hold all the cards in your hand; but I am weary of it all,
especially weary of you and your little ways, and I do not choose. You will
injure me enough to make the great success I planned for us both impossible,
and I am tired of everything except the success which crowns a struggle. We=
ll, I
have ways of escape you know nothing of. Do your worst; I am not afraid of
you;" and she leaned back easily in her chair, and looked at him with
wearied and indifferent eyes.
Little Sir John ground his teeth, and twisted =
his
pippen-like face into a scowl that looked absurdly out of place on anything=
so
jovial.
"Curse you," he said, "even now=
you
dare to defy me. Do you know, you woman fiend, that at this moment I almost
think I love you?"
"Of course I know it. If you did not love=
me,
you would not take all this trouble to try to crush me. But this conversati=
on
is very long; shall we put an end to it?"
Sir John sat still a moment, thinking, and gaz=
ing
at the splendid Sphinx-browed creature before him with a mixture of hatred =
and respect.
Then he rose, and spoke.
"Anne, you are a wonderful woman! I canno=
t do
it, I cannot utterly ruin you. You must be exposed--I could not help that, =
if I
would--and we must separate, but I will be generous to you; I will allow you
five hundred a year, and you shall live where you like. You shall not starv=
e."
She laughed a little as she answered.
"I am starving now: it is long past lunch=
eon
time. As for your five hundred a year that you will give me out of the thre=
e or
four thousand I have given you, I care nothing for it. I tell you I am tire=
d of
it all, and I never felt more superior to you than I do now in the moment of
your triumph. It wants a stronger hand than yours to humble me. I may be a =
bad
woman, I daresay I am, but you will find, too late, that there are few in t=
he
world like me. For years you have shone with a reflected light; when the li=
ght
goes out, you will go out too. Get back into your native mud, the mental sl=
ime
out of which I picked you, contemptible creature that you are! and, when you
have lost me, learn to measure the loss by the depths to which you will sin=
k. I
reject your offers. I mock at your threats, for they will recoil on your ow=
n head.
I despise you, and I have done with you. John Bellamy, good- bye;" and,
with a proud curtsey, she swept from the room.
That evening it was rumoured that Sir John Bel=
lamy
had separated from his wife, owing to circumstances which had come to his
knowledge in connection with George Caresfoot's death.
That same afternoon, Lady Bellamy ordered out =
the
victoria with the fast trotting horse, and drove to the Abbey House. She fo=
und
Philip pacing up and down the gravel in front of the grey old place, which =
had
that morning added one more to the long list of human tragedies its walls h=
ad
witnessed. His face was pale, and contorted by mental suffering, and, as so=
on
as he recognized Lady Bellamy, he made an effort to escape. She stopped him=
.
"I suppose it is here, Mr. Caresfoot?&quo=
t;
"It! What?"
"The body."
"Yes."
"I wish to see it."
Philip hesitated a minute, and then led the wa=
y to
his study. The corpse had been laid upon the table just as it had been taken
from the water; indeed, the wet still fell in heavy drops from the clothes =
on to
the ground. It was to be removed to Roxham that evening, to await the inque=
st
on the morrow. The shutters of the room had been closed, lest the light sho=
uld
strike too fiercely on the ghastly sight; but even in the twilight Lady Bel=
lamy
could discern every detail of its outline clearly marked by the wet patches=
on
the sheet which was thrown loosely over it. On a chair, by the side of the
table, above the level of which its head rose, giving it the appearance of
being in the act of climbing on to it, lay the carcass of the dog, its teet=
h still
firmly set in the dead man's arm. They had been unable to unlock the savage
grip without hacking its jaws asunder, and this it was not thought advisabl=
e to
do till after the inquest.
At the door Philip paused, as though he did not
mean to enter.
"Come in," said Lady Bellamy;
"surely you are not afraid of a dead man."
"I fear the dead a great deal more than I=
do
the living," he muttered, but came in and shut the door.
As soon as her eyes had grown accustomed to the
light, Lady Bellamy went up to the body, and, drawing off the sheet, gazed =
long
and steadily at the mutilated face, on the lips of which the bloody froth s=
till
stood.
"I told him last night," she said
presently to Philip, "that we should never meet again alive, but I did=
not
think to see him so soon like this. Do you know that I once loved that thin=
g,
that shattered brain directed the only will to which I ever bowed? But the =
love
went out for ever last night, the chain snapped, and now I can look upon th=
is sight
without a single sigh or a regret, with nothing but loathing and disgust. T=
here
lies the man who ruined me--did you know it? I do not care who knows it
now--ruined me with his eyes open, not caring anything about me; there lies=
the
hard task-master whom I served through so many years, the villain who drove=
me
against my will into this last crime which has thus brought its reward. The=
dog
gave him his just due; look, its teeth still hold him, as fast, perhaps, as=
the
memories of his crimes will hold him where he has gone. Regret him! sorrow =
for
him! no, oh no! I can curse him as he lies, villain, monster, devil that he
was!"
She paused, and even in the dim light Philip c=
ould
see her bosom heave and her great eyes flash with the fierceness of her
excitement.
"You should not talk so of the dead,"=
; he
said.
"You are right," she answered; "=
;he
has gone beyond the reach of my words, but the thought of all the misery I =
have
suffered at his hands made me for a moment mad. Cover it up again, the vile
frame which held a viler soul; to the earth with the one, to undreamed of
sorrow with the other, each to its appointed place. How does it run?--'The
wages of sin is death.' Yes, that is right. He is dead; the blow fell first=
on
him, that was right, and I am about to die; and you--what will happen to yo=
u,
the Judas of the plot, eh? You do not think that you will enjoy your
blood-money in peace, do you?"
"What do you mean?" asked Philip,
nervously; her wild way frightened him.
"Mean! why, that you are the sorriest kna=
ve
of all. This man was at least led on to crime by passion; Bellamy entered i=
nto
it to work out a secret revenge, poor fool; I acted because I couldn't help
myself at first, and then for the sake of the game itself, for when I take =
a thing
in my hand, I will succeed. But you, Philip Caresfoot, you =
sold
your own flesh and blood for money or money's worth, and you are the worst =
of
all--worse than George, for even a brutal love is a nobler thing than avari=
ce
like yours. Well, as the sin is, so will the punishment be."
"It is a lie! I thought that he was
dead."
"You thought that Arthur Heigham was
dead!--then I read your thoughts very wrongly when we met upon the road on
Christmas Day. You wished to think that he was dead, but you did not think =
it.
Even now your conscience is making a coward of you, and, as you said just n=
ow,
for you the silence of the dead is more terrible than the accusations of the
living. I know a little about you, Philip. Do you not see shadows on your
walls, and do not departed voices come to haunt you in your sleep? I know y=
ou
do, and I will tell you this--the =
Things
which you have suffered from at ti=
mes
shall henceforth be your continual companions. If you can pray, pray with a=
ll
your strength that your daughter may not die; for, if she does, her shadow =
will
always be there to haunt you with the rest. Why do you tremble so at the me=
re mention
of a spirit? Stand still, and I will show you one. I can if I like."
Philip could stand it no longer. With a curse =
he
burst out of the room. Presently she followed him, and found him standing in
front of the house, wiping the cold perspiration from his forehead.
"You accursed woman," he said, "=
;go,
and never come near this house again!"
"I never shall come to this house
again," she answered. "Ah, here is my carriage. Good-bye, Philip
Caresfoot. You are a very wealthy man now--worth I do not know how many
thousands a year. You have been singularly fortunate--you have accomplished
your ends. Few people can do that. May the accomplishment bring happiness w=
ith
it! If you wish it to do so, stifle your conscience, and do not let your
superstitions affect you. But, by the way, you know French, do you not? Then
here is a maxim that, in parting, I recommend to your attention--it has som=
e truth
in it: Il y a une page effrayante dans le livre des destinees humaines: on y
lit en tete ces mots 'les desirs accomplis.'" And she was gone.
"I owed him a debt for tempting George on=
in
that business," thought Lady Bellamy to herself, as she rolled swiftly
down the avenue of giant walnuts; "but I think that I have repaid it. =
The
thorn I have planted will fester in his flesh till he dies of the sore. Sup=
erstition
run wild in his weak mind will make the world a hell for him, and that is w=
hat
I wish."
Presently she stopped the carriage, and walked=
to
the top of a little knoll commanding what had been Isleworth Hill, but was =
now
a black smoking blot on the landscape. The white front of the house was sti=
ll standing,
though riven from top to bottom, and through its empty window-places the
westering sun poured great streams of fire which looked like flame shining
through the eye-sockets of a gigantic skull.
"I did that well," she said; "a=
nd
yet how blind I was! I should have known that he spoke the truth when he sa=
id
the letters were not there. My skill failed me--it always does fail at need=
. I
thought the fire would reach them somehow."
When she arrived at Rewtham House, she found t=
hat
Sir John had left, taking luggage with him, and stating that he was going to
put up at an inn at Roxham. On the hall-table, too, lay a summons to attend=
the
inquest on the body of George Caresfoot, which was to take place on the mor=
row.
She tore it across. Then she went up and dressed herself for dinner with su=
ch
splendour that her maid thought it necessary to remind her that there was no
company coming.
"No," she said, with a strange smile;
"but I am going out to-night. Give me my sapphire necklace."
She sat through dinner, and afterwards went in=
to
the drawing-room, and opening a despatch-box, read and burnt a great number=
of
papers.
"There go the keys to my knowledge,"=
she
said aloud, as they flickered and fell into ashes. "No one shall reap =
the
fruits of my labours; and yet it is a pity--I was on the right track, and,
though I could never have succeeded, another might. I had the key, though I
could not find the lock. I must go through with it now. I cannot live depri=
ved
both of success and of my secret power, and I could never begin and climb t=
hat
stair again."
Then, from a secret drawer in the despatch-box,
she extracted a little phial, tightly stoppered and sealing-waxed. She exam=
ined
it closely, and looked at the liquid in it against the light.
"My medicine has taken no harm during this
twenty years," she thought. "It still looks what it is--strong en=
ough
to kill a giant, and subtle enough to leave little trace upon a child."
Then she shut up the despatch-box and put it away, and, going to the open
window, looked up at the stars, and then down at the shadows flung by the
clouds as they swept across the moon.
"Shadows," she mused, "below, a=
nd
gleams of light between the shadows --that is like our life. Light above--p=
ure,
clear, eternal--that is like the wider life. And between the two--the night,
and above them both--the stars.
"In the immensity, where shall I find my
place? Oh, that I might sleep eternally! Yes, that would be best of all--to
sink into sleep never ending, unbroken, and unbreakable, to be absorbed into
the cool vastness of the night, and lie in her great arms for ever. Oh, Nig=
ht! whom
I have ever loved, you bring your sleep to wearied millions-- bring me sleep eternal. But no, the stars are abo=
ve the
night, and above the stars is--what? Yes; the hour I dread like every other=
mortal
with my body, and yet dare to long for with my spirit, has come. I am about=
to
cast off Time, and pass into Eternity, to spring from the giddy heights of
Space into the uncertain arms of the Infinite. Yet a few minutes, and my
essence, my vital part, will start upon its endless course, and passing far
above those stars, will find the fount of that knowledge of which it has
already sipped, and drink and drink till it grows like a God, and can look =
upon
the truth and not be blinded. Such are my high hopes. And yet--if there be a
hell! My life has been evil, my sins many. What if there be an avenging Pow=
er
waiting, as some think, to grind me into powder, and then endow each crushed
particle with individual sense of endless misery? What if there be a hell! =
In a
few minutes, or what will seem but a few minutes --for surely, to the
disembodied spirit, time cannot exist; though it sleep a billion years, it =
will
be as a breath--I shall have solved the problem. I shall know what all the
panic-stricken millions madly ask, and ask in vain! Yes, I shall know if there is a hell! Well, if there be, then I shall rule the=
re,
for power is native to my soul. Let me hesitate no longer, but go and solve=
the
problem before I grow afraid. Afraid--I am not afraid. 'I have immortal lon=
gings
in me.' Who was it said that? Oh, Cleopatra! Was Cleopatra more beautiful t=
han
I am, I wonder? I am sure that she was not so great; for, had I been her,
Antony should have driven Caesar out of Egypt. Oh! if I could have loved wi=
th a
pure and perfect love as other women may, and intertwined my destiny with t=
hat
of some great man--some being of a nature kindred to my
own--I should have been good and happy, and he should have ruled this count=
ry.
But Fate and Fortune, grown afraid of what I should do, linked my life to a
soulless brute! and, alas! like him I have fallen--fallen irretrievably!&qu=
ot;
She closed the window, and, coming into the ro=
om,
rang the bell.
"Bring me some wine," she said to the
servant. "I do not feel well."
"What wine, my lady?"
"Champagne."
The wine was brought, and stood, uncorked, upon
the table.
"That will do," she said. "Tell=
my
maid not to sit up for me: it will be late before I go to bed to-night.&quo=
t;
The man bowed and went, and she poured out som=
e of
the sparkling wine, and then, taking the little phial, opened it with
difficulty, and emptied its contents into the glass. The wine boiled up
furiously, turned milk-white, and then cleared again; but the poison had de=
stroyed
its sparkle--it was dead as ditch-water.
"That is strange," she said, "I
never saw that effect before." Next she took the phial and powdered it
into a pinch of tiny dust with a whale's tooth that lay upon the table. The
dust she took to the window and threw out, a little at a time. Lady Bellamy
wished to die as she had lived, a mystery. Then she came and stood over the
deadly draught she had compounded, and thought sometimes aloud and sometime=
s to
herself.
"I have heard it said that suicides are
cowards; let those who say it, stand as I stand to-night, with death lying =
in
the little circle of a glass before them, and they will know whether they a=
re
cowards, or if they are spirits of a braver sort than those who can bear to
drudge to the bitter end of life. It is not yet too late. I can throw that
stuff away. I can leave this place and begin life anew in some other countr=
y,
my jewels will give me the means, and, for the matter of that, I can always=
win
as much money as I want. But, no; then I must begin again, and for that I h=
ave
not the patience or the time. Besides, I long to know , to solve the mystery. Come, let m=
e make
an end, I will chance it. Spirits like my own wear their life only while it
does not gall them; if it begins to fret, they cast it from them like a
half-worn dress, scorning to wrap it round them till it drops away in
rags."
She raised the glass.
"How lonely this place is, and how still,=
and
yet it may well be that there are millions round me watching what I do. Why
does he come into my mind now, that good man, and the child I bore him? Sha=
ll I
see them presently? Will they crush me with their reproaches? And--have my =
nerves
broken down?--Is it fancy, or does that girl's pale face, with warning in h=
er
eyes, float between me and the wall? Well, I will drink to her, for her mind
could even overtop my own. She was, at least, my equal, and I have driven h=
er
mad! Let me taste this stuff."
Lifting the glass to her lips, she drank a lit=
tle,
and set it down. The effect was almost magical. Her eyes blazed, a new beau=
ty
bloomed upon her cheek, her whole grand presence seemed to gain in majesty.=
The
quick drug for a moment burnt away the curtain between the seen and the uns=
een,
and yet left her living.
"Ah," she cried, in the silence of t=
he
room, "how it runs along my veins; I hear the rushing of the stars, I =
see
strange worlds, my soul leaps through infinite spaces, the white light of
immortality strikes upon my eyes and blinds me. Come, life unending, I have
conquered death."
Seizing the poison, she swallowed what remaine=
d of
it, and dashed the glass down beside her. Then she fell heavily on her face,
once she struggled to her knees, then fell again, and lay still.
After throwing George Caresfoot into the
bramble-bush, Arthur walked steadily back to the inn, where he arrived, qui=
te
composed in manner, at about half-past seven. Old Sam, the ostler, was in t=
he
yard, washing a trap. He went up to him, and asked when the next train star=
ted
for London.
"There is one as leaves Roxham at nine
o'clock, sir, and an uncommon fast one, I'm told. But you bean't a-going ye=
t,
be you, sir?"
"Yes, have the gig ready in time to catch=
the
train."
"Very good, sir. Been to the fire, I supp=
ose
sir?" he went on, dimly perceiving that Arthur's clothes were torn.
"It were a fine place, it wore, and it did blaze right beautiful."=
;
"No; what fire?"
"Bless me, sir, didn't you see it last
night?--why, Isleworth Hall, to be sure. It wore burnt right out, and all as
was in it."
"Oh! How did it come to get burnt?"<= o:p>
"Can't say, sir, but I did hear say how as
Lady Bellamy was a-dining there last night along with the squire; the squir=
e he
went out somewhere, my lady she goes home, and the footman he goes to put o=
ut the
lamp and finds the drawing-room a roaring fiery furnace, like as parson tel=
ls
us on. But I don't know how that can be, for I heard how as the squire was
a-dying, so 'taint likely that he was a-going out. But, lord, sir, folk in
these parts do lie that uncommon, 'taint as it be when I was a boy. As like=
as
no, he's no more dying than you are. Anyhow, sir, it all burned like tinder,
and the only thing, so I'm told, as was saved was a naked stone statty of a
girl with a chain round her wrists, as Jim Blakes, our constable, being in
liquor, brought out in his arms, thinking how as it was alive, and tried to=
rewive
it with cold water."
At that moment Sam's story was interrupted by =
the
arrival of a farmer's cart.
"How be you, Sam?"
"Well, I thank yer, for seventy-two, that=
is,
not particular ill."
"Have you a gentleman of the name of Heig=
ham
staying here?"
"I am he," said Arthur, "do you
want me?"
"No, sir, only the station-master at Roxh=
am
asked me to drop this here as it was marked immediate," and he handed
Arthur a box.
Arthur thanked him, and, taking it, went up to=
his
room, leaving old Sam delighted to find a new listener to his story of the
fire.
It was from the florist, and contained the bou=
quet
he had meant to give Angela on her wedding-day. It had cost him a good deal=
of
thought that bouquet, to say nothing of five guineas of the coin of the rea=
lm, and
he felt a certain curiosity to look at it, though to do so gave him somethi=
ng
of the same sensation that we experience in reading a letter written by some
loved hand which we know grew cold before the lines it traced could reach u=
s.
He took the box to his room and opened it. The bouquet was a lovely thing, =
and
did credit even to Covent Garden, and the masses of stephanois and
orange-bloom, relieved here and there by rising sprays of lilies-of-the-val=
ley,
filled the whole room with fragrance.
He drew it from the zinc-well in which it was
packed in moss and cotton-wool, and wondered what he should do with it. He
could not leave such a thing about, nor would he take it away. Suddenly an =
idea
struck him, and he repacked it in its case as carefully as he could in the
original moss and cotton-wool, and then looked about for the sheet of
tissue-paper that should complete the covering. He had destroyed it, and ha=
d to
search for a substitute. In so doing his eye fell upon a long envelope on h=
is
dressing-table and he smiled. It contained his marriage licence, and he
bethought him that it was a very fair substitute for tissue-paper, and quit=
e as
worthless. He extracted it, and, placing it over the flowers, closed up the
box. Then he carefully directed it to "Mrs. George Caresfoot, Abbey
House," and, ringing the bell, desired the boots to find a messenger to
take it over.
When he had done all this, he sat down and
wondered what could have come to him that he could take pleasure in doing a
cruel action only worthy of a jealous woman.
Perhaps of all the bitter cups which are held =
to
our lips in this sad world there is none more bitter than that which it was=
his
lot to drink of now. To begin with, the blow fell in youth, when we love or=
hate,
or act, with an ardour and an entire devotion that we give to nothing in
after-life. It is then that the heart puts forth its most tender and yet its
most lusty shoots, and if they are crushed the whole plant suffers, and
sometimes bleeds to death. Arthur had, to an extent quite unrealized by him=
self
until he lost her, centred all his life in this woman, and it was no
exaggeration to say, as he had said to her, that she had murdered his heart,
and withered up all that was best in it. She had done more, she had inflict=
ed
the most cruel injury upon him that a woman can inflict upon a man. She had
shaken his belief in her sex at large.
He felt, sitting there in his desolation, that= now he had lost Angela he could never be the same man he would otherwise have b= een. Her cruel desertion had shattered the tinted glass through which youth look= s at the world, and he now, before his day, saw it as it is, grim and hard, and = full of coarse realities, and did not yet know that time would again soften down= the sharpest of the rough outlines, and throw a garment of its own over the nakedness of life. He was a generous- hearted man and not a vain one, and h= ad he thought that Angela had ceased to care for him and loved this other man,= he could have found it in his heart to forgive her, and even to sympathize with her; but he could not think this. Something told him that it was not so. Sh= e had contracted herself into a shameful, loveless marriage, and, to gain ends qu= ite foreign to all love, had raised a barrier between them which had no right to exist, and yet one that in this world could, he thought, never be removed.<= o:p>
Misfortunes rain upon us from every quarter of=
the
sky, but so long as they come from the sky we can bear them, for they are
beyond the control of our own volition, and must be accepted, as we accept =
the gale
or the lightning. It is the troubles which spring from our own folly and
weakness, or from that of those with whom our lives are intertwined, which
really crush us. Now Arthur knew enough of the world to be aware that there=
is
no folly to equal that of a woman who, of her own free will, truly loving o=
ne
man whom she can marry if she will sit, deliberately gives herself to anoth=
er.
It is not only a folly, it is a crime, and, like most crimes, for this life=
, an
irretrievable mistake.
Long before he got back to London, the first
unwholesome exaltation of mind that always follows a great misfortune, and
which may perhaps be compared with the excitement that for awhile covers the
shameful sense of defeat in an army, had evaporated, and he began to realize
the crushing awfulness of the blow which had fallen on him, and to fear les=
t it
should drive him mad. He looked round his little horizon for some straw of
comfort at which to catch, and could find none; nothing but dreadful though=
ts
and sickening visions.
And then suddenly, just as he was sinking into=
the
dulness of despair, there came, like the fist gleam of light in chaotic
darkness, the memory of Mildred Carr. Truly she had spoken prophetically. H=
is
idol had been utterly cast down and crushed to powder by a hand stronger th=
an
his own. He would go to her in his suffering; perhaps she could find means =
to
comfort him.
When he reached town he took a hansom and went=
to
look for some rooms; he would not return to those he had left on the previo=
us
afternoon, for the sympathetic landlord had helped him to pack up the weddi=
ng clothes
and had admired the wedding gift. Arthur felt that he could not face him ag=
ain.
He found some to suit him in Duke Street, St. James, and left his things th=
ere.
Thence he drove to Fenchurch Street and took a passage to Madeira. The cler=
k,
the same one who had given him his ticket about a year before, remembered h=
im
perfectly, and asked him how he got on with Mrs. Carr. But when his passage=
was
taken he was disgusted to find that the mail did not sail for another five =
days.
He looked at his watch, it was only half-past one o'clock. He could scarcely
believe what had happened had only occurred that morning, only seven hours =
ago.
It seemed to him that he had stood face to face with Angela, not that morni=
ng,
but years ago, and miles away, on some desolate shore which lay on the other
side of a dead ocean of pain. And yet it was only seven hours! If the hours
went with such heavy wings, how would the days pass, and the months, and the
years?
What should he do with himself? In his conditi=
on
perpetual activity was as necessary to him as air, he must do something to =
dull
the sharp edge of his suffering, or the sword of madness which hung over hi=
m by
such a slender thread would fall. Suddenly he bethought him of a man whom he
had known slightly up at Cambridge, a man of wealth and evil reputation. Th=
is
man would, he felt, be able to put him in a way of getting through his time=
. He
knew his address and thither he drove.
Four days later, a figure, shrunk, shaky, and
looking prematurely old, with the glaze of intoxication scarcely faded from=
his
eye, walked into Mr. Borley's office. That respectable gentleman looked and
looked again.
"Good Heavens," he said at length;
"it isn't Arthur Heigham."
"Yes, it is, though," said an unequal
voice; "I've come for some money. I've got none left and I am going to
Madeira to-morrow."
"My dear boy, what has happened to you? Y=
ou
look so very strange. I have been expecting to see your marriage in the pap=
er.
Why, it's only a few days ago that you left to be married."
"A few days, a few years, you mean. I've =
been
jilted, that's all, nothing to speak of, you know, but I had rather not talk
about it, if you don't mind. I'm like a nag with a flayed back, don't like =
the sight
of the saddle at present," and poor Arthur, mentally and physically
exhausted, put his head down on his arm and gulped.
The old lawyer took in the situation at a glan=
ce.
"Hard hit," he said to himself;
"and gone on to the burst," and then aloud, "well, well, that
has happened to many a man, in fact, you mightn't believe it, but it once
happened to me, and I don't look much the worse, do I? But we won't talk ab=
out
it. The less said of a bad business the better, that's my maxim. And so you=
are
going abroad again. Have you got any friends at Madeira?"
Arthur nodded.
"And you want some more money. Let me see=
, I
sent you 200 pounds last week."
"That was for my wedding tour. I've spent=
it
now. You can guess how I have spent it. Pleasant contrast, isn't it? Gives =
rise
to moral reflections."
"Come, come, Heigham, you must not give w=
ay
like that. These things happen to most men in the course of their lives, an=
d if
they are wise it teaches them that gingerbread isn't all gilt, and to set d=
own
women at their proper value, and appreciate a good one if it pleases Provid=
ence
to give them one in course of time. Don't you go making a fool of yourself =
over
this girl's pretty face. Handsome is as handsome does. These things are har=
d to
bear, I know, but you don't make them any better by pitching your own
reputation after a girl's want of stability."
"I know that you are quite right, and I am
much obliged to you for your kind advice, but we won't say anything more ab=
out
it. I suppose that you can let me have some money?"
"Oh yes, if you want it, though I think we
shall have to overdraw. What do you want? Two hundred? Here is the
cheque."
"I am anxious about that young fellow,&qu=
ot;
said Mr. Borley to himself, in the pause between Arthur's departure and the
entry of the next client. "I hope his disappointment won't send him to=
the
dogs. He is not of the sort who take it easy, like I did, for instance. Dear
me, that is a long while ago now. I wonder what the details of his little
affair were, and who the girl married. Captain Shuffle! yes, show him in.&q=
uot;
Next morning Arthur cashed his cheque, and sta=
rted
on his travels. He had no very clear idea why he was going back to Madeira,=
or
what he meant to do when he got there; but then, at this painful stage of h=
is existence,
none of his ideas could be called clear. Though he did not realize it, what=
he
was searching for was sympathy, female sympathy of course; for in trouble
members of either sex gravitate instinctively to the other for comfort. Per=
haps
they do not quite trust their own, or perhaps they are afraid of being laug=
hed
at.
Arthur's was not one of those natures that can
lock their griefs within the bosom, and let them lie there till in process =
of
time they shrivel away. Except among members of the peerage, as pictured in=
current
literature, these stern, proud creatures are not common. Man, whether he
figures in the world as a peer or a hedge-carpenter, is, as a matter of fac=
t,
mentally as well as physically, gregarious, and adverse to loneliness eithe=
r in
his joys or sorrows.
Decidedly, too, the homoeopathic system must be
founded on great natural facts, and there is philosophy, born of the
observation of human nature, in the somewhat vulgar proverb that recommends=
a
"hair of the dog that bit you." Otherwise, nine men out of every =
ten
who have been badly treated, or think that they have been badly treated, by=
a
woman, would not at once rush headlong for refuge to another, a proceeding
which also, in nine cases out of ten, ends in making confusion worse
confounded.
Arthur, though he was not aware of it, was
exemplifying a natural law that has not yet been properly explained. But, e=
ven
if he had known it, it is doubtful if the knowledge would have made him any
happier; for it is irritating to reflect that we are the slaves of natural =
laws,
that our action is not the outcome of our own volition, but of a vague force
working silently as the Gulf Stream--since such knowledge makes a man measu=
re
his weakness, and so strikes at his tenderest point, his vanity.
But, whilst we have been reflecting together, =
my
reader and I, Arthur was making his way to Madeira, so we may as well all c=
ome
to a halt off Funchal.
Very shortly after the vessel had dropped her
anchor, Arthur was greeted by his friend, the manager of "Miles'
Hotel."
"Glad to see you, sir, though I can't say
that you look well. I scarcely expected to find anybody for us at this time=
of
year. Business is very slack in the summer."
"Yes, I suppose that Madeira is pretty
empty."
"There is nobody here at all, sir."<= o:p>
"Is Mrs. Carr gone, then?" asked Art=
hur,
in some alarm.
"No; she is still here. She has not been =
away
this year. But she has been very quiet; no parties or anything, which makes
people think that she has lost money."
By this time the boat was rising on the roll of
the last billow, to be caught next moment by a dozen hands, and dragged up =
the
shingle. It was evening, or rather, verging that way, and from under the
magnolia- trees below the cathedral there came the sound of the band summon=
ing the
inhabitants of Funchal to congregate, chatter, and flirt.
"I think," said Arthur, "that I
will ask you to take my things up to the hotel. I will come by-and-by. I sh=
ould
like the same room I had before, if it is empty."
"Very good, Mr. Heigham. You will have the
place nearly all to yourself now."
Having seen his baggage depart, Arthur turned,=
and
resisting the importunities of beggars, guides, and parrot-sellers, who had=
not
yet recognized him as an old hand, made his way towards the Quinta Carr. How
well he knew the streets and houses, even to the withered faces of the women
who sat by the doors, and yet he seemed to have grown old since he had seen
them. Ten minutes of sharp walking brought him to the gates of the Quinta, =
and
he paused before them, and thought how, a few months ago, he had quitted th=
em,
miserable at the grief of another, now to re-enter them utterly crushed by =
his
own.
He walked on through the beautiful gardens to =
the
house. The hall-door stood open. He did not wait to ring, but, driven by so=
me
impulse, entered. After the glare of the sun, which at that time of the yea=
r was
powerful even in its decline, the carefully shaded hall seemed quite dark. =
But
by degrees his eyes adapted themselves to the altered light, and began to
distinguish the familiar outline of the furniture. Next they travelled to t=
he
door of the drawing-room, where another sight awaited them. For there, hers=
elf
a perfect picture, standing in the doorway for a frame, her hands outstretc=
hed
in welcome, and a loving smile upon her lips, was Mildred.
"I was waiting for you," she said,
gently. "I thought that you would come."
"Mildred, my idol has been cast down, and=
, as
you told me to do, I have come back to you."
"Dear," she answered, "you are =
very
welcome."
And then came Miss Terry, pleased with all her
honest heart to see him, and utterly ignorant of the fierce currents that s=
wept
under the smooth surface of their little social sea. Miss Terry was not by =
nature
a keen observer.
"Dear me, Mr. Heigham, who would have tho=
ught
of seeing you again so soon? You a=
re brave to cross the bay so often" (h=
er
thoughts ran a great deal on the Bay of Biscay); "but I don't think you
look quite well, you have such black lines under your eyes, and, I declare,=
there's
a grey hair!"
"Oh, I assure you your favourite bay was
enough to turn anybody's hair grey, Miss Terry."
And so, talking cheerfully, they went in to the
pleasant little dinner, Mildred leaning over so slightly on his arm, and ga=
zing
into his sad face with full and happy eyes. After all that he had gone thro=
ugh,
it seemed to Arthur as though he had dropped into a haven of rest.
"See here," said Mildred, when they =
rose
from table, "a wonder has come to pass since you deserted us. Look,
sceptic that you are!" and she led him to the window, and, lifting a g=
lass
shade which protected a flower-pot, showed him a green spike peeping from t=
he
soil.
"What is that?"
"What is it?--why, it is the mummy hyacin=
th
which you declared that we should never see blossom in this world. It has
budded; whether or not it will blossom, who can say?"
"It is an omen," he said, with a lit=
tle
laugh; and for the first time that evening their eyes met.
"Come into the garden, and you can smoke =
on
the museum verandah; it is pleasant there these hot nights."
"It is dangerous, your garden."
She laughed softly. "You have proved your=
self
superior to danger."
Then they passed out together. The evening was
still and very sultry. Not a breath stirred the silence of the night. The
magnolia, the moon- flower, and a thousand other blooms poured out their
fragrance upon the surrounding air, where it lay in rich patches, like perf=
ume
thrown on water. A thin mist veiled the sea, and the little wavelets struck=
with
a sorrowful sound against the rock below.
"Tell me all about it, Arthur."
She had settled herself upon a long low chair,=
and
as she leant back the starlight glanced white upon her arms and bosom.
"There is not much to tell. It is a common
story--at least, I believe so. She threw me over, and the day before I shou=
ld
have married her, married another man."
"Well?"
"Well, I saw her the morning following her
marriage. I do not remember what I said, but I believe I spoke what was in =
my
mind. She fainted, and I left her."
"Ah, you spoke harshly, perhaps."
"Spoke harshly! Now that I have had time =
to
think of it, I wish that I could have had ten imaginations to shape my
thoughts, and ten tongues to speak them with! Do you understand what this w=
oman
has done? She has sold herself to a brute--oh, Mildred, such a brute--she h=
as deserted
me for a man who is not even a gentleman."
"Perhaps she was forced into it."
"Forced!--nonsense; we are not in the Mid=
dle
Ages. A good woman should have been forced to drown herself before she
consented to commit such a sacrilege against herself as to marry a man she
hated. But she, 'my love, my dove, my undefiled'--she whom I thought whiter
than the snow --she could do this, and do it deliberately. I had rather have
seen her dead, and myself dead with her."
"Don't you take a rather exaggerated view,
Arthur? Don't you think, perhaps, that some of the fault lies with you for
overrating women? Believe me, so far as my experience goes, and I have seen=
a
good many, the majority of them do not possess the exalted purity of mind y=
ou
and many very young men attribute to them. They are, on the contrary, for t=
he
most part quite ready to exercise a wise discretion in the matter of marria=
ge,
even when the feeble tendencies which represent their affections point anot=
her
way. A little pressure goes a long way with them; they are always glad to m=
ake
the most of it; it is the dust they throw up to hide their retreat. Your
Angela, for instance, was no doubt, and probably still is, very fond of you.
You are a charming young man, with nice eyes and a taking way with women, a=
nd
she would very much have liked to marry you; but then she also liked her co=
usin's
estates. She could not have both, and, being forced to choose, she chose the
latter. You should take a common-sense view of the matter; you are not the
first who has suffered. Women, especially young women, who do not understand
the value of affection, must be very much in love before they submit to the
self-sacrifice that is supposed to be characteristic of them, and what men =
talk
of as stains upon them they do not consider as such. They know, if they kno=
w nothing
else, that a good income and an establishment will make them perfectly clea=
n in
the opinion of their own small world--a little world of shams and forms that
cares nothing for the spirit of the moral law, provided the letter is acted=
up
to. It is by this that they mark their standard of personal virtues, not by=
the
high rule you men imagine for them. There is no social fuller's soap so
effectual as money and position."
"You speak like a book, and give your own=
sex
a high character. Tell me, then, would you do such a thing?"
"I, Arthur? How can you ask me? I had rat=
her
be torn to pieces by wild horses. I spoke of the majority of the women, not=
of
them all."
"Ah, and yet she could do it, and I thoug=
ht
her better than you."
"I do not think that you should speak
bitterly of her, Arthur; I think that you should be sorry for her."
"Sorry for her? Why?"
"Because from what I have gathered about =
her,
she is not quite an ordinary young woman: however badly she may have treated
you, she is a person of refined feelings and susceptibilities. Is it not
so?"
"Without a doubt."
"Well, then, you should pity her, because=
she
will bitterly expiate her mistake. For myself, I do not pity her much, beca=
use
I will not waste my sympathy on a fool; for, to my mind, the woman who coul=
d do
what she has done, and deliberately throw away everything that can make life
really worth living to us women, is a most contemptible fool. But you love =
her,
and, therefore, you should be sorry for her."
"But why?"
"Because she is a woman who at one-and-tw=
enty
has buried all the higher part of life, who has, of her own act, for ever
deprived herself of joys that nothing else can bring her. Love, true love, =
is almost
the only expression, of which we women are capable, of all the nobler insti=
ncts
and vague yearnings after what is higher and better than the things we see =
and
feel around us. When we love most, and love happily, then we are at our top=
most
bent, and soar further above the earth than anything else can carry us.
Consequently, when a woman is faithless to her love, which is the purest and
most honourable part of her, the very best thing to which she can attain, s=
he
clips her wings, and can fly no more, but must be tossed, like a crippled g=
ull,
hither and thither upon the stormy surface of her little sea. Of course, I =
speak
of women of the higher stamp. Many, perhaps most, will feel nothing of all
this. In a little while they will grow content with their dull round and the
alien nature which they have mated with, and in their children, and their p=
etty
cares and dissipations, will forget that they possess a higher part, if ind=
eed
they do possess it. Like everything else in the world, they find their leve=
l.
But with women like your Angela it is another thing. For them time only ser=
ves
to increasingly unveil the Medusa-headed truth, till at last they see it as=
it
is, and their hearts turn to stone. Backed with a sick longing to see a face
that is gone from them, they become lost spirits, wandering everlastingly in
the emptiness they have chosen, and finding no rest. Even her children will=
not
console her."
Arthur uttered a smothered exclamation.
"Don't start, Arthur; you must accustom yourself to the fact that that =
woman
has passed away from you, and is as completely the personal property of ano=
ther
man, as that chair is mine. But, there, the subject is a painful one to you;
shall we change it?"
"It is one that you seem to have studied
pretty deeply."
"Yes, because I have realized its importa=
nce
to a woman. For some years I have longed to be able to fall in love, and wh=
en
at last I did so, Arthur," and here her voice grew very soft, "it=
was
with a man who could care nothing for me. Such has been my unlucky chance. =
That
a woman, herself beloving and herself worthily beloved, could throw her ble=
ssed
opportunity away is to me a thing inconceivable, and that, Arthur, is what =
your
Angela has done."
"Then you will not marry now, Mildred?&qu=
ot;
said Arthur, after a pause.
"No, Arthur."
"No one?"
"No one, Arthur."
He rose, and, leaning over the railing of the
verandah, looked at the sea. The mist that hid it was drifting and eddying
hither and thither before little puffs of wind, and the clear sky was cloud=
ing
up.
"There is going to be a storm," he s=
aid,
presently.
"Yes, I think so, the air feels like
it."
He hesitated a while, and looked down at her. =
She
seemed very lovely in the half lights, as indeed she was. She, too, looked =
up
at him inquiringly. At last he spoke.
"Mildred, you said just now that you would
not marry anybody. Will you make an exception?--will you marry me?"
It was her turn to pause now.
"You are very good," she murmured.
"No, I am not at all good. You know how t=
he
case stands. You know that I still love Angela, and that I shall in all
probability always love her. I cannot help that. But if you will have me,
Mildred, I will try to be a good husband to you, and to make you happy. Will
you marry me, dear?"
"No, Arthur."
"Why not? Have you, then, ceased to care =
for
me?"
"No, dear. I love you more than ever. You
cannot dream how much I do love you."
"Then why will you not marry me? Is it
because of this business?"
"No," and raising herself in the low
chair, she looked at him with intense earnestness, "that is not the
reason. I will not marry you, because I have become a better woman since you
went away, because I do not wish to ruin your life. You ask me to do so now=
in
all sincerity, but you do not know what you ask. You come from the scene of=
as
bitter a disappointment as can befall a man, and you are a little touched b=
y the
contrasting warmth of your reception here, a little moved by my evident
interest, and perhaps a little influenced by my good looks, though they are nothing much. Supposing that I conse=
nted,
supposing I said, 'Arthur, I will put my hand in yours and be your wife,' a=
nd that
we were married to-morrow, do you think, when the freshness of the thing had
worn off, that you would be happy with me? I do not. You would soon get
horribly tired of me, Arthur, for the little leaven that leavens the whole =
lump
is wanting. You do not love me; and the redundance of my affection would we=
ary
you, and, for my part, I should find it difficult to continually struggle
against an impalpable rival, though, indeed, I should be very willing to pu=
t up
with that."
"I am sorry you think so."
"Yes, Arthur, I do think so; but you do n=
ot
know what it costs me to say it. I am deliberately shutting the door which =
bars
me from my heaven; I am throwing away the chance I strove so hard to win. T=
hat will
tell you how much I think it. Do you know, I must be a strange contradictio=
n.
When I knew you were engaged to another woman, I strained my every nerve to=
win
you from her. While the object was still to be gained, I felt no compunctio=
n; I
was fettered by no scruples. I wanted to steal you from her and marry you
myself. But now that all this is changed, and that you of your own free will
come and offer to make me your wife, I for the first time feel how wrong it=
would
be of me to take advantage of you in a moment of pique and disappointment, =
and
bind you for life to a nature which you do not really understand, to a viol=
ent
and a jealous woman. Too late, when your life was hampered and your future
spoiled, you would discover that you hated me. Arthur dear, I will not cons=
ent
to bind you to me by any tie that cannot be broken."
"Hush, Mildred! you should not say such
things about yourself. If you are as violent and jealous as you say, you are
also a very noble- hearted woman, for none other would so sacrifice herself.
Perhaps you are right; I do not know. But, whether you are right or wrong, =
I cannot
tell you how you have made me respect you."
"Dear, those are the most comfortable wor=
ds I
have ever heard; after what has passed between us, I scarcely thought to win
your respect."
"Then you will not marry me, Mildred?&quo=
t;
"No."
"That is your fixed determination?"<= o:p>
"It is."
"Ah, well!" he sighed, "I suppo=
se
that I had better 'top my boom' again?"
"Do what?"
"I mean I had better leave Madeira."=
"Why should you leave Madeira?"
He hesitated a little before replying.
"Well, because if I do not marry you, and
still come here, people will talk. They did before, you know."
"Are you afraid of being talked about,
then?"
"I? Oh! dear no. What can it matter to me
now?"
"And supposing I were to tell you that wh=
at
'people' say, with or without foundation, is as much a matter of indifferen=
ce
to me as the blowing of next summer's breezes, would you still consider it =
necessary
to leave Madeira?"
"I don't know."
He again rose and leant over the verandah rail=
.
"It is going to be a wild night," he
said, presently.
"Yes; the wind will spoil all the magnoli=
as.
Pick me that bud; it is too good to be wasted."
He obeyed, and, just as he stepped back on to =
the
verandah, a fierce rush of wind came up from the sea, and went howling away
behind them.
"I love a storm," she murmured, as he
brought the flower to her. "It makes me feel so strong," and she
stretched out her perfect arms as though to catch the wind.
"What am I to do with this magnolia?"=
;
"Give it to me. I will pin it in my
dress--no, do you fasten it for me."
The chair in which she was lounging was so low
that, to do as she bade him, Arthur was forced to kneel beside her. Kneeling
thus, the sweet, upturned face was but just beneath his own; the breath from
the curved lips played amongst his hair, and again there crept over him tha=
t feeling
of fascination, of utter helplessness, that he had once before resisted. But
this time he did not attempt to resist, and no vision came to save him. Slo=
wly
drawn by the beauty of her tender eyes, he yielded to the spell, and soon h=
er
lips were pressed upon his own, and the white arms had closed around his ne=
ck,
whilst the crushed magnolia bloom shed its perfume round them.
Fiercer swept the storm, the lightning flashed,
and the gale catching the crests of the rising waves dashed them in spray to
where they sat.
"Dear," he said presently, "you
must not stop here, the spray is wetting you."
"I wish that it would drown me," she
answered, almost fiercely, "I shall never be so happy again. You think
that you love me now; I should like to die before you learn to hate me. Com=
e,
let us go in!"
When Mildred received Lady Bellamy's telegram,=
she
was so sure that it would prove the forerunner of Arthur's arrival at Madei=
ra
that she had at once set about making arrangements for his amusement.
It so happened that there was at the time a ve=
ry
beautiful sea-going steam yacht of about two hundred and fifty tons burden
lying in the roadstead. She belonged to a nobleman who was suddenly recalle=
d to
England by mail-steamer, and, through a series of chances, Mildred was enab=
led
to buy her a bargain. The crew of the departed nobleman also continued in h=
er
service.
The morning after the storm broke sweet and cl=
ear,
and, except that the flowers were somewhat shattered, all Nature looked the
fresher for its violent visitation. Arthur, who had come up early to the
Quinta, Mildred, and Miss Terry were all seated at breakfast in a room that=
looked
out to the sea, which, although the wind had died away, still ran rather hi=
gh.
They made a pretty picture as they sat round the English-looking
breakfast-table, with the light pouring in upon them from the open windows,
Miss Terry, with her usual expression of good- humoured solemnity, pouring =
out
the tea, and Mildred and Arthur, who sat exactly opposite to each other,
drinking it. Never had the former looked more lovely than she did that morn=
ing.
"My dear," said Agatha to her,
"what have you done to yourself? You look beautiful."
"Do I, dear? Then it is because I am
happy."
Agatha was quite right, thought Arthur, she did
look beautiful, there was such depth and rest in her clear eyes, such a wea=
lth
of happy triumph written on her features. She might have sat that morning a=
s a study
of the "Venus Victrix." Her talk, too, was as bright as herself. =
She
laughed and shone and sparkled like the rain-drops on the bamboo sprays that
rocked in the sunshine, and whenever she addressed herself to Arthur, which=
was
often enough, every sentence seemed wrapped in tender meaning. Her whole li=
fe
went out towards him, a palpable thing; she waited on his words and basked =
in
his smile. Mildred Carr did nothing by halves.
Arthur was the least cheerful of the three, th=
ough
at times he tried his best to join in Mildred's merriment. Any one who knew=
him
well could have told that he was suffering from one of his fits of constitu=
tional
melancholy, and a physiognomist, looking at the somewhat dreamy eyes and
pensive face, would probably have added that he neither was nor ever would =
be
an entirely happy man.
By degrees, however, he seemed to get the bett=
er
of his thoughts, whatever they might be.
"Now, Arthur, if you are quite awake,&quo=
t;
began, or rather went on, Mildred, "perhaps you will come to the windo=
w. I
have something to show you."
"Here I am at your service; what may it
be?"
"Good. Now look; do you see that little
vessel in the bay beneath there to the right of Leeuw Rock?"
"Yes, and uncommonly pretty she is; what =
of
her?"
"What of her? Why, she is my yacht."=
"Your yacht?"
"Goodness gracious, Mildred, you don't me=
an
to say that you've been buying a yacht and told me nothing about it? Just
think! Well, I call that sly."
"Yes, my dear Agatha, I have; a yacht and=
a
ready-made crew, and the very prettiest saloon in the world, and
sleeping-cabins that you will think it an honour to be sea-sick in, and a
cook's galley with bright copper fittings, and a cook with a white cap, and
steam-steering gear if you care to use it, and----"
"For goodness sake, don't overwhelm us; a=
nd
what are you going to do with your white elephant, now that you have got
it?"
"Do with it? why, ride on it, of course.
'Ladies and gentlemen,' or rather 'lady and gentleman.' Attention! You will
both be in marching, or rather in sailing, order by four this afternoon, fo=
r at
five we start for the Canaries. Now, no remarks; I'm a skipper, and I expec=
t to
be obeyed, or I'll put you in irons."
"You've done that already," said Art=
hur,
sotto voce .
"Mildred, I won't go, and that's flat.&qu=
ot;
"My dear, you mean that you are afraid of
being flat. But, Agatha, seriously, you must come; nobody is sick in those
semi-tropical waters, and, if you won't, I suppose it would not be quite the
thing for Arthur and I to go alone. And then, my dear, just think what a sp=
lendid
place the Canaries must be for insects."
"Why?" asked Agatha, solemnly.
"Because of all the little birds it has to
support."
"But I thought they lived on hemp-seed.&q=
uot;
"Oh, no--not in their native land."<= o:p>
"Well, I suppose I must go; but I really
believe that you will kill me with your mania for sea-voyages, Mildred. I
suppose you will take to ballooning next."
"That is by no means a bad idea; I should
like to see you in a balloon, Agatha."
"Mildred, I know where to draw the line. =
Into
a balloon I will never go. I have been into a Madeira sledge, and that is q=
uite
enough for me. I always dream about it twice a week."
"Well, my dear, I promise never to ask you
when I want to go ballooning; Arthur and I will go by ourselves. It would b=
e a
grand opportunity for a tete-a-tete. And now go and see about getting the t=
hings
ready--there's a dear; and, Arthur, do you send John down to Miles' for your
portmanteau."
"Hadn't I better go and see about it
myself?"
"Certainly not; I want you to help me, and
come down and talk to the skipper, for he will be under your orders, you kn=
ow.
He is such a delightful sailor-man, perfect down to his quid, and always sa=
ys,
'Ay, ay,' in the orthodox fashion. Certainly you must not go; I will not tr=
ust
you out of my sight--you might run away and leave me alone, and then what
should I do?"
Arthur laughed and acquiesced. Sitting down, he
wrote a note asking the manager of the hotel to send his things up to the
Quinta Carr, together with his account, as he was leaving Madeira for the
present.
The rest of the morning was spent by everybody=
in
busy preparation. Boxes were packed and provisions shipped sufficient to
victual an Arctic expedition. At last everything was ready, and at a little
after three they went down the steps leading to the tiny bay, and, embarkin=
g on
the smart boat that was waiting for them, were conveyed in safety to the Evening Star , for such was the yacht's =
name.
Arthur suggested that it should be changed to the Mildred Carr , and got snubbed for his p=
ains.
The E=
vening
Star was a beautiful craft, built =
on
fine lines, but for all that a wonderful boat in a heavy sea. She was a
three-masted schooner, square-rigged forward, of large beam. Her fittings b=
elow
were perfect down to the painted panels after Watteau in the saloon and the
electric bells, and she was rigged either to sail or steam as might be most
convenient. On the present occasion, as there was not the slightest hurry a=
nd
no danger of a lee-shore, it was determined that they should not avail
themselves of the steam-power, so the propeller was hoisted up and everythi=
ng
got ready for that most delightful thing, a long cruise under canvas.
Arthur was perfectly charmed with everything he
saw, and so was Agatha Terry, until they got under way, when she discovered
that a mail- steamer was a joke compared with the yacht in the matter of
motion. In short, the unfortunate Agatha was soon reduced to her normal con=
dition
of torpor. Mildred always declared that she hibernated on board ship like a
dormouse or a bear. She was not very sea-sick, she simply lay and slept, ea=
ting
very little and thinking not at all.
"By the way," said Arthur, as they
sailed out of the bay, "I never gave any directions about my
letters."
"Oh! that will not matter," answered
Mildred, carelessly, for they were leaning over the taffrail together;
"they will keep them for you at 'Miles' Hotel.' But, my dear boy, do y=
ou
know what time it is? Ten minutes to seven; that dreadful bell with be goin=
g in
a minute, and the soup will be spoiled. Run and get ready, do."
When dinner was over--Miss Terry would have
none--they went and sat upon the moonlit deck. The little vessel was under =
all
her canvas, for the breeze was light, and skimmed over the water like a gull
with its wings spread. In the low light Madeira was nothing but a blot on t=
he sky-line.
The crew were forward, with the solitary exception of the man steering the
vessel from his elevated position on the bridge; and sitting as they were,
abaft the deck-cabin, the two were utterly alone between the great silence =
of
the stars and of the sea. She looked into his face, and it was tender towar=
ds
her--that night was made for lovers--and tears of happiness stood in her ey=
es.
She took his hand in hers, and her head nestled upon his breast.
"I should like to sail on for ever so, qu=
ite
alone with you. I never again wish to see the land or the sun, or any other=
sea
than this, or any other eyes than yours, to hear any more of the things tha=
t I
have known, to learn to know any fresh things. If I could choose, I would a=
sk
that I might now glide gently from your arms into those of eternal sleep. O=
h!
Arthur, I am so happy now--so happy that I scarcely dare to speak, for fear
lest I should break the spell, and I feel so good--so much nearer heaven. W=
hen
I think of all my past life, it seems like a stupid dream full of little
nothings, of which I cannot recall any memory except that they were empty a=
nd
without meaning. But the future is worse than the past, because it looks fa=
ir,
and snakes always hide in flowers. It makes me afraid. How do I know what t=
he
future will bring? I wish that the present--the pleasant, certain present t=
hat
I hold with my hand--could last for ever."
"Who does know, Mildred? If the human race
could see the pleasant surprises in store for it individually, I believe th=
at
it would drown itself en masse . W=
ho has
not sometimes caught at the skirt of to-day and cried, 'Stay a little--do n=
ot
let to-morrow come yet!' You know the lines--
"'O temps suspends ton vol, et vous heures propices Suspendez votre cours, Laissez nous savourer les rapid=
es
delices Des plus beaux de=
nos
jours.'
"Lamartine only crystallized a universal
aspiration when he wrote that."
"Oh! Arthur, I tell you of love and happi=
ness
wide as the great sea round us, and you talk of 'universal aspirations.' It=
is
the first cold breath from that grey-skied future that I fear. Oh! dear, I =
wonder--you
do not know how I wonder--if, should you ask me again, I shall ever with a
clear conscience be able to say, 'Arthur, I will marry you.'"
"My dear, I asked you to be my wife last
night, and what I said then I say again now. In any case, until you dismiss=
me,
I consider myself bound to you; but I tell you frankly that I should myself
prefer that you would marry me for both our sakes."
"How cold and correct you are, how clearly
you realize the position in which I am likely to be put, and in what a
gentlemanlike way you assure me that your honour will always keep you bound=
to
me! That is a weak thread, Arthur, in matters of the heart. Let Angela reap=
pear
as my rival--would honour keep you to my side? Honour, forsooth! it is like=
a
nurse's bogey in the cupboard--it is a shibboleth men use to frighten naugh=
ty
women with, which for themselves is almost devoid of meaning. Even in this
light I can see your face flush at her name. What chance shall I ever have
against her?"
"Do not speak of her, Mildred; let her me=
mory
be dead between us. She who belonged to me before God, and whom I believed =
in
as I believe in my God, she offered me the most deadly insult that a woman =
can
offer to a man she loves--she sold herself. What do I care what the price w=
as,
whether it were money, or position, or convenience, or the approbation of h=
er
surroundings? The result is the same. Never mention her name to me again; I
tell you that I hate her."
"What a tirade! There is warmth enough ab=
out
you now. I shall be careful how I touch on the subject again; but your very
energy shows that you are deceiving yourself. I wish I could hear you speak=
of
me like that, because then I should know you loved me. Oh! if she only knew
it--she has her revenge for all your bitter words. You are lashed to her
chariot-wheels, Arthur. You do not=
hate her; on the contrary, you still lon=
g to
see her face; it is still your secret and most cherished hope that you will
meet her again either in this or another world. You love her as much as eve=
r.
If she were dead, you could bear it; but the sharpest sting of your sufferi=
ng
lies in the humiliating sense that you are forced to worship a god you know=
to
be false, and to give your own pure love to a woman whom you see debased.&q=
uot;
He put his hands to his face and groaned aloud=
.
"You are right," he said. "I wo=
uld
rather have known her dead than know her as she is. But there is no reason =
why
I should bore you with all this."
"Arthur, you are nothing if not considera=
te,
and I do not pretend that this is a very pleasant conversation for me; but I
began it, so I suppose I must endure to see you groaning for another woman.=
You
say," she went on, with a sudden flash of passion, "that you shou=
ld
like to see her dead. I say that I should like to kill her, for she has str=
uck me
a double blow--she has injured you whom I love, and she has beggared me of =
your
affection. Oh! Arthur," she continued, changing her voice and throwing=
a
caressing arm about his neck, "have you no heart left to give me? =
span>is
there no lingering spark that I can cherish and blow to flame? I will ne=
ver
treat you so, dear. Learn to love me, and I will marry you and make you hap=
py,
make you forget this faithless woman with the angel face. I will----" =
here
her voice broke down in sobs, and in the starlight the great tears glistened
upon her coral-tinted face like dew-drops on a pomegranate's blushing rind.=
"There, there, dear, I will try to forget;
don't cry," and he touched her on the forehead with his lips.
She stopped, and then said, with just the fain=
test
tinge of bitterness in her voice: "If it had been Angela who cried, you
would not be so cold, you would have kissed away her tears."
Who can say what hidden chord of feeling those
words touched, or what memories they awoke? but their effect upon Arthur was
striking. He sprang up upon the deck, his eyes blazing, and his face white =
with
anger.
"How often," he said, "must I
forbid you to mention the name of that woman to me? Do you take a pleasure =
in
torturing me? Curse her, may she eat out her empty heart in solitude, and f=
ind
no living thing to comfort her! May she suffer as she makes me suffer, till=
her
life becomes a hell----"
"Be quiet, Arthur, it is shameful to say =
such
things."
He stopped, and after the sharp ring of his vo=
ice,
that echoed like the cry wrung from a person in intense pain, the loneliness
and quiet of the night were very deep. And then an answer came to his mad, =
unmanly
imprecations. For suddenly the air round them was filled with the sound of =
his
own name uttered in such wild, despairing accents as, once heard, were not
likely to be forgotten, accents which seemed to be around them and over the=
m,
and heard in their own brains, and yet to come travelling from immeasurable
distances across the waste of waters.
" Arthur! Arthur! "
The sound that had sprung from nothing died aw=
ay
into nothingness again, and the moonlight glanced, and the waters heaved, a=
nd
gave no sign of the place of its birth. It had come and gone, awful, untrac=
eable,
and in the place of its solemnity reigned silence absolute.
They looked at each other with scared eyes.
" As I am a living man that voice was
Angela's! "
This was all he said.
Dr. Williamson was a rising young practitioner=
at
Roxham, and what is more, a gentleman and a doctor of real ability.
On the night that Lady Bellamy took the poison=
he
sat up very late, till the dawn, in fact, working up his books of reference
with a view to making himself as much the master as possible of the symptoms
and most approved treatment in such cases of insanity as appeared to resemb=
le
Angela Caresfoot's. He had been called in to see her by Mr. Fraser, and had
come away intensely interested from a medical point of view, and very much
puzzled.
At length he shut up his books with a sigh--fo=
r,
like most books, though full of generalities, they did not tell him much--a=
nd
went to bed. Before he had been asleep very long, however, the surgery bell=
was
violently rung, and, having dressed himself with the rapidity characteristi=
c of
doctors and schoolboys, he descended to find a frightened footman waiting
outside, from whom he gathered that something dreadful had happened to Lady
Bellamy, who had been found lying apparently dead upon the floor of her
drawing-room. Providing himself with some powerful restoratives and a porta=
ble
electric battery he drove rapidly over to Rewtham House.
Here he found the patient laid upon a sofa in =
the
room where she had been found, and surrounded by a mob of terrified and
half-dressed servants. At first he thought life was quite extinct, but
presently he fancied that he could detect a faint tremor of the heart. He
applied the most powerful of his restoratives and administered a sharp curr=
ent from
the battery, and, after a considerable time, was rewarded by seeing the pat=
ient
open her eyes--but only to shut them again immediately. Directing his assis=
tant
to continue the treatment, he tried to elicit some information from the
servants as to what had happened, but all he could gather was that the maid=
had
received a message not to sit up. This made him suspicious of an attempt at=
suicide,
and just then his eye fell upon a wineglass that lay upon the floor, broken=
at
the shank. He took it up; in the bowl there was still a drop or two of liqu=
id.
He smelt it, then dipped his finger in and tasted it, with the result that =
his
tongue was burnt and became rough and numb. Then his suspicions were confir=
med.
Presently Lady Bellamy opened her eyes again, =
and
this time there was intelligence in them. She gazed round her with a wonder=
ing
air. Next she spoke.
"Where am I?"
"In your own drawing-room, Lady Bellamy. =
Be
quiet now, you will be better presently."
She tried first to move her head, then her arm,
then her lower limbs, but they would not stir. By this time her faculties w=
ere
wide awake.
"Are you the doctor?" she said.
"Yes, Lady Bellamy."
"Then tell me why cannot I move my
arms."
He lifted her hand; it fell again like a lump =
of
lead--and Dr. Williamson looked very grave. Then he applied a current of el=
ectricity.
"Do you feel that?" he asked.
She shook her head.
"Why cannot I move? Do not trifle with me,
tell me quick."
Dr. Williamson was a young man, and had not qu=
ite
conquered nervousness. In his confusion, he muttered something about "=
paralysis."
"How is it that I am not dead?"
"I have brought you back to life, but pra=
y do
not talk."
"You fool, why could you not let me die? =
You
mean that you have brought my mind to life, and left my body dead. I feel n=
ow
that I am quite paralysed."
He could not answer her, what she said was only too true, and his look told her so. She gazed steadily at him for a moment = as he bent over her, and realized all the horrors of her position, and for the first time in her life her proud spirit absolutely gave way. For a few seco= nds she was silent, and then, without any change coming over the expression of = her features--for the wild gaze with which she had faced eternity was for ever frozen there--she broke out into a succession of the most heart-rending shr= ieks that it had ever been his lot to listen to. At last she stopped exhausted.<= o:p>
"Kill me!" she whispered, hoarsely,
"kill me!"
It was a dreadful scene.
As the doctors afterwards concluded, rightly or
wrongly, a very curious thing had happened to Lady Bellamy. Either the pois=
on
she had taken--and they were never able to discover what its exact nature w=
as, nor
would she enlighten them--had grown less deadly during all the years that s=
he
had kept it, or she had partially defeated her object by taking an overdose,
or, as seemed more probable, there was some acid in the wine in which it had
been mixed that had had the strange effect of rendering it to a certain deg=
ree
innocuous. Its result, however, was, as she guessed, to render her a hopele=
ss
paralytic for life.
At length the patient sank into the coma of
exhaustion, and Dr. Williamson was able to leave her in the care of a broth=
er
practitioner whom he had sent for, and in that of his assistant. Sir John h=
ad
been sent for, but had not arrived. It was then eleven o'clock, and at one =
the
doctor was summoned as a witness to attend the inquest on George Caresfoot.=
He
had, therefore, two hours at his disposal, and these he determined to utili=
se
by driving round to see Angela, who was still lying at Mr. Fraser's vicarag=
e.
Mr. Fraser heard him coming, and met him in the
little drive. He briefly told him what he had just seen, and what, in his
opinion, Lady Bellamy's fate must be--one of living death. The clergyman's
remark was characteristic.
"And yet," he said, "there are
people in the world who say that there is no God."
"How is Mrs. Caresfoot?" asked the
doctor.
"She had a dreadful fit of raving this
morning, and we had to tie her down in bed. She is quieter now, poor dear.
There, listen!"
At that moment, through the open window of the
bedroom, they heard a sweet though untrained voice beginning to sing. It was
Angela's, and she was singing snatches of an old-fashioned sailor-song, one=
of several
which Arthur had taught her:
"Fare ye well, and adieu to all=
you
Spanish ladies, Fare ye well,=
and
adieu to ye, ladies of Spain, For
we've received orders to return to Old England, But we hope in a short time to see =
you
again.
=
* * *
"We hove our ship to with the wind at sou'west, my boys; We hove our ship to for to strike
soundings clear; It was forty=
-five
fathom and a grey sandy bottom; Then we filled our main topsail, an=
d up
channel did steer.
=
* * *
"The signal was made for the grand fleet to anchor, All in the Downs that night for to =
meet; So cast off your shank-painter, let=
go
your cat's-topper, Hawl up yo=
ur
clew-garnets, let fly tack and sheet."
Witho=
ut
waiting to hear any more, they went up the stairs and entered the bedroom. =
The
first person they saw was Pigott, who had been sent for to nurse Angela,
standing by the side of the bed, and a trained nurse at a little table at t=
he
foot mixing some medicine. On the bed itself lay Angela, shorn of all her
beautiful hair, her face flushed as with fever, except where a blue weal bo=
re
witness to the blow from her husband's cruel whip, her head thrown back, an=
d a
strange light in her wild eyes. She was tied down in the bed, with a broad
horse-girth stretched across her breast, but she had wrenched one arm free,=
and
with it was beating time to her song on the bed-clothes. She caught sight of
Mr. Fraser at once, and seemed to recognize him, for she stopped her singing
and laughed.
"That's a pretty old song, isn't it?"
she said. "Somebody taught it me --who was it? Somebody--a long while =
ago.
But I know another--I know another. You'll like it; you are a clergyman, you
know." And she began again:
"Says the parson one day a=
s I
cursed a Jew, Now do you=
not
know that that is a sin? Of
you sailors I fear there are but a few That St. Peter to heaven will =
ever
let in.
"Says I, Mr. Parson, to tell you my mind, Few sailors to knock were ever=
yet
seen; Those who travel b=
y land
may steer against wind B=
ut we
shape a course for Fiddler's Green."
Sudde=
nly
she stopped, and her mind wandered off to the scene of two days previous wi=
th
Arthur by the lake, and she began to quote the words wrung from the bittern=
ess
of his heart.
"'You miserable woman, do you know what y=
ou
are? Shame upon you! Were you not married yesterday?' It is quite true,
Arthur--oh, yes, quite true! Say what you like of me, Arthur--I deserve it =
all;
but oh! Arthur, I love you so. Don't be hard upon me--I love you so, dear! =
Kill
me if you like, dear, but don't talk to me so. I shall go mad--I shall go
mad!" and she broke into a flood of weeping.
"Poor dear, she has been going on like th=
at,
off and on, all night. It clean broke my heart to see it, and that's the ho=
ly
truth," and Pigott looked very much as though she were going to cry
herself.
By this time Angela had ceased weeping, and was
brooding sullenly, with her face buried in the pillow.
"There is absolutely nothing to be
done," said the doctor. "We can only trust to her fine constituti=
on
and youth to pull her through. She has received a series of dreadful mental
shocks, and it is very doubtful if she will ever get over them. It is a pit=
y to
think that such a splendid creature may become permanently insane, is it no=
t?
You must be very careful, Pigott, that she does not do herself an injury; s=
he
is just in the state that she may throw herself out of the window or cut her
throat. And now I must be going; I will call in again to-night."
Mr. Fraser accompanied him down to the gate, w=
here
he had left his trap. Before they got out of the front door, Angela had rou=
sed
herself again, and they could hear her beginning to quote Homer, and then b=
reaking
out into snatches of her sailor-songs.
=
span> "'High aloft amongst the rigg=
ing Sings the loud exulting
gale.'
"That's like me. I sing too," and th=
en
followed peal upon peal of mad laughter.
"A very sad case! She has a poor chance, I
fear."
Mr. Fraser was too much affected to answer him=
.
Public feeling in Marlshire was much excited a=
bout
the Caresfoot tragedy, and, when it became known that Lady Bellamy had
attempted to commit suicide, the excitement was trebled. It is not often th=
at
the dullest and most highly respectable part of an eminently dull and respe=
ctable
county gets such a chance of cheerful and interesting conversation as these=
two
events gave rise to. We may be sure that the godsend was duly appreciated;
indeed, the whole story is up to this hour a favourite subject of conversat=
ion
in those parts.
Of course the members of the polite society of=
the
neighbourhood of Roxham were divided into two camps. The men all thought th=
at
Angela had been shamefully treated, the elder and most intensely respectabl=
e ladies
for the most part inclined to the other side of the question. It not being
their habit to look at matters from the same point of view in which they
present themselves to a man's nicer sense of honour, they could see no great
harm in George Caresfoot's stratagems. A man so rich, they argued, was
perfectly entitled to buy his wife. The marriage had been arranged, like th=
eir
own, on the soundest property basis, and the woman who rose in rebellion
against a husband merely because she loved another man, or some such romant=
ic
nonsense, deserved all she got. Gone mad, had she?--well, it was a warning!=
And
these aristocratic matrons sniffed and turned up their noses. They felt that
Angela, by going mad and creating a public excitement, had entered a mute p=
rotest
against the recognized rules of marriage sale- and-barter as practised in t=
his
country--and Zululand. Having daughters to dispose of, they resented this, =
and
poor Angela was for years afterwards spoken of among them as that "imm=
oral
girl."
But the lower and more human strata of society=
did
not sympathize with this feeling. On the contrary, they were all for Angela=
and
the dog Aleck who was supposed to have chocked that "carroty
warmint," George.
The inquest on George's body was held at Roxha=
m,
and was the object of the greatest possible interest. Indeed, the public
excitement was so great that the coroner was, perhaps insensibly, influence=
d by
it, and allowed the inquiry to travel a little beyond its professed object =
of ascertaining
the actual cause of death, with the result that many of the details of the
wicked plot from which Angela had been the principal sufferer became public
property. Needless to say that they did not soothe the feelings of an excit=
ed
crowd. When Philip, after spending one of the worst half-hours of his life =
in
the witness-box, at length escaped with such shreds of reputation as he had
hitherto possessed altogether torn off his back, his greeting from the mob =
outside
the court may fairly be described as a warm one. As the witnesses' door clo=
sed
behind him, he found himself at one end of a long lane, that was hedged on =
both
sides by faces not without a touch of ferocity about them, and with difficu=
lty
kept clear by the available force of the five Roxham policemen.
"Who sold his daughter?" shouted a g=
reat
fellow in his ear.
"Let me come, there's a dear man, and hav=
e a
look at Judas," said a skinny little woman with a squint, to an indivi=
dual
who blocked her view.
The crowd caught at the word. "Judas!&quo=
t;
it shouted, "go and hang yourself! Judas! Judas!"
How Philip got out of that he never quite knew,
but he did get out somehow.
Meanwhile, Sir John Bellamy was being examined=
in
court, and, notwithstanding the almost aggressive innocence of his appearan=
ce,
he was not having a very good time. It chanced that he had fallen into the
hands of a rival lawyer, who hated him like poison, and had good reason to =
hate
him. It is wonderful, by the way, how enemies do spring up round a man in
trouble like dogs who bite a wounded companion to death, and on the same
principle. He is defenceless. This gentleman would insist on conducting the
witnesses' examination on the basis that he knew all about the fraud practi=
sed
with reference to the supposed death of Arthur Heigham. Now, it will be
remembered that Sir John, in his last interview with Lady Bellamy, had decl=
ared
that there was no tittle of evidence against him, and that it would be
impossible to implicate him in the exposure that must overtake her. To a
certain extent he was right, but on one point he had overshot himself, for =
at that
very inquest Mr. Fraser stated on oath that he (Mr. Fraser) had spoken of
Arthur Heigham's death in the presence of Sir John Bellamy, and had not been
contradicted.
In vain did Sir John protest that Mr. Fraser m=
ust
be mistaken. Both the jury and the public looked at the probabilities of the
matter, and, though his protestations were accepted in silence, when he lef=
t the
witness-box there was not a man in court but was morally certain that he had
been privy to the plot, and, so far as reputation was concerned, he was a
ruined man. And yet legally there was not a jot of evidence against him. But
public opinion required that a scapegoat should be found, and it was now his
lot to figure as that unlucky animal.
By the time he reached the exit into the stree=
t,
the impression that he had had a hand in the business had, in some mysterio=
us
way, communicated itself to the mob outside, many a member of which had some
old grudge to settle with "Lawyer Bellamy," if only chance put an=
opportunity
in their way. As he stepped through the door, utterly ignorant of the greet=
ing
which awaited him, his ears were assailed by an awful yell, followed by a s=
torm
of hoots and hisses.
Sir John turned pale, and looked for a means of
escape; but the policeman who had let him out had locked the door behind hi=
m,
and all round him was the angry mob.
"Here comes the ---- that started the
swim," roared a voice, as soon as there was a momentary lull.
"Gentlemen----" piped Sir John, with=
all
the pippin hue gone from his cheeks, and rubbing his white hands together
nervously.
"Yah! he poisoned his own poor wife!"
shouted a woman with a baby.
"Ladies----" went on Sir John, in
agonized tones.
"Pelt him!" yelled a sweet little bo=
y of
ten or so, suiting the action to the word, and planting a rotten egg full u=
pon
Sir John's imposing brow.
"No, no," said the woman who had
nicknamed Philip "Judas." "Why don't you drop him in the pon=
d?
There's only two feet of water, and it's soft falling on the mud. You can p=
elt
him afterwards ."
The idea was received with acclamation, and
notwithstanding his own efforts to the contrary, backed as they were by tho=
se
of the five policemen, before he knew where he was, Sir John found himself
being hustled by a lot of sturdy fellows towards the filthy duck-pond, like=
an
aristocrat to the guillotine. They soon arrived, and then followed the most
painful experience of all his life, one of which the very thought would ever
afterwards move him most profoundly. Two strong men, utterly heedless of his
yells and lamentations, took him by the heels, and two yet stronger than th=
ey
caught him by his plump and tender wrists, and then, under the directions of
the woman with the squint, they began to swing him from side to side. As so=
on
as the lady directress considered that the impetus was sufficient, she said=
, "Now!"
and away he went like a swallow, only to land, when his flying powers were
exhausted, plump in the middle of the duck-pond.
Some ten seconds afterwards, a pillar of slimy=
mud
arose and staggered towards the bank, where a crowd of little boys, each
holding something offensive in his right hand, were eagerly awaiting its
arrival. The squint-eyed woman contemplated the figure with the most intens=
e satisfaction.
"He sold me up once," she murmured;
"but we're quits now. That's it, lads, let him have it."
But we will drop a veil over this too painful
scene. Sir John Bellamy was unwell for some days afterwards; when he recove=
red
he shook the dust of Roxham off his shoes for ever.
A fortnight or so afterwards, when the public
excitement occasioned by the Caresfoot tragedy had been partially eclipsed =
by a
particularly thrilling child-murder and suicide, a change for the better to=
ok
place in Angela's condition. One night, after an unusually violent fit of r=
aving,
she suddenly went to sleep about twelve o'clock, and slept all that night a=
nd
all the next day. About half-past nine on the following evening, the watche=
rs
in her room--namely, Pigott, Mr. Fraser, and Dr. Williamson, who was trying=
to
make out what this deep sleep meant-- were suddenly astonished at seeing her
sit up in her bed in a listening attitude, as though she could hear somethi=
ng
that interested her intensely, for the webbing that tied her down had been =
temporarily
removed, and then cry, in a tone of the most living anguish, and yet with a
world of passionate remonstrance in her voice,
" Arthur, Arthur! "
Then she sank down again for a few minutes. It=
was
the same night that Mildred and Arthur sat together on the deck of the Evening Star . Presently she opened her =
eyes,
and the doctor saw that there was no longer any madness in them, only great
trouble. Her glance first fell upon Pigott.
"Run," she said, "run and stop =
him;
he cannot have gone far. Bring him back to me; quick, or he will be gone.&q=
uot;
"Who do you mean, dear?"
"Arthur, of course--Arthur."
"Hush, Angela!" said Mr. Fraser,
"he has been gone a long time; you have been very ill."
She did not say anything, but turned her face =
to
the pillow and wept, apparently as much from exhaustion as from any other
cause, and then dropped off to sleep again.
"Her reason is saved," said Dr.
Williamson, as soon as they were outside the door.
"Thanks be to Providence and you,
doctor."
"Thanks to Providence alone. It is a case=
in
which I could do little or nothing. It is a most merciful deliverance. All =
that
you have to do now is to keep her perfectly quiet, and, above all, do not l=
et
her father come near her at present. I will call in and tell him. Lady Bell=
amy?
Oh! about the same. She is a strange woman; she never complains, and rarely
speaks--though twice I have heard her break out shockingly. There will neve=
r be
any alternation in her case till the last alteration. Good-bye; I will look
round to-morrow."
After this, Angela's recovery was, comparative=
ly
speaking, rapid, though of course the effects of so severe a shock to the
nervous system could not be shaken off in a day. Though she was no longer m=
ad, she
was still in a disturbed state of mind, and subject to strange dreams or
visions. One in particular that visited her several nights in a succession,
made a great impression upon her.
First, it would seem to her that she was wide
awake in the middle of the night, and there would creep over her a sense of=
unmeasured
space, infinite silence, and intense solitude. She would think that she was=
standing
on a dais at the end of a vast hall, down which ran endless rows of pillars
supporting an inky sky which was the roof. There was no light in the hall, =
yet
she could clearly see; there was no sound, but she could hear the silence. =
Only
a soft radiance shone from her eyes and brow. She was not afraid, though
lonely, but she felt that something would presently come to make an end of
solitude. And so she stood for many years or ages--she could not tell
which--trying to fathom the mystery of that great place, and watching the l=
ight
that streamed from her forehead strike upon the marble floor and pillars, or
thread the darkness like a shooting star, only to reveal new depths of
blackness beyond those it pierced. At length there came, softly falling from
the sky-roof which never stirred to any passing breeze, a flake of snow lar=
ger
than a dove's wing; but it was blood-red, and in its centre shone a wonderf=
ul
light that made its passage through the darkness a track of glory. As it pa=
ssed
gently downwards without sound, she thought that it threw the shadow of a h=
uman
face. It lit upon the marble floor, and the red snow melted there and turne=
d to
blood, but the light that had been its heart shone on pure and steady.
Looking up again, she saw that the vault above=
her
was thick with thousands upon thousands of these flakes, each glowing like a
crimson lamp, and each throwing its own shadow. One of the shadows was like=
George,
and she shuddered as it passed. And ever as they touched the marble pavemen=
t,
the flakes melted and became blood, and some of the lights went out, but the
most part burnt on, till at length there was no longer any floor, but a
dead-sea of blood on which floated a myriad points of fire.
And then it all grew clear to her, for a voice=
in
her mind spoke and said that this was one of God's storehouses for human so=
uls;
that the light was the soul, and the red in the snow which turned to blood =
was the
sin which had, during its earthly passage, stained its first purity. The se=
a of
blood before her was the sum of the scarlet wickedness of her age; from eve=
ry
soul there came some to swell its awful waters.
At length the red snow ceased to fall, and a s=
ound
that was not a voice, but yet spoke, pealed through the silence, asking if =
all
were ready. The voice that had spoken in her mind answered, "No, he has
not come who is to see." Then, looking upwards, she saw, miles on mile=
s away,
a bright being with half-shut wings flashing fast towards her, and she knew
that it was Arthur, and the loneliness left her. He lit a breathing radianc=
e by
her side, and again the great sound pealed, "Let in the living waters,=
and
cleanse away the sins of this generation."
It echoed and died away, and there followed a
tumult like the flow of an angry sea. A mighty wind swept past her, and aft=
er
it an ocean of molten crystal came rushing through the illimitable hall. The
sea and the wind purged away the blood and put out the lamps, leaving behin=
d them
a glow of light like that upon her brow, and where the lamps had been stood
myriads of seraphic beings, whilst from ten thousand tongues ran forth a pa=
ean
of celestial song.
Then everything vanished, and deep gloom, that=
was
not, however, dark to her, settled round them. Taking Arthur by the hand, s=
he
spread her white wings and circled upwards. Far, far they sailed, till they=
reached
a giant peak that split space in twain. Here they alighted, and watched the
masses of cloud tearing through the gulfs on either side of them, and, look=
ing
beyond and below, gazed upon the shining worlds that peopled space beneath
them.
From the cloud-drifts to the right and left ca=
me a
noise as of the soughings of many wings; but they did not know what caused =
it,
till presently the vapours lifted, and they saw that alongside of and benea=
th
them two separate streams of souls were passing on outstretched pinions: one
stream, that to their left, proceeding to their earthly homes, and one, tha=
t to
the right, returning from them. Those who went wore grief upon their shadowy
faces, and had sad- coloured wings; but those who returned seemed for the m=
ost
part happy, and their wings were tipped with splendour.
The never-ending stream that came flowed from a
far-off glory, and that which returned, having passed the dividing cliff on
which they stood, was changed into a multitude of the red snow-flakes with =
the glowing
hearts, and dropped gently downwards.
So they stood, in happy peace, never tiring, f=
rom
millennium to millennium. They watched new worlds collecting out of chaos, =
they
saw them speed upon their high aerial course till, grown hoary, their found=
ation-rocks
crumbling with age, they wasted away into the vastness whence they had
gathered, to be replaced by fresh creations that in their turn took form,
teemed with life, waxed, waned, and vanished.
At length there came an end, and the soughing =
of
wings was silent for ever; no more souls went downwards, and none came up f=
rom
the earths. Then the distant glory from which the souls had come moved towa=
rds them
with awful mutterings and robed in lightning, and space was filled with
spirits, one of whom, sweeping past them, cried with a loud voice,
"Children, Time is dead; now is the beginning of knowledge." And =
she
turned to Arthur, who had grown more radiant than the star which gleamed up=
on
his forehead, and kissed him.
Then she would wake.
Time passed on, and gradually health and stren=
gth
came back to Angela, till at last she was as powerful in mind, and--if that
were possible-- except that she was shorn of her lovely hair, more beautifu=
l in
body than she had been before her troubles overwhelmed her. Of Arthur she t=
hought
a great deal--indeed, she thought of little else; but it was with a sort of
hopelessness that precluded action. Nobody had mentioned his name to her, a=
s it
was thought wiser not to do so, though Pigott and Mr. Fraser had, in as gen=
tle
terms as they could command, told her of the details of the plot against he=
r,
and of the consequences to the principal actors in it. Nor had she spoken of
him. It seemed to her that she had lost him for good, that he could never c=
ome
back to her after she had passed, that he must hate her too much. She suppo=
sed
that, in acting as he did, he was aware of all the circumstances of her
marriage, and could find no excuses for her. She did not even know where he
was, and, in her ignorance of the uses of private detectives and
advertisements, had no idea how to find out. And so she suffered in silence,
and only saw him in her dreams.
She still stopped at the vicarage with Pigott;=
nor
had there as yet been any talk of her returning to the Abbey House. Indeed,=
she
had not seen her father since the day of her marriage. But, now that she ha=
d recovered,
she felt that something must be done about it. Wondering what it should be,=
she
one afternoon walked to the churchyard, where she had not been since her
illness, and, once there, made her way naturally to her mother's grave. She=
was
moving very quietly, and had almost reached the tree under which Hilda
Caresfoot lay, when she became aware that there was already somebody kneeli=
ng
by the grave, with his head rested against the marble cross.
It was her father. Her shadow falling upon him=
, he
turned and saw her, and they stood looking at each other. She was shocked at
the dreadful alteration in his face. It was now that of an old man, nearly =
worn
out with suffering. He put his hand before his eyes, and said,
"Angela, how can I face you, least of all
here?"
For a moment the memory of her bitter wrongs
swelled in her heart, for she now to a great extent understood what her
father's part in the plot had been, and she regarded him in silence.
"Father," she said, presently, "=
;I
have been in the hands of God, and not in yours, and though you have helped=
to
ruin my life, and have very nearly driven me into a madhouse, I can still s=
ay,
let the past be the past. But why do you look so wretched? You should look
happy; you have got the land--my price, you know," and she laughed a
little bitterly.
"Why do I look wretched? Because I am giv=
en
over to a curse that you cannot understand, and I am not alone. Where are t=
hose
who plotted against you? George dead, Bellamy gone, Lady Bellamy paralysed =
hand
and foot, and myself--although I did not plot, I only let them be-- accurse=
d.
But, if you can forget the past, why do you not come back to my house? Of
course I cannot force you; you are free and rich, and can suit yourself.&qu=
ot;
"I will come for a time if you wish--if I=
can
bring Pigott with me."
"You may bring twenty Pigotts, for all I
care--so long as you will pay for their board," he added, with a touch=
of
his old miserliness. "But what do you mean 'for a time'?"
"I do not think I shall stop here long; I
think that I am going into a sisterhood."
"Oh! well, you are your own mistress, and
must do as you choose."
"Then I will come to-morrow," and th=
ey
parted.
And so on the following day Angela and Pigott
returned to the Abbey House, but they both felt that it was a sad home-comi=
ng.
Indeed, if there had been no other cause for melancholy, the sight of Phili=
p's face
was enough to excite it in the most happy-minded person. Not that Angela saw
much of him, however, for they still kept to their old habit of not living
together. All day her father was shut up in his room transacting business t=
hat
had reference to the accession of his property and the settlement of George=
's
affairs; for his cousin had died intestate, so he took his personalty and w=
ound
up the estate as heir-at-law. At night, however, he would go out and walk f=
or
miles, and in all weathers--he seemed to dread spending the dark hours at h=
ome.
When Angela had been back about a month in the=
old
place, she accidentally got a curious insight into her father's mental suff=
erings.
It so happened that one night, finding it
impossible to sleep, and being much oppressed by sorrowful thoughts, she
thought that she would read the hours away. But the particular book she wan=
ted
to find was downstairs, and it was two o'clock in the morning, and chilly in
the passages. However, anything is better than sleeplessness, and the tyran=
ny
of sad thoughts and empty longings; so, throwing on her dressing-gown, she =
took
a candle, and set off, thinking as she went how she had in the same guise f=
led
before her husband.
She got her book, and was returning, when she =
saw
that there was still a light in her father's study, and that the door was a=
jar.
At that moment it so happened that an unusually sharp draught coming down o=
ne of
the passages of the rambling old house, caught her candle and extinguished =
it.
Making her way to the study-door, she pushed it open to see if anybody was
there previous to asking for a light. At first she could see nobody. On the
table, which was covered with papers, there stood two candles, a brandy-bot=
tle,
and a glass. She was just moving to the candle to get a light, when her eye
fell on what she at first believed to be a heap of clothes huddled together=
on
the floor in the corner of the room. Further examination showed that it was=
a man--she
could distinctly see the backs of his hands. Her first ideas was that she h=
ad
surprised a thief, and she stopped, feeling frightened and not knowing what=
to
do. Just then the bundle straightened itself a little and dropped its hands,
revealing to her wondering gaze her own father's face, which wore the same
awful look of abject fear which she had seen upon it when he passed through=
the
hall beneath her just before Isleworth broke into flame on the night of her
marriage. The eyes appeared to be starting from the sockets in an effort to
clearly realize an undefinable horror, the hair, now daily growing greyer, =
was
partially erect, and the pallid lips, half- opened, as though to speak words
that would not come. He saw her too, but did not seem surprised at her
presence. Covering up his eyes again with one hand, he shrank further back =
into
his corner, and with the other pointed to a large leather arm-chair in which
Pigott had told her her grandfather had died.
"Look there," he whispered, hoarsely=
.
"Where, father? I see nothing."
"There, girl, in the chair--look how it
glares at me!"
Angela stood aghast. She was alarmed, in defia=
nce
of her own reason, and began to catch the contagion of superstition.
"This is dreadful," she said; "=
for
heaven's sake tell me what is the matter."
Philip's ghastly gaze again fixed itself on the
chair, and his teeth began to chatter.
" Great God, " he said, " it is
coming. "
And, uttering a smothered cry, he fell on his =
face
in a half faint. The necessity for action brought Angela to herself. Seizing
the water-bottle, she splashed some water into her father's face. He came to
himself almost instantly.
"Where am I?" he said. "Ah! I
remember; I have not been quite well. You must not think anything of that. =
What
are you doing down here at this time of night? Pass me that bottle," a=
nd
he took nearly half a tumbler of raw brandy. "There, I am quite right
again now; I had a bad attack of indigestion, that is all. Good night."=
;
Angela went without a word. She understood now
what her father had meant when he said that he was "accursed;" but
she could not help wondering whether the brandy had anything to do with his=
"indigestion."
On the following day the doctor came to see he=
r.
It struck Angela that he came oftener than was necessary, the fact being th=
at
he would gladly have attended her gratis all year round. A doctor does not =
often
get the chance of visiting such a patient.
"You do not look quite so well to-day,&qu=
ot;
he said.
"No," she answered, with a little sm=
ile;
"I had bad dreams last night."
"Ah! I thought so. You should try to avoid
that sort of thing; you are far too imaginative already."
"One cannot run away from one's dreams.
Murder will out in sleep."
"Well, I have a message for you."
"Who from?"
"Lady Bellamy. You know that she is paral=
ysed?"
"Yes."
"Well, she wants you to go and see her. S=
hall
you go?"
Angela thought a little, and answered,
"Yes, I think so."
"You must be prepared for some bitter
language if she speaks at all. Very likely she will beg you to get her some
poison to kill herself with. I have been obliged to take the greatest
precautions to prevent her from obtaining any. I am not very sensitive, but
once or twice she has positively made me shiver with the things she says.&q=
uot;
"She can never say anything more dreadful=
to
me than she has said already, Dr. Williamson."
"Perhaps not. Go if you like. If you were
revengeful--which I am sure you are not--you would have good reason to be
satisfied at what you will see. Medically speaking, it is a sad case."=
Accordingly, that every afternoon, Angela,
accompanied by Pigott, started off for Rewtham House, where Lady Bellamy st=
ill
lived, or rather existed. It was her first outing since the inquest on Geor=
ge Caresfoot
had caused her and her history to become publicly notorious, and, as she wa=
lked
along, she was surprised to find that she was the object of popular sympath=
y.
Every man she met touched or took off his hat, according to his degree, and=
, as
soon as she had passed, turned round and stared at her. Some fine folks whom
she did not know-- indeed, she knew no one, though it had been the fashion =
to
send and "inquire" during her illness--drove past in an open carr=
iage
and pair, and she saw a gentleman on the front seat whisper something to th=
e ladies,
bringing round their heads towards her as simultaneously as though they both
worked on a single wire. Even the children coming out of the village school=
set
up a cheer as she passed.
"Good gracious, Pigott, what is it all
about?" she asked, at last.
"Well, you see, miss, they talk of you in=
the
papers as the 'Abbey House heroine'--and heroines is rare in these parts.&q=
uot;
Overwhelmed with so much attention, Angela was
thankful when at last they reached Rewtham House.
Pigott went into the housekeeper's room, and
Angela was at once shown up into the drawing-room. The servant announced her
name to a black- robed figure lying on a sofa, and closed the door.
"Come here, Angela Caresfoot," said a
well-known voice, "and see how Fate has repaid the woman who tried to =
ruin
you."
She advanced and looked at the deathly face, s=
till
as darkly beautiful as ever, on which was fixed that strange look of wild
expectancy that it had worn when its owner took the poison.
"Yes, look at me; think what I was, and t=
hen
what I am, and learn how the Spirit of evil pays those who serve him. I tho=
ught
to kill myself, but death was denied me, and now I live as you see me. I am=
an
outcast from the society of my kind--not that I ever cared for that, except=
to rule
it. I cannot stir hand or foot, I cannot write, I can scarcely read, I cann=
ot
even die. My only resource is the bitter sea of thought that seethes eterna=
lly
in this stricken frame like fire pent in the womb of a volcano. Yes, Angela
Caresfoot, and like the fire, too, sometimes it overflows, and then I can b=
laspheme
and rave aloud till my voice fails. That is the only power which is left to
me."
Angela uttered an exclamation of pity.
"Pity--do not pity me; I will not be piti=
ed
by you. Mock me if you will; it is your turn now. You prophesied that it wo=
uld
come; now it is here."
"At any rate, you are still comfortable in
your own house," said Angela, nervously, anxious to change the subject,
and not knowing what to say.
"Oh! yes, I have money enough, if that is
what you mean. My husband threatened to leave me destitute, but fear of pub=
lic
opinion--and I hear that he has run away, and is not well thought of now--or
perhaps of myself, cripple as I am, caused him to change his mind. But do n=
ot let
us talk of that poor creature. I sent for you here for a purpose. Where is =
your
lover?"
Angela turned pale and trembled.
"What, do you not know, or are you tired =
of
him?"
"Tired of him! I shall never be tired of =
him;
but he has gone."
"Shall I tell you where to find him?"=
;
"You would not if you could; you would de=
ceive
me again."
"No, oddly enough, I shall not. I have no
longer any object in doing so. When I was bent upon marrying you to George
Caresfoot, I lashed myself into hating you; now I hate you no longer, I res=
pect
you-- indeed, I have done so all along."
"Then, why did you work me such a bitter
wrong?"
"Because I was forced to. Believe me or n=
ot
as you will, I am not going to tell you the story--at any rate, not now. I =
can
only repeat that I was forced to."
"Where is Arthur?"
"In Madeira. Do you remember once telling=
me
that you had only to lift your hand--so--ah! I forgot, I cannot lift mine--=
to
draw him back to you, that no other woman in the world could keep him from =
you
if you chose to bid him come?"
"Yes, I remember."
"Then, if you wish to get him back, you h=
ad
better exercise your power, for he has gone to another woman."
"Who is she? What is she like?"
"She is a young widow--a Mrs. Carr. She is
desperately in love with him--very beautiful and very rich."
"Beautiful! How do you mean? Tell me exac=
tly
what she is like."
"She has brown eyes, brown hair, a lovely
complexion, and a perfect figure."
Angela glanced rapidly at her own reflection in
the glass and sighed.
"Then I fear that I shall have no chance
against her--none!"
"You are a fool! if you were alone in the
same room with her, nobody would see her for looking at you."
Angela sighed again, this time from relief.
"But there is worse than that; very possi=
bly
he has married her."
"Ah! then it is all over!"
"Why? If he loves you as much as you thin=
k,
you can bring him back to you, married or unmarried."
"Perhaps. Yes, I think I could; but I wou=
ld
not."
"Why? If he loves you and you love him, y=
ou
have a right to him. Among all the shams and fictions that we call laws, th=
ere
is only one true-- the law of Nature, by virtue of which you belong to each
other."
"No, there is a higher law--the law of du=
ty,
by means of which we try to curb the impulses of Nature. The woman who has =
won
him has a right to consideration."
"Then, to gratify a foolish prejudice, you
are prepared to lose him forever?"
"No, Lady Bellamy; if I thought that I wa=
s to
lose him for ever, I might be tempted to do what is wrong in order to be wi=
th
him for a time; but I do not think that. I only lose him for a time that I =
may gain
him for ever. In this world he is separated from me, in the worlds to come =
my
rights will assert themselves, and we shall be together, and never part any
more."
Lady Bellamy looked at her wonderingly, for her
eyes could still express her emotions.
"You are a fine creature," she said,
"and, if you believe that, perhaps it will be true for you, since Faith
must be the measure of realization. But, after all, he may not have married
her. That will be for you to find out."
"How can I find out?"
"By writing to him, of course--to the car=
e of
Mrs. Carr, Madeira. That is sure to find him."
"Thank you. How can I thank you enough?&q=
uot;
"It seems to me that you owe me few thank=
s.
You are always foolish about what tends to secure your own happiness, or you
would have thought of this before."
There was a pause, and then Angela rose to go.=
"Are you going. Yes, go. I am not fit com=
pany
for such as you. Perhaps we shall not meet again; but, in thinking of all t=
he
injuries that I have done you, remember that my punishment is proportionate=
to
my sin. They tell me that I may live for years."
Angela gazed at the splendid wreck beneath her,
and an infinite pity swelled in her gentle heart. Stooping, she kissed her =
on
the forehead. A wild astonishment filled Lady Bellamy's great, dark eyes.
"Child, child, what are you doing? you do=
not
know what I am, or you would not kiss me!"
"Yes, Lady Bellamy," she said, quiet=
ly,
"I do, that is, I know what you have been; but I want to forget that.
Perhaps you will one day be able to forget it too. I do not wish to preach,=
but
perhaps, after all, this terrible misfortune may lead you to something bett=
er.
Thank God, there is forgiveness for us all."
Her words touched some forgotten chord in the
stricken woman's heart, and two big tears rolled down the frozen cheeks. Th=
ey
were the first Anne Bellamy had wept for many a day.
"Your voice," she said, "has a
music that awakes the echoes from a time when I was good and pure like you,=
but
that time has gone for ever."
"Surely, Lady Bellamy, the heart that can
remember it can also strive to reach another like it. If you have descended=
the
cliff whence those echoes spring, into a valley however deep, there is still
another cliff before you that you may climb."
"It is easy to descend, but we need wings=
to
climb. Look at me, Angela; my body is not more crippled and shorn of power =
than
my dark spirit is of wings. How can I climb?"
Angela bent low beside her and whispered a few
words in her ear, then rose with a shy blush upon her face. Lady Bellamy sh=
ut
her eyes. Presently she opened them again.
"Do not speak any more of this to me
now," she said. "I must have time. The instinct of years cannot be
brushed away in a day. If you knew all the sins I have committed, perhaps y=
ou
would think too that for such as I am there is no forgiveness and no
hope."
"Whilst there is life there is hope, and,=
as
I once heard Mr. Fraser say, the real key to forgiveness is the desire to be
forgiven."
Again Lady Bellamy shut her eyes and thought, =
and,
when she drew up their heavy lids, Angela saw that there was something of a
peaceful look about them.
"Stand so," she said to Angela,
"there where the light falls upon your face. That will do; now shall I
tell you what I read there? On your forehead sit resolute power to grasp, a=
nd
almost measureless capacity to imagine; in your eyes there is a sympathy no=
t to
be guessed by beings of a coarser fibre; those eyes could look at Heaven and
not be dazzled. Your whole face speaks of a purity and single-mindedness wh=
ich
I can read but cannot understand. Your mind rejects the glittering bubbles =
that
men follow, and seeks the solid truth. Your spirit is in tune with things of
light and air; it can float to the extremest heights of our mental atmosphe=
re,
and thence can almost gaze into the infinite beyond. Pure, but not cold,
thirsting for a wider knowledge, and at times breathing the air of a higher
world; resolute, but patient; proud, and yet humble to learn; holy, but
aspiring; conscious of gifts you do not know how to use, girl, you rise as =
near
to what is divine as a mortal may. I have always thought so, now I am sure =
of
it."
"Lady Bellamy!"
"Hush! I have a reason for what I say. I =
do
not ask you to waste time by listening to senseless panegyrics. Listen: I w=
ill
tell you what I have never told to a living soul before. For years I have b=
een
a student of a lore almost forgotten in this country--a lore which once ful=
ly
acquired will put the powers that lie hid in Nature at the command of its
possessor, that will even enable him to look beyond Nature, and perhaps, so=
far
as the duration of existence is concerned, for awhile to triumph over it. T=
hat
lore you can learn, though it baffled me. My intellect and determination
enabled me to find the cues to it, and to stumble on some of its secrets, b=
ut I
could not follow them; too late I learnt that only the good and pure can do
that. Much of the result of years of toil I destroyed the other night, but =
I still
know enough to empower you to reconstruct what I annihilated; you can learn=
more
in one year than I learnt in ten. I am grateful to you, and, if you wish it=
, I
will show you the way."
Angela listened, open-eyed. Lady Bellamy was
right, she was greedy of knowledge and the power that springs from knowledg=
e.
"But would it not be wrong?" she sai=
d.
"There can be nothing wrong in what the
ruling Wisdom allows us to acquire without the help of what is evil. But do=
not
be deceived, such knowledge and power as this is not a thing to be trifled
with. To obtain a mastery over it, you must devote your life to it; you mus=
t give
it
"'Allegiance whole, not strained to suit desire,'
"No earthly passion must come to trouble =
the
fixed serenity of your aspirations; that was one, but only one, of the reas=
ons
of my failure. You must leave your Arthur to Mrs. Carr, and henceforward put
him as much out of your mind as possible; and this, that you may be able to=
separate
yourself from earthly bonds and hopes and fears. Troubled waters reflect a
broken image."
"I must, then, choose between this knowle=
dge
and my love?"
"Yes; and you will do well if you choose =
the
knowledge; for, before you die--if, indeed, you do not in the end, for a
certain period, overcome even death--you will be more of an angel than a wo=
man.
On the one hand, then, this proud and dizzy destiny awaits you; on the othe=
r, every-day
joys and sorrows shared by all the world, and an ordinary attachment to a m=
an
against whom I have, indeed, nothing to say, but who is not your equal, and=
who
is, at the best, full of weaknesses that you should despise."
"But, Lady Bellamy, his weaknesses are a =
part
of himself, and I love him all, just as he is; weakness needs love more than
what is strong."
"Perhaps; but, in return for your love, I
offer you no empty cup. I do not ask you to follow fantastic theories--of t=
hat
I will soon convince you. Shall I show you the semblance of your Arthur and
Mrs. Carr as they are at this moment?"
"No, Lady Bellamy, no, I have chosen. You
offer, after years of devotion, to make me almost like an angel . The temptation is=
very great,
and it fascinates me. But I hope, if I can succeed in living a good life, to
become altogether an angel when I die. Why, then, should I attempt to filch
fragments of a knowledge that will one day be all my own?--if, indeed, it i=
s right
to do so. Whilst I am here, Arthur's love is more to me than such knowledge=
can
ever be. If he is married, I may learn to think differently, and try to soo=
the
my mind by forcing it to run in these hidden grooves. Till then, I choose
Arthur and my petty hopes and fears; for, after all, they are the natural
heritage of my humanity."
Lady Bellamy thought for awhile, and answered,=
"I begin to think that the Great Power who
made us has mixed even His most perfect works with an element of weakness, =
lest
they should soar too high, and see too far. The prick of a pin will bring a
balloon to earth, and an earthly passion, Angela, will prevent you from soa=
ring
to the clouds. So be it. You have had your chance. It is only one more disa=
ppointment."
Angela went home very thoughtful. The next thr=
ee
days she spent in writing. First, she wrote a clear and methodical account =
of
all the events that had happened since Arthur's first departure, more than =
a year
ago, and attached to it copies of the various documents that had passed bet=
ween
herself and George, including one of the undertaking that her husband had
signed before the marriage. This account was in the form of a statement, wh=
ich
she signed, and, taking it to Mr. Fraser, read it to him, and got him to si=
gn
it too. It took her two whole days to write, and, when it was done, she
labelled it "to be read first." On the third day she wrote the
following letter to go with the statement:
"For the first time in my life, Arthur, I
take up my pen to write to you, and in truth the difficulty of the task bef=
ore
me, as well as my own want of skill, tends to bewilder me, and, though I ha=
ve
much upon my mind to say, I scarcely know if it will reach you--if, indeed,
this letter is ever destined to lie open in your hands--in an intelligible =
form.
"The statement that I enclose, however,
will--in case you do not already know them--tell you all the details of what
has happened since you left me more than a year ago. From it you will learn=
how
cruelly I was deceived into marrying George Caresfoot, believing you dead. =
Oh, through
all eternity, never shall I forget that fearful night, nor cease to thank G=
od
for my merciful escape from the fiend whom I had married. And then came the
morning, and brought you--the dead--alive before my eyes. And whilst I stoo=
d in
the first tumult of my amaze-- forgetful of everything but that it was you,=
my
own, my beloved Arthur, no spirit, but you in flesh and blood--whilst I yet
stood thus, stricken to silence by the shock of an unutterable joy--you bro=
ke
upon me with those dreadful words, so that I choked, feeling how just they =
must
seem to you, and could not answer.
"And yet it sometimes fills me with wonder
and indignation to think of them; wonder that you could believe me so mad a=
s to
throw away the love of my life, and indignation that you could deem me so l=
ost
as to dishonour it. They drove me mad, those words, and from that moment fo=
rward
I remember nothing but a chaos of the mind heaving endlessly like the sea. =
But
all this has passed, and I am thankful to say that I am quite well again no=
w.
"Still I should not have written to you,
Arthur; I did not even know where you were, and I never thought of recoveri=
ng
you. After what has passed, I looked upon you as altogether lost to me for =
this
world. But a few days ago I went at her own request to see Lady Bellamy. All
she said to me I will not now repeat, lest I should render this letter too =
wearisome
to read, though a great deal of it was strange enough to be well worth
repetition. In the upshot, however, she said that I had better write to you,
and told me where to write. And so I write to you, dear. There was also ano=
ther
thing that she told me of sad import for myself, but which I must not shrin=
k to
face. She said that there lived at Madeira, where you are, a lady who is in
love with you, and is herself both beautiful and wealthy, to whom you would
have gone for comfort in your trouble, and in all probability have married.=
"Now, Arthur, I do not know if this is the
case, but, if so, I hasten to say that I do not blame you. You smarted under
what must have seemed to you an intolerable wrong, and you went for consola=
tion
to her who had it to offer. In a man that is perhaps natural, though it is =
not
a woman's way. If it be so, I say from my heart, be as happy as you can. But
remember what I told you long ago, and do not fall into any delusions on the
matter; do not imagine because circumstances have shaped themselves thus,
therefore I am to be put out of your mind and forgotten, for this is not so=
. I
cannot be forgotten, though for a while I may be justly discarded; it is
possible that for this world you have passed out of my reach, but in the ne=
xt I
shall claim you as my own.
"Yes, Arthur, I have made up my mind to l=
ose
you for this life as a fitting reward for my folly. But do not think that I=
do
so without a pang, for, believe me, since my mind emerged stronger and clea=
rer
from the storms through which it has passed, bringing back to me the full l=
ife
and strength of my womanhood, I have longed for you with an ever- increasing
longing. I am not ashamed to own that I would give worlds to feel your arms
about me and your kiss upon my lips. Why should I be? Am I not yours, body =
and
soul?
"But, dear, it has been given to me, perh=
aps
as a compensation for all I have undergone and that is still left for me to
undergo, to grasp a more enduring end than that of earthly ecstasy: for I c=
an
look forward with a confident assurance to the day when we shall embrace up=
on
the threshold of the Infinite. Do not call this foolish imagination, or cal=
l it
imagination, if you will--for what is imagination? Is it not the connecting
link between us and our souls, and recalling memories of our home. Imaginat=
ion,
what would our higher life be without it? It is what the mind is to the bod=
y,
it is the soul's thought .
"So in my imagination--since I know no be=
tter
term--I foresee that heavenly hour, and I am not jealous for the earthly
moment. Nor, indeed, have I altogether lost you, for at times, in the still=
ness
of the night, when the earthly part is plunged in sleep and my spirit is re=
leased
from the thraldom of the senses, it, at indefinite periods, has the power to
summon your beloved form to its presence, and in this communion Nature
vindicates her faithfulness. Thus, through the long night rest comes upon me
with your presence.
"And at last there will come a greater re=
st;
at last--having lived misunderstood--we shall die, alone, and then the real
life or lives will begin. It is not always night, for the Dawn is set beyond
the night, and through the gates of Dawn we shall journey to the day. It is=
not
always night; even in the womb of darkness throbs the promise of the mornin=
g. I
often wonder, Arthur, how and what this change will be. Shall we be even as=
we
are, but still, through unnumbered ages, growing slowly on to the Divine, o=
r,
casting off the very semblance of mortality, shall we rise at one wide swee=
p to
the pinnacle of fulfilled time, there to learn the purposes and mark the
measure of all Being.
"How can I know? But this I believe, that
whatever the change, however wide and deep the darkness which stretches bet=
ween
what is and what is not yet, we cannot lose ourselves therein. Identity will
still be ours, and memory, the Janus-headed, will still pursue us, calling =
to our
minds the enacted evil and that good which, having been, must always be. Fo=
r we
are immortal, and though we put off the mortal dress --yes, though our forms
become as variable as the clouds, and assume proportions of which we cannot
dream--yet shall memory companion us and identity remain. For we are each
fashioned apart for ever, and built about with such an iron wall of individ=
ual
life that all the force of time and change cannot so much as shake it. And
while I am myself, and yet in any shape endure, of this be certain--the love
that is a part of me will endure also. Oh, herein is set my hope--nay, not =
my
hope, for hope upon the tongue whispers doubt within the heart, but the most
fixed unchanging star of all my heaven. It is not always night, for the Daw=
n is
set beyond the night; and oh, my heart's beloved, at daybreak we shall meet
again!
"Oh! Arthur, even now I long for the purer
air and flashing sympathies of that vast Hereafter, when the strong sense of
knowledge shall scarcely find a limit ere it overleaps it; when visible pow=
er
shall radiate from our being, and living on together through countless Exis=
tences,
Periods, and Spheres, we shall progress from majesty to ever-growing majest=
y!
Oh, for the day when you and I, messengers from the Seat of Power, shall sa=
il
high above these darkling worlds, and, seeing into each other's souls, shall
learn what love's communion is!
"Do not think me foolish, dear, for writi=
ng
to you thus. I do not wish to make you the victim of an outburst of thought
that you may think hysterical. But perhaps I may never be able to write to =
you
again in this way; your wife, if you are married, may be jealous, or other =
things
may occur to prevent it. I feel it, therefore, necessary to tell you my inm=
ost
thoughts now whilst I can, so that you may always remember them during the =
long
coming years, and especially when you draw near to the end of the journey. I
hope, dearest Arthur, that nothing will ever make you forget them, and also
that, for the sake of the pure love you will for ever bear me, you will alw=
ays
live up to your noblest and your best, for in this way our meeting will be =
made
more perfect.
"Of course it is possible that you may st=
ill
be free, and, after you know that I am not quite so much to blame as you may
have thought, still willing to give your name to me. It is a blessed hope, =
but
I scarcely dare to dwell upon it.
"The other day I was reading a book Mr.
Fraser lent me, which took my fancy very much, it was so full of
contradictions. The unexpected always happened in it, and there was both gr=
ief
and laughter in its pages. It did not end quite well or quite badly, or, ra=
ther
it had no end, and deep down underneath the plotle=
ss
story, only peeping up now and again when the actors were troubled, there r=
an a
vein of real sorrow and sad, unchanging love. There was a hero in this odd =
book
which was so like life--who, by the way, was no hero at all, but a curious,
restless creature who seemed to have missed his mark in life, and went along
looking for old truths and new ideas with his eyes so fixed upon the stars =
that
he was always stumbling over the pebbles in his path, and thinking that they
were rocks. He was a sensitive man, too, and as weak as he was sensitive, a=
nd
often fell into pitfalls and did what he should not, and yet, for all that,=
he
had a quaint and gentle mind, and there was something to like in him--at le=
ast,
so thought the women in that book. There was a heroine, too, who was all th=
at a
heroine should be, very sweet and very beautiful, and she really had a hear=
t,
only she would not let it beat. And of course the hero and heroine loved ea=
ch
other: of course, too, they both behaved badly, and things went wrong, or t=
here
would have been no book.
"But I tell you this story because once, =
in a
rather touching scene, this hero who made such a mess of things set forth o=
ne
of the ideas that he had found, and thought new, but which was really so ve=
ry
old. He told the heroine that he had read in the stars that happiness has o=
nly
one key, and that its name is 'Love,' that, amidst all the mutabilities and
disillusions of our life, the pure love of a man and woman alone stands firm
and beautiful, alone defies change and disappointment; that it is the
heaven-sent salve for all our troubles, the remedy for our mistakes, the ma=
gic
glass reflecting only what is true and good. But in the end her facts overc=
ame
his theories, and he might have spared himself the trouble of telling. And,=
for
all his star-gazing, this hero had no real philosophy, but in his grief and=
unresting
pain went and threw himself into the biggest pitfalls that he could find, a=
nd
would have perished there, had not a good angel come and dragged him out ag=
ain
and brushed the mud off his clothes, and, taking him by the hand, led him a=
long
a safer path. And so for awhile he drops out of the story, which says that,
when he is not thinking of the lost heroine, he is perhaps happier than he
deserves to be.
"Now, Arthur, I think that this foolish h=
ero
was right, and the sensible heroine he worshipped so blindly, wrong.
"If you are still unmarried, and still ca=
re
to put his theories to the test, I believe that we also can make as beautif=
ul a
thing of our lives as he thought that he and his heroine could, and, oursel=
ves supremely
happy in each other's perfect love, may perhaps be able to add to the happi=
ness
of some of our fellow-travellers. That is, I think, as noble an end as a a =
man
and woman can set before themselves.
"But if, on the other hand, you are tied =
to
this other woman who loves you by ties that cannot be broken, or that honour
will not let you break; or if you are unforgiving, and no longer wish to ma=
rry
me as I wish to marry you, then till that bright hour of immortal hope-- fa=
rewell.
Yes, Arthur, farewell till the gate of Time has closed for us--till, in the
presence of God our Father, I shall for ever call you mine.
"Alas! I am so weak that my tears fall as=
I
write the word. Perhaps I may never speak or write to you again, so once mo=
re,
my dearest, my beloved, my earthly treasure and my heavenly hope, farewell.=
May
the blessing of God be as constantly around you as my thoughts, and may He =
teach
you that these are not foolish words, but rather the faint shadow of an und=
ying
light!
"I send back the ring that was used to tr=
ick
me with. Perhaps, whatever happens, you will wear it for my sake. It is, you
know, a symbol of Eternity.
=
"Angela Caresfoot."
Just as Angela was engaged in finishing her lo=
ng
letter to Arthur-- surely one of the strangest ever written by a girl to the
man she loved--Mr. Fraser was reading an epistle which had reached him by t=
hat afternoon's
post. We will look over his shoulder, and see what was in it.
It was a letter dated from the vicarage of one=
of
the poorest parishes in the great Dock district in the east of London. It
began--
"Dear Sir,
"=
;I
shall be only too thankful to entertain your proposal for an exchange of livings, more especially as=
, at
first sight, it would seem that a=
ll the
advantage is on my side. The fact is, that the incessant strain of work here has at la=
st
broken down my health to such a d=
egree,
that the doctors tell me plainly I must choose between the comparative rest of a count=
ry
parish, or the certainty of passi=
ng to
a completer quiet before my time. Also, now that my children are growing up, I am very anxi=
ous to
remove them from the sights and s=
ounds
and tainted moral atmosphere of this poverty- stricken and degraded quarter.
"=
;But,
however that may be, I should not be doing my duty to you, if I did not warn you that this is no pari=
sh for
a man of your age to undertake, u=
nless
for strong reasons (for I see by the Clergy List that you are a year or so older than my=
self).
The work is positively ceaseless,=
and
often of a most shocking and thankless character; and there are almost no
respectable inhabitants; for nobo=
dy
lives in the parish, except those who are too poor to live elsewhere. The stipend, too, is, as you=
are
aware, not large. However, if, in=
face
of these disadvantages, you still entertain the idea of an exchange, perhaps we had
better meet. . . ."
The l=
etter
then entered into details.
"I think that will suit me very well,&quo=
t;
said Mr. Fraser, aloud to himself, as he put it down. "It will not gre=
atly
matter if my health does break down; and I ought to have gone long ago.
'Positively ceaseless,' he says the work is. Well, ceaseless work is the on=
ly thing
that can stifle thought. And yet it will be hard, coming up by the roots af=
ter
all these years. Ah me! this is a queer world, and a sad one for some of us=
! I
will write to the bishop at once."
From which it will be gathered that things had=
not
been going well with Mr. Fraser.
Meanwhile, Angela put her statement and the
accompanying letter into a large envelope. Then she took the queer emerald =
ring
off her finger, and, as there was nobody looking, she kissed it, and wrappe=
d it
up in a piece of cotton-wool, and stowed it away in the letter, and sealed =
it
up. Next she addressed it, in her clear miniature handwriting, to
"Arthur P. Heigham, Esq.=
, "Care=
of
Mrs. Carr, <=
/span>"Madeira,"
as La=
dy
Bellamy had told her; and, calling to Pigott to come with her, started off =
to
the post-office to register and post her precious packet, for the Madeira m=
ail
left Southampton on the morrow.
She had just time to reach the office, affix t=
he
three shillings' worth of stamps that the letter took, and register it, when
the postman came up, and she saw it stamped and bundled into his bag with t=
he
others, just as though it were nothing, instead of her whole life depending=
on
it; and away it went on its journey, as much beyond recall as yesterday's s=
ins.
"And so you have been a-writing to him,
Miss?" said Pigott, as soon as they were out of the office.
"Yes, Pigott," and she told her what
Lady Bellamy had said. She listened attentively, with a shrewd twinkle in h=
er
eyes.
"I'm thinking, dearie, that it's a pity y=
ou
didn't post yourself, that's the best letter; it can't make no mistakes, nor
fall into the hands of them it isn't meant for."
"What can you mean?"
"I'm thinking, miss, that change of air i=
s a
wonderful good thing after sickness, especially sea-air," answered Pig=
ott,
oracularly.
"I don't in the least understand you. Rea=
lly,
Pigott, you drive me wild with your parables."
"Lord, dear, for all you're so clever you
never could see half an inch into a brick wall, and that with my meaning as
clear as a haystick in a thunderstorm."
This last definition quite finished Angela. Wh=
y,
she wondered, should a haystack be clearer in a thunderstorm than at any ot=
her
time. She looked at her companion helplessly, and was silent.
"Bless me, what I have been telling, as p=
lain
as plain can be, is, why don't you go to this Mad--Mad--what's the name?--I
never can think of them foreign names. I'm like Jakes and the flowers: he s=
ays
the smaller and 'footier' they are, the longer the name they sticks on to t=
hem,
just to puzzle a body who----"
"Madeira," suggested Angela, with the
calmness of despair.
"Yes, that's it--Madeiry. Well, why don't=
you
go to Madeiry along with your letter to look after Mr. Arthur? Like enough =
he
is in a bit of a mess there. So far as I know anything about their ways, yo=
ung
men always are, in a general sort of way, for everlasting a-caterwauling af=
ter
some one or other, for all the world like a tom on the tiles, more especial=
if
they are in love with somebody else. But, dear me, a sensible woman don't
bother her head about that. She just goes and hooks them out of it, and then
she knows where they are, and keeps them there."
"Oh, Pigott, never mind all these
reflections, though I'm sure I don't know how you can think of such things.=
The
idea of comparing poor dear Arthur with a tom-cat! But tell me, how can I g=
o to
Madeira? Supposing that he is married?"
"Well, then you would learn all about it =
for
yourself, and no gammoning; and there'd be an end to it, one way or the
other."
"But would it be quite modest, to run aft=
er
him like that?"
"Modest, indeed! And why shouldn't a young
lady travel for her health? I have heard say that this Madeiry is a wonderf=
ul
place for the stomach."
"The lungs, Pigott--the lungs."
"Well, then, the lungs. But it don't matt=
er;
they ain't far off each other."
"But, Pigott, who could I go with? I could
not go alone."
"Go with? Why, me, of course."
"I can hardly fancy you at sea, Pigott.&q=
uot;
"And why not, miss? I dare say I shall do=
as
well as other folks there; and if I do go to the bottom, as seems likely,
there's plenty of room for a respectable person there, I should hope. Look
here, dear. You'll never be happy unless you marry Mr. Arthur; so don't you=
go
and throw away a chance, just out of foolishness, and for fear of what folks
say. That's how dozens of women make a mess of it. Folks say one thing to-d=
ay
and another to-morrow, but you'll remain you for all that. Maybe he's marri=
ed;
and, if so, it's a bad business, and there's an end of it; but maybe, too, =
he
isn't. As for that letter, as likely as not the other one will put it in the
fire. I should, I doubt, if I were in her shoes. So don't you lose any time,
for, if he isn't married, it's like enough he soon will be."
Angela felt that there was sense in what her o=
ld
nurse said, though the idea was a new one to her, and it made her thoughtfu=
l.
"I'll think about it," she said,
presently. "I wonder what Mr. Fraser would say about it."
"Perhaps one thing, and perhaps another. =
He's
good and kind, but he hasn't got much head for these sort of things, he's
always thinking of something else. Just look what a fool Squire George (may=
he
twist and turn in his grave) made of him. You ask him, if you like; but you=
be guided
by yourself, dearie. Your head is worth six Reverend Fraser's when you brin=
g it
to a thing. But I must be off, and count the linen."
That evening, after tea, Angela went down to M=
r.
Fraser's. He was directing an envelope to the Lord Bishop of his diocese wh=
en
she entered; but he hurriedly put it away in the blotting-paper.
"Well, Angela, did you get your letter
off?"
"Yes, Mr. Fraser, it was just in time to
catch the mail to-morrow. But, do you know, that is what I want to speak to=
you
about. Pigott thinks that, under all the circumstances"--here Angela
hesitated a little--"she and I had better go to Madeira and find out h=
ow
things stand, and I almost think that she is right."
"Certainly," answered Mr. Fraser, ri= sing and looking out of the window. "You have a great deal at stake."<= o:p>
"You do not think that it would be
immodest?"
"My dear Angela, when in such a case as t=
his
a woman goes to seek the man she loves, and whom she believes loves her, I =
do
not myself see where there is room for immodesty."
"No, nor do I, and I do love him so very
dearly; he is all my life to me."
Mr. Fraser winced visibly.
"What is the matter? have you got a
headache?"
"Nothing, only a twinge here," and he
pointed to his heart.
Angela looked alarmed; she took a womanly inte=
rest
in anybody's ailments.
"I know what it is," she said.
"Widow James suffers from it. You must take it in hand at once, or it =
will
become chronic after meals, as hers is."
Mr. Fraser smiled grimly as he answered:
"I am afraid that I have neglected it too
long--it has become chronic already. But about Madeira; have you, then, mad=
e up
your mind to go?"
"Yes, I think that I shall go. If he--is
married, you know--I can always come back again, and perhaps Pigott is righ=
t;
the letter might miscarry, and there is so much at stake."
"When shall you go, then?"
"By the next steamer, I suppose. They go
every week, I think. I will tell my father that I am going to-morrow."=
"Ah! you will want money, I suppose."=
;
"No, I believe that I have plenty of mone=
y of
my own now."
"Oh! yes, under your marriage settlement,=
no
doubt. Well, my dear, I am sure I hope that your journey will not be in vai=
n.
Did I tell you I have also written to Mr. Heigham by this mail, and told him
all I knew about the matter?"
"That is very kind and thoughtful of you;=
it
is just like you," answered Angela, gently.
"Not at all, not at all; but you have nev=
er
told me how you got on with Lady Bellamy--that is, except what she told you
about Mr. Heigham."
"Oh! it was a strange interview. What do =
you
think she wanted to teach me?"
"I have not the faintest idea."
"Magic."
"Nonsense."
"Yes, she did; she told me that she could
read all sorts of things in my face, and offered, if I would give myself up=
to
it, to make me more than human."
"Pshaw! it was a bit of charlatanism; she
wanted to frighten you."
"No, I think she believed what she said, =
and
I think that she has some sort of power. She seemed disappointed when I
refused, and, do you know it, if it had not been for Arthur, I do not think
that I should have refused. I love power, or rather knowledge; but then I l=
ove Arthur
more."
"And why is he incompatible with
knowledge?"
"I do not know; but she said that, to tri=
umph
over the mysteries she wished to teach me, I must free myself from earthly =
love
and cares. I told her that, if Arthur is married, I would think of it."=
;
"Well, Angela, to be frank, I do not beli=
eve
in Lady Bellamy's magic, and, if its practice brings people to what she is,=
I
think it is best left alone; indeed, I expect that the whole thing is a
delusion arising from her condition. But I think she is right when she told=
you
that to become a mistress of her art--or, indeed, of any noble art-- you mu=
st
separate yourself from earthly passions. I owe your Arthur a grudge as well=
as
Lady Bellamy. I hoped, Angela, to see you rise like a star upon this age of=
insolence
and infidelity. I wanted you to be a great woman; but that dream is all over
now."
"Why, Mr. Fraser?"
"Because, my dear, both history and
observation teach us that great gifts like yours partake of the character o=
f an
accident in a woman; they are not natural to her, and she does not wear such
jewels easily --they put her outside of her sex. It is something as though a
man were born into the world with wings. At first he would be very proud of
them, and go sailing about in the sky to the admiration of the crowds benea=
th
him; but by-and-by he would grow tired of flying alone, and after all, it is
not necessary to fly to transact the ordinary business of the world. And
perhaps at last he would learn to love somebody without wings, somebody who
could not fly, and he would always want to be with her down on the homely
earth, and not alone up in the heavenly heights. If a woman had all the gen=
ius
of Plato or all the learning of Solomon, it would be forgotten at the touch=
of
a baby's fingers.
"Well, well, we cannot fight against human
nature, and I daresay that in a few years you will forget that you can read
Greek as well as you can English, and were very near finding out a perfect =
way
of squaring the circle. Perhaps it is best so. Lady Bellamy may have read a
great many fine things in your face. Shall I tell you what I read there? I =
read
that you will marry your Arthur, and become a happy wife and a happier moth=
er;
that your life will be one long story of unassuming kindness, and that, whe=
n at
last you die, you will become a sacred memory in many hearts. That is what I
read. The only magic you will ever wield, Angela, will be the magic of your
goodness."
"Who knows? We cannot read the future,&qu=
ot;
she answered.
"And so you are going to Madeira next wee=
k.
Then, this will be the last time that we shall meet--before you go, I mean-=
-for
I am off to London to-morrow, for a while, on some business. When next we m=
eet,
if we do meet again, Angela, you will be a married woman. Do not start, dea=
r;
there is nothing shocking about that. But, perhaps, we shall not meet any
more."
"Oh, Mr. Fraser! why do you say such drea=
dful
things?"
"There is nothing dreadful about it, Ange=
la.
I am getting on in life, and am not so strong as I was; and you are both yo=
ung
and strong, and must in the ordinary course of things outlive me for many
years. But, whatever happens, my dear, I know that you always keep a warm
corner in your memory for your old master; and, as for me, I can honestly s=
ay,
that to have known and taught you has been the greatest privilege of a rath=
er
lonely life."
Here Angela began to cry.
"Don't cry, my dear. There is, thank God,
another meeting-place than this, and, if I reach the shore of that great fu=
ture
before you, I shall--but there, my dear, it is time for you to be going hom=
e.
You must not stop here to listen to this melancholy talk. Go home, Angela, =
and
think about your lover. I am busy to-night. Give me a kiss, dear, and go.&q=
uot;
Presently, she was gone, and he heard the
front-door close behind her. He went to the window, and watched the tall fo=
rm
gradually growing fainter in the gloaming, till it vanished altogether.
Then he came back, and, sitting down at his
writing-table, rested his grizzled head upon his hand and thought. Presentl=
y he
raised it, and there was a sad smile flickering round the wrinkles of the
nervous mouth.
"And now for 'hard labour at the London
docks,'" he said, aloud.
Nothing occurred to mar the prosperity of the
voyage of the Evening Star . That
beautiful little vessel declined to simplify the course of this history by
going to the bottom with Mildred and Arthur, as the imaginative reader may =
have
perhaps expected. She did not even get into a terrific storm, in order to g=
ive
Arthur the opportunity of performing heroic feats, and the writer of this
history the chance of displaying a profound knowledge of the names of ropes=
and
spars. On the contrary, she glided on upon a sea so still that even Miss Te=
rry was
persuaded to arouse herself from her torpor, and come upon deck, till at la=
st,
one morning, the giant peak of Teneriffe, soaring high above its circling
clouds, broke upon the view of her passengers.
Here they stopped for a week or so, enjoying
themselves very much in their new surroundings, till at length Arthur grew
tired of the islands, which was of course the signal for their departure. So
they returned, reaching Madeira after an absence of close upon a month. As =
they
dropped anchor in the little bay, Mildred came up to Arthur, and, touching =
him
with that gentle deference which she always showed towards him, asked him i=
f he
was not glad to be home again.
"Home!" he said. "I have no
home."
"Oh, Arthur;" she answered, "wh=
y do
you try to pain me? Is not my home yours also?"
So soon as they landed, he started off to &quo=
t;Miles'
Hotel," to see if any letters had come for him during his absence, and
returned, looking very much put out.
"What is the matter, Arthur?" asked =
Miss
Terry, once again happy at feeling her feet upon solid soil.
"Why, those idiots at the hotel have retu=
rned
a letter sent to me by my lawyer. They thought that I had left Madeira for
good, and the letter was marked, 'If left, return to Messrs. Borley and Son=
,'
with the address. And the mail went out this afternoon into the bargain, so=
it
will be a month before I can get it back again."
Had Arthur known that this letter contained
clippings of the newspaper reports of the inquest on George Caresfoot, of w=
hose
death even he was in total ignorance, he would have had good reason to be p=
ut
out.
"Never mind, Arthur," said Mildred's
clear voice at his elbow--she was rarely much further from him than his sha=
dow;
"lawyers' letters are not, as a rule, very interesting. I never yet had
one that would not keep. Come and see if your pavilion--isn't that a grand =
name?--is
arranged to your liking, and then let us go to dinner, for Agatha here is d=
ying
of hunger--she has to make up for her abstinence at sea."
"I was always told," broke in that l=
ady,
"that yachting was charming, but I tell you frankly I have never been =
more
miserable in my life than I was on board your Evening Star ."
"Never mind, dear, you shall have a nice =
long
rest before we start for the coast of Spain."
And so Arthur soon settled down again into the
easy tenor of Madeira life. He now scarcely made a pretence of living at the
hotel, since, during their cruise, Mildred had had a pavilion which stood in
the garden luxuriously set up for his occupation. Here he was happy enough =
in a
dull, numb way, and, as the days went on, something of the old light came b=
ack
to his eyes, and his footfall again grew quick and strong as when it used to
fall in the corridors of the Abbey House. Of the past he never spoke, nor d=
id
Mildred ever allude to Angela after that conversation at sea which had ende=
d so
strangely. She contented herself with attempting to supplant her, and to a
certain extent she was successful. No man could have for very long remained
obdurate to such beauty and such patient devotion, and it is not wonderful =
that
he grew in a way to love her.
But there was this peculiarity about the
affair--namely, that the affection which he bore her was born more of her
stronger will than of his own feelings, as was shown by the fact that, so l=
ong
as he was actually with her and within the circle of her influence, her pow=
er over
him was predominant; but, the moment that he was out of her sight, his thou=
ghts
would fall back into their original channels, and the old sores would begin=
to
run. However much, too, he might be successful in getting the mastery of th=
is
troubles by day, at night they would assert themselves, and from the consta=
nt
and tormenting dreams which they inspired he could find no means of escape.=
For at least four nights out of every seven, f=
rom
the moment that he closed his eyes till he opened them again the morning, it
would seem to him that he had been in the company of Angela, under every
possible variety of circumstance, talking to her, walking with her, meeting=
her
suddenly or unexpectedly in crowded places or at dinner-parties-- always he=
r,
and no one else--till at last poor Arthur began to wonder if his spirit took
leave of his body in sleep and went to seek her, and, what is more, found h=
er.
Or was it nothing but a fantasy? He could not tell; but, at any rate, it wa=
s a
fact, and it would have been hard to say if it distressed or rejoiced him m=
ost.
Occasionally, too, he would fall into a fit of
brooding melancholy that would last him for a day or two, and which Mildred
would find it quite impossible to dispel. Indeed, when he got in that way, =
she
soon discovered that the only thing to do was to leave him alone. He was su=
ffering
acutely, there was no doubt about that, and when any animal suffers, includ=
ing
man, it is best left in solitude. A sick or wounded beast always turns out =
of
the herd to recover or die.
When Mildred saw him in this state of mental
desolation, she would shake her head and sigh, for it told her that she was=
as
far as ever from the golden gate of her Eldorado. As has been said, hers was
the strongest will, and, even if he had not willed it, she could have marri=
ed
him any day she wished; but, odd as it may seem, she was too conscientious.=
She
had determined that she would not marry him unless she was certain that he
loved her, and to this resolution, as yet, she firmly held. Whatever her fa=
ults
may have been, Mildred Carr had all the noble unselfishness that is so comm=
on
in her sex. For herself and her own reputation she cared, comparatively
speaking, nothing; whilst for Arthur's ultimate happiness she was very
solicitous.
One evening--it was one of Arthur's black days,
when he had got a fit of what Mildred called "Angela fever"--they
were walking together in the garden, Arthur in silence, with his hands in h=
is
pockets and his pipe in his mouth, and Mildred humming a little tune by way=
of
amusing herself, when they came to the wall that edged the precipice. Arthu=
r leant
over it and gazed at the depths below.
"Don't, dear, you will tumble over,"
said Mildred, in some alarm.
"I think it would be a good thing if I
did," he answered, moodily.
"Are you, then, so tired of the world--and
me?"
"No, dear, I am not tired of you; forgive=
me,
Mildred, but I am dreadfully miserable. I know that it is very ungracious a=
nd
ungrateful of me, but it is the fact."
"You are thinking of her =
span>again,
Arthur?"
"Yes, I have got a fit of it. I suppose t=
hat
she has not been out of my mind for an hour altogether during the last
forty-eight hours. Talk of being haunted by a dead person, it is infinitely
worse being haunted by a living one."
"I am very sorry for you, dear."
"Do you suppose, Mildred, that this will =
go
on for all my life, that I shall always be at the mercy of these bitter
memories and thoughts?"
"I don't know, Arthur. I hope not."<= o:p>
"I wish I were dead--I wish I were
dead," he broke out, passionately. "She has destroyed my life, all
that was happy in me is dead, only my body lives on. I am sure I don't know,
Mildred, how you can care for anything so worthless."
She kissed him, and answered,
"Dearest, I had rather love you as you ar=
e than
any other man alive. Time does wonders; perhaps in time you will get over i=
t.
Oh! Arthur, when I think of what she has made you, and what you might have =
been
if you had never known her, I long to tell that woman all my mind. But you =
must
be a man, dear; it is weak to give way to a mad passion, such as this is no=
w.
Try to think of something else; work at something."
"I have no heart for it, Mildred, I don't
feel as though I could work; and, if you cannot make me forget, I am sure I=
do
not know what will."
Mildred sighed, and did not answer. Though she
spoke hopefully about it to him, she had little faith in his getting over h=
is
passion for Angela now. Either she must marry him as he was, or else let hi=
m go
altogether; but which? The struggle between her affection and her idea of d=
uty
was very sore, and as yet she could come to no conclusion.
One thing there was that troubled her
considerably, and this was that, though Madeira was almost empty, there were
enough people in it to get up a good deal of gossip about herself and Arthu=
r.
Now, it would have been difficult to find anybody more entirely careless of=
the
judgments of society than Mildred, more especially as her great wealth and =
general
popularity protected her from slights. But, for all her oddities, she was a
thorough woman of the world; and she knew, none better, that, in pursuance =
of
an almost invariable natural law, there is nothing that lowers a woman so m=
uch
in the estimation of a man as the knowledge that she is talked about, even
though he himself is the cause of the talk. This may be both illogical and
unjust, but it is, none the less, true.
But, if Mildred still hesitated, Arthur did no=
t.
He was very anxious that they should be married; indeed, he almost insisted=
on
it. The position was one that was far from being agreeable to him, for all =
such
intimacies must, from their very nature, necessitate a certain amount of fa=
lse
swearing. They are throughout an acted lie; and, when the lie is acted, it =
must
sometimes be spoken. Now, this is a state of affairs that is repugnant to an
honourable man, and one that not unfrequently becomes perfectly intolerable.
Many is the love-affair that comes to a sudden end because the man finds it
impossible to permanently constitute himself a peregrinating falsehood. But,
oddly enough, it has been found difficult to persuade the other contracting=
party
of the validity of the excuse, and, however unjust it may be, one has known=
of
men who have seen their defection energetically set down to more vulgar cau=
ses.
Arthur was no exception to this rule. He found
himself in a false position, and he hated it. Indeed, he determined before =
long
he would place it before Mildred in the light of an alternative, that he sh=
ould
either marry her, or that an end should be put to their existing relations.=
As the autumn came on, a great south-west gale
burst over Madeira, and went sweeping away up the Bay of Biscay. It blew for
three days and nights, and was one of the heaviest on record. When it first
began, the English mail was due; but when it passed there were still no sig=
ns of
her, and prophets of evil were not wanting who went to and fro shaking their
heads, and suggesting that she had probably foundered in the Bay.
Two more days went by, and there were still no=
signs
of her, though the telegraph told them that she had left Southampton Docks =
at
the appointed time and date. By this time, people in Madeira could talk of =
nothing
else.
"Well, Arthur, no signs of the Roman? " said Mildred, on the fifth=
day.
"No, the Garth Castle is due in to-day. Perhaps she may have h=
eard something
of her."
"Yes," said Miss Terry, absently;
"she may have fallen in with some of the wreckage."
"I must say that is a cheerful
suggestion," answered Arthur. "She is an awful old tub, and, I
daresay, ran before the gale for Vigo, that is all."
"Let us hope so," said Mildred,
doubtfully. "What is it, John?"
"The housemaid wishes to speak to you,
please, ma'am."
"Very good, I will come."
It has been hinted that Agatha Terry was looki=
ng
absent on the morning in question. There was a reason for it. For some time
past there had been growing up in the bosom of this excellent lady a
consciousness that things were not altogether as they should be. Miss Terry=
was
not clever, indeed it may be said that she was dense, but still she could n=
ot
but see that there was something odd in the relations between Arthur and
Mildred. For instance, it struck her as unusual that two persons who were n=
ot
married, nor even, so far as she knew, engaged, should habitually call each
other "dear," and even sometimes "dearest."
But on the previous evening, when engaged in a
search after that species of beetle that loves the night, she chanced to co=
me
across the pair standing together on the museum verandah, and, to her horro=
r,
she saw, even in that light, that Mildred's arm was round Arthur's neck, and
her head was resting on his heart. Standing aghast, she saw more; for prese=
ntly
Mildred raised her hand, and, drawing Arthur's head down to the level of her
own, kissed him upon the face.
There was no doubt about it, it was a most
deliberate kiss--a kiss without any extenuating circumstances. He was not e=
ven
going away, and Agatha could only come to one conclusion, that they were ei=
ther
going to be married--or "they ought to be."
She sought no more beetles that evening, but on
the following morning, when Mildred departed to see the housemaid, leaving
Arthur and herself together on the verandah, she thought it was her
"duty" to seek a little information.
"Arthur," she said, with a beating
heart, "I want to ask you something. Are you engaged to Mildred?"=
He hesitated, and then answered.
"No, I suppose not, Miss Terry."
"Nor married to her?"
"No; why do you ask?"
"Because I think you ought to be."
"I quite agree with you. I suppose that y=
ou
have noticed something?"
"Yes, I have. I saw her kissing you,
Arthur."
He blushed like a girl.
"Oh, Arthur," she went on, bursting =
into
tears, "don't let this sort of thing go on, or poor Mildred will lose =
her
reputation; and you must know what a dreadful thing that is for any woman. =
Why
don't you marry her?"
"Because she refused to marry me."
"And yet--and yet she kisses you--like
that!" added Miss Terry, as the peculiar fervour of the embrace in
question came back to her recollection. "Ah, I don't know what to
think."
"Best not think about it at all, Miss Ter=
ry.
It won't bear reflection."
"Oh, Arthur, how could you?"
He looked very uncomfortable as he answered--<= o:p>
"I know that I must seem a dreadful brute=
to
you. I daresay I am; but, Miss Terry, it would, under all the circumstances=
, be
much more to the point, if you insisted on Mildred's marrying me."
"I dare not. You do not know Mildred. She
would never submit to it from me."
"Then I must; and, what is more, I will d=
o it
now."
"Thank you, Arthur, thank you. I cannot t=
ell
you how grateful I am to you."
"There is no need to be grateful to the
author of this mischief."
"And supposing she refuses--what will you=
do
then?"
"Then I think that I shall go away at onc=
e.
Hush! here she comes."
"Well, Arthur, what are you and Agatha
plotting together? You both look serious enough."
"Nothing, Mildred--that is, only another
sea-voyage."
Mildred glanced at him uneasily. She did not l=
ike
the tone in his voice.
"I have a bit of bad news for you, Arthur.
That fool, that idiot, Jane"--and she stamped her little foot upon the
pavement--"has upset the mummy hyacinth-pot and broken the flower off =
just
as it was coming into bloom. I have given her a quarter's wages and her pas=
sage
back to England, and packed her off."
"Why, Mildred," remonstrated Miss Te=
rry,
"what a fuss to make about a flower!"
She turned on her almost fiercely.
"I had rather have broken my arm, or anyt=
hing
short of my neck, than that she should have broken that flower. Arthur plan=
ted
it, and now the clumsy girl has destroyed it," and Mildred looked as
though she were going to cry.
As there was nothing more to be said, Miss Ter=
ry
went away. As soon as she was gone, Mildred turned to Arthur and said--
"You were right, Arthur; we shall never s=
ee
it bloom in this world."
"Never mind about the flower, dear; it ca=
nnot
be helped. I want to speak to you of something more important. Miss Terry s=
aw
you kiss me last night, and she not unnaturally is anxious to know what it =
all means."
"And did you tell her?"
"Yes."
It was Mildred's turn to blush now.
"Mildred, you must listen to me. This can=
not
go on any more; either you must marry me, or----"
"Or what?"
"Or I must go away. At present our whole =
life
is a lie."
"Do you really wish me to marry you,
Arthur?"
"I not only wish it, I think it
necessary."
"Have you nothing more to say than
that?"
"Yes, I have to say that I will do my bes=
t to
make you a good and faithful husband, and that I am sure you will make me a
good wife."
She dropped her face upon her hands and though=
t.
Just then Miss Terry came hurrying up.
"Oh, Arthur!" she said, "just
think, the Roman is in, after all, but all her boats are =
gone,
and they say that half of her passengers and crew are washed overboard; do =
go
down and see about it."
He hesitated a little.
"Go, dear," whispered Mildred. "=
;I
want time to think. I will give you my answer this afternoon."
Mildred sat still on the verandah thinking, but
she had not been there many minutes before a servant came with her English
letters that had been brought by the unfortunate Roman , and at the same time informed he=
r that
the Garth Castle had been sighted, and would anchor in a =
few
hours. Mildred reflected that it was not often they got two English mails in
one day. She began idly turning over the packet before her. Of late letters=
had
lost much of their interest for Mildred.
Presently, however, her hand made a movement of
almost electric swiftness, and the colour left her face as she seized a sto=
ut
envelope directed in a hand of peculiar delicacy to "Arthur Heigham, E=
sq.,
care of Mrs. Carr, Madeira." Mildred knew the handwriting, she had see=
n it
in Arthur's pocket-book. It was Angela Caresfoot's. Next to it there was
another letter addressed to Arthur in a hand that she did not know, but bea=
ring
the same postmarks, "Bratham" and "Roxham." She put them
both aside, and then took up the thick letter and examined it. It had two
peculiarities--first, it was open, having come unsealed in transit, and been
somewhat roughly tied up with a piece of twine; and secondly, it contained =
some
article of jewellery. Indeed, by dint of a little pressing on the outside
paper, she was able to form a pretty accurate opinion as to what it was. It=
was
a ring. If she had turned pale before when she saw the letter, she was paler
still now.
"Heavens," she thought, "why do=
es
she send him a ring? Has anything happened to her husband? If she is a free
woman, I am lost."
Mildred looked at the letter lying open before
her, and a terrible temptation took possession of her. She took it up and p=
ut
it down again, and then again she took it up, wiping the cold perspiration =
from
her forehead.
"My whole life is at stake," she
thought.
Then she hesitated no longer, but, taking the
letter, slipped off the piece of twine, and drew its contents from the
envelope. The first thing to fall out, wrapped in a little cotton-wool, was=
the
ring. She looked at it, and recognized it as Arthur's engagement ring, the =
same
that Lady Bellamy had taken with her. Then, putting aside the statement, she
deliberately unfolded the letter, and read it.
Do not think too hardly of her, my reader. The
temptation was very sore. But, when one yields to temptation, retribution is
not unfrequently hard upon its track, and it would only have been necessary=
to
watch Mildred's face to see that, if she had sinned, the sin went hand in h=
and
with punishment. In turn, it took an expression of astonishment, grief, awe,
and despair. She read the letter to the last word, then she took the statem=
ent,
and glanced through it, smiling once or twice as she read. Next she replaced
everything in the envelope, and, taking it, together with the other letter
addressed to Arthur, unbuttoned the top of her loose-bodied white dress, and
placed them in her bosom.
"It is over," she said to herself.
"I can never marry him now. That woman is as far above me as the stars,
and, sooner or later, he would find it all out. He must go, ah, God! he mus=
t go
to marry her . Why should I not de=
stroy
these letters, and marry him to-morrow? bind him to me by a tie that no let=
ters
can ever break? What! purchase his presence at the price of his daily scorn?
Oh, such water is too bitter for me to drink! I have sinned against you,
Arthur, but I will sin no more. Good-bye, my dear, good-bye."
And she laid her throbbing head upon the rail =
of
the verandah, and wept bitterly.
About three o'clock that afternoon Arthur retu=
rned
to the Quinta, having lunched on board the Roman . He found Mildred sitting in her =
favourite
place on the museum verandah. She was very pale, and, if he had watched her=
, he
would have seen that she was trembling all over, but he did not observe her
particularly.
"Well," he said, "it is all
nonsense about half the crew being drowned; only one man was killed, by the
fall of a spar, poor chap. They ran into Vigo, as I thought. The other mail=
is
just coming in-- but what is the matter, Mildred? You look pale."
"Nothing, dear; I have a good deal to thi=
nk
of, that is all."
"Ah, yes! Well, my love, have you made up
your mind?"
"Why did I refuse to marry you before; for
your sake, or mine, Arthur?"
"You said--absurdly, I thought--for
mine!"
"And what I said I meant, and what I mean=
t, I
mean. Look me in the face, dear, and tell me, upon your honour as a gentlem=
an,
that you love me, really love me, and I will marry you to-morrow."
"I am very fond of you, Mildred, and I wi=
ll
make you a good and true husband."
"Precisely; that is what I expected, but =
it
is not enough for me. There was a time when I t=
hought
that I could be well satisfied if you would only look kindly upon me, but I
suppose that l'appetit vient en ma=
ngeant
, for, now you do that, I am not satisfied. I long to reign alone. But that=
is
not all. I will not consent to tie you, who do not love me, to my apron-str=
ings
for life. Believe me, the time is very near when you would curse me, if I d=
id.
You say"--and she rose and stretched out her arm--"that you will
either marry me or go. I have made my choice. I will not beat out my heart
against a stone. I will not marry you. Go, Arthur, go!"
A great anxiety came into his face.
"Do you fully understand what you are say=
ing,
Mildred? Such ties as exist between us cannot be lightly broken."
"But I will break them, and my own heart =
with
them, before they become chains so heavy that you cannot bear them.
Arthur"--and she came up to him, and put her hands upon his shoulders,
looking, with wild and sorrowful eyes, straight into his face--"tell me
now, dear--do not palter, or put me off with any courteous falsehood--tell =
me
as truly as you will speak upon the judgment-day, do you still love Angela =
Caresfoot
as much as ever?"
"Mildred, you should not ask me such pain=
ful
questions; it is not right of you."
"It is right; and you will soon know that=
it
is. Answer me."
"Then, if you must have it, I do ."
Her face became quite hard. Slowly she took her
hands from his shoulders.
"And you have the effrontery to ask me to
marry you with one breath, and to tell me this with the next. Arthur, you h=
ad
better go. Do not consider yourself under any false obligation to me. Go, a=
nd
go quickly."
"For God's sake, think what you are doing,
Mildred!"
"Oh! I have thought--I have thought too m=
uch.
There is nothing left but to say good-bye. Yes, it is a very cruel word. Do=
you
know that you have passed over my life like a hurricane, and wrenched it up=
by the
roots?"
"Really, Mildred, you mystify me. I don't
understand you. What can be the meaning of all this?"
She looked at him for a few seconds, and then =
answered,
in a quiet, matter-of-fact voice.
"I forgot, Arthur; here are your English
letters;" and she drew them from her bosom and gave them to him.
"Perhaps they will explain things a little. Meanwhile, I will tell you
something. Angela Caresfoot's husband is dead; indeed, she was never really married to him." And then she turne=
d, and
slowly walked towards the entrance of the museum. In the boudoir, however, =
her
strength seemed to fail her, and she sank on a chair.
Arthur took the letter, written by the woman he
loved, and warm from the breast of the woman he was about to leave, and sto=
od
speechless. His heart stopped for a moment, and then sent the blood boundin=
g through
his veins like a flood of joy. The shock was so great that for a second or =
two
he staggered, and nearly fell. Presently, however, he recovered himself, and
another and very different thought overtook him.
Putting the letters into his pocket, he follow=
ed
Mildred into the boudoir. She was sitting, looking very faint, upon a chair,
her arms hanging down helplessly by her side.
"Mildred," he said, hoarsely.
She looked up with a faint air of surprise.
"What, are you not gone?"
"Mildred, beyond what you have just said I
know nothing of the contents of these letters; but whatever they may be, he=
re
and now, before I read them, I again offer to marry you. I owe it to you an=
d to
my own sense of what is right that I should marry you."
He spoke calmly, and with evident sincerity.
"Do you know that I read your letter just
now, and had half a mind to burn it; that I am little better than a
thief?"
"I guessed that you had read it."
"And do you understand that your Angela is
unmarried, that she was never really married at all--and that she asks noth=
ing
better than to marry you?"
"I understand."
"And you still offer to make me your
wife?"
"I do. What do you say?"
A flood of light filled Mildred's eyes as she =
rose
and confronted him.
"I say, Arthur, that you are a very noble
gentleman, and, that though from this day I must be a miserable woman, I sh=
all
always be proud to have loved you. Listen, my dear. When I read that letter=
, I
felt that your Angela towered over me like the Alps, her snowy purity stain=
ed only
by the reflected lights of heaven. I felt that I could not compete with suc=
h a
woman as this, that I could never hope to hold you from one so calmly faith=
ful,
so dreadfully serene, and I knew that she had conquered, robbing me for Tim=
e,
and, as I fear, leaving me beggared for Eternity. In the magnificence of her
undying power, in the calm certainty of her command, she flings me your lif=
e as
though it were nothing. 'Take it,' she says; 'he will never love you--he is=
mine;
but I can afford to wait. I shall claim him before the throne of God.' But =
now,
look you, Arthur, if you can behave like the generous- hearted gentleman you
are, I will show you that I am not behind you in generosity. I will not marry you. I have done with you; or, to =
be more
correct," and she gave a hard little laugh, "you have done with m=
e.
Go back to Angela, the beautiful woman with inscrutable grey eyes, who waits
for you, clothed in her eternal calm, like a mountain in its snows. I shall
send her that tiara as a wedding-present; it will become her well. Go back,
Arthur; but sometimes, when you are cloyed with unearthly virtue and
perfection, remember that a woman =
loved you. There, I have made you quite a
speech; you will always think of me in connection with fine words. Why don't
you go?"
Arthur stood utterly confused.
"And what will you do, Mildred?"
"I!" she answered, with the same hard
laugh. "Oh, don't trouble yourself about me. I shall be a happy woman =
yet.
I mean to see life now--go in for pleasure, power, ritualism, whatever comes
first. Perhaps, when we meet again, I shall be Lady Minster, or some other =
great
lady, and shall be able to tell you that I am very, very happy. A woman alw=
ays
likes to tell her old lover that, you know, though she would not like him to
believe it. Perhaps, too"--and here her eyes grew soft, and her voice
broke into a sob--"I shall have a consolation you know nothing of.&quo=
t;
He did not know what she meant; indeed, he was
half-distracted with grief and doubt.
For a moment more they stood facing each other=
in
silence, and then suddenly she flung her arms above her head, and uttering a
low cry of grief, turned, and ran swiftly down the stone passage into the
museum. Arthur hesitated for a while, and then followed her.
A painful sight awaited him in that silent
chamber; for there-- stretched on the ground before the statue of Osiris, l=
ike
some hopeless sinner before an inexorable justice, with her brown hair touc=
hed
to gold by a ray of sunlight from the roof--lay Mildred, as still as though=
she
were dead. He went to her, and tried to raise her, but she wrenched herself
loose, and, in an abandonment of misery, flung herself upon the ground agai=
n.
"I thought it was over," she said,
"and that you were gone. Go, dear, or this will drive me mad. Perhaps,
sometimes, you will write me."
He knelt beside her and kissed her, and then he
rose and went.
But for many a year was he haunted by that sce=
ne
of human misery enacted in the weird chamber of the dead. Never could he fo=
rget
the sight of Mildred lying in the sunlight, with the marble face of mocking
calm looking down upon her, and the mortal frames of those who, in their da=
y,
had suffered as she suffered, and ages since had found the rest that she in
time would reach, scattered all around--fit emblems of the fragile vanity of
passions which suck their strength from earth alone.
When Arthur got out of the gates of the Quinta
Carr, he hurried to the hotel, with the intention of reading the letters
Mildred had given him, and, passing through the dining-room, seated himself
upon the "stoep" which overlooked the garden in order to do so. At
this time of year it was, generally speaking, a quiet place enough; but on =
this
particular day scarcely had Arthur taken the letter from his pocket, and--h=
aving
placed the ring that it contained upon his trembling finger, and repudiating
the statement, marked "to be read first," on account of its
business-like appearance--glanced at the two first lines of Angela's own
letter, when the sound of hurrying feet and many chattering voices reminded=
him
that he could expect no peace anywhere in the neighbourhood of the hotel. T=
he
second English mail was in, and all the crowd of passengers, who were at th=
is
time pouring out to the Cape to escape the English winter, had come, rejoic=
ing,
ashore, to eat, drink, be merry, and buy parrots and wicker chairs while th=
e vessel
coaled.
He groaned and fled, in his hurry leaving the
statement on the bench on which he was seated.
Some half-mile or so away, to the left of the
town, where the sea had encroached a little upon the shore of the island, t=
here
was a nook of peculiar loveliness. Here the giant hand of Nature had cleft a
ravine in the mountains that make Madeira, down which a crystal streamlet t=
rickled
to the patch of yellow sand that edged the sea. Its banks sloped like a nat=
ural
terrace, and were clothed with masses of maidenhair ferns interwoven with
feathery grasses, whilst up above among the rocks grew aloes and every sort=
of
flowering shrub.
Behind, clothed in forest, lay the mass of
mountains, varied by the rich green of the vine-clad valleys, and in front =
heaved
the endless ocean, broken only by one lonely rock that stood grimly out aga=
inst
the purpling glories of the evening sky. This spot Arthur had discovered in=
the
course of his rambles with Mildred, and it was here that he bent his steps =
to
be alone to read his letters. Scarcely had he reached the place, however, w=
hen
he discovered, to his intense vexation, that he had left the enclosure in
Angela's letter upon the verandah at the hotel. But, luckily, it chanced th=
at,
within a few yards of the spot where he had seated himself, there was a nat=
ive
boy cutting walking-sticks from the scrub. He called to him in Portuguese, =
of
which he had learnt a little, and, writing something on a card, told him to
take it to the manager of the hotel, and to bring back what he would give h=
im.
Delighted at the chance of earning sixpence, the boy started at a run, and =
at
last he was able to begin to read his letter.
Had Arthur not been in quite such a hurry to l=
eave
the hotel, he might have seen something which would have interested him,
namely, a very lovely woman--so lovely, indeed, that everybody turned their
heads to look at her as she passed, accompanied by another woman clad in a =
stiff
black gown, not at all lovely, and rather ancient, but, for all that,
well-favoured and pleasant to look on, being duly convoyed to their room in=
the
hotel by his friend the manager.
"Well, thank my stars, here we be at
last," said the elderly stout person, with a gasp, as the door of the =
room
closed upon the pair; "and it's my opinion that here I shall stop till=
my
dying day, for, as for getting on board one of those beastly ships again, I
couldn't do it, and that's flat. Now look here, dearie, don't you sit there=
and
look frightened, but just set to and clean yourself up a bit. I'm off downs=
tairs
to see if I can find out about things; everybody's sure to know everybody
else's business in a place like this, because, you see, the gossip can't get
out of a bit of an island, it must travel round and round till it ewaporate=
s. I
shall soon know if he is married or not, and if he is, why, what's done can=
't
be undone, and it's no use crying over spilt milk, and we'll be off home,
though I doubt I sha'n't live to get there, and if he isn't why so much the
better."
"Oh! nurse, do stop talking, and go quick=
ly;
can't you see that I am in an agony of suspense? I must get it over one way=
or
the other."
"Hurry no man's cattle, my dear, or I sha=
ll
make a mess of it. Now, Miss Angela, just you keep cool, it ain't no manner=
of
use flying into a state. I'll be back presently."
But, as soon as she was gone, poor Angela flew into a considerable state; for, flinging herself upon her knees by the bed,= she broke into hysterical prayers to her Maker that Arthur might not be taken f= rom her. Poor girl! alternately racked by sick fears and wild hopes, hers was not a = very enviable position during the apparently endless ten minutes that followed.<= o:p>
Meanwhile, Pigott had descended to the cool ha=
ll,
round which were arranged rows of hammocks, and was looking out for some one
with whom to enter into conversation. A Portuguese waiter approached her, b=
ut she
majestically waved him away, under the impression that he could not speak
English, though as a matter of fact his English was purer than her own.
Presently a pretty little woman, leading a bab=
y by
the hand, came up to her.
"Pray, do you want anything? I am the wif=
e of
the manager."
"Yes, ma'am. I want a little information-=
-at
least, there's another that does. Did you ever happen to hear of a Mr.
Heigham?"
"Mr. Heigham? Indeed, yes; I know him wel=
l.
He was here a few minutes since."
"Then perhaps, ma'am, you can tell me if =
he
is married to a Mrs. Carr that lives on this island?"
"Not that I know of," she answered, =
with
a little smile; "but there is a good deal of talk about them--people s=
ay
that, though they are not married, they ought to be, you know."
"That's the best bit of news I have heard=
for
many a day. As for the talk, I don't pay no manner of heed to that. If he a=
in't
married to her, he won't marry her now, I'll go bail. Thank you kindly,
ma'am."
At that moment they were interrupted by the
entrance of a little ragged boy into the hall, who timidly held out a card =
to
the lady to whom Pigott was talking.
"Do you want to find Mr. Heigham?" s=
he
said. "Because if so, this boy will show you where he is. He has sent =
here
for a paper that he left. I found it on the verandah just now, and wondered
what it was. Perhaps you would take it to him if you go. I don't like trust=
ing
this boy--as likely as not he will lose it."
"That will just suit. Just you tell the b=
oy
to wait while I fetch my young lady, and we will go with him. Is this the
paper? And in her writing, too! Well, I never! There, I'll be back in no
time."
Pigott went upstairs far too rapidly for a per=
son
of her size and years, with the result that when she reached their room, wh=
ere
Angela was waiting half dead with suspense, she could only gasp.
"Well," said Angela, "be quick =
and
tell me."
"Oh, Lord! them stairs!" gasped Pigo=
tt.
"For pity's sake, tell me the worst!"=
;
"Now, miss, do give
a body time, and don't be a fool--begging pardon for----"
"Oh, Pigott, you are torturing me!"<= o:p>
"Well, miss, you muddle me so--but I am
coming to it. I went down them dratted stairs, and there I see a wonderful
nice-looking party with a baby."
"For God's sake tell me-- is Arthur marri=
ed? "
"Why, no, dearie--of course not. I was ju=
st
a-going to say----"
But whatever valuable remark Pigott was going =
to
make was lost to the world for ever, for Angela flung her arms round her ne=
ck
and began kissing her.
"Oh, oh! thank God--thank God! Oh, oh,
oh!"
Whereupon Pigott, being a very sensible person,
took her by the shoulders and tried to shake her, but it was no joke shakin=
g a
person of her height. Angela stood firm, and Pigott oscillated--that was th=
e only
visible result.
"Now, then, miss," she said, giving =
up
the shaking as a bad job, "no highstrikes, if you
please. Just you put on your hat and come for a bit of a walk in this queer
place with me. I haven't brought you up by hand this two-and-twenty year or
thereabouts, to see you go off in highstrikes, like a housemaid as has seen=
a
ghost."
Angela stopped, and did as she was bid.
Arthur read his letter, and his heart burnt wi=
th
passionate love of the true woman he had dared to doubt. Then he flung hims=
elf
upon the grass and looked at the ocean that sparkled and heaved before him,=
and
tried to think; but as yet he could not. The engines of his mind were rever=
sed
full speed, whilst his mind itself, with quick shudders and confusion, still
forged ahead upon its former course. He rose, and cast upon the scene around
him that long look we give to the place where a great happiness has found u=
s.
The sun was sinking fast behind the mountains,
turning their slabbed sides and soaring pinnacles to giant shields and spea=
rs
of fire. Beneath their mass, shadows--forerunners of the night--crept over =
the forests
and the crested rollers, whilst further from him the ocean heaved in a rosy
glow. Above, the ever-changing vault of heaven was of a beauty that no brush
could paint. On a ground-work of burning red were piled, height upon height,
deep ridges of purples and of crimsons. Nearer the horizon the colours
brightened to a dazzling gold, till at length they narrowed to the white in=
tensity
of the half- hidden eye of the sun vanishing behind the mountains; whilst u=
nderlying
the steady splendour of the upper skies flushed soft and melting shades of =
rose
and lilac. Blue space above him was broken up by fantastic clouds that floa=
ted
all on fire, and glowed like molten metal. The reflection, too, of all these
massed and varied lights in the azure of the eastern skies was full of sharp
contrasts and soft surprises, and a travelling eagle, sailing through space
before them, seemed to gather all their tints upon his vivid wings, and, as=
he passed
away, to leave a rainbow track of broken light.
But such a glory was too bright to last. The s=
un
sank swiftly, the celestial fires paled, the purples grew faint and died, a=
nd,
where they had been, night trailed her sombre plumes across the sea and sky=
.
But still the quiet glow of evening lingered, =
and
presently a line of light was shot athwart it, cutting a track of glory acr=
oss
the shadowed sea, so weird and sudden, that it might well have been the fir=
st
ray of a resurrection morn breaking in upon the twilight of the dead.
He gazed almost in awe, till the majestic sight
stilled the tumult of his heart, and his thoughts went up in thanks to the
Creator for the pure love he had found again, and which had not betrayed hi=
m.
Then he looked up, and there, stately and radiant, standing out clear again=
st the
shadows, her face illumined by that soft, yet vivid light, her trembling ar=
ms
outstretched to clasp him--was his lost Angela.
He saw her questioning glances fall upon him, =
and
the red blood waver on her cheek; he saw the love-lights gather in her eyes;
and then he saw no more, for she was in his arms, murmuring sweet broken wo=
rds.
Happy are those who thus shall find their Ange=
la,
whether it be here or--on the further shore of yonder solemn sea!
And Mildred? She lay there before the stone sy=
mbol
of inexorable judgment, and sobbed till the darkness covered her, and her h=
eart
broke in the silence.